rexresearch.com
Alexander HAMILTON, et
al :
The Federalist Papers
The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Federalist Papers, by
Alexander Hamilton, John Jay, and James Madison Title: The
Federalist Papers Author: Alexander Hamilton, John Jay, and James
Madison Release Date: November 6, 2009 [EBook #1404] Produced by
The Consitution Society, Anonymous Volunteers, and David Widger
THE FEDERALIST PAPERS
By
Alexander Hamilton,
John Jay,
James Madison
CONTENTS
FEDERALIST No. 1. General Introduction
FEDERALIST No. 2. Concerning Dangers from
Foreign Force and Influence
FEDERALIST No. 3. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 4. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 5. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force and Influence)
FEDERALIST No. 6. Concerning Dangers from
Dissensions Between the States
FEDERALIST No. 7. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning Dangers from Dissensions Between the States)
FEDERALIST No. 8. The Consequences of
Hostilities Between the States
FEDERALIST No. 9. The Union as a Safeguard
Against Domestic Faction and Insurrection
FEDERALIST No. 10. The Same Subject
Continued (The Union as a Safeguard Against Domestic Faction and
Insurrection)
FEDERALIST No. 11. The Utility of the Union
in Respect to Commercial Relations and a Navy
FEDERALIST No. 12. The Utility of the Union
In Respect to Revenue
FEDERALIST No. 13. Advantage of the Union
in Respect to Economy in Government
FEDERALIST No. 14. Objections to the
Proposed Constitution From Extent of Territory Answered
FEDERALIST No. 15. The Insufficiency of the
Present Confederation to Preserve the Union
FEDERALIST No. 16. The Same Subject
Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 17. The Same Subject
Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 18. The Same Subject
Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 19. The Same Subject
Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 20. The Same Subject
Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to
Preserve the Union)
FEDERALIST No. 21. Other Defects of the
Present Confederation
FEDERALIST No. 22. The Same Subject
Continued (Other Defects of the Present Confederation)
FEDERALIST No. 23. The Necessity of a
Government as Energetic as the One Proposed to the Preservation of
the Union
FEDERALIST No. 24. The Powers Necessary to
the Common Defense Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 25. The Same Subject
Continued (The Powers Necessary to the Common Defense Further
Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 26. The Idea of Restraining
the Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense
Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 27. The Same Subject
Continued (The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in
Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 28. The Same Subject
Continued (The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in
Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 29. Concerning the Militia
FEDERALIST No. 30. Concerning the General
Power of Taxation
FEDERALIST No. 31. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 32. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 33. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 34. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 35. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 36. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the General Power of Taxation)
FEDERALIST No. 37. Concerning the
Difficulties of the Convention in Devising a Proper Form of
Government.
FEDERALIST No. 38. The Same Subject
Continued, and the Incoherence of the Objections to the New Plan
Exposed.
FEDERALIST No. 39. The Conformity of the
Plan to Republican Principles
FEDERALIST No. 40. On the Powers of the
Convention to Form a Mixed Government Examined and Sustained.
FEDERALIST No. 41. General View of the
Powers Conferred by The Constitution
FEDERALIST No. 42. The Powers Conferred by
the Constitution Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 43. The Same Subject
Continued (The Powers Conferred by the Constitution Further
Considered)
FEDERALIST No. 44. Restrictions on the
Authority of the Several States
FEDERALIST No. 45. The Alleged Danger From
the Powers of the Union to the State Governments.
FEDERALIST No. 46. The Influence of the
State and Federal Governments Compared
FEDERALIST No. 47. The Particular Structure
of the New Government and the Distribution of Power Among Its
Different Parts.
FEDERALIST No. 48. These Departments Should
Not Be So Far Separated as to Have No Constitutional Control Over
Each Other.
FEDERALIST No. 49. Method of Guarding
Against the Encroachments of Any One Department of Government by
Appealing to the People Through a Convention.
FEDERALIST No. 50. Periodical Appeals to
the People Considered
FEDERALIST No. 51. The Structure of the
Government Must Furnish the Proper Checks and Balances Between the
Different Departments.
FEDERALIST No. 52. The House of
Representatives
FEDERALIST No. 53. The Same Subject
Continued (The House of Representatives)
FEDERALIST No. 54. The Apportionment of
Members Among the States
FEDERALIST No. 55. The Total Number of the
House of Representatives
FEDERALIST No. 56. The Same Subject
Continued (The Total Number of the House of Representatives)
FEDERALIST No. 57. The Alleged Tendency of
the New Plan to Elevate the Few at the Expense of the Many
Considered in Connection with Representation.
FEDERALIST No. 58. Objection That The
Number of Members Will Not Be Augmented as the Progress of
Population Demands.
FEDERALIST No. 59. Concerning the Power of
Congress to Regulate the Election of Members
FEDERALIST No. 60. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the
Election of Members)
FEDERALIST No. 61. The Same Subject
Continued (Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the
Election of Members)
FEDERALIST No. 62. The Senate
FEDERALIST No. 63. The Senate Continued
FEDERALIST No. 64. The Powers of the Senate
FEDERALIST No. 65. The Powers of the Senate
Continued
FEDERALIST No. 66. Objections to the Power
of the Senate To Set as a Court for Impeachments Further
Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 67. The Executive Department
FEDERALIST No. 68. The Mode of Electing the
President
FEDERALIST No. 69. The Real Character of
the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 70. The Executive Department
Further Considered
FEDERALIST No. 71. The Duration in Office
of the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 72. The Same Subject
Continued, and Re-Eligibility of the Executive Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 73. The Provision For The
Support of the Executive, and the Veto Power
FEDERALIST No. 74. The Command of the
Military and Naval Forces, and the Pardoning Power of the
Executive.
FEDERALIST No. 75. The Treaty-Making Power
of the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 76. The Appointing Power of
the Executive
FEDERALIST No. 77. The Appointing Power
Continued and Other Powers of the Executive Considered.
FEDERALIST No. 78. The Judiciary Department
FEDERALIST No. 79. The Judiciary Continued
FEDERALIST No. 80. The Powers of the
Judiciary
FEDERALIST No. 81. The Judiciary Continued,
and the Distribution of the Judicial Authority.
FEDERALIST No. 82. The Judiciary Continued.
FEDERALIST No. 83. The Judiciary Continued
in Relation to Trial by Jury
FEDERALIST No. 84. Certain General and
Miscellaneous Objections to the Constitution Considered and
Answered.
FEDERALIST No. 85. Concluding Remarks
FEDERALIST No. 1.
General Introduction
For the Independent Journal, Saturday, October 27,
1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AFTER an unequivocal experience of the inefficacy of the subsisting
federal government, you are called upon to deliberate on a new
Constitution for the United States of America. The subject speaks
its own importance; comprehending in its consequences nothing less
than the existence of the UNION, the safety and welfare of the parts
of which it is composed, the fate of an empire in many respects the
most interesting in the world. It has been frequently remarked that
it seems to have been reserved to the people of this country, by
their conduct and example, to decide the important question, whether
societies of men are really capable or not of establishing good
government from reflection and choice, or whether they are forever
destined to depend for their political constitutions on accident and
force. If there be any truth in the remark, the crisis at which we
are arrived may with propriety be regarded as the era in which that
decision is to be made; and a wrong election of the part we shall
act may, in this view, deserve to be considered as the general
misfortune of mankind.
This idea will add the inducements of philanthropy to those of
patriotism, to heighten the solicitude which all considerate and
good men must feel for the event. Happy will it be if our choice
should be directed by a judicious estimate of our true interests,
unperplexed and unbiased by considerations not connected with the
public good. But this is a thing more ardently to be wished than
seriously to be expected. The plan offered to our deliberations
affects too many particular interests, innovates upon too many local
institutions, not to involve in its discussion a variety of objects
foreign to its merits, and of views, passions and prejudices little
favorable to the discovery of truth.
Among the most formidable of the obstacles which the new
Constitution will have to encounter may readily be distinguished the
obvious interest of a certain class of men in every State to resist
all changes which may hazard a diminution of the power, emolument,
and consequence of the offices they hold under the State
establishments; and the perverted ambition of another class of men,
who will either hope to aggrandize themselves by the confusions of
their country, or will flatter themselves with fairer prospects of
elevation from the subdivision of the empire into several partial
confederacies than from its union under one government.
It is not, however, my design to dwell upon observations of this
nature. I am well aware that it would be disingenuous to resolve
indiscriminately the opposition of any set of men (merely because
their situations might subject them to suspicion) into interested or
ambitious views. Candor will oblige us to admit that even such men
may be actuated by upright intentions; and it cannot be doubted that
much of the opposition which has made its appearance, or may
hereafter make its appearance, will spring from sources, blameless
at least, if not respectable—the honest errors of minds led astray
by preconceived jealousies and fears. So numerous indeed and so
powerful are the causes which serve to give a false bias to the
judgment, that we, upon many occasions, see wise and good men on the
wrong as well as on the right side of questions of the first
magnitude to society. This circumstance, if duly attended to, would
furnish a lesson of moderation to those who are ever so much
persuaded of their being in the right in any controversy. And a
further reason for caution, in this respect, might be drawn from the
reflection that we are not always sure that those who advocate the
truth are influenced by purer principles than their antagonists.
Ambition, avarice, personal animosity, party opposition, and many
other motives not more laudable than these, are apt to operate as
well upon those who support as those who oppose the right side of a
question. Were there not even these inducements to moderation,
nothing could be more ill-judged than that intolerant spirit which
has, at all times, characterized political parties. For in politics,
as in religion, it is equally absurd to aim at making proselytes by
fire and sword. Heresies in either can rarely be cured by
persecution.
And yet, however just these sentiments will be allowed to be, we
have already sufficient indications that it will happen in this as
in all former cases of great national discussion. A torrent of angry
and malignant passions will be let loose. To judge from the conduct
of the opposite parties, we shall be led to conclude that they will
mutually hope to evince the justness of their opinions, and to
increase the number of their converts by the loudness of their
declamations and the bitterness of their invectives. An enlightened
zeal for the energy and efficiency of government will be stigmatized
as the offspring of a temper fond of despotic power and hostile to
the principles of liberty. An over-scrupulous jealousy of danger to
the rights of the people, which is more commonly the fault of the
head than of the heart, will be represented as mere pretense and
artifice, the stale bait for popularity at the expense of the public
good. It will be forgotten, on the one hand, that jealousy is the
usual concomitant of love, and that the noble enthusiasm of liberty
is apt to be infected with a spirit of narrow and illiberal
distrust. On the other hand, it will be equally forgotten that the
vigor of government is essential to the security of liberty; that,
in the contemplation of a sound and well-informed judgment, their
interest can never be separated; and that a dangerous ambition more
often lurks behind the specious mask of zeal for the rights of the
people than under the forbidden appearance of zeal for the firmness
and efficiency of government. History will teach us that the former
has been found a much more certain road to the introduction of
despotism than the latter, and that of those men who have overturned
the liberties of republics, the greatest number have begun their
career by paying an obsequious court to the people; commencing
demagogues, and ending tyrants.
In the course of the preceding observations, I have had an eye, my
fellow-citizens, to putting you upon your guard against all
attempts, from whatever quarter, to influence your decision in a
matter of the utmost moment to your welfare, by any impressions
other than those which may result from the evidence of truth. You
will, no doubt, at the same time, have collected from the general
scope of them, that they proceed from a source not unfriendly to the
new Constitution. Yes, my countrymen, I own to you that, after
having given it an attentive consideration, I am clearly of opinion
it is your interest to adopt it. I am convinced that this is the
safest course for your liberty, your dignity, and your happiness. I
affect not reserves which I do not feel. I will not amuse you with
an appearance of deliberation when I have decided. I frankly
acknowledge to you my convictions, and I will freely lay before you
the reasons on which they are founded. The consciousness of good
intentions disdains ambiguity. I shall not, however, multiply
professions on this head. My motives must remain in the depository
of my own breast. My arguments will be open to all, and may be
judged of by all. They shall at least be offered in a spirit which
will not disgrace the cause of truth.
I propose, in a series of papers, to discuss the following
interesting particulars:
THE UTILITY OF THE UNION TO YOUR POLITICAL PROSPERITY THE
INSUFFICIENCY OF THE PRESENT CONFEDERATION TO PRESERVE THAT UNION
THE NECESSITY OF A GOVERNMENT AT LEAST EQUALLY ENERGETIC WITH THE
ONE PROPOSED, TO THE ATTAINMENT OF THIS OBJECT THE CONFORMITY OF THE
PROPOSED CONSTITUTION TO THE TRUE PRINCIPLES OF REPUBLICAN
GOVERNMENT ITS ANALOGY TO YOUR OWN STATE CONSTITUTION and lastly,
THE ADDITIONAL SECURITY WHICH ITS ADOPTION WILL AFFORD TO THE
PRESERVATION OF THAT SPECIES OF GOVERNMENT, TO LIBERTY, AND TO
PROPERTY.
In the progress of this discussion I shall endeavor to give a
satisfactory answer to all the objections which shall have made
their appearance, that may seem to have any claim to your attention.
It may perhaps be thought superfluous to offer arguments to prove
the utility of the UNION, a point, no doubt, deeply engraved on the
hearts of the great body of the people in every State, and one,
which it may be imagined, has no adversaries. But the fact is, that
we already hear it whispered in the private circles of those who
oppose the new Constitution, that the thirteen States are of too
great extent for any general system, and that we must of necessity
resort to separate confederacies of distinct portions of the
whole.(1) This doctrine will, in all probability, be gradually
propagated, till it has votaries enough to countenance an open
avowal of it. For nothing can be more evident, to those who are able
to take an enlarged view of the subject, than the alternative of an
adoption of the new Constitution or a dismemberment of the Union. It
will therefore be of use to begin by examining the advantages of
that Union, the certain evils, and the probable dangers, to which
every State will be exposed from its dissolution. This shall
accordingly constitute the subject of my next address.
PUBLIUS
1. The same idea, tracing the arguments to their consequences, is
held out in several of the late publications against the new
Constitution.
FEDERALIST No. 2.
Concerning Dangers from Foreign Force and Influence
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, October 31, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
WHEN the people of America reflect that they are now called upon to
decide a question, which, in its consequences, must prove one of the
most important that ever engaged their attention, the propriety of
their taking a very comprehensive, as well as a very serious, view
of it, will be evident.
Nothing is more certain than the indispensable necessity of
government, and it is equally undeniable, that whenever and however
it is instituted, the people must cede to it some of their natural
rights in order to vest it with requisite powers. It is well worthy
of consideration therefore, whether it would conduce more to the
interest of the people of America that they should, to all general
purposes, be one nation, under one federal government, or that they
should divide themselves into separate confederacies, and give to
the head of each the same kind of powers which they are advised to
place in one national government.
It has until lately been a received and uncontradicted opinion that
the prosperity of the people of America depended on their continuing
firmly united, and the wishes, prayers, and efforts of our best and
wisest citizens have been constantly directed to that object. But
politicians now appear, who insist that this opinion is erroneous,
and that instead of looking for safety and happiness in union, we
ought to seek it in a division of the States into distinct
confederacies or sovereignties. However extraordinary this new
doctrine may appear, it nevertheless has its advocates; and certain
characters who were much opposed to it formerly, are at present of
the number. Whatever may be the arguments or inducements which have
wrought this change in the sentiments and declarations of these
gentlemen, it certainly would not be wise in the people at large to
adopt these new political tenets without being fully convinced that
they are founded in truth and sound policy.
It has often given me pleasure to observe that independent America
was not composed of detached and distant territories, but that one
connected, fertile, wide-spreading country was the portion of our
western sons of liberty. Providence has in a particular manner
blessed it with a variety of soils and productions, and watered it
with innumerable streams, for the delight and accommodation of its
inhabitants. A succession of navigable waters forms a kind of chain
round its borders, as if to bind it together; while the most noble
rivers in the world, running at convenient distances, present them
with highways for the easy communication of friendly aids, and the
mutual transportation and exchange of their various commodities.
With equal pleasure I have as often taken notice that Providence has
been pleased to give this one connected country to one united
people—a people descended from the same ancestors, speaking the same
language, professing the same religion, attached to the same
principles of government, very similar in their manners and customs,
and who, by their joint counsels, arms, and efforts, fighting side
by side throughout a long and bloody war, have nobly established
general liberty and independence.
This country and this people seem to have been made for each other,
and it appears as if it was the design of Providence, that an
inheritance so proper and convenient for a band of brethren, united
to each other by the strongest ties, should never be split into a
number of unsocial, jealous, and alien sovereignties.
Similar sentiments have hitherto prevailed among all orders and
denominations of men among us. To all general purposes we have
uniformly been one people each individual citizen everywhere
enjoying the same national rights, privileges, and protection. As a
nation we have made peace and war; as a nation we have vanquished
our common enemies; as a nation we have formed alliances, and made
treaties, and entered into various compacts and conventions with
foreign states.
A strong sense of the value and blessings of union induced the
people, at a very early period, to institute a federal government to
preserve and perpetuate it. They formed it almost as soon as they
had a political existence; nay, at a time when their habitations
were in flames, when many of their citizens were bleeding, and when
the progress of hostility and desolation left little room for those
calm and mature inquiries and reflections which must ever precede
the formation of a wise and well-balanced government for a free
people. It is not to be wondered at, that a government instituted in
times so inauspicious, should on experiment be found greatly
deficient and inadequate to the purpose it was intended to answer.
This intelligent people perceived and regretted these defects. Still
continuing no less attached to union than enamored of liberty, they
observed the danger which immediately threatened the former and more
remotely the latter; and being persuaded that ample security for
both could only be found in a national government more wisely
framed, they as with one voice, convened the late convention at
Philadelphia, to take that important subject under consideration.
This convention composed of men who possessed the confidence of the
people, and many of whom had become highly distinguished by their
patriotism, virtue and wisdom, in times which tried the minds and
hearts of men, undertook the arduous task. In the mild season of
peace, with minds unoccupied by other subjects, they passed many
months in cool, uninterrupted, and daily consultation; and finally,
without having been awed by power, or influenced by any passions
except love for their country, they presented and recommended to the
people the plan produced by their joint and very unanimous councils.
Admit, for so is the fact, that this plan is only RECOMMENDED, not
imposed, yet let it be remembered that it is neither recommended to
BLIND approbation, nor to BLIND reprobation; but to that sedate and
candid consideration which the magnitude and importance of the
subject demand, and which it certainly ought to receive. But this
(as was remarked in the foregoing number of this paper) is more to
be wished than expected, that it may be so considered and examined.
Experience on a former occasion teaches us not to be too sanguine in
such hopes. It is not yet forgotten that well-grounded apprehensions
of imminent danger induced the people of America to form the
memorable Congress of 1774. That body recommended certain measures
to their constituents, and the event proved their wisdom; yet it is
fresh in our memories how soon the press began to teem with
pamphlets and weekly papers against those very measures. Not only
many of the officers of government, who obeyed the dictates of
personal interest, but others, from a mistaken estimate of
consequences, or the undue influence of former attachments, or whose
ambition aimed at objects which did not correspond with the public
good, were indefatigable in their efforts to persuade the people to
reject the advice of that patriotic Congress. Many, indeed, were
deceived and deluded, but the great majority of the people reasoned
and decided judiciously; and happy they are in reflecting that they
did so.
They considered that the Congress was composed of many wise and
experienced men. That, being convened from different parts of the
country, they brought with them and communicated to each other a
variety of useful information. That, in the course of the time they
passed together in inquiring into and discussing the true interests
of their country, they must have acquired very accurate knowledge on
that head. That they were individually interested in the public
liberty and prosperity, and therefore that it was not less their
inclination than their duty to recommend only such measures as,
after the most mature deliberation, they really thought prudent and
advisable.
These and similar considerations then induced the people to rely
greatly on the judgment and integrity of the Congress; and they took
their advice, notwithstanding the various arts and endeavors used to
deter them from it. But if the people at large had reason to confide
in the men of that Congress, few of whom had been fully tried or
generally known, still greater reason have they now to respect the
judgment and advice of the convention, for it is well known that
some of the most distinguished members of that Congress, who have
been since tried and justly approved for patriotism and abilities,
and who have grown old in acquiring political information, were also
members of this convention, and carried into it their accumulated
knowledge and experience.
It is worthy of remark that not only the first, but every succeeding
Congress, as well as the late convention, have invariably joined
with the people in thinking that the prosperity of America depended
on its Union. To preserve and perpetuate it was the great object of
the people in forming that convention, and it is also the great
object of the plan which the convention has advised them to adopt.
With what propriety, therefore, or for what good purposes, are
attempts at this particular period made by some men to depreciate
the importance of the Union? Or why is it suggested that three or
four confederacies would be better than one? I am persuaded in my
own mind that the people have always thought right on this subject,
and that their universal and uniform attachment to the cause of the
Union rests on great and weighty reasons, which I shall endeavor to
develop and explain in some ensuing papers. They who promote the
idea of substituting a number of distinct confederacies in the room
of the plan of the convention, seem clearly to foresee that the
rejection of it would put the continuance of the Union in the utmost
jeopardy. That certainly would be the case, and I sincerely wish
that it may be as clearly foreseen by every good citizen, that
whenever the dissolution of the Union arrives, America will have
reason to exclaim, in the words of the poet: "FAREWELL! A LONG
FAREWELL TO ALL MY GREATNESS."
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 3.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force
and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 3, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS not a new observation that the people of any country (if, like
the Americans, intelligent and wellinformed) seldom adopt and
steadily persevere for many years in an erroneous opinion respecting
their interests. That consideration naturally tends to create great
respect for the high opinion which the people of America have so
long and uniformly entertained of the importance of their continuing
firmly united under one federal government, vested with sufficient
powers for all general and national purposes.
The more attentively I consider and investigate the reasons which
appear to have given birth to this opinion, the more I become
convinced that they are cogent and conclusive.
Among the many objects to which a wise and free people find it
necessary to direct their attention, that of providing for their
SAFETY seems to be the first. The SAFETY of the people doubtless has
relation to a great variety of circumstances and considerations, and
consequently affords great latitude to those who wish to define it
precisely and comprehensively.
At present I mean only to consider it as it respects security for
the preservation of peace and tranquillity, as well as against
dangers from FOREIGN ARMS AND INFLUENCE, as from dangers of the LIKE
KIND arising from domestic causes. As the former of these comes
first in order, it is proper it should be the first discussed. Let
us therefore proceed to examine whether the people are not right in
their opinion that a cordial Union, under an efficient national
government, affords them the best security that can be devised
against HOSTILITIES from abroad.
The number of wars which have happened or will happen in the world
will always be found to be in proportion to the number and weight of
the causes, whether REAL or PRETENDED, which PROVOKE or INVITE them.
If this remark be just, it becomes useful to inquire whether so many
JUST causes of war are likely to be given by UNITED AMERICA as by
DISUNITED America; for if it should turn out that United America
will probably give the fewest, then it will follow that in this
respect the Union tends most to preserve the people in a state of
peace with other nations.
The JUST causes of war, for the most part, arise either from
violation of treaties or from direct violence. America has already
formed treaties with no less than six foreign nations, and all of
them, except Prussia, are maritime, and therefore able to annoy and
injure us. She has also extensive commerce with Portugal, Spain, and
Britain, and, with respect to the two latter, has, in addition, the
circumstance of neighborhood to attend to.
It is of high importance to the peace of America that she observe
the laws of nations towards all these powers, and to me it appears
evident that this will be more perfectly and punctually done by one
national government than it could be either by thirteen separate
States or by three or four distinct confederacies.
Because when once an efficient national government is established,
the best men in the country will not only consent to serve, but also
will generally be appointed to manage it; for, although town or
country, or other contracted influence, may place men in State
assemblies, or senates, or courts of justice, or executive
departments, yet more general and extensive reputation for talents
and other qualifications will be necessary to recommend men to
offices under the national government,—especially as it will have
the widest field for choice, and never experience that want of
proper persons which is not uncommon in some of the States. Hence,
it will result that the administration, the political counsels, and
the judicial decisions of the national government will be more wise,
systematical, and judicious than those of individual States, and
consequently more satisfactory with respect to other nations, as
well as more SAFE with respect to us.
Because, under the national government, treaties and articles of
treaties, as well as the laws of nations, will always be expounded
in one sense and executed in the same manner,—whereas, adjudications
on the same points and questions, in thirteen States, or in three or
four confederacies, will not always accord or be consistent; and
that, as well from the variety of independent courts and judges
appointed by different and independent governments, as from the
different local laws and interests which may affect and influence
them. The wisdom of the convention, in committing such questions to
the jurisdiction and judgment of courts appointed by and responsible
only to one national government, cannot be too much commended.
Because the prospect of present loss or advantage may often tempt
the governing party in one or two States to swerve from good faith
and justice; but those temptations, not reaching the other States,
and consequently having little or no influence on the national
government, the temptation will be fruitless, and good faith and
justice be preserved. The case of the treaty of peace with Britain
adds great weight to this reasoning.
Because, even if the governing party in a State should be disposed
to resist such temptations, yet as such temptations may, and
commonly do, result from circumstances peculiar to the State, and
may affect a great number of the inhabitants, the governing party
may not always be able, if willing, to prevent the injustice
meditated, or to punish the aggressors. But the national government,
not being affected by those local circumstances, will neither be
induced to commit the wrong themselves, nor want power or
inclination to prevent or punish its commission by others.
So far, therefore, as either designed or accidental violations of
treaties and the laws of nations afford JUST causes of war, they are
less to be apprehended under one general government than under
several lesser ones, and in that respect the former most favors the
SAFETY of the people.
As to those just causes of war which proceed from direct and
unlawful violence, it appears equally clear to me that one good
national government affords vastly more security against dangers of
that sort than can be derived from any other quarter.
Because such violences are more frequently caused by the passions
and interests of a part than of the whole; of one or two States than
of the Union. Not a single Indian war has yet been occasioned by
aggressions of the present federal government, feeble as it is; but
there are several instances of Indian hostilities having been
provoked by the improper conduct of individual States, who, either
unable or unwilling to restrain or punish offenses, have given
occasion to the slaughter of many innocent inhabitants.
The neighborhood of Spanish and British territories, bordering on
some States and not on others, naturally confines the causes of
quarrel more immediately to the borderers. The bordering States, if
any, will be those who, under the impulse of sudden irritation, and
a quick sense of apparent interest or injury, will be most likely,
by direct violence, to excite war with these nations; and nothing
can so effectually obviate that danger as a national government,
whose wisdom and prudence will not be diminished by the passions
which actuate the parties immediately interested.
But not only fewer just causes of war will be given by the national
government, but it will also be more in their power to accommodate
and settle them amicably. They will be more temperate and cool, and
in that respect, as well as in others, will be more in capacity to
act advisedly than the offending State. The pride of states, as well
as of men, naturally disposes them to justify all their actions, and
opposes their acknowledging, correcting, or repairing their errors
and offenses. The national government, in such cases, will not be
affected by this pride, but will proceed with moderation and candor
to consider and decide on the means most proper to extricate them
from the difficulties which threaten them.
Besides, it is well known that acknowledgments, explanations, and
compensations are often accepted as satisfactory from a strong
united nation, which would be rejected as unsatisfactory if offered
by a State or confederacy of little consideration or power.
In the year 1685, the state of Genoa having offended Louis XIV.,
endeavored to appease him. He demanded that they should send their
Doge, or chief magistrate, accompanied by four of their senators, to
FRANCE, to ask his pardon and receive his terms. They were obliged
to submit to it for the sake of peace. Would he on any occasion
either have demanded or have received the like humiliation from
Spain, or Britain, or any other POWERFUL nation?
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 4.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force
and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 7, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
MY LAST paper assigned several reasons why the safety of the people
would be best secured by union against the danger it may be exposed
to by JUST causes of war given to other nations; and those reasons
show that such causes would not only be more rarely given, but would
also be more easily accommodated, by a national government than
either by the State governments or the proposed little
confederacies.
But the safety of the people of America against dangers from FOREIGN
force depends not only on their forbearing to give JUST causes of
war to other nations, but also on their placing and continuing
themselves in such a situation as not to INVITE hostility or insult;
for it need not be observed that there are PRETENDED as well as just
causes of war.
It is too true, however disgraceful it may be to human nature, that
nations in general will make war whenever they have a prospect of
getting anything by it; nay, absolute monarchs will often make war
when their nations are to get nothing by it, but for the purposes
and objects merely personal, such as thirst for military glory,
revenge for personal affronts, ambition, or private compacts to
aggrandize or support their particular families or partisans. These
and a variety of other motives, which affect only the mind of the
sovereign, often lead him to engage in wars not sanctified by
justice or the voice and interests of his people. But, independent
of these inducements to war, which are more prevalent in absolute
monarchies, but which well deserve our attention, there are others
which affect nations as often as kings; and some of them will on
examination be found to grow out of our relative situation and
circumstances.
With France and with Britain we are rivals in the fisheries, and can
supply their markets cheaper than they can themselves,
notwithstanding any efforts to prevent it by bounties on their own
or duties on foreign fish.
With them and with most other European nations we are rivals in
navigation and the carrying trade; and we shall deceive ourselves if
we suppose that any of them will rejoice to see it flourish; for, as
our carrying trade cannot increase without in some degree
diminishing theirs, it is more their interest, and will be more
their policy, to restrain than to promote it.
In the trade to China and India, we interfere with more than one
nation, inasmuch as it enables us to partake in advantages which
they had in a manner monopolized, and as we thereby supply ourselves
with commodities which we used to purchase from them.
The extension of our own commerce in our own vessels cannot give
pleasure to any nations who possess territories on or near this
continent, because the cheapness and excellence of our productions,
added to the circumstance of vicinity, and the enterprise and
address of our merchants and navigators, will give us a greater
share in the advantages which those territories afford, than
consists with the wishes or policy of their respective sovereigns.
Spain thinks it convenient to shut the Mississippi against us on the
one side, and Britain excludes us from the Saint Lawrence on the
other; nor will either of them permit the other waters which are
between them and us to become the means of mutual intercourse and
traffic.
From these and such like considerations, which might, if consistent
with prudence, be more amplified and detailed, it is easy to see
that jealousies and uneasinesses may gradually slide into the minds
and cabinets of other nations, and that we are not to expect that
they should regard our advancement in union, in power and
consequence by land and by sea, with an eye of indifference and
composure.
The people of America are aware that inducements to war may arise
out of these circumstances, as well as from others not so obvious at
present, and that whenever such inducements may find fit time and
opportunity for operation, pretenses to color and justify them will
not be wanting. Wisely, therefore, do they consider union and a good
national government as necessary to put and keep them in SUCH A
SITUATION as, instead of INVITING war, will tend to repress and
discourage it. That situation consists in the best possible state of
defense, and necessarily depends on the government, the arms, and
the resources of the country.
As the safety of the whole is the interest of the whole, and cannot
be provided for without government, either one or more or many, let
us inquire whether one good government is not, relative to the
object in question, more competent than any other given number
whatever.
One government can collect and avail itself of the talents and
experience of the ablest men, in whatever part of the Union they may
be found. It can move on uniform principles of policy. It can
harmonize, assimilate, and protect the several parts and members,
and extend the benefit of its foresight and precautions to each. In
the formation of treaties, it will regard the interest of the whole,
and the particular interests of the parts as connected with that of
the whole. It can apply the resources and power of the whole to the
defense of any particular part, and that more easily and
expeditiously than State governments or separate confederacies can
possibly do, for want of concert and unity of system. It can place
the militia under one plan of discipline, and, by putting their
officers in a proper line of subordination to the Chief Magistrate,
will, as it were, consolidate them into one corps, and thereby
render them more efficient than if divided into thirteen or into
three or four distinct independent companies.
What would the militia of Britain be if the English militia obeyed
the government of England, if the Scotch militia obeyed the
government of Scotland, and if the Welsh militia obeyed the
government of Wales? Suppose an invasion; would those three
governments (if they agreed at all) be able, with all their
respective forces, to operate against the enemy so effectually as
the single government of Great Britain would?
We have heard much of the fleets of Britain, and the time may come,
if we are wise, when the fleets of America may engage attention. But
if one national government, had not so regulated the navigation of
Britain as to make it a nursery for seamen—if one national
government had not called forth all the national means and materials
for forming fleets, their prowess and their thunder would never have
been celebrated. Let England have its navigation and fleet—let
Scotland have its navigation and fleet—let Wales have its navigation
and fleet—let Ireland have its navigation and fleet—let those four
of the constituent parts of the British empire be be under four
independent governments, and it is easy to perceive how soon they
would each dwindle into comparative insignificance.
Apply these facts to our own case. Leave America divided into
thirteen or, if you please, into three or four independent
governments—what armies could they raise and pay—what fleets could
they ever hope to have? If one was attacked, would the others fly to
its succor, and spend their blood and money in its defense? Would
there be no danger of their being flattered into neutrality by its
specious promises, or seduced by a too great fondness for peace to
decline hazarding their tranquillity and present safety for the sake
of neighbors, of whom perhaps they have been jealous, and whose
importance they are content to see diminished? Although such conduct
would not be wise, it would, nevertheless, be natural. The history
of the states of Greece, and of other countries, abounds with such
instances, and it is not improbable that what has so often happened
would, under similar circumstances, happen again.
But admit that they might be willing to help the invaded State or
confederacy. How, and when, and in what proportion shall aids of men
and money be afforded? Who shall command the allied armies, and from
which of them shall he receive his orders? Who shall settle the
terms of peace, and in case of disputes what umpire shall decide
between them and compel acquiescence? Various difficulties and
inconveniences would be inseparable from such a situation; whereas
one government, watching over the general and common interests, and
combining and directing the powers and resources of the whole, would
be free from all these embarrassments, and conduce far more to the
safety of the people.
But whatever may be our situation, whether firmly united under one
national government, or split into a number of confederacies,
certain it is, that foreign nations will know and view it exactly as
it is; and they will act toward us accordingly. If they see that our
national government is efficient and well administered, our trade
prudently regulated, our militia properly organized and disciplined,
our resources and finances discreetly managed, our credit
re-established, our people free, contented, and united, they will be
much more disposed to cultivate our friendship than provoke our
resentment. If, on the other hand, they find us either destitute of
an effectual government (each State doing right or wrong, as to its
rulers may seem convenient), or split into three or four independent
and probably discordant republics or confederacies, one inclining to
Britain, another to France, and a third to Spain, and perhaps played
off against each other by the three, what a poor, pitiful figure
will America make in their eyes! How liable would she become not
only to their contempt but to their outrage, and how soon would
dear-bought experience proclaim that when a people or family so
divide, it never fails to be against themselves.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 5.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers From Foreign Force
and Influence)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 10, 1787
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
QUEEN ANNE, in her letter of the 1st July, 1706, to the Scotch
Parliament, makes some observations on the importance of the UNION
then forming between England and Scotland, which merit our
attention. I shall present the public with one or two extracts from
it: "An entire and perfect union will be the solid foundation of
lasting peace: It will secure your religion, liberty, and property;
remove the animosities amongst yourselves, and the jealousies and
differences betwixt our two kingdoms. It must increase your
strength, riches, and trade; and by this union the whole island,
being joined in affection and free from all apprehensions of
different interest, will be ENABLED TO RESIST ALL ITS ENEMIES." "We
most earnestly recommend to you calmness and unanimity in this great
and weighty affair, that the union may be brought to a happy
conclusion, being the only EFFECTUAL way to secure our present and
future happiness, and disappoint the designs of our and your
enemies, who will doubtless, on this occasion, USE THEIR UTMOST
ENDEAVORS TO PREVENT OR DELAY THIS UNION."
It was remarked in the preceding paper, that weakness and divisions
at home would invite dangers from abroad; and that nothing would
tend more to secure us from them than union, strength, and good
government within ourselves. This subject is copious and cannot
easily be exhausted.
The history of Great Britain is the one with which we are in general
the best acquainted, and it gives us many useful lessons. We may
profit by their experience without paying the price which it cost
them. Although it seems obvious to common sense that the people of
such an island should be but one nation, yet we find that they were
for ages divided into three, and that those three were almost
constantly embroiled in quarrels and wars with one another.
Notwithstanding their true interest with respect to the continental
nations was really the same, yet by the arts and policy and
practices of those nations, their mutual jealousies were perpetually
kept inflamed, and for a long series of years they were far more
inconvenient and troublesome than they were useful and assisting to
each other.
Should the people of America divide themselves into three or four
nations, would not the same thing happen? Would not similar
jealousies arise, and be in like manner cherished? Instead of their
being "joined in affection" and free from all apprehension of
different "interests," envy and jealousy would soon extinguish
confidence and affection, and the partial interests of each
confederacy, instead of the general interests of all America, would
be the only objects of their policy and pursuits. Hence, like most
other BORDERING nations, they would always be either involved in
disputes and war, or live in the constant apprehension of them.
The most sanguine advocates for three or four confederacies cannot
reasonably suppose that they would long remain exactly on an equal
footing in point of strength, even if it was possible to form them
so at first; but, admitting that to be practicable, yet what human
contrivance can secure the continuance of such equality? Independent
of those local circumstances which tend to beget and increase power
in one part and to impede its progress in another, we must advert to
the effects of that superior policy and good management which would
probably distinguish the government of one above the rest, and by
which their relative equality in strength and consideration would be
destroyed. For it cannot be presumed that the same degree of sound
policy, prudence, and foresight would uniformly be observed by each
of these confederacies for a long succession of years.
Whenever, and from whatever causes, it might happen, and happen it
would, that any one of these nations or confederacies should rise on
the scale of political importance much above the degree of her
neighbors, that moment would those neighbors behold her with envy
and with fear. Both those passions would lead them to countenance,
if not to promote, whatever might promise to diminish her
importance; and would also restrain them from measures calculated to
advance or even to secure her prosperity. Much time would not be
necessary to enable her to discern these unfriendly dispositions.
She would soon begin, not only to lose confidence in her neighbors,
but also to feel a disposition equally unfavorable to them. Distrust
naturally creates distrust, and by nothing is good-will and kind
conduct more speedily changed than by invidious jealousies and
uncandid imputations, whether expressed or implied.
The North is generally the region of strength, and many local
circumstances render it probable that the most Northern of the
proposed confederacies would, at a period not very distant, be
unquestionably more formidable than any of the others. No sooner
would this become evident than the NORTHERN HIVE would excite the
same ideas and sensations in the more southern parts of America
which it formerly did in the southern parts of Europe. Nor does it
appear to be a rash conjecture that its young swarms might often be
tempted to gather honey in the more blooming fields and milder air
of their luxurious and more delicate neighbors.
They who well consider the history of similar divisions and
confederacies will find abundant reason to apprehend that those in
contemplation would in no other sense be neighbors than as they
would be borderers; that they would neither love nor trust one
another, but on the contrary would be a prey to discord, jealousy,
and mutual injuries; in short, that they would place us exactly in
the situations in which some nations doubtless wish to see us, viz.,
FORMIDABLE ONLY TO EACH OTHER.
From these considerations it appears that those gentlemen are
greatly mistaken who suppose that alliances offensive and defensive
might be formed between these confederacies, and would produce that
combination and union of wills of arms and of resources, which would
be necessary to put and keep them in a formidable state of defense
against foreign enemies.
When did the independent states, into which Britain and Spain were
formerly divided, combine in such alliance, or unite their forces
against a foreign enemy? The proposed confederacies will be DISTINCT
NATIONS. Each of them would have its commerce with foreigners to
regulate by distinct treaties; and as their productions and
commodities are different and proper for different markets, so would
those treaties be essentially different. Different commercial
concerns must create different interests, and of course different
degrees of political attachment to and connection with different
foreign nations. Hence it might and probably would happen that the
foreign nation with whom the SOUTHERN confederacy might be at war
would be the one with whom the NORTHERN confederacy would be the
most desirous of preserving peace and friendship. An alliance so
contrary to their immediate interest would not therefore be easy to
form, nor, if formed, would it be observed and fulfilled with
perfect good faith.
Nay, it is far more probable that in America, as in Europe,
neighboring nations, acting under the impulse of opposite interests
and unfriendly passions, would frequently be found taking different
sides. Considering our distance from Europe, it would be more
natural for these confederacies to apprehend danger from one another
than from distant nations, and therefore that each of them should be
more desirous to guard against the others by the aid of foreign
alliances, than to guard against foreign dangers by alliances
between themselves. And here let us not forget how much more easy it
is to receive foreign fleets into our ports, and foreign armies into
our country, than it is to persuade or compel them to depart. How
many conquests did the Romans and others make in the characters of
allies, and what innovations did they under the same character
introduce into the governments of those whom they pretended to
protect.
Let candid men judge, then, whether the division of America into any
given number of independent sovereignties would tend to secure us
against the hostilities and improper interference of foreign
nations.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 6.
Concerning Dangers from Dissensions Between the States
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 14, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE three last numbers of this paper have been dedicated to an
enumeration of the dangers to which we should be exposed, in a state
of disunion, from the arms and arts of foreign nations. I shall now
proceed to delineate dangers of a different and, perhaps, still more
alarming kind—those which will in all probability flow from
dissensions between the States themselves, and from domestic
factions and convulsions. These have been already in some instances
slightly anticipated; but they deserve a more particular and more
full investigation.
A man must be far gone in Utopian speculations who can seriously
doubt that, if these States should either be wholly disunited, or
only united in partial confederacies, the subdivisions into which
they might be thrown would have frequent and violent contests with
each other. To presume a want of motives for such contests as an
argument against their existence, would be to forget that men are
ambitious, vindictive, and rapacious. To look for a continuation of
harmony between a number of independent, unconnected sovereignties
in the same neighborhood, would be to disregard the uniform course
of human events, and to set at defiance the accumulated experience
of ages.
The causes of hostility among nations are innumerable. There are
some which have a general and almost constant operation upon the
collective bodies of society. Of this description are the love of
power or the desire of pre-eminence and dominion—the jealousy of
power, or the desire of equality and safety. There are others which
have a more circumscribed though an equally operative influence
within their spheres. Such are the rivalships and competitions of
commerce between commercial nations. And there are others, not less
numerous than either of the former, which take their origin entirely
in private passions; in the attachments, enmities, interests, hopes,
and fears of leading individuals in the communities of which they
are members. Men of this class, whether the favorites of a king or
of a people, have in too many instances abused the confidence they
possessed; and assuming the pretext of some public motive, have not
scrupled to sacrifice the national tranquillity to personal
advantage or personal gratification.
The celebrated Pericles, in compliance with the resentment of a
prostitute,(1) at the expense of much of the blood and treasure of
his countrymen, attacked, vanquished, and destroyed the city of the
SAMMIANS. The same man, stimulated by private pique against the
MEGARENSIANS,(2) another nation of Greece, or to avoid a prosecution
with which he was threatened as an accomplice of a supposed theft of
the statuary Phidias,(3) or to get rid of the accusations prepared
to be brought against him for dissipating the funds of the state in
the purchase of popularity,(4) or from a combination of all these
causes, was the primitive author of that famous and fatal war,
distinguished in the Grecian annals by the name of the PELOPONNESIAN
war; which, after various vicissitudes, intermissions, and renewals,
terminated in the ruin of the Athenian commonwealth.
The ambitious cardinal, who was prime minister to Henry VIII.,
permitting his vanity to aspire to the triple crown,(5) entertained
hopes of succeeding in the acquisition of that splendid prize by the
influence of the Emperor Charles V. To secure the favor and interest
of this enterprising and powerful monarch, he precipitated England
into a war with France, contrary to the plainest dictates of policy,
and at the hazard of the safety and independence, as well of the
kingdom over which he presided by his counsels, as of Europe in
general. For if there ever was a sovereign who bid fair to realize
the project of universal monarchy, it was the Emperor Charles V., of
whose intrigues Wolsey was at once the instrument and the dupe.
The influence which the bigotry of one female,(6) the petulance of
another,(7) and the cabals of a third,(8) had in the contemporary
policy, ferments, and pacifications, of a considerable part of
Europe, are topics that have been too often descanted upon not to be
generally known.
To multiply examples of the agency of personal considerations in the
production of great national events, either foreign or domestic,
according to their direction, would be an unnecessary waste of time.
Those who have but a superficial acquaintance with the sources from
which they are to be drawn, will themselves recollect a variety of
instances; and those who have a tolerable knowledge of human nature
will not stand in need of such lights to form their opinion either
of the reality or extent of that agency. Perhaps, however, a
reference, tending to illustrate the general principle, may with
propriety be made to a case which has lately happened among
ourselves. If Shays had not been a DESPERATE DEBTOR, it is much to
be doubted whether Massachusetts would have been plunged into a
civil war.
But notwithstanding the concurring testimony of experience, in this
particular, there are still to be found visionary or designing men,
who stand ready to advocate the paradox of perpetual peace between
the States, though dismembered and alienated from each other. The
genius of republics (say they) is pacific; the spirit of commerce
has a tendency to soften the manners of men, and to extinguish those
inflammable humors which have so often kindled into wars. Commercial
republics, like ours, will never be disposed to waste themselves in
ruinous contentions with each other. They will be governed by mutual
interest, and will cultivate a spirit of mutual amity and concord.
Is it not (we may ask these projectors in politics) the true
interest of all nations to cultivate the same benevolent and
philosophic spirit? If this be their true interest, have they in
fact pursued it? Has it not, on the contrary, invariably been found
that momentary passions, and immediate interest, have a more active
and imperious control over human conduct than general or remote
considerations of policy, utility or justice? Have republics in
practice been less addicted to war than monarchies? Are not the
former administered by MEN as well as the latter? Are there not
aversions, predilections, rivalships, and desires of unjust
acquisitions, that affect nations as well as kings? Are not popular
assemblies frequently subject to the impulses of rage, resentment,
jealousy, avarice, and of other irregular and violent propensities?
Is it not well known that their determinations are often governed by
a few individuals in whom they place confidence, and are, of course,
liable to be tinctured by the passions and views of those
individuals? Has commerce hitherto done anything more than change
the objects of war? Is not the love of wealth as domineering and
enterprising a passion as that of power or glory? Have there not
been as many wars founded upon commercial motives since that has
become the prevailing system of nations, as were before occasioned
by the cupidity of territory or dominion? Has not the spirit of
commerce, in many instances, administered new incentives to the
appetite, both for the one and for the other? Let experience, the
least fallible guide of human opinions, be appealed to for an answer
to these inquiries.
Sparta, Athens, Rome, and Carthage were all republics; two of them,
Athens and Carthage, of the commercial kind. Yet were they as often
engaged in wars, offensive and defensive, as the neighboring
monarchies of the same times. Sparta was little better than a
wellregulated camp; and Rome was never sated of carnage and
conquest.
Carthage, though a commercial republic, was the aggressor in the
very war that ended in her destruction. Hannibal had carried her
arms into the heart of Italy and to the gates of Rome, before
Scipio, in turn, gave him an overthrow in the territories of
Carthage, and made a conquest of the commonwealth.
Venice, in later times, figured more than once in wars of ambition,
till, becoming an object to the other Italian states, Pope Julius
II. found means to accomplish that formidable league,(9) which gave
a deadly blow to the power and pride of this haughty republic.
The provinces of Holland, till they were overwhelmed in debts and
taxes, took a leading and conspicuous part in the wars of Europe.
They had furious contests with England for the dominion of the sea,
and were among the most persevering and most implacable of the
opponents of Louis XIV.
In the government of Britain the representatives of the people
compose one branch of the national legislature. Commerce has been
for ages the predominant pursuit of that country. Few nations,
nevertheless, have been more frequently engaged in war; and the wars
in which that kingdom has been engaged have, in numerous instances,
proceeded from the people.
There have been, if I may so express it, almost as many popular as
royal wars. The cries of the nation and the importunities of their
representatives have, upon various occasions, dragged their monarchs
into war, or continued them in it, contrary to their inclinations,
and sometimes contrary to the real interests of the State. In that
memorable struggle for superiority between the rival houses of
AUSTRIA and BOURBON, which so long kept Europe in a flame, it is
well known that the antipathies of the English against the French,
seconding the ambition, or rather the avarice, of a favorite
leader,(10) protracted the war beyond the limits marked out by sound
policy, and for a considerable time in opposition to the views of
the court.
The wars of these two last-mentioned nations have in a great measure
grown out of commercial considerations,—the desire of supplanting
and the fear of being supplanted, either in particular branches of
traffic or in the general advantages of trade and navigation, and
sometimes even the more culpable desire of sharing in the commerce
of other nations without their consent.
The last war but between Britain and Spain sprang from the attempts
of the British merchants to prosecute an illicit trade with the
Spanish main. These unjustifiable practices on their part produced
severity on the part of the Spaniards toward the subjects of Great
Britain which were not more justifiable, because they exceeded the
bounds of a just retaliation and were chargeable with inhumanity and
cruelty. Many of the English who were taken on the Spanish coast
were sent to dig in the mines of Potosi; and by the usual progress
of a spirit of resentment, the innocent were, after a while,
confounded with the guilty in indiscriminate punishment. The
complaints of the merchants kindled a violent flame throughout the
nation, which soon after broke out in the House of Commons, and was
communicated from that body to the ministry. Letters of reprisal
were granted, and a war ensued, which in its consequences overthrew
all the alliances that but twenty years before had been formed with
sanguine expectations of the most beneficial fruits.
From this summary of what has taken place in other countries, whose
situations have borne the nearest resemblance to our own, what
reason can we have to confide in those reveries which would seduce
us into an expectation of peace and cordiality between the members
of the present confederacy, in a state of separation? Have we not
already seen enough of the fallacy and extravagance of those idle
theories which have amused us with promises of an exemption from the
imperfections, weaknesses and evils incident to society in every
shape? Is it not time to awake from the deceitful dream of a golden
age, and to adopt as a practical maxim for the direction of our
political conduct that we, as well as the other inhabitants of the
globe, are yet remote from the happy empire of perfect wisdom and
perfect virtue?
Let the point of extreme depression to which our national dignity
and credit have sunk, let the inconveniences felt everywhere from a
lax and ill administration of government, let the revolt of a part
of the State of North Carolina, the late menacing disturbances in
Pennsylvania, and the actual insurrections and rebellions in
Massachusetts, declare—!
So far is the general sense of mankind from corresponding with the
tenets of those who endeavor to lull asleep our apprehensions of
discord and hostility between the States, in the event of disunion,
that it has from long observation of the progress of society become
a sort of axiom in politics, that vicinity or nearness of situation,
constitutes nations natural enemies. An intelligent writer expresses
himself on this subject to this effect: "NEIGHBORING NATIONS (says
he) are naturally enemies of each other unless their common weakness
forces them to league in a CONFEDERATE REPUBLIC, and their
constitution prevents the differences that neighborhood occasions,
extinguishing that secret jealousy which disposes all states to
aggrandize themselves at the expense of their neighbors."(11) This
passage, at the same time, points out the EVIL and suggests the
REMEDY.
PUBLIUS
1. Aspasia, vide "Plutarch's Life of Pericles."
2. Ibid.
3. Ibid.
4. Ibid. Phidias was supposed to have stolen some public gold, with
the connivance of Pericles, for the embellishment of the statue of
Minerva.
5. Worn by the popes.
6. Madame de Maintenon.
7. Duchess of Marlborough.
8. Madame de Pompadour.
9. The League of Cambray, comprehending the Emperor, the King of
France, the King of Aragon, and most of the Italian princes and
states.
10. The Duke of Marlborough.
11. Vide "Principes des Negociations" par l'Abbé de Mably.
FEDERALIST No. 7.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning Dangers from Dissensions
Between the States)
For the Independent Journal. Thursday, November 15, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS sometimes asked, with an air of seeming triumph, what
inducements could the States have, if disunited, to make war upon
each other? It would be a full answer to this question to
say—precisely the same inducements which have, at different times,
deluged in blood all the nations in the world. But, unfortunately
for us, the question admits of a more particular answer. There are
causes of differences within our immediate contemplation, of the
tendency of which, even under the restraints of a federal
constitution, we have had sufficient experience to enable us to form
a judgment of what might be expected if those restraints were
removed.
Territorial disputes have at all times been found one of the most
fertile sources of hostility among nations. Perhaps the greatest
proportion of wars that have desolated the earth have sprung from
this origin. This cause would exist among us in full force. We have
a vast tract of unsettled territory within the boundaries of the
United States. There still are discordant and undecided claims
between several of them, and the dissolution of the Union would lay
a foundation for similar claims between them all. It is well known
that they have heretofore had serious and animated discussion
concerning the rights to the lands which were ungranted at the time
of the Revolution, and which usually went under the name of crown
lands. The States within the limits of whose colonial governments
they were comprised have claimed them as their property, the others
have contended that the rights of the crown in this article devolved
upon the Union; especially as to all that part of the Western
territory which, either by actual possession, or through the
submission of the Indian proprietors, was subjected to the
jurisdiction of the king of Great Britain, till it was relinquished
in the treaty of peace. This, it has been said, was at all events an
acquisition to the Confederacy by compact with a foreign power. It
has been the prudent policy of Congress to appease this controversy,
by prevailing upon the States to make cessions to the United States
for the benefit of the whole. This has been so far accomplished as,
under a continuation of the Union, to afford a decided prospect of
an amicable termination of the dispute. A dismemberment of the
Confederacy, however, would revive this dispute, and would create
others on the same subject. At present, a large part of the vacant
Western territory is, by cession at least, if not by any anterior
right, the common property of the Union. If that were at an end, the
States which made the cession, on a principle of federal compromise,
would be apt when the motive of the grant had ceased, to reclaim the
lands as a reversion. The other States would no doubt insist on a
proportion, by right of representation. Their argument would be,
that a grant, once made, could not be revoked; and that the justice
of participating in territory acquired or secured by the joint
efforts of the Confederacy, remained undiminished. If, contrary to
probability, it should be admitted by all the States, that each had
a right to a share of this common stock, there would still be a
difficulty to be surmounted, as to a proper rule of apportionment.
Different principles would be set up by different States for this
purpose; and as they would affect the opposite interests of the
parties, they might not easily be susceptible of a pacific
adjustment.
In the wide field of Western territory, therefore, we perceive an
ample theatre for hostile pretensions, without any umpire or common
judge to interpose between the contending parties. To reason from
the past to the future, we shall have good ground to apprehend, that
the sword would sometimes be appealed to as the arbiter of their
differences. The circumstances of the dispute between Connecticut
and Pennsylvania, respecting the land at Wyoming, admonish us not to
be sanguine in expecting an easy accommodation of such differences.
The articles of confederation obliged the parties to submit the
matter to the decision of a federal court. The submission was made,
and the court decided in favor of Pennsylvania. But Connecticut gave
strong indications of dissatisfaction with that determination; nor
did she appear to be entirely resigned to it, till, by negotiation
and management, something like an equivalent was found for the loss
she supposed herself to have sustained. Nothing here said is
intended to convey the slightest censure on the conduct of that
State. She no doubt sincerely believed herself to have been injured
by the decision; and States, like individuals, acquiesce with great
reluctance in determinations to their disadvantage.
Those who had an opportunity of seeing the inside of the
transactions which attended the progress of the controversy between
this State and the district of Vermont, can vouch the opposition we
experienced, as well from States not interested as from those which
were interested in the claim; and can attest the danger to which the
peace of the Confederacy might have been exposed, had this State
attempted to assert its rights by force. Two motives preponderated
in that opposition: one, a jealousy entertained of our future power;
and the other, the interest of certain individuals of influence in
the neighboring States, who had obtained grants of lands under the
actual government of that district. Even the States which brought
forward claims, in contradiction to ours, seemed more solicitous to
dismember this State, than to establish their own pretensions. These
were New Hampshire, Massachusetts, and Connecticut. New Jersey and
Rhode Island, upon all occasions, discovered a warm zeal for the
independence of Vermont; and Maryland, till alarmed by the
appearance of a connection between Canada and that State, entered
deeply into the same views. These being small States, saw with an
unfriendly eye the perspective of our growing greatness. In a review
of these transactions we may trace some of the causes which would be
likely to embroil the States with each other, if it should be their
unpropitious destiny to become disunited.
The competitions of commerce would be another fruitful source of
contention. The States less favorably circumstanced would be
desirous of escaping from the disadvantages of local situation, and
of sharing in the advantages of their more fortunate neighbors. Each
State, or separate confederacy, would pursue a system of commercial
policy peculiar to itself. This would occasion distinctions,
preferences, and exclusions, which would beget discontent. The
habits of intercourse, on the basis of equal privileges, to which we
have been accustomed since the earliest settlement of the country,
would give a keener edge to those causes of discontent than they
would naturally have independent of this circumstance. WE SHOULD BE
READY TO DENOMINATE INJURIES THOSE THINGS WHICH WERE IN REALITY THE
JUSTIFIABLE ACTS OF INDEPENDENT SOVEREIGNTIES CONSULTING A DISTINCT
INTEREST. The spirit of enterprise, which characterizes the
commercial part of America, has left no occasion of displaying
itself unimproved. It is not at all probable that this unbridled
spirit would pay much respect to those regulations of trade by which
particular States might endeavor to secure exclusive benefits to
their own citizens. The infractions of these regulations, on one
side, the efforts to prevent and repel them, on the other, would
naturally lead to outrages, and these to reprisals and wars.
The opportunities which some States would have of rendering others
tributary to them by commercial regulations would be impatiently
submitted to by the tributary States. The relative situation of New
York, Connecticut, and New Jersey would afford an example of this
kind. New York, from the necessities of revenue, must lay duties on
her importations. A great part of these duties must be paid by the
inhabitants of the two other States in the capacity of consumers of
what we import. New York would neither be willing nor able to forego
this advantage. Her citizens would not consent that a duty paid by
them should be remitted in favor of the citizens of her neighbors;
nor would it be practicable, if there were not this impediment in
the way, to distinguish the customers in our own markets. Would
Connecticut and New Jersey long submit to be taxed by New York for
her exclusive benefit? Should we be long permitted to remain in the
quiet and undisturbed enjoyment of a metropolis, from the possession
of which we derived an advantage so odious to our neighbors, and, in
their opinion, so oppressive? Should we be able to preserve it
against the incumbent weight of Connecticut on the one side, and the
co-operating pressure of New Jersey on the other? These are
questions that temerity alone will answer in the affirmative.
The public debt of the Union would be a further cause of collision
between the separate States or confederacies. The apportionment, in
the first instance, and the progressive extinguishment afterward,
would be alike productive of ill-humor and animosity. How would it
be possible to agree upon a rule of apportionment satisfactory to
all? There is scarcely any that can be proposed which is entirely
free from real objections. These, as usual, would be exaggerated by
the adverse interest of the parties. There are even dissimilar views
among the States as to the general principle of discharging the
public debt. Some of them, either less impressed with the importance
of national credit, or because their citizens have little, if any,
immediate interest in the question, feel an indifference, if not a
repugnance, to the payment of the domestic debt at any rate. These
would be inclined to magnify the difficulties of a distribution.
Others of them, a numerous body of whose citizens are creditors to
the public beyond proportion of the State in the total amount of the
national debt, would be strenuous for some equitable and effective
provision. The procrastinations of the former would excite the
resentments of the latter. The settlement of a rule would, in the
meantime, be postponed by real differences of opinion and affected
delays. The citizens of the States interested would clamour; foreign
powers would urge for the satisfaction of their just demands, and
the peace of the States would be hazarded to the double contingency
of external invasion and internal contention.
Suppose the difficulties of agreeing upon a rule surmounted, and the
apportionment made. Still there is great room to suppose that the
rule agreed upon would, upon experiment, be found to bear harder
upon some States than upon others. Those which were sufferers by it
would naturally seek for a mitigation of the burden. The others
would as naturally be disinclined to a revision, which was likely to
end in an increase of their own incumbrances. Their refusal would be
too plausible a pretext to the complaining States to withhold their
contributions, not to be embraced with avidity; and the
non-compliance of these States with their engagements would be a
ground of bitter discussion and altercation. If even the rule
adopted should in practice justify the equality of its principle,
still delinquencies in payments on the part of some of the States
would result from a diversity of other causes—the real deficiency of
resources; the mismanagement of their finances; accidental disorders
in the management of the government; and, in addition to the rest,
the reluctance with which men commonly part with money for purposes
that have outlived the exigencies which produced them, and interfere
with the supply of immediate wants. Delinquencies, from whatever
causes, would be productive of complaints, recriminations, and
quarrels. There is, perhaps, nothing more likely to disturb the
tranquillity of nations than their being bound to mutual
contributions for any common object that does not yield an equal and
coincident benefit. For it is an observation, as true as it is
trite, that there is nothing men differ so readily about as the
payment of money.
Laws in violation of private contracts, as they amount to
aggressions on the rights of those States whose citizens are injured
by them, may be considered as another probable source of hostility.
We are not authorized to expect that a more liberal or more
equitable spirit would preside over the legislations of the
individual States hereafter, if unrestrained by any additional
checks, than we have heretofore seen in too many instances
disgracing their several codes. We have observed the disposition to
retaliation excited in Connecticut in consequence of the enormities
perpetrated by the Legislature of Rhode Island; and we reasonably
infer that, in similar cases, under other circumstances, a war, not
of PARCHMENT, but of the sword, would chastise such atrocious
breaches of moral obligation and social justice.
The probability of incompatible alliances between the different
States or confederacies and different foreign nations, and the
effects of this situation upon the peace of the whole, have been
sufficiently unfolded in some preceding papers. From the view they
have exhibited of this part of the subject, this conclusion is to be
drawn, that America, if not connected at all, or only by the feeble
tie of a simple league, offensive and defensive, would, by the
operation of such jarring alliances, be gradually entangled in all
the pernicious labyrinths of European politics and wars; and by the
destructive contentions of the parts into which she was divided,
would be likely to become a prey to the artifices and machinations
of powers equally the enemies of them all. Divide et impera(1) must
be the motto of every nation that either hates or fears us.(2)
PUBLIUS
1. Divide and command.
2. In order that the whole subject of these papers may as soon as
possible be laid before the public, it is proposed to publish them
four times a week—on Tuesday in the New York Packet and on Thursday
in the Daily Advertiser.
FEDERALIST No. 8.
The Consequences of Hostilities Between the States
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, November 20, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ASSUMING it therefore as an established truth that the several
States, in case of disunion, or such combinations of them as might
happen to be formed out of the wreck of the general Confederacy,
would be subject to those vicissitudes of peace and war, of
friendship and enmity, with each other, which have fallen to the lot
of all neighboring nations not united under one government, let us
enter into a concise detail of some of the consequences that would
attend such a situation.
War between the States, in the first period of their separate
existence, would be accompanied with much greater distresses than it
commonly is in those countries where regular military establishments
have long obtained. The disciplined armies always kept on foot on
the continent of Europe, though they bear a malignant aspect to
liberty and economy, have, notwithstanding, been productive of the
signal advantage of rendering sudden conquests impracticable, and of
preventing that rapid desolation which used to mark the progress of
war prior to their introduction. The art of fortification has
contributed to the same ends. The nations of Europe are encircled
with chains of fortified places, which mutually obstruct invasion.
Campaigns are wasted in reducing two or three frontier garrisons, to
gain admittance into an enemy's country. Similar impediments occur
at every step, to exhaust the strength and delay the progress of an
invader. Formerly, an invading army would penetrate into the heart
of a neighboring country almost as soon as intelligence of its
approach could be received; but now a comparatively small force of
disciplined troops, acting on the defensive, with the aid of posts,
is able to impede, and finally to frustrate, the enterprises of one
much more considerable. The history of war, in that quarter of the
globe, is no longer a history of nations subdued and empires
overturned, but of towns taken and retaken; of battles that decide
nothing; of retreats more beneficial than victories; of much effort
and little acquisition.
In this country the scene would be altogether reversed. The jealousy
of military establishments would postpone them as long as possible.
The want of fortifications, leaving the frontiers of one state open
to another, would facilitate inroads. The populous States would,
with little difficulty, overrun their less populous neighbors.
Conquests would be as easy to be made as difficult to be retained.
War, therefore, would be desultory and predatory. PLUNDER and
devastation ever march in the train of irregulars. The calamities of
individuals would make the principal figure in the events which
would characterize our military exploits.
This picture is not too highly wrought; though, I confess, it would
not long remain a just one. Safety from external danger is the most
powerful director of national conduct. Even the ardent love of
liberty will, after a time, give way to its dictates. The violent
destruction of life and property incident to war, the continual
effort and alarm attendant on a state of continual danger, will
compel nations the most attached to liberty to resort for repose and
security to institutions which have a tendency to destroy their
civil and political rights. To be more safe, they at length become
willing to run the risk of being less free.
The institutions chiefly alluded to are STANDING ARMIES and the
correspondent appendages of military establishments. Standing
armies, it is said, are not provided against in the new
Constitution; and it is therefore inferred that they may exist under
it.(1) Their existence, however, from the very terms of the
proposition, is, at most, problematical and uncertain. But standing
armies, it may be replied, must inevitably result from a dissolution
of the Confederacy. Frequent war and constant apprehension, which
require a state of as constant preparation, will infallibly produce
them. The weaker States or confederacies would first have recourse
to them, to put themselves upon an equality with their more potent
neighbors. They would endeavor to supply the inferiority of
population and resources by a more regular and effective system of
defense, by disciplined troops, and by fortifications. They would,
at the same time, be necessitated to strengthen the executive arm of
government, in doing which their constitutions would acquire a
progressive direction toward monarchy. It is of the nature of war to
increase the executive at the expense of the legislative authority.
The expedients which have been mentioned would soon give the States
or confederacies that made use of them a superiority over their
neighbors. Small states, or states of less natural strength, under
vigorous governments, and with the assistance of disciplined armies,
have often triumphed over large states, or states of greater natural
strength, which have been destitute of these advantages. Neither the
pride nor the safety of the more important States or confederacies
would permit them long to submit to this mortifying and adventitious
superiority. They would quickly resort to means similar to those by
which it had been effected, to reinstate themselves in their lost
pre-eminence. Thus, we should, in a little time, see established in
every part of this country the same engines of despotism which have
been the scourge of the Old World. This, at least, would be the
natural course of things; and our reasonings will be the more likely
to be just, in proportion as they are accommodated to this standard.
These are not vague inferences drawn from supposed or speculative
defects in a Constitution, the whole power of which is lodged in the
hands of a people, or their representatives and delegates, but they
are solid conclusions, drawn from the natural and necessary progress
of human affairs.
It may, perhaps, be asked, by way of objection to this, why did not
standing armies spring up out of the contentions which so often
distracted the ancient republics of Greece? Different answers,
equally satisfactory, may be given to this question. The industrious
habits of the people of the present day, absorbed in the pursuits of
gain, and devoted to the improvements of agriculture and commerce,
are incompatible with the condition of a nation of soldiers, which
was the true condition of the people of those republics. The means
of revenue, which have been so greatly multiplied by the increase of
gold and silver and of the arts of industry, and the science of
finance, which is the offspring of modern times, concurring with the
habits of nations, have produced an entire revolution in the system
of war, and have rendered disciplined armies, distinct from the body
of the citizens, the inseparable companions of frequent hostility.
There is a wide difference, also, between military establishments in
a country seldom exposed by its situation to internal invasions, and
in one which is often subject to them, and always apprehensive of
them. The rulers of the former can have no good pretext, if they are
even so inclined, to keep on foot armies so numerous as must of
necessity be maintained in the latter. These armies being, in the
first case, rarely, if at all, called into activity for interior
defense, the people are in no danger of being broken to military
subordination. The laws are not accustomed to relaxations, in favor
of military exigencies; the civil state remains in full vigor,
neither corrupted, nor confounded with the principles or
propensities of the other state. The smallness of the army renders
the natural strength of the community an overmatch for it; and the
citizens, not habituated to look up to the military power for
protection, or to submit to its oppressions, neither love nor fear
the soldiery; they view them with a spirit of jealous acquiescence
in a necessary evil, and stand ready to resist a power which they
suppose may be exerted to the prejudice of their rights.
The army under such circumstances may usefully aid the magistrate to
suppress a small faction, or an occasional mob, or insurrection; but
it will be unable to enforce encroachments against the united
efforts of the great body of the people.
In a country in the predicament last described, the contrary of all
this happens. The perpetual menacings of danger oblige the
government to be always prepared to repel it; its armies must be
numerous enough for instant defense. The continual necessity for
their services enhances the importance of the soldier, and
proportionably degrades the condition of the citizen. The military
state becomes elevated above the civil. The inhabitants of
territories, often the theatre of war, are unavoidably subjected to
frequent infringements on their rights, which serve to weaken their
sense of those rights; and by degrees the people are brought to
consider the soldiery not only as their protectors, but as their
superiors. The transition from this disposition to that of
considering them masters, is neither remote nor difficult; but it is
very difficult to prevail upon a people under such impressions, to
make a bold or effectual resistance to usurpations supported by the
military power.
The kingdom of Great Britain falls within the first description. An
insular situation, and a powerful marine, guarding it in a great
measure against the possibility of foreign invasion, supersede the
necessity of a numerous army within the kingdom. A sufficient force
to make head against a sudden descent, till the militia could have
time to rally and embody, is all that has been deemed requisite. No
motive of national policy has demanded, nor would public opinion
have tolerated, a larger number of troops upon its domestic
establishment. There has been, for a long time past, little room for
the operation of the other causes, which have been enumerated as the
consequences of internal war. This peculiar felicity of situation
has, in a great degree, contributed to preserve the liberty which
that country to this day enjoys, in spite of the prevalent venality
and corruption. If, on the contrary, Britain had been situated on
the continent, and had been compelled, as she would have been, by
that situation, to make her military establishments at home
coextensive with those of the other great powers of Europe, she,
like them, would in all probability be, at this day, a victim to the
absolute power of a single man. It is possible, though not easy,
that the people of that island may be enslaved from other causes;
but it cannot be by the prowess of an army so inconsiderable as that
which has been usually kept up within the kingdom.
If we are wise enough to preserve the Union we may for ages enjoy an
advantage similar to that of an insulated situation. Europe is at a
great distance from us. Her colonies in our vicinity will be likely
to continue too much disproportioned in strength to be able to give
us any dangerous annoyance. Extensive military establishments
cannot, in this position, be necessary to our security. But if we
should be disunited, and the integral parts should either remain
separated, or, which is most probable, should be thrown together
into two or three confederacies, we should be, in a short course of
time, in the predicament of the continental powers of Europe—our
liberties would be a prey to the means of defending ourselves
against the ambition and jealousy of each other.
This is an idea not superficial or futile, but solid and weighty. It
deserves the most serious and mature consideration of every prudent
and honest man of whatever party. If such men will make a firm and
solemn pause, and meditate dispassionately on the importance of this
interesting idea; if they will contemplate it in all its attitudes,
and trace it to all its consequences, they will not hesitate to part
with trivial objections to a Constitution, the rejection of which
would in all probability put a final period to the Union. The airy
phantoms that flit before the distempered imaginations of some of
its adversaries would quickly give place to the more substantial
forms of dangers, real, certain, and formidable.
PUBLIUS
1. This objection will be fully examined in its proper place, and it
will be shown that the only natural precaution which could have been
taken on this subject has been taken; and a much better one than is
to be found in any constitution that has been heretofore framed in
America, most of which contain no guard at all on this subject.
FEDERALIST No. 9.
The Union as a Safeguard Against Domestic Faction and
Insurrection
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 21, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIRM Union will be of the utmost moment to the peace and liberty
of the States, as a barrier against domestic faction and
insurrection. It is impossible to read the history of the petty
republics of Greece and Italy without feeling sensations of horror
and disgust at the distractions with which they were continually
agitated, and at the rapid succession of revolutions by which they
were kept in a state of perpetual vibration between the extremes of
tyranny and anarchy. If they exhibit occasional calms, these only
serve as short-lived contrast to the furious storms that are to
succeed. If now and then intervals of felicity open to view, we
behold them with a mixture of regret, arising from the reflection
that the pleasing scenes before us are soon to be overwhelmed by the
tempestuous waves of sedition and party rage. If momentary rays of
glory break forth from the gloom, while they dazzle us with a
transient and fleeting brilliancy, they at the same time admonish us
to lament that the vices of government should pervert the direction
and tarnish the lustre of those bright talents and exalted
endowments for which the favored soils that produced them have been
so justly celebrated.
From the disorders that disfigure the annals of those republics the
advocates of despotism have drawn arguments, not only against the
forms of republican government, but against the very principles of
civil liberty. They have decried all free government as inconsistent
with the order of society, and have indulged themselves in malicious
exultation over its friends and partisans. Happily for mankind,
stupendous fabrics reared on the basis of liberty, which have
flourished for ages, have, in a few glorious instances, refuted
their gloomy sophisms. And, I trust, America will be the broad and
solid foundation of other edifices, not less magnificent, which will
be equally permanent monuments of their errors.
But it is not to be denied that the portraits they have sketched of
republican government were too just copies of the originals from
which they were taken. If it had been found impracticable to have
devised models of a more perfect structure, the enlightened friends
to liberty would have been obliged to abandon the cause of that
species of government as indefensible. The science of politics,
however, like most other sciences, has received great improvement.
The efficacy of various principles is now well understood, which
were either not known at all, or imperfectly known to the ancients.
The regular distribution of power into distinct departments; the
introduction of legislative balances and checks; the institution of
courts composed of judges holding their offices during good
behavior; the representation of the people in the legislature by
deputies of their own election: these are wholly new discoveries, or
have made their principal progress towards perfection in modern
times. They are means, and powerful means, by which the excellences
of republican government may be retained and its imperfections
lessened or avoided. To this catalogue of circumstances that tend to
the amelioration of popular systems of civil government, I shall
venture, however novel it may appear to some, to add one more, on a
principle which has been made the foundation of an objection to the
new Constitution; I mean the ENLARGEMENT of the ORBIT within which
such systems are to revolve, either in respect to the dimensions of
a single State or to the consolidation of several smaller States
into one great Confederacy. The latter is that which immediately
concerns the object under consideration. It will, however, be of use
to examine the principle in its application to a single State, which
shall be attended to in another place.
The utility of a Confederacy, as well to suppress faction and to
guard the internal tranquillity of States, as to increase their
external force and security, is in reality not a new idea. It has
been practiced upon in different countries and ages, and has
received the sanction of the most approved writers on the subject of
politics. The opponents of the plan proposed have, with great
assiduity, cited and circulated the observations of Montesquieu on
the necessity of a contracted territory for a republican government.
But they seem not to have been apprised of the sentiments of that
great man expressed in another part of his work, nor to have
adverted to the consequences of the principle to which they
subscribe with such ready acquiescence.
When Montesquieu recommends a small extent for republics, the
standards he had in view were of dimensions far short of the limits
of almost every one of these States. Neither Virginia,
Massachusetts, Pennsylvania, New York, North Carolina, nor Georgia
can by any means be compared with the models from which he reasoned
and to which the terms of his description apply. If we therefore
take his ideas on this point as the criterion of truth, we shall be
driven to the alternative either of taking refuge at once in the
arms of monarchy, or of splitting ourselves into an infinity of
little, jealous, clashing, tumultuous commonwealths, the wretched
nurseries of unceasing discord, and the miserable objects of
universal pity or contempt. Some of the writers who have come
forward on the other side of the question seem to have been aware of
the dilemma; and have even been bold enough to hint at the division
of the larger States as a desirable thing. Such an infatuated
policy, such a desperate expedient, might, by the multiplication of
petty offices, answer the views of men who possess not
qualifications to extend their influence beyond the narrow circles
of personal intrigue, but it could never promote the greatness or
happiness of the people of America.
Referring the examination of the principle itself to another place,
as has been already mentioned, it will be sufficient to remark here
that, in the sense of the author who has been most emphatically
quoted upon the occasion, it would only dictate a reduction of the
SIZE of the more considerable MEMBERS of the Union, but would not
militate against their being all comprehended in one confederate
government. And this is the true question, in the discussion of
which we are at present interested.
So far are the suggestions of Montesquieu from standing in
opposition to a general Union of the States, that he explicitly
treats of a confederate republic as the expedient for extending the
sphere of popular government, and reconciling the advantages of
monarchy with those of republicanism.
"It is very probable," (says he(1)) "that mankind would have been
obliged at length to live constantly under the government of a
single person, had they not contrived a kind of constitution that
has all the internal advantages of a republican, together with the
external force of a monarchical government. I mean a CONFEDERATE
REPUBLIC."
"This form of government is a convention by which several smaller
STATES agree to become members of a larger ONE, which they intend to
form. It is a kind of assemblage of societies that constitute a new
one, capable of increasing, by means of new associations, till they
arrive to such a degree of power as to be able to provide for the
security of the united body."
"A republic of this kind, able to withstand an external force, may
support itself without any internal corruptions. The form of this
society prevents all manner of inconveniences."
"If a single member should attempt to usurp the supreme authority,
he could not be supposed to have an equal authority and credit in
all the confederate states. Were he to have too great influence over
one, this would alarm the rest. Were he to subdue a part, that which
would still remain free might oppose him with forces independent of
those which he had usurped and overpower him before he could be
settled in his usurpation."
"Should a popular insurrection happen in one of the confederate
states the others are able to quell it. Should abuses creep into one
part, they are reformed by those that remain sound. The state may be
destroyed on one side, and not on the other; the confederacy may be
dissolved, and the confederates preserve their sovereignty."
"As this government is composed of small republics, it enjoys the
internal happiness of each; and with respect to its external
situation, it is possessed, by means of the association, of all the
advantages of large monarchies."
I have thought it proper to quote at length these interesting
passages, because they contain a luminous abridgment of the
principal arguments in favor of the Union, and must effectually
remove the false impressions which a misapplication of other parts
of the work was calculated to make. They have, at the same time, an
intimate connection with the more immediate design of this paper;
which is, to illustrate the tendency of the Union to repress
domestic faction and insurrection.
A distinction, more subtle than accurate, has been raised between a
CONFEDERACY and a CONSOLIDATION of the States. The essential
characteristic of the first is said to be, the restriction of its
authority to the members in their collective capacities, without
reaching to the individuals of whom they are composed. It is
contended that the national council ought to have no concern with
any object of internal administration. An exact equality of suffrage
between the members has also been insisted upon as a leading feature
of a confederate government. These positions are, in the main,
arbitrary; they are supported neither by principle nor precedent. It
has indeed happened, that governments of this kind have generally
operated in the manner which the distinction taken notice of,
supposes to be inherent in their nature; but there have been in most
of them extensive exceptions to the practice, which serve to prove,
as far as example will go, that there is no absolute rule on the
subject. And it will be clearly shown in the course of this
investigation that as far as the principle contended for has
prevailed, it has been the cause of incurable disorder and
imbecility in the government.
The definition of a CONFEDERATE REPUBLIC seems simply to be "an
assemblage of societies," or an association of two or more states
into one state. The extent, modifications, and objects of the
federal authority are mere matters of discretion. So long as the
separate organization of the members be not abolished; so long as it
exists, by a constitutional necessity, for local purposes; though it
should be in perfect subordination to the general authority of the
union, it would still be, in fact and in theory, an association of
states, or a confederacy. The proposed Constitution, so far from
implying an abolition of the State governments, makes them
constituent parts of the national sovereignty, by allowing them a
direct representation in the Senate, and leaves in their possession
certain exclusive and very important portions of sovereign power.
This fully corresponds, in every rational import of the terms, with
the idea of a federal government.
In the Lycian confederacy, which consisted of twenty-three CITIES or
republics, the largest were entitled to THREE votes in the COMMON
COUNCIL, those of the middle class to TWO, and the smallest to ONE.
The COMMON COUNCIL had the appointment of all the judges and
magistrates of the respective CITIES. This was certainly the most,
delicate species of interference in their internal administration;
for if there be any thing that seems exclusively appropriated to the
local jurisdictions, it is the appointment of their own officers.
Yet Montesquieu, speaking of this association, says: "Were I to give
a model of an excellent Confederate Republic, it would be that of
Lycia." Thus we perceive that the distinctions insisted upon were
not within the contemplation of this enlightened civilian; and we
shall be led to conclude, that they are the novel refinements of an
erroneous theory.
PUBLIUS
1. "Spirit of Laws," vol. i., book ix., chap. i.
FEDERALIST No. 10.
The Same Subject Continued (The Union as a Safeguard Against
Domestic Faction and Insurrection)
From the Daily Advertiser. Thursday, November 22, 1787.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
AMONG the numerous advantages promised by a well constructed Union,
none deserves to be more accurately developed than its tendency to
break and control the violence of faction. The friend of popular
governments never finds himself so much alarmed for their character
and fate, as when he contemplates their propensity to this dangerous
vice. He will not fail, therefore, to set a due value on any plan
which, without violating the principles to which he is attached,
provides a proper cure for it. The instability, injustice, and
confusion introduced into the public councils, have, in truth, been
the mortal diseases under which popular governments have everywhere
perished; as they continue to be the favorite and fruitful topics
from which the adversaries to liberty derive their most specious
declamations. The valuable improvements made by the American
constitutions on the popular models, both ancient and modern, cannot
certainly be too much admired; but it would be an unwarrantable
partiality, to contend that they have as effectually obviated the
danger on this side, as was wished and expected. Complaints are
everywhere heard from our most considerate and virtuous citizens,
equally the friends of public and private faith, and of public and
personal liberty, that our governments are too unstable, that the
public good is disregarded in the conflicts of rival parties, and
that measures are too often decided, not according to the rules of
justice and the rights of the minor party, but by the superior force
of an interested and overbearing majority. However anxiously we may
wish that these complaints had no foundation, the evidence, of known
facts will not permit us to deny that they are in some degree true.
It will be found, indeed, on a candid review of our situation, that
some of the distresses under which we labor have been erroneously
charged on the operation of our governments; but it will be found,
at the same time, that other causes will not alone account for many
of our heaviest misfortunes; and, particularly, for that prevailing
and increasing distrust of public engagements, and alarm for private
rights, which are echoed from one end of the continent to the other.
These must be chiefly, if not wholly, effects of the unsteadiness
and injustice with which a factious spirit has tainted our public
administrations.
By a faction, I understand a number of citizens, whether amounting
to a majority or a minority of the whole, who are united and
actuated by some common impulse of passion, or of interest, adversed
to the rights of other citizens, or to the permanent and aggregate
interests of the community.
There are two methods of curing the mischiefs of faction: the one,
by removing its causes; the other, by controlling its effects.
There are again two methods of removing the causes of faction: the
one, by destroying the liberty which is essential to its existence;
the other, by giving to every citizen the same opinions, the same
passions, and the same interests.
It could never be more truly said than of the first remedy, that it
was worse than the disease. Liberty is to faction what air is to
fire, an aliment without which it instantly expires. But it could
not be less folly to abolish liberty, which is essential to
political life, because it nourishes faction, than it would be to
wish the annihilation of air, which is essential to animal life,
because it imparts to fire its destructive agency.
The second expedient is as impracticable as the first would be
unwise. As long as the reason of man continues fallible, and he is
at liberty to exercise it, different opinions will be formed. As
long as the connection subsists between his reason and his
self-love, his opinions and his passions will have a reciprocal
influence on each other; and the former will be objects to which the
latter will attach themselves. The diversity in the faculties of
men, from which the rights of property originate, is not less an
insuperable obstacle to a uniformity of interests. The protection of
these faculties is the first object of government. From the
protection of different and unequal faculties of acquiring property,
the possession of different degrees and kinds of property
immediately results; and from the influence of these on the
sentiments and views of the respective proprietors, ensues a
division of the society into different interests and parties.
The latent causes of faction are thus sown in the nature of man; and
we see them everywhere brought into different degrees of activity,
according to the different circumstances of civil society. A zeal
for different opinions concerning religion, concerning government,
and many other points, as well of speculation as of practice; an
attachment to different leaders ambitiously contending for
pre-eminence and power; or to persons of other descriptions whose
fortunes have been interesting to the human passions, have, in turn,
divided mankind into parties, inflamed them with mutual animosity,
and rendered them much more disposed to vex and oppress each other
than to co-operate for their common good. So strong is this
propensity of mankind to fall into mutual animosities, that where no
substantial occasion presents itself, the most frivolous and
fanciful distinctions have been sufficient to kindle their
unfriendly passions and excite their most violent conflicts. But the
most common and durable source of factions has been the various and
unequal distribution of property. Those who hold and those who are
without property have ever formed distinct interests in society.
Those who are creditors, and those who are debtors, fall under a
like discrimination. A landed interest, a manufacturing interest, a
mercantile interest, a moneyed interest, with many lesser interests,
grow up of necessity in civilized nations, and divide them into
different classes, actuated by different sentiments and views. The
regulation of these various and interfering interests forms the
principal task of modern legislation, and involves the spirit of
party and faction in the necessary and ordinary operations of the
government.
No man is allowed to be a judge in his own cause, because his
interest would certainly bias his judgment, and, not improbably,
corrupt his integrity. With equal, nay with greater reason, a body
of men are unfit to be both judges and parties at the same time; yet
what are many of the most important acts of legislation, but so many
judicial determinations, not indeed concerning the rights of single
persons, but concerning the rights of large bodies of citizens? And
what are the different classes of legislators but advocates and
parties to the causes which they determine? Is a law proposed
concerning private debts? It is a question to which the creditors
are parties on one side and the debtors on the other. Justice ought
to hold the balance between them. Yet the parties are, and must be,
themselves the judges; and the most numerous party, or, in other
words, the most powerful faction must be expected to prevail. Shall
domestic manufactures be encouraged, and in what degree, by
restrictions on foreign manufactures? are questions which would be
differently decided by the landed and the manufacturing classes, and
probably by neither with a sole regard to justice and the public
good. The apportionment of taxes on the various descriptions of
property is an act which seems to require the most exact
impartiality; yet there is, perhaps, no legislative act in which
greater opportunity and temptation are given to a predominant party
to trample on the rules of justice. Every shilling with which they
overburden the inferior number, is a shilling saved to their own
pockets.
It is in vain to say that enlightened statesmen will be able to
adjust these clashing interests, and render them all subservient to
the public good. Enlightened statesmen will not always be at the
helm. Nor, in many cases, can such an adjustment be made at all
without taking into view indirect and remote considerations, which
will rarely prevail over the immediate interest which one party may
find in disregarding the rights of another or the good of the whole.
The inference to which we are brought is, that the CAUSES of faction
cannot be removed, and that relief is only to be sought in the means
of controlling its EFFECTS.
If a faction consists of less than a majority, relief is supplied by
the republican principle, which enables the majority to defeat its
sinister views by regular vote. It may clog the administration, it
may convulse the society; but it will be unable to execute and mask
its violence under the forms of the Constitution. When a majority is
included in a faction, the form of popular government, on the other
hand, enables it to sacrifice to its ruling passion or interest both
the public good and the rights of other citizens. To secure the
public good and private rights against the danger of such a faction,
and at the same time to preserve the spirit and the form of popular
government, is then the great object to which our inquiries are
directed. Let me add that it is the great desideratum by which this
form of government can be rescued from the opprobrium under which it
has so long labored, and be recommended to the esteem and adoption
of mankind.
By what means is this object attainable? Evidently by one of two
only. Either the existence of the same passion or interest in a
majority at the same time must be prevented, or the majority, having
such coexistent passion or interest, must be rendered, by their
number and local situation, unable to concert and carry into effect
schemes of oppression. If the impulse and the opportunity be
suffered to coincide, we well know that neither moral nor religious
motives can be relied on as an adequate control. They are not found
to be such on the injustice and violence of individuals, and lose
their efficacy in proportion to the number combined together, that
is, in proportion as their efficacy becomes needful.
From this view of the subject it may be concluded that a pure
democracy, by which I mean a society consisting of a small number of
citizens, who assemble and administer the government in person, can
admit of no cure for the mischiefs of faction. A common passion or
interest will, in almost every case, be felt by a majority of the
whole; a communication and concert result from the form of
government itself; and there is nothing to check the inducements to
sacrifice the weaker party or an obnoxious individual. Hence it is
that such democracies have ever been spectacles of turbulence and
contention; have ever been found incompatible with personal security
or the rights of property; and have in general been as short in
their lives as they have been violent in their deaths. Theoretic
politicians, who have patronized this species of government, have
erroneously supposed that by reducing mankind to a perfect equality
in their political rights, they would, at the same time, be
perfectly equalized and assimilated in their possessions, their
opinions, and their passions.
A republic, by which I mean a government in which the scheme of
representation takes place, opens a different prospect, and promises
the cure for which we are seeking. Let us examine the points in
which it varies from pure democracy, and we shall comprehend both
the nature of the cure and the efficacy which it must derive from
the Union.
The two great points of difference between a democracy and a
republic are: first, the delegation of the government, in the
latter, to a small number of citizens elected by the rest; secondly,
the greater number of citizens, and greater sphere of country, over
which the latter may be extended.
The effect of the first difference is, on the one hand, to refine
and enlarge the public views, by passing them through the medium of
a chosen body of citizens, whose wisdom may best discern the true
interest of their country, and whose patriotism and love of justice
will be least likely to sacrifice it to temporary or partial
considerations. Under such a regulation, it may well happen that the
public voice, pronounced by the representatives of the people, will
be more consonant to the public good than if pronounced by the
people themselves, convened for the purpose. On the other hand, the
effect may be inverted. Men of factious tempers, of local
prejudices, or of sinister designs, may, by intrigue, by corruption,
or by other means, first obtain the suffrages, and then betray the
interests, of the people. The question resulting is, whether small
or extensive republics are more favorable to the election of proper
guardians of the public weal; and it is clearly decided in favor of
the latter by two obvious considerations:
In the first place, it is to be remarked that, however small the
republic may be, the representatives must be raised to a certain
number, in order to guard against the cabals of a few; and that,
however large it may be, they must be limited to a certain number,
in order to guard against the confusion of a multitude. Hence, the
number of representatives in the two cases not being in proportion
to that of the two constituents, and being proportionally greater in
the small republic, it follows that, if the proportion of fit
characters be not less in the large than in the small republic, the
former will present a greater option, and consequently a greater
probability of a fit choice.
In the next place, as each representative will be chosen by a
greater number of citizens in the large than in the small republic,
it will be more difficult for unworthy candidates to practice with
success the vicious arts by which elections are too often carried;
and the suffrages of the people being more free, will be more likely
to centre in men who possess the most attractive merit and the most
diffusive and established characters.
It must be confessed that in this, as in most other cases, there is
a mean, on both sides of which inconveniences will be found to lie.
By enlarging too much the number of electors, you render the
representatives too little acquainted with all their local
circumstances and lesser interests; as by reducing it too much, you
render him unduly attached to these, and too little fit to
comprehend and pursue great and national objects. The federal
Constitution forms a happy combination in this respect; the great
and aggregate interests being referred to the national, the local
and particular to the State legislatures.
The other point of difference is, the greater number of citizens and
extent of territory which may be brought within the compass of
republican than of democratic government; and it is this
circumstance principally which renders factious combinations less to
be dreaded in the former than in the latter. The smaller the
society, the fewer probably will be the distinct parties and
interests composing it; the fewer the distinct parties and
interests, the more frequently will a majority be found of the same
party; and the smaller the number of individuals composing a
majority, and the smaller the compass within which they are placed,
the more easily will they concert and execute their plans of
oppression. Extend the sphere, and you take in a greater variety of
parties and interests; you make it less probable that a majority of
the whole will have a common motive to invade the rights of other
citizens; or if such a common motive exists, it will be more
difficult for all who feel it to discover their own strength, and to
act in unison with each other. Besides other impediments, it may be
remarked that, where there is a consciousness of unjust or
dishonorable purposes, communication is always checked by distrust
in proportion to the number whose concurrence is necessary.
Hence, it clearly appears, that the same advantage which a republic
has over a democracy, in controlling the effects of faction, is
enjoyed by a large over a small republic,—is enjoyed by the Union
over the States composing it. Does the advantage consist in the
substitution of representatives whose enlightened views and virtuous
sentiments render them superior to local prejudices and schemes of
injustice? It will not be denied that the representation of the
Union will be most likely to possess these requisite endowments.
Does it consist in the greater security afforded by a greater
variety of parties, against the event of any one party being able to
outnumber and oppress the rest? In an equal degree does the
increased variety of parties comprised within the Union, increase
this security. Does it, in fine, consist in the greater obstacles
opposed to the concert and accomplishment of the secret wishes of an
unjust and interested majority? Here, again, the extent of the Union
gives it the most palpable advantage.
The influence of factious leaders may kindle a flame within their
particular States, but will be unable to spread a general
conflagration through the other States. A religious sect may
degenerate into a political faction in a part of the Confederacy;
but the variety of sects dispersed over the entire face of it must
secure the national councils against any danger from that source. A
rage for paper money, for an abolition of debts, for an equal
division of property, or for any other improper or wicked project,
will be less apt to pervade the whole body of the Union than a
particular member of it; in the same proportion as such a malady is
more likely to taint a particular county or district, than an entire
State.
In the extent and proper structure of the Union, therefore, we
behold a republican remedy for the diseases most incident to
republican government. And according to the degree of pleasure and
pride we feel in being republicans, ought to be our zeal in
cherishing the spirit and supporting the character of Federalists.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 11.
The Utility of the Union in Respect to Commercial Relations and a
Navy
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, November 24, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE importance of the Union, in a commercial light, is one of those
points about which there is least room to entertain a difference of
opinion, and which has, in fact, commanded the most general assent
of men who have any acquaintance with the subject. This applies as
well to our intercourse with foreign countries as with each other.
There are appearances to authorize a supposition that the
adventurous spirit, which distinguishes the commercial character of
America, has already excited uneasy sensations in several of the
maritime powers of Europe. They seem to be apprehensive of our too
great interference in that carrying trade, which is the support of
their navigation and the foundation of their naval strength. Those
of them which have colonies in America look forward to what this
country is capable of becoming, with painful solicitude. They
foresee the dangers that may threaten their American dominions from
the neighborhood of States, which have all the dispositions, and
would possess all the means, requisite to the creation of a powerful
marine. Impressions of this kind will naturally indicate the policy
of fostering divisions among us, and of depriving us, as far as
possible, of an ACTIVE COMMERCE in our own bottoms. This would
answer the threefold purpose of preventing our interference in their
navigation, of monopolizing the profits of our trade, and of
clipping the wings by which we might soar to a dangerous greatness.
Did not prudence forbid the detail, it would not be difficult to
trace, by facts, the workings of this policy to the cabinets of
ministers.
If we continue united, we may counteract a policy so unfriendly to
our prosperity in a variety of ways. By prohibitory regulations,
extending, at the same time, throughout the States, we may oblige
foreign countries to bid against each other, for the privileges of
our markets. This assertion will not appear chimerical to those who
are able to appreciate the importance of the markets of three
millions of people—increasing in rapid progression, for the most
part exclusively addicted to agriculture, and likely from local
circumstances to remain so—to any manufacturing nation; and the
immense difference there would be to the trade and navigation of
such a nation, between a direct communication in its own ships, and
an indirect conveyance of its products and returns, to and from
America, in the ships of another country. Suppose, for instance, we
had a government in America, capable of excluding Great Britain
(with whom we have at present no treaty of commerce) from all our
ports; what would be the probable operation of this step upon her
politics? Would it not enable us to negotiate, with the fairest
prospect of success, for commercial privileges of the most valuable
and extensive kind, in the dominions of that kingdom? When these
questions have been asked, upon other occasions, they have received
a plausible, but not a solid or satisfactory answer. It has been
said that prohibitions on our part would produce no change in the
system of Britain, because she could prosecute her trade with us
through the medium of the Dutch, who would be her immediate
customers and paymasters for those articles which were wanted for
the supply of our markets. But would not her navigation be
materially injured by the loss of the important advantage of being
her own carrier in that trade? Would not the principal part of its
profits be intercepted by the Dutch, as a compensation for their
agency and risk? Would not the mere circumstance of freight occasion
a considerable deduction? Would not so circuitous an intercourse
facilitate the competitions of other nations, by enhancing the price
of British commodities in our markets, and by transferring to other
hands the management of this interesting branch of the British
commerce?
A mature consideration of the objects suggested by these questions
will justify a belief that the real disadvantages to Britain from
such a state of things, conspiring with the pre-possessions of a
great part of the nation in favor of the American trade, and with
the importunities of the West India islands, would produce a
relaxation in her present system, and would let us into the
enjoyment of privileges in the markets of those islands elsewhere,
from which our trade would derive the most substantial benefits.
Such a point gained from the British government, and which could not
be expected without an equivalent in exemptions and immunities in
our markets, would be likely to have a correspondent effect on the
conduct of other nations, who would not be inclined to see
themselves altogether supplanted in our trade.
A further resource for influencing the conduct of European nations
toward us, in this respect, would arise from the establishment of a
federal navy. There can be no doubt that the continuance of the
Union under an efficient government would put it in our power, at a
period not very distant, to create a navy which, if it could not vie
with those of the great maritime powers, would at least be of
respectable weight if thrown into the scale of either of two
contending parties. This would be more peculiarly the case in
relation to operations in the West Indies. A few ships of the line,
sent opportunely to the reinforcement of either side, would often be
sufficient to decide the fate of a campaign, on the event of which
interests of the greatest magnitude were suspended. Our position is,
in this respect, a most commanding one. And if to this consideration
we add that of the usefulness of supplies from this country, in the
prosecution of military operations in the West Indies, it will
readily be perceived that a situation so favorable would enable us
to bargain with great advantage for commercial privileges. A price
would be set not only upon our friendship, but upon our neutrality.
By a steady adherence to the Union we may hope, erelong, to become
the arbiter of Europe in America, and to be able to incline the
balance of European competitions in this part of the world as our
interest may dictate.
But in the reverse of this eligible situation, we shall discover
that the rivalships of the parts would make them checks upon each
other, and would frustrate all the tempting advantages which nature
has kindly placed within our reach. In a state so insignificant our
commerce would be a prey to the wanton intermeddlings of all nations
at war with each other; who, having nothing to fear from us, would
with little scruple or remorse, supply their wants by depredations
on our property as often as it fell in their way. The rights of
neutrality will only be respected when they are defended by an
adequate power. A nation, despicable by its weakness, forfeits even
the privilege of being neutral.
Under a vigorous national government, the natural strength and
resources of the country, directed to a common interest, would
baffle all the combinations of European jealousy to restrain our
growth. This situation would even take away the motive to such
combinations, by inducing an impracticability of success. An active
commerce, an extensive navigation, and a flourishing marine would
then be the offspring of moral and physical necessity. We might defy
the little arts of the little politicians to control or vary the
irresistible and unchangeable course of nature.
But in a state of disunion, these combinations might exist and might
operate with success. It would be in the power of the maritime
nations, availing themselves of our universal impotence, to
prescribe the conditions of our political existence; and as they
have a common interest in being our carriers, and still more in
preventing our becoming theirs, they would in all probability
combine to embarrass our navigation in such a manner as would in
effect destroy it, and confine us to a PASSIVE COMMERCE. We should
then be compelled to content ourselves with the first price of our
commodities, and to see the profits of our trade snatched from us to
enrich our enemies and persecutors. That unequaled spirit of
enterprise, which signalizes the genius of the American merchants
and navigators, and which is in itself an inexhaustible mine of
national wealth, would be stifled and lost, and poverty and disgrace
would overspread a country which, with wisdom, might make herself
the admiration and envy of the world.
There are rights of great moment to the trade of America which are
rights of the Union—I allude to the fisheries, to the navigation of
the Western lakes, and to that of the Mississippi. The dissolution
of the Confederacy would give room for delicate questions concerning
the future existence of these rights; which the interest of more
powerful partners would hardly fail to solve to our disadvantage.
The disposition of Spain with regard to the Mississippi needs no
comment. France and Britain are concerned with us in the fisheries,
and view them as of the utmost moment to their navigation. They, of
course, would hardly remain long indifferent to that decided
mastery, of which experience has shown us to be possessed in this
valuable branch of traffic, and by which we are able to undersell
those nations in their own markets. What more natural than that they
should be disposed to exclude from the lists such dangerous
competitors?
This branch of trade ought not to be considered as a partial
benefit. All the navigating States may, in different degrees,
advantageously participate in it, and under circumstances of a
greater extension of mercantile capital, would not be unlikely to do
it. As a nursery of seamen, it now is, or when time shall have more
nearly assimilated the principles of navigation in the several
States, will become, a universal resource. To the establishment of a
navy, it must be indispensable.
To this great national object, a NAVY, union will contribute in
various ways. Every institution will grow and flourish in proportion
to the quantity and extent of the means concentred towards its
formation and support. A navy of the United States, as it would
embrace the resources of all, is an object far less remote than a
navy of any single State or partial confederacy, which would only
embrace the resources of a single part. It happens, indeed, that
different portions of confederated America possess each some
peculiar advantage for this essential establishment. The more
southern States furnish in greater abundance certain kinds of naval
stores—tar, pitch, and turpentine. Their wood for the construction
of ships is also of a more solid and lasting texture. The difference
in the duration of the ships of which the navy might be composed, if
chiefly constructed of Southern wood, would be of signal importance,
either in the view of naval strength or of national economy. Some of
the Southern and of the Middle States yield a greater plenty of
iron, and of better quality. Seamen must chiefly be drawn from the
Northern hive. The necessity of naval protection to external or
maritime commerce does not require a particular elucidation, no more
than the conduciveness of that species of commerce to the prosperity
of a navy.
An unrestrained intercourse between the States themselves will
advance the trade of each by an interchange of their respective
productions, not only for the supply of reciprocal wants at home,
but for exportation to foreign markets. The veins of commerce in
every part will be replenished, and will acquire additional motion
and vigor from a free circulation of the commodities of every part.
Commercial enterprise will have much greater scope, from the
diversity in the productions of different States. When the staple of
one fails from a bad harvest or unproductive crop, it can call to
its aid the staple of another. The variety, not less than the value,
of products for exportation contributes to the activity of foreign
commerce. It can be conducted upon much better terms with a large
number of materials of a given value than with a small number of
materials of the same value; arising from the competitions of trade
and from the fluctuations of markets. Particular articles may be in
great demand at certain periods, and unsalable at others; but if
there be a variety of articles, it can scarcely happen that they
should all be at one time in the latter predicament, and on this
account the operations of the merchant would be less liable to any
considerable obstruction or stagnation. The speculative trader will
at once perceive the force of these observations, and will
acknowledge that the aggregate balance of the commerce of the United
States would bid fair to be much more favorable than that of the
thirteen States without union or with partial unions.
It may perhaps be replied to this, that whether the States are
united or disunited, there would still be an intimate intercourse
between them which would answer the same ends; this intercourse
would be fettered, interrupted, and narrowed by a multiplicity of
causes, which in the course of these papers have been amply
detailed. A unity of commercial, as well as political, interests,
can only result from a unity of government.
There are other points of view in which this subject might be
placed, of a striking and animating kind. But they would lead us too
far into the regions of futurity, and would involve topics not
proper for a newspaper discussion. I shall briefly observe, that our
situation invites and our interests prompt us to aim at an ascendant
in the system of American affairs. The world may politically, as
well as geographically, be divided into four parts, each having a
distinct set of interests. Unhappily for the other three, Europe, by
her arms and by her negotiations, by force and by fraud, has, in
different degrees, extended her dominion over them all. Africa,
Asia, and America, have successively felt her domination. The
superiority she has long maintained has tempted her to plume herself
as the Mistress of the World, and to consider the rest of mankind as
created for her benefit. Men admired as profound philosophers have,
in direct terms, attributed to her inhabitants a physical
superiority, and have gravely asserted that all animals, and with
them the human species, degenerate in America—that even dogs cease
to bark after having breathed awhile in our atmosphere.(1) Facts
have too long supported these arrogant pretensions of the Europeans.
It belongs to us to vindicate the honor of the human race, and to
teach that assuming brother, moderation. Union will enable us to do
it. Disunion will will add another victim to his triumphs. Let
Americans disdain to be the instruments of European greatness! Let
the thirteen States, bound together in a strict and indissoluble
Union, concur in erecting one great American system, superior to the
control of all transatlantic force or influence, and able to dictate
the terms of the connection between the old and the new world!
PUBLIUS "Recherches philosophiques sur les Americains."
FEDERALIST No. 12.
The Utility of the Union In Respect to Revenue
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, November 27, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE effects of Union upon the commercial prosperity of the States
have been sufficiently delineated. Its tendency to promote the
interests of revenue will be the subject of our present inquiry.
The prosperity of commerce is now perceived and acknowledged by all
enlightened statesmen to be the most useful as well as the most
productive source of national wealth, and has accordingly become a
primary object of their political cares. By multiplying the means of
gratification, by promoting the introduction and circulation of the
precious metals, those darling objects of human avarice and
enterprise, it serves to vivify and invigorate the channels of
industry, and to make them flow with greater activity and
copiousness. The assiduous merchant, the laborious husbandman, the
active mechanic, and the industrious manufacturer,—all orders of
men, look forward with eager expectation and growing alacrity to
this pleasing reward of their toils. The often-agitated question
between agriculture and commerce has, from indubitable experience,
received a decision which has silenced the rivalship that once
subsisted between them, and has proved, to the satisfaction of their
friends, that their interests are intimately blended and interwoven.
It has been found in various countries that, in proportion as
commerce has flourished, land has risen in value. And how could it
have happened otherwise? Could that which procures a freer vent for
the products of the earth, which furnishes new incitements to the
cultivation of land, which is the most powerful instrument in
increasing the quantity of money in a state—could that, in fine,
which is the faithful handmaid of labor and industry, in every
shape, fail to augment that article, which is the prolific parent of
far the greatest part of the objects upon which they are exerted? It
is astonishing that so simple a truth should ever have had an
adversary; and it is one, among a multitude of proofs, how apt a
spirit of ill-informed jealousy, or of too great abstraction and
refinement, is to lead men astray from the plainest truths of reason
and conviction.
The ability of a country to pay taxes must always be proportioned,
in a great degree, to the quantity of money in circulation, and to
the celerity with which it circulates. Commerce, contributing to
both these objects, must of necessity render the payment of taxes
easier, and facilitate the requisite supplies to the treasury. The
hereditary dominions of the Emperor of Germany contain a great
extent of fertile, cultivated, and populous territory, a large
proportion of which is situated in mild and luxuriant climates. In
some parts of this territory are to be found the best gold and
silver mines in Europe. And yet, from the want of the fostering
influence of commerce, that monarch can boast but slender revenues.
He has several times been compelled to owe obligations to the
pecuniary succors of other nations for the preservation of his
essential interests, and is unable, upon the strength of his own
resources, to sustain a long or continued war.
But it is not in this aspect of the subject alone that Union will be
seen to conduce to the purpose of revenue. There are other points of
view, in which its influence will appear more immediate and
decisive. It is evident from the state of the country, from the
habits of the people, from the experience we have had on the point
itself, that it is impracticable to raise any very considerable sums
by direct taxation. Tax laws have in vain been multiplied; new
methods to enforce the collection have in vain been tried; the
public expectation has been uniformly disappointed, and the
treasuries of the States have remained empty. The popular system of
administration inherent in the nature of popular government,
coinciding with the real scarcity of money incident to a languid and
mutilated state of trade, has hitherto defeated every experiment for
extensive collections, and has at length taught the different
legislatures the folly of attempting them.
No person acquainted with what happens in other countries will be
surprised at this circumstance. In so opulent a nation as that of
Britain, where direct taxes from superior wealth must be much more
tolerable, and, from the vigor of the government, much more
practicable, than in America, far the greatest part of the national
revenue is derived from taxes of the indirect kind, from imposts,
and from excises. Duties on imported articles form a large branch of
this latter description.
In America, it is evident that we must a long time depend for the
means of revenue chiefly on such duties. In most parts of it,
excises must be confined within a narrow compass. The genius of the
people will ill brook the inquisitive and peremptory spirit of
excise laws. The pockets of the farmers, on the other hand, will
reluctantly yield but scanty supplies, in the unwelcome shape of
impositions on their houses and lands; and personal property is too
precarious and invisible a fund to be laid hold of in any other way
than by the imperceptible agency of taxes on consumption.
If these remarks have any foundation, that state of things which
will best enable us to improve and extend so valuable a resource
must be best adapted to our political welfare. And it cannot admit
of a serious doubt, that this state of things must rest on the basis
of a general Union. As far as this would be conducive to the
interests of commerce, so far it must tend to the extension of the
revenue to be drawn from that source. As far as it would contribute
to rendering regulations for the collection of the duties more
simple and efficacious, so far it must serve to answer the purposes
of making the same rate of duties more productive, and of putting it
into the power of the government to increase the rate without
prejudice to trade.
The relative situation of these States; the number of rivers with
which they are intersected, and of bays that wash there shores; the
facility of communication in every direction; the affinity of
language and manners; the familiar habits of intercourse;—all these
are circumstances that would conspire to render an illicit trade
between them a matter of little difficulty, and would insure
frequent evasions of the commercial regulations of each other. The
separate States or confederacies would be necessitated by mutual
jealousy to avoid the temptations to that kind of trade by the
lowness of their duties. The temper of our governments, for a long
time to come, would not permit those rigorous precautions by which
the European nations guard the avenues into their respective
countries, as well by land as by water; and which, even there, are
found insufficient obstacles to the adventurous stratagems of
avarice.
In France, there is an army of patrols (as they are called)
constantly employed to secure their fiscal regulations against the
inroads of the dealers in contraband trade. Mr. Neckar computes the
number of these patrols at upwards of twenty thousand. This shows
the immense difficulty in preventing that species of traffic, where
there is an inland communication, and places in a strong light the
disadvantages with which the collection of duties in this country
would be encumbered, if by disunion the States should be placed in a
situation, with respect to each other, resembling that of France
with respect to her neighbors. The arbitrary and vexatious powers
with which the patrols are necessarily armed, would be intolerable
in a free country.
If, on the contrary, there be but one government pervading all the
States, there will be, as to the principal part of our commerce, but
ONE SIDE to guard—the ATLANTIC COAST. Vessels arriving directly from
foreign countries, laden with valuable cargoes, would rarely choose
to hazard themselves to the complicated and critical perils which
would attend attempts to unlade prior to their coming into port.
They would have to dread both the dangers of the coast, and of
detection, as well after as before their arrival at the places of
their final destination. An ordinary degree of vigilance would be
competent to the prevention of any material infractions upon the
rights of the revenue. A few armed vessels, judiciously stationed at
the entrances of our ports, might at a small expense be made useful
sentinels of the laws. And the government having the same interest
to provide against violations everywhere, the co-operation of its
measures in each State would have a powerful tendency to render them
effectual. Here also we should preserve by Union, an advantage which
nature holds out to us, and which would be relinquished by
separation. The United States lie at a great distance from Europe,
and at a considerable distance from all other places with which they
would have extensive connections of foreign trade. The passage from
them to us, in a few hours, or in a single night, as between the
coasts of France and Britain, and of other neighboring nations,
would be impracticable. This is a prodigious security against a
direct contraband with foreign countries; but a circuitous
contraband to one State, through the medium of another, would be
both easy and safe. The difference between a direct importation from
abroad, and an indirect importation through the channel of a
neighboring State, in small parcels, according to time and
opportunity, with the additional facilities of inland communication,
must be palpable to every man of discernment.
It is therefore evident, that one national government would be able,
at much less expense, to extend the duties on imports, beyond
comparison, further than would be practicable to the States
separately, or to any partial confederacies. Hitherto, I believe, it
may safely be asserted, that these duties have not upon an average
exceeded in any State three per cent. In France they are estimated
to be about fifteen per cent., and in Britain they exceed this
proportion.(1) There seems to be nothing to hinder their being
increased in this country to at least treble their present amount.
The single article of ardent spirits, under federal regulation,
might be made to furnish a considerable revenue. Upon a ratio to the
importation into this State, the whole quantity imported into the
United States may be estimated at four millions of gallons; which,
at a shilling per gallon, would produce two hundred thousand pounds.
That article would well bear this rate of duty; and if it should
tend to diminish the consumption of it, such an effect would be
equally favorable to the agriculture, to the economy, to the morals,
and to the health of the society. There is, perhaps, nothing so much
a subject of national extravagance as these spirits.
What will be the consequence, if we are not able to avail ourselves
of the resource in question in its full extent? A nation cannot long
exist without revenues. Destitute of this essential support, it must
resign its independence, and sink into the degraded condition of a
province. This is an extremity to which no government will of choice
accede. Revenue, therefore, must be had at all events. In this
country, if the principal part be not drawn from commerce, it must
fall with oppressive weight upon land. It has been already intimated
that excises, in their true signification, are too little in unison
with the feelings of the people, to admit of great use being made of
that mode of taxation; nor, indeed, in the States where almost the
sole employment is agriculture, are the objects proper for excise
sufficiently numerous to permit very ample collections in that way.
Personal estate (as has been before remarked), from the difficulty
in tracing it, cannot be subjected to large contributions, by any
other means than by taxes on consumption. In populous cities, it may
be enough the subject of conjecture, to occasion the oppression of
individuals, without much aggregate benefit to the State; but beyond
these circles, it must, in a great measure, escape the eye and the
hand of the tax-gatherer. As the necessities of the State,
nevertheless, must be satisfied in some mode or other, the defect of
other resources must throw the principal weight of public burdens on
the possessors of land. And as, on the other hand, the wants of the
government can never obtain an adequate supply, unless all the
sources of revenue are open to its demands, the finances of the
community, under such embarrassments, cannot be put into a situation
consistent with its respectability or its security. Thus we shall
not even have the consolations of a full treasury, to atone for the
oppression of that valuable class of the citizens who are employed
in the cultivation of the soil. But public and private distress will
keep pace with each other in gloomy concert; and unite in deploring
the infatuation of those counsels which led to disunion.
PUBLIUS
1. If my memory be right they amount to twenty per cent.
FEDERALIST No. 13.
Advantage of the Union in Respect to Economy in Government
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, November 28, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
As CONNECTED with the subject of revenue, we may with propriety
consider that of economy. The money saved from one object may be
usefully applied to another, and there will be so much the less to
be drawn from the pockets of the people. If the States are united
under one government, there will be but one national civil list to
support; if they are divided into several confederacies, there will
be as many different national civil lists to be provided for—and
each of them, as to the principal departments, coextensive with that
which would be necessary for a government of the whole. The entire
separation of the States into thirteen unconnected sovereignties is
a project too extravagant and too replete with danger to have many
advocates. The ideas of men who speculate upon the dismemberment of
the empire seem generally turned toward three confederacies—one
consisting of the four Northern, another of the four Middle, and a
third of the five Southern States. There is little probability that
there would be a greater number. According to this distribution,
each confederacy would comprise an extent of territory larger than
that of the kingdom of Great Britain. No well-informed man will
suppose that the affairs of such a confederacy can be properly
regulated by a government less comprehensive in its organs or
institutions than that which has been proposed by the convention.
When the dimensions of a State attain to a certain magnitude, it
requires the same energy of government and the same forms of
administration which are requisite in one of much greater extent.
This idea admits not of precise demonstration, because there is no
rule by which we can measure the momentum of civil power necessary
to the government of any given number of individuals; but when we
consider that the island of Britain, nearly commensurate with each
of the supposed confederacies, contains about eight millions of
people, and when we reflect upon the degree of authority required to
direct the passions of so large a society to the public good, we
shall see no reason to doubt that the like portion of power would be
sufficient to perform the same task in a society far more numerous.
Civil power, properly organized and exerted, is capable of diffusing
its force to a very great extent; and can, in a manner, reproduce
itself in every part of a great empire by a judicious arrangement of
subordinate institutions.
The supposition that each confederacy into which the States would be
likely to be divided would require a government not less
comprehensive than the one proposed, will be strengthened by another
supposition, more probable than that which presents us with three
confederacies as the alternative to a general Union. If we attend
carefully to geographical and commercial considerations, in
conjunction with the habits and prejudices of the different States,
we shall be led to conclude that in case of disunion they will most
naturally league themselves under two governments. The four Eastern
States, from all the causes that form the links of national sympathy
and connection, may with certainty be expected to unite. New York,
situated as she is, would never be unwise enough to oppose a feeble
and unsupported flank to the weight of that confederacy. There are
other obvious reasons that would facilitate her accession to it. New
Jersey is too small a State to think of being a frontier, in
opposition to this still more powerful combination; nor do there
appear to be any obstacles to her admission into it. Even
Pennsylvania would have strong inducements to join the Northern
league. An active foreign commerce, on the basis of her own
navigation, is her true policy, and coincides with the opinions and
dispositions of her citizens. The more Southern States, from various
circumstances, may not think themselves much interested in the
encouragement of navigation. They may prefer a system which would
give unlimited scope to all nations to be the carriers as well as
the purchasers of their commodities. Pennsylvania may not choose to
confound her interests in a connection so adverse to her policy. As
she must at all events be a frontier, she may deem it most
consistent with her safety to have her exposed side turned towards
the weaker power of the Southern, rather than towards the stronger
power of the Northern, Confederacy. This would give her the fairest
chance to avoid being the Flanders of America. Whatever may be the
determination of Pennsylvania, if the Northern Confederacy includes
New Jersey, there is no likelihood of more than one confederacy to
the south of that State.
Nothing can be more evident than that the thirteen States will be
able to support a national government better than one half, or one
third, or any number less than the whole. This reflection must have
great weight in obviating that objection to the proposed plan, which
is founded on the principle of expense; an objection, however,
which, when we come to take a nearer view of it, will appear in
every light to stand on mistaken ground.
If, in addition to the consideration of a plurality of civil lists,
we take into view the number of persons who must necessarily be
employed to guard the inland communication between the different
confederacies against illicit trade, and who in time will infallibly
spring up out of the necessities of revenue; and if we also take
into view the military establishments which it has been shown would
unavoidably result from the jealousies and conflicts of the several
nations into which the States would be divided, we shall clearly
discover that a separation would be not less injurious to the
economy, than to the tranquillity, commerce, revenue, and liberty of
every part.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 14.
Objections to the Proposed Constitution From Extent of Territory
Answered
From the New York Packet. Friday, November 30, 1787.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen the necessity of the Union, as our bulwark against
foreign danger, as the conservator of peace among ourselves, as the
guardian of our commerce and other common interests, as the only
substitute for those military establishments which have subverted
the liberties of the Old World, and as the proper antidote for the
diseases of faction, which have proved fatal to other popular
governments, and of which alarming symptoms have been betrayed by
our own. All that remains, within this branch of our inquiries, is
to take notice of an objection that may be drawn from the great
extent of country which the Union embraces. A few observations on
this subject will be the more proper, as it is perceived that the
adversaries of the new Constitution are availing themselves of the
prevailing prejudice with regard to the practicable sphere of
republican administration, in order to supply, by imaginary
difficulties, the want of those solid objections which they endeavor
in vain to find.
The error which limits republican government to a narrow district
has been unfolded and refuted in preceding papers. I remark here
only that it seems to owe its rise and prevalence chiefly to the
confounding of a republic with a democracy, applying to the former
reasonings drawn from the nature of the latter. The true distinction
between these forms was also adverted to on a former occasion. It
is, that in a democracy, the people meet and exercise the government
in person; in a republic, they assemble and administer it by their
representatives and agents. A democracy, consequently, will be
confined to a small spot. A republic may be extended over a large
region.
To this accidental source of the error may be added the artifice of
some celebrated authors, whose writings have had a great share in
forming the modern standard of political opinions. Being subjects
either of an absolute or limited monarchy, they have endeavored to
heighten the advantages, or palliate the evils of those forms, by
placing in comparison the vices and defects of the republican, and
by citing as specimens of the latter the turbulent democracies of
ancient Greece and modern Italy. Under the confusion of names, it
has been an easy task to transfer to a republic observations
applicable to a democracy only; and among others, the observation
that it can never be established but among a small number of people,
living within a small compass of territory.
Such a fallacy may have been the less perceived, as most of the
popular governments of antiquity were of the democratic species; and
even in modern Europe, to which we owe the great principle of
representation, no example is seen of a government wholly popular,
and founded, at the same time, wholly on that principle. If Europe
has the merit of discovering this great mechanical power in
government, by the simple agency of which the will of the largest
political body may be concentred, and its force directed to any
object which the public good requires, America can claim the merit
of making the discovery the basis of unmixed and extensive
republics. It is only to be lamented that any of her citizens should
wish to deprive her of the additional merit of displaying its full
efficacy in the establishment of the comprehensive system now under
her consideration.
As the natural limit of a democracy is that distance from the
central point which will just permit the most remote citizens to
assemble as often as their public functions demand, and will include
no greater number than can join in those functions; so the natural
limit of a republic is that distance from the centre which will
barely allow the representatives to meet as often as may be
necessary for the administration of public affairs. Can it be said
that the limits of the United States exceed this distance? It will
not be said by those who recollect that the Atlantic coast is the
longest side of the Union, that during the term of thirteen years,
the representatives of the States have been almost continually
assembled, and that the members from the most distant States are not
chargeable with greater intermissions of attendance than those from
the States in the neighborhood of Congress.
That we may form a juster estimate with regard to this interesting
subject, let us resort to the actual dimensions of the Union. The
limits, as fixed by the treaty of peace, are: on the east the
Atlantic, on the south the latitude of thirty-one degrees, on the
west the Mississippi, and on the north an irregular line running in
some instances beyond the forty-fifth degree, in others falling as
low as the forty-second. The southern shore of Lake Erie lies below
that latitude. Computing the distance between the thirty-first and
forty-fifth degrees, it amounts to nine hundred and seventy-three
common miles; computing it from thirty-one to forty-two degrees, to
seven hundred and sixty-four miles and a half. Taking the mean for
the distance, the amount will be eight hundred and sixty-eight miles
and three-fourths. The mean distance from the Atlantic to the
Mississippi does not probably exceed seven hundred and fifty miles.
On a comparison of this extent with that of several countries in
Europe, the practicability of rendering our system commensurate to
it appears to be demonstrable. It is not a great deal larger than
Germany, where a diet representing the whole empire is continually
assembled; or than Poland before the late dismemberment, where
another national diet was the depositary of the supreme power.
Passing by France and Spain, we find that in Great Britain, inferior
as it may be in size, the representatives of the northern extremity
of the island have as far to travel to the national council as will
be required of those of the most remote parts of the Union.
Favorable as this view of the subject may be, some observations
remain which will place it in a light still more satisfactory.
In the first place it is to be remembered that the general
government is not to be charged with the whole power of making and
administering laws. Its jurisdiction is limited to certain
enumerated objects, which concern all the members of the republic,
but which are not to be attained by the separate provisions of any.
The subordinate governments, which can extend their care to all
those other subjects which can be separately provided for, will
retain their due authority and activity. Were it proposed by the
plan of the convention to abolish the governments of the particular
States, its adversaries would have some ground for their objection;
though it would not be difficult to show that if they were abolished
the general government would be compelled, by the principle of
self-preservation, to reinstate them in their proper jurisdiction.
A second observation to be made is that the immediate object of the
federal Constitution is to secure the union of the thirteen
primitive States, which we know to be practicable; and to add to
them such other States as may arise in their own bosoms, or in their
neighborhoods, which we cannot doubt to be equally practicable. The
arrangements that may be necessary for those angles and fractions of
our territory which lie on our northwestern frontier, must be left
to those whom further discoveries and experience will render more
equal to the task.
Let it be remarked, in the third place, that the intercourse
throughout the Union will be facilitated by new improvements. Roads
will everywhere be shortened, and kept in better order;
accommodations for travelers will be multiplied and meliorated; an
interior navigation on our eastern side will be opened throughout,
or nearly throughout, the whole extent of the thirteen States. The
communication between the Western and Atlantic districts, and
between different parts of each, will be rendered more and more easy
by those numerous canals with which the beneficence of nature has
intersected our country, and which art finds it so little difficult
to connect and complete.
A fourth and still more important consideration is, that as almost
every State will, on one side or other, be a frontier, and will thus
find, in regard to its safety, an inducement to make some sacrifices
for the sake of the general protection; so the States which lie at
the greatest distance from the heart of the Union, and which, of
course, may partake least of the ordinary circulation of its
benefits, will be at the same time immediately contiguous to foreign
nations, and will consequently stand, on particular occasions, in
greatest need of its strength and resources. It may be inconvenient
for Georgia, or the States forming our western or northeastern
borders, to send their representatives to the seat of government;
but they would find it more so to struggle alone against an invading
enemy, or even to support alone the whole expense of those
precautions which may be dictated by the neighborhood of continual
danger. If they should derive less benefit, therefore, from the
Union in some respects than the less distant States, they will
derive greater benefit from it in other respects, and thus the
proper equilibrium will be maintained throughout.
I submit to you, my fellow-citizens, these considerations, in full
confidence that the good sense which has so often marked your
decisions will allow them their due weight and effect; and that you
will never suffer difficulties, however formidable in appearance, or
however fashionable the error on which they may be founded, to drive
you into the gloomy and perilous scene into which the advocates for
disunion would conduct you. Hearken not to the unnatural voice which
tells you that the people of America, knit together as they are by
so many cords of affection, can no longer live together as members
of the same family; can no longer continue the mutual guardians of
their mutual happiness; can no longer be fellow citizens of one
great, respectable, and flourishing empire. Hearken not to the voice
which petulantly tells you that the form of government recommended
for your adoption is a novelty in the political world; that it has
never yet had a place in the theories of the wildest projectors;
that it rashly attempts what it is impossible to accomplish. No, my
countrymen, shut your ears against this unhallowed language. Shut
your hearts against the poison which it conveys; the kindred blood
which flows in the veins of American citizens, the mingled blood
which they have shed in defense of their sacred rights, consecrate
their Union, and excite horror at the idea of their becoming aliens,
rivals, enemies. And if novelties are to be shunned, believe me, the
most alarming of all novelties, the most wild of all projects, the
most rash of all attempts, is that of rendering us in pieces, in
order to preserve our liberties and promote our happiness. But why
is the experiment of an extended republic to be rejected, merely
because it may comprise what is new? Is it not the glory of the
people of America, that, whilst they have paid a decent regard to
the opinions of former times and other nations, they have not
suffered a blind veneration for antiquity, for custom, or for names,
to overrule the suggestions of their own good sense, the knowledge
of their own situation, and the lessons of their own experience? To
this manly spirit, posterity will be indebted for the possession,
and the world for the example, of the numerous innovations displayed
on the American theatre, in favor of private rights and public
happiness. Had no important step been taken by the leaders of the
Revolution for which a precedent could not be discovered, no
government established of which an exact model did not present
itself, the people of the United States might, at this moment have
been numbered among the melancholy victims of misguided councils,
must at best have been laboring under the weight of some of those
forms which have crushed the liberties of the rest of mankind.
Happily for America, happily, we trust, for the whole human race,
they pursued a new and more noble course. They accomplished a
revolution which has no parallel in the annals of human society.
They reared the fabrics of governments which have no model on the
face of the globe. They formed the design of a great Confederacy,
which it is incumbent on their successors to improve and perpetuate.
If their works betray imperfections, we wonder at the fewness of
them. If they erred most in the structure of the Union, this was the
work most difficult to be executed; this is the work which has been
new modelled by the act of your convention, and it is that act on
which you are now to deliberate and to decide.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 15.
The Insufficiency of the Present Confederation to Preserve the
Union
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 1, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York.
IN THE course of the preceding papers, I have endeavored, my fellow
citizens, to place before you, in a clear and convincing light, the
importance of Union to your political safety and happiness. I have
unfolded to you a complication of dangers to which you would be
exposed, should you permit that sacred knot which binds the people
of America together be severed or dissolved by ambition or by
avarice, by jealousy or by misrepresentation. In the sequel of the
inquiry through which I propose to accompany you, the truths
intended to be inculcated will receive further confirmation from
facts and arguments hitherto unnoticed. If the road over which you
will still have to pass should in some places appear to you tedious
or irksome, you will recollect that you are in quest of information
on a subject the most momentous which can engage the attention of a
free people, that the field through which you have to travel is in
itself spacious, and that the difficulties of the journey have been
unnecessarily increased by the mazes with which sophistry has beset
the way. It will be my aim to remove the obstacles from your
progress in as compendious a manner as it can be done, without
sacrificing utility to despatch.
In pursuance of the plan which I have laid down for the discussion
of the subject, the point next in order to be examined is the
"insufficiency of the present Confederation to the preservation of
the Union." It may perhaps be asked what need there is of reasoning
or proof to illustrate a position which is not either controverted
or doubted, to which the understandings and feelings of all classes
of men assent, and which in substance is admitted by the opponents
as well as by the friends of the new Constitution. It must in truth
be acknowledged that, however these may differ in other respects,
they in general appear to harmonize in this sentiment, at least,
that there are material imperfections in our national system, and
that something is necessary to be done to rescue us from impending
anarchy. The facts that support this opinion are no longer objects
of speculation. They have forced themselves upon the sensibility of
the people at large, and have at length extorted from those, whose
mistaken policy has had the principal share in precipitating the
extremity at which we are arrived, a reluctant confession of the
reality of those defects in the scheme of our federal government,
which have been long pointed out and regretted by the intelligent
friends of the Union.
We may indeed with propriety be said to have reached almost the last
stage of national humiliation. There is scarcely anything that can
wound the pride or degrade the character of an independent nation
which we do not experience. Are there engagements to the performance
of which we are held by every tie respectable among men? These are
the subjects of constant and unblushing violation. Do we owe debts
to foreigners and to our own citizens contracted in a time of
imminent peril for the preservation of our political existence?
These remain without any proper or satisfactory provision for their
discharge. Have we valuable territories and important posts in the
possession of a foreign power which, by express stipulations, ought
long since to have been surrendered? These are still retained, to
the prejudice of our interests, not less than of our rights. Are we
in a condition to resent or to repel the aggression? We have neither
troops, nor treasury, nor government.(1) Are we even in a condition
to remonstrate with dignity? The just imputations on our own faith,
in respect to the same treaty, ought first to be removed. Are we
entitled by nature and compact to a free participation in the
navigation of the Mississippi? Spain excludes us from it. Is public
credit an indispensable resource in time of public danger? We seem
to have abandoned its cause as desperate and irretrievable. Is
commerce of importance to national wealth? Ours is at the lowest
point of declension. Is respectability in the eyes of foreign powers
a safeguard against foreign encroachments? The imbecility of our
government even forbids them to treat with us. Our ambassadors
abroad are the mere pageants of mimic sovereignty. Is a violent and
unnatural decrease in the value of land a symptom of national
distress? The price of improved land in most parts of the country is
much lower than can be accounted for by the quantity of waste land
at market, and can only be fully explained by that want of private
and public confidence, which are so alarmingly prevalent among all
ranks, and which have a direct tendency to depreciate property of
every kind. Is private credit the friend and patron of industry?
That most useful kind which relates to borrowing and lending is
reduced within the narrowest limits, and this still more from an
opinion of insecurity than from the scarcity of money. To shorten an
enumeration of particulars which can afford neither pleasure nor
instruction, it may in general be demanded, what indication is there
of national disorder, poverty, and insignificance that could befall
a community so peculiarly blessed with natural advantages as we are,
which does not form a part of the dark catalogue of our public
misfortunes?
This is the melancholy situation to which we have been brought by
those very maxims and councils which would now deter us from
adopting the proposed Constitution; and which, not content with
having conducted us to the brink of a precipice, seem resolved to
plunge us into the abyss that awaits us below. Here, my countrymen,
impelled by every motive that ought to influence an enlightened
people, let us make a firm stand for our safety, our tranquillity,
our dignity, our reputation. Let us at last break the fatal charm
which has too long seduced us from the paths of felicity and
prosperity.
It is true, as has been before observed that facts, too stubborn to
be resisted, have produced a species of general assent to the
abstract proposition that there exist material defects in our
national system; but the usefulness of the concession, on the part
of the old adversaries of federal measures, is destroyed by a
strenuous opposition to a remedy, upon the only principles that can
give it a chance of success. While they admit that the government of
the United States is destitute of energy, they contend against
conferring upon it those powers which are requisite to supply that
energy. They seem still to aim at things repugnant and
irreconcilable; at an augmentation of federal authority, without a
diminution of State authority; at sovereignty in the Union, and
complete independence in the members. They still, in fine, seem to
cherish with blind devotion the political monster of an imperium in
imperio. This renders a full display of the principal defects of the
Confederation necessary, in order to show that the evils we
experience do not proceed from minute or partial imperfections, but
from fundamental errors in the structure of the building, which
cannot be amended otherwise than by an alteration in the first
principles and main pillars of the fabric.
The great and radical vice in the construction of the existing
Confederation is in the principle of LEGISLATION for STATES or
GOVERNMENTS, in their CORPORATE or COLLECTIVE CAPACITIES, and as
contradistinguished from the INDIVIDUALS of which they consist.
Though this principle does not run through all the powers delegated
to the Union, yet it pervades and governs those on which the
efficacy of the rest depends. Except as to the rule of appointment,
the United States has an indefinite discretion to make requisitions
for men and money; but they have no authority to raise either, by
regulations extending to the individual citizens of America. The
consequence of this is, that though in theory their resolutions
concerning those objects are laws, constitutionally binding on the
members of the Union, yet in practice they are mere recommendations
which the States observe or disregard at their option.
It is a singular instance of the capriciousness of the human mind,
that after all the admonitions we have had from experience on this
head, there should still be found men who object to the new
Constitution, for deviating from a principle which has been found
the bane of the old, and which is in itself evidently incompatible
with the idea of GOVERNMENT; a principle, in short, which, if it is
to be executed at all, must substitute the violent and sanguinary
agency of the sword to the mild influence of the magistracy.
There is nothing absurd or impracticable in the idea of a league or
alliance between independent nations for certain defined purposes
precisely stated in a treaty regulating all the details of time,
place, circumstance, and quantity; leaving nothing to future
discretion; and depending for its execution on the good faith of the
parties. Compacts of this kind exist among all civilized nations,
subject to the usual vicissitudes of peace and war, of observance
and non-observance, as the interests or passions of the contracting
powers dictate. In the early part of the present century there was
an epidemical rage in Europe for this species of compacts, from
which the politicians of the times fondly hoped for benefits which
were never realized. With a view to establishing the equilibrium of
power and the peace of that part of the world, all the resources of
negotiation were exhausted, and triple and quadruple alliances were
formed; but they were scarcely formed before they were broken,
giving an instructive but afflicting lesson to mankind, how little
dependence is to be placed on treaties which have no other sanction
than the obligations of good faith, and which oppose general
considerations of peace and justice to the impulse of any immediate
interest or passion.
If the particular States in this country are disposed to stand in a
similar relation to each other, and to drop the project of a general
DISCRETIONARY SUPERINTENDENCE, the scheme would indeed be
pernicious, and would entail upon us all the mischiefs which have
been enumerated under the first head; but it would have the merit of
being, at least, consistent and practicable Abandoning all views
towards a confederate government, this would bring us to a simple
alliance offensive and defensive; and would place us in a situation
to be alternate friends and enemies of each other, as our mutual
jealousies and rivalships, nourished by the intrigues of foreign
nations, should prescribe to us.
But if we are unwilling to be placed in this perilous situation; if
we still will adhere to the design of a national government, or,
which is the same thing, of a superintending power, under the
direction of a common council, we must resolve to incorporate into
our plan those ingredients which may be considered as forming the
characteristic difference between a league and a government; we must
extend the authority of the Union to the persons of the
citizens,—the only proper objects of government.
Government implies the power of making laws. It is essential to the
idea of a law, that it be attended with a sanction; or, in other
words, a penalty or punishment for disobedience. If there be no
penalty annexed to disobedience, the resolutions or commands which
pretend to be laws will, in fact, amount to nothing more than advice
or recommendation. This penalty, whatever it may be, can only be
inflicted in two ways: by the agency of the courts and ministers of
justice, or by military force; by the COERCION of the magistracy, or
by the COERCION of arms. The first kind can evidently apply only to
men; the last kind must of necessity, be employed against bodies
politic, or communities, or States. It is evident that there is no
process of a court by which the observance of the laws can, in the
last resort, be enforced. Sentences may be denounced against them
for violations of their duty; but these sentences can only be
carried into execution by the sword. In an association where the
general authority is confined to the collective bodies of the
communities, that compose it, every breach of the laws must involve
a state of war; and military execution must become the only
instrument of civil obedience. Such a state of things can certainly
not deserve the name of government, nor would any prudent man choose
to commit his happiness to it.
There was a time when we were told that breaches, by the States, of
the regulations of the federal authority were not to be expected;
that a sense of common interest would preside over the conduct of
the respective members, and would beget a full compliance with all
the constitutional requisitions of the Union. This language, at the
present day, would appear as wild as a great part of what we now
hear from the same quarter will be thought, when we shall have
received further lessons from that best oracle of wisdom,
experience. It at all times betrayed an ignorance of the true
springs by which human conduct is actuated, and belied the original
inducements to the establishment of civil power. Why has government
been instituted at all? Because the passions of men will not conform
to the dictates of reason and justice, without constraint. Has it
been found that bodies of men act with more rectitude or greater
disinterestedness than individuals? The contrary of this has been
inferred by all accurate observers of the conduct of mankind; and
the inference is founded upon obvious reasons. Regard to reputation
has a less active influence, when the infamy of a bad action is to
be divided among a number than when it is to fall singly upon one. A
spirit of faction, which is apt to mingle its poison in the
deliberations of all bodies of men, will often hurry the persons of
whom they are composed into improprieties and excesses, for which
they would blush in a private capacity.
In addition to all this, there is, in the nature of sovereign power,
an impatience of control, that disposes those who are invested with
the exercise of it, to look with an evil eye upon all external
attempts to restrain or direct its operations. From this spirit it
happens, that in every political association which is formed upon
the principle of uniting in a common interest a number of lesser
sovereignties, there will be found a kind of eccentric tendency in
the subordinate or inferior orbs, by the operation of which there
will be a perpetual effort in each to fly off from the common
centre. This tendency is not difficult to be accounted for. It has
its origin in the love of power. Power controlled or abridged is
almost always the rival and enemy of that power by which it is
controlled or abridged. This simple proposition will teach us how
little reason there is to expect, that the persons intrusted with
the administration of the affairs of the particular members of a
confederacy will at all times be ready, with perfect good-humor, and
an unbiased regard to the public weal, to execute the resolutions or
decrees of the general authority. The reverse of this results from
the constitution of human nature.
If, therefore, the measures of the Confederacy cannot be executed
without the intervention of the particular administrations, there
will be little prospect of their being executed at all. The rulers
of the respective members, whether they have a constitutional right
to do it or not, will undertake to judge of the propriety of the
measures themselves. They will consider the conformity of the thing
proposed or required to their immediate interests or aims; the
momentary conveniences or inconveniences that would attend its
adoption. All this will be done; and in a spirit of interested and
suspicious scrutiny, without that knowledge of national
circumstances and reasons of state, which is essential to a right
judgment, and with that strong predilection in favor of local
objects, which can hardly fail to mislead the decision. The same
process must be repeated in every member of which the body is
constituted; and the execution of the plans, framed by the councils
of the whole, will always fluctuate on the discretion of the
ill-informed and prejudiced opinion of every part. Those who have
been conversant in the proceedings of popular assemblies; who have
seen how difficult it often is, where there is no exterior pressure
of circumstances, to bring them to harmonious resolutions on
important points, will readily conceive how impossible it must be to
induce a number of such assemblies, deliberating at a distance from
each other, at different times, and under different impressions,
long to co-operate in the same views and pursuits.
In our case, the concurrence of thirteen distinct sovereign wills is
requisite, under the Confederation, to the complete execution of
every important measure that proceeds from the Union. It has
happened as was to have been foreseen. The measures of the Union
have not been executed; the delinquencies of the States have, step
by step, matured themselves to an extreme, which has, at length,
arrested all the wheels of the national government, and brought them
to an awful stand. Congress at this time scarcely possess the means
of keeping up the forms of administration, till the States can have
time to agree upon a more substantial substitute for the present
shadow of a federal government. Things did not come to this
desperate extremity at once. The causes which have been specified
produced at first only unequal and disproportionate degrees of
compliance with the requisitions of the Union. The greater
deficiencies of some States furnished the pretext of example and the
temptation of interest to the complying, or to the least delinquent
States. Why should we do more in proportion than those who are
embarked with us in the same political voyage? Why should we consent
to bear more than our proper share of the common burden? These were
suggestions which human selfishness could not withstand, and which
even speculative men, who looked forward to remote consequences,
could not, without hesitation, combat. Each State, yielding to the
persuasive voice of immediate interest or convenience, has
successively withdrawn its support, till the frail and tottering
edifice seems ready to fall upon our heads, and to crush us beneath
its ruins.
PUBLIUS
1. "I mean for the Union."
FEDERALIST No. 16.
The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present
Confederation to Preserve the Union)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 4, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE tendency of the principle of legislation for States, or
communities, in their political capacities, as it has been
exemplified by the experiment we have made of it, is equally
attested by the events which have befallen all other governments of
the confederate kind, of which we have any account, in exact
proportion to its prevalence in those systems. The confirmations of
this fact will be worthy of a distinct and particular examination. I
shall content myself with barely observing here, that of all the
confederacies of antiquity, which history has handed down to us, the
Lycian and Achaean leagues, as far as there remain vestiges of them,
appear to have been most free from the fetters of that mistaken
principle, and were accordingly those which have best deserved, and
have most liberally received, the applauding suffrages of political
writers.
This exceptionable principle may, as truly as emphatically, be
styled the parent of anarchy: It has been seen that delinquencies in
the members of the Union are its natural and necessary offspring;
and that whenever they happen, the only constitutional remedy is
force, and the immediate effect of the use of it, civil war.
It remains to inquire how far so odious an engine of government, in
its application to us, would even be capable of answering its end.
If there should not be a large army constantly at the disposal of
the national government it would either not be able to employ force
at all, or, when this could be done, it would amount to a war
between parts of the Confederacy concerning the infractions of a
league, in which the strongest combination would be most likely to
prevail, whether it consisted of those who supported or of those who
resisted the general authority. It would rarely happen that the
delinquency to be redressed would be confined to a single member,
and if there were more than one who had neglected their duty,
similarity of situation would induce them to unite for common
defense. Independent of this motive of sympathy, if a large and
influential State should happen to be the aggressing member, it
would commonly have weight enough with its neighbors to win over
some of them as associates to its cause. Specious arguments of
danger to the common liberty could easily be contrived; plausible
excuses for the deficiencies of the party could, without difficulty,
be invented to alarm the apprehensions, inflame the passions, and
conciliate the good-will, even of those States which were not
chargeable with any violation or omission of duty. This would be the
more likely to take place, as the delinquencies of the larger
members might be expected sometimes to proceed from an ambitious
premeditation in their rulers, with a view to getting rid of all
external control upon their designs of personal aggrandizement; the
better to effect which it is presumable they would tamper beforehand
with leading individuals in the adjacent States. If associates could
not be found at home, recourse would be had to the aid of foreign
powers, who would seldom be disinclined to encouraging the
dissensions of a Confederacy, from the firm union of which they had
so much to fear. When the sword is once drawn, the passions of men
observe no bounds of moderation. The suggestions of wounded pride,
the instigations of irritated resentment, would be apt to carry the
States against which the arms of the Union were exerted, to any
extremes necessary to avenge the affront or to avoid the disgrace of
submission. The first war of this kind would probably terminate in a
dissolution of the Union.
This may be considered as the violent death of the Confederacy. Its
more natural death is what we now seem to be on the point of
experiencing, if the federal system be not speedily renovated in a
more substantial form. It is not probable, considering the genius of
this country, that the complying States would often be inclined to
support the authority of the Union by engaging in a war against the
non-complying States. They would always be more ready to pursue the
milder course of putting themselves upon an equal footing with the
delinquent members by an imitation of their example. And the guilt
of all would thus become the security of all. Our past experience
has exhibited the operation of this spirit in its full light. There
would, in fact, be an insuperable difficulty in ascertaining when
force could with propriety be employed. In the article of pecuniary
contribution, which would be the most usual source of delinquency,
it would often be impossible to decide whether it had proceeded from
disinclination or inability. The pretense of the latter would always
be at hand. And the case must be very flagrant in which its fallacy
could be detected with sufficient certainty to justify the harsh
expedient of compulsion. It is easy to see that this problem alone,
as often as it should occur, would open a wide field for the
exercise of factious views, of partiality, and of oppression, in the
majority that happened to prevail in the national council.
It seems to require no pains to prove that the States ought not to
prefer a national Constitution which could only be kept in motion by
the instrumentality of a large army continually on foot to execute
the ordinary requisitions or decrees of the government. And yet this
is the plain alternative involved by those who wish to deny it the
power of extending its operations to individuals. Such a scheme, if
practicable at all, would instantly degenerate into a military
despotism; but it will be found in every light impracticable. The
resources of the Union would not be equal to the maintenance of an
army considerable enough to confine the larger States within the
limits of their duty; nor would the means ever be furnished of
forming such an army in the first instance. Whoever considers the
populousness and strength of several of these States singly at the
present juncture, and looks forward to what they will become, even
at the distance of half a century, will at once dismiss as idle and
visionary any scheme which aims at regulating their movements by
laws to operate upon them in their collective capacities, and to be
executed by a coercion applicable to them in the same capacities. A
project of this kind is little less romantic than the monster-taming
spirit which is attributed to the fabulous heroes and demi-gods of
antiquity.
Even in those confederacies which have been composed of members
smaller than many of our counties, the principle of legislation for
sovereign States, supported by military coercion, has never been
found effectual. It has rarely been attempted to be employed, but
against the weaker members; and in most instances attempts to coerce
the refractory and disobedient have been the signals of bloody wars,
in which one half of the confederacy has displayed its banners
against the other half.
The result of these observations to an intelligent mind must be
clearly this, that if it be possible at any rate to construct a
federal government capable of regulating the common concerns and
preserving the general tranquillity, it must be founded, as to the
objects committed to its care, upon the reverse of the principle
contended for by the opponents of the proposed Constitution. It must
carry its agency to the persons of the citizens. It must stand in
need of no intermediate legislations; but must itself be empowered
to employ the arm of the ordinary magistrate to execute its own
resolutions. The majesty of the national authority must be
manifested through the medium of the courts of justice. The
government of the Union, like that of each State, must be able to
address itself immediately to the hopes and fears of individuals;
and to attract to its support those passions which have the
strongest influence upon the human heart. It must, in short, possess
all the means, and have aright to resort to all the methods, of
executing the powers with which it is intrusted, that are possessed
and exercised by the government of the particular States.
To this reasoning it may perhaps be objected, that if any State
should be disaffected to the authority of the Union, it could at any
time obstruct the execution of its laws, and bring the matter to the
same issue of force, with the necessity of which the opposite scheme
is reproached.
The plausibility of this objection will vanish the moment we advert
to the essential difference between a mere NON-COMPLIANCE and a
DIRECT and ACTIVE RESISTANCE. If the interposition of the State
legislatures be necessary to give effect to a measure of the Union,
they have only NOT TO ACT, or TO ACT EVASIVELY, and the measure is
defeated. This neglect of duty may be disguised under affected but
unsubstantial provisions, so as not to appear, and of course not to
excite any alarm in the people for the safety of the Constitution.
The State leaders may even make a merit of their surreptitious
invasions of it on the ground of some temporary convenience,
exemption, or advantage.
But if the execution of the laws of the national government should
not require the intervention of the State legislatures, if they were
to pass into immediate operation upon the citizens themselves, the
particular governments could not interrupt their progress without an
open and violent exertion of an unconstitutional power. No omissions
nor evasions would answer the end. They would be obliged to act, and
in such a manner as would leave no doubt that they had encroached on
the national rights. An experiment of this nature would always be
hazardous in the face of a constitution in any degree competent to
its own defense, and of a people enlightened enough to distinguish
between a legal exercise and an illegal usurpation of authority. The
success of it would require not merely a factious majority in the
legislature, but the concurrence of the courts of justice and of the
body of the people. If the judges were not embarked in a conspiracy
with the legislature, they would pronounce the resolutions of such a
majority to be contrary to the supreme law of the land,
unconstitutional, and void. If the people were not tainted with the
spirit of their State representatives, they, as the natural
guardians of the Constitution, would throw their weight into the
national scale and give it a decided preponderancy in the contest.
Attempts of this kind would not often be made with levity or
rashness, because they could seldom be made without danger to the
authors, unless in cases of a tyrannical exercise of the federal
authority.
If opposition to the national government should arise from the
disorderly conduct of refractory or seditious individuals, it could
be overcome by the same means which are daily employed against the
same evil under the State governments. The magistracy, being equally
the ministers of the law of the land, from whatever source it might
emanate, would doubtless be as ready to guard the national as the
local regulations from the inroads of private licentiousness. As to
those partial commotions and insurrections, which sometimes disquiet
society, from the intrigues of an inconsiderable faction, or from
sudden or occasional illhumors that do not infect the great body of
the community the general government could command more extensive
resources for the suppression of disturbances of that kind than
would be in the power of any single member. And as to those mortal
feuds which, in certain conjunctures, spread a conflagration through
a whole nation, or through a very large proportion of it, proceeding
either from weighty causes of discontent given by the government or
from the contagion of some violent popular paroxysm, they do not
fall within any ordinary rules of calculation. When they happen,
they commonly amount to revolutions and dismemberments of empire. No
form of government can always either avoid or control them. It is in
vain to hope to guard against events too mighty for human foresight
or precaution, and it would be idle to object to a government
because it could not perform impossibilities.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 17.
The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present
Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 5, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AN OBJECTION, of a nature different from that which has been stated
and answered, in my last address, may perhaps be likewise urged
against the principle of legislation for the individual citizens of
America. It may be said that it would tend to render the government
of the Union too powerful, and to enable it to absorb those
residuary authorities, which it might be judged proper to leave with
the States for local purposes. Allowing the utmost latitude to the
love of power which any reasonable man can require, I confess I am
at a loss to discover what temptation the persons intrusted with the
administration of the general government could ever feel to divest
the States of the authorities of that description. The regulation of
the mere domestic police of a State appears to me to hold out
slender allurements to ambition. Commerce, finance, negotiation, and
war seem to comprehend all the objects which have charms for minds
governed by that passion; and all the powers necessary to those
objects ought, in the first instance, to be lodged in the national
depository. The administration of private justice between the
citizens of the same State, the supervision of agriculture and of
other concerns of a similar nature, all those things, in short,
which are proper to be provided for by local legislation, can never
be desirable cares of a general jurisdiction. It is therefore
improbable that there should exist a disposition in the federal
councils to usurp the powers with which they are connected; because
the attempt to exercise those powers would be as troublesome as it
would be nugatory; and the possession of them, for that reason,
would contribute nothing to the dignity, to the importance, or to
the splendor of the national government.
But let it be admitted, for argument's sake, that mere wantonness
and lust of domination would be sufficient to beget that
disposition; still it may be safely affirmed, that the sense of the
constituent body of the national representatives, or, in other
words, the people of the several States, would control the
indulgence of so extravagant an appetite. It will always be far more
easy for the State governments to encroach upon the national
authorities than for the national government to encroach upon the
State authorities. The proof of this proposition turns upon the
greater degree of influence which the State governments if they
administer their affairs with uprightness and prudence, will
generally possess over the people; a circumstance which at the same
time teaches us that there is an inherent and intrinsic weakness in
all federal constitutions; and that too much pains cannot be taken
in their organization, to give them all the force which is
compatible with the principles of liberty.
The superiority of influence in favor of the particular governments
would result partly from the diffusive construction of the national
government, but chiefly from the nature of the objects to which the
attention of the State administrations would be directed.
It is a known fact in human nature, that its affections are commonly
weak in proportion to the distance or diffusiveness of the object.
Upon the same principle that a man is more attached to his family
than to his neighborhood, to his neighborhood than to the community
at large, the people of each State would be apt to feel a stronger
bias towards their local governments than towards the government of
the Union; unless the force of that principle should be destroyed by
a much better administration of the latter.
This strong propensity of the human heart would find powerful
auxiliaries in the objects of State regulation.
The variety of more minute interests, which will necessarily fall
under the superintendence of the local administrations, and which
will form so many rivulets of influence, running through every part
of the society, cannot be particularized, without involving a detail
too tedious and uninteresting to compensate for the instruction it
might afford.
There is one transcendant advantage belonging to the province of the
State governments, which alone suffices to place the matter in a
clear and satisfactory light,—I mean the ordinary administration of
criminal and civil justice. This, of all others, is the most
powerful, most universal, and most attractive source of popular
obedience and attachment. It is that which, being the immediate and
visible guardian of life and property, having its benefits and its
terrors in constant activity before the public eye, regulating all
those personal interests and familiar concerns to which the
sensibility of individuals is more immediately awake, contributes,
more than any other circumstance, to impressing upon the minds of
the people, affection, esteem, and reverence towards the government.
This great cement of society, which will diffuse itself almost
wholly through the channels of the particular governments,
independent of all other causes of influence, would insure them so
decided an empire over their respective citizens as to render them
at all times a complete counterpoise, and, not unfrequently,
dangerous rivals to the power of the Union.
The operations of the national government, on the other hand,
falling less immediately under the observation of the mass of the
citizens, the benefits derived from it will chiefly be perceived and
attended to by speculative men. Relating to more general interests,
they will be less apt to come home to the feelings of the people;
and, in proportion, less likely to inspire an habitual sense of
obligation, and an active sentiment of attachment.
The reasoning on this head has been abundantly exemplified by the
experience of all federal constitutions with which we are
acquainted, and of all others which have borne the least analogy to
them.
Though the ancient feudal systems were not, strictly speaking,
confederacies, yet they partook of the nature of that species of
association. There was a common head, chieftain, or sovereign, whose
authority extended over the whole nation; and a number of
subordinate vassals, or feudatories, who had large portions of land
allotted to them, and numerous trains of INFERIOR vassals or
retainers, who occupied and cultivated that land upon the tenure of
fealty or obedience, to the persons of whom they held it. Each
principal vassal was a kind of sovereign, within his particular
demesnes. The consequences of this situation were a continual
opposition to authority of the sovereign, and frequent wars between
the great barons or chief feudatories themselves. The power of the
head of the nation was commonly too weak, either to preserve the
public peace, or to protect the people against the oppressions of
their immediate lords. This period of European affairs is
emphatically styled by historians, the times of feudal anarchy.
When the sovereign happened to be a man of vigorous and warlike
temper and of superior abilities, he would acquire a personal weight
and influence, which answered, for the time, the purpose of a more
regular authority. But in general, the power of the barons triumphed
over that of the prince; and in many instances his dominion was
entirely thrown off, and the great fiefs were erected into
independent principalities or States. In those instances in which
the monarch finally prevailed over his vassals, his success was
chiefly owing to the tyranny of those vassals over their dependents.
The barons, or nobles, equally the enemies of the sovereign and the
oppressors of the common people, were dreaded and detested by both;
till mutual danger and mutual interest effected a union between them
fatal to the power of the aristocracy. Had the nobles, by a conduct
of clemency and justice, preserved the fidelity and devotion of
their retainers and followers, the contests between them and the
prince must almost always have ended in their favor, and in the
abridgment or subversion of the royal authority.
This is not an assertion founded merely in speculation or
conjecture. Among other illustrations of its truth which might be
cited, Scotland will furnish a cogent example. The spirit of
clanship which was, at an early day, introduced into that kingdom,
uniting the nobles and their dependants by ties equivalent to those
of kindred, rendered the aristocracy a constant overmatch for the
power of the monarch, till the incorporation with England subdued
its fierce and ungovernable spirit, and reduced it within those
rules of subordination which a more rational and more energetic
system of civil polity had previously established in the latter
kingdom.
The separate governments in a confederacy may aptly be compared with
the feudal baronies; with this advantage in their favor, that from
the reasons already explained, they will generally possess the
confidence and good-will of the people, and with so important a
support, will be able effectually to oppose all encroachments of the
national government. It will be well if they are not able to
counteract its legitimate and necessary authority. The points of
similitude consist in the rivalship of power, applicable to both,
and in the CONCENTRATION of large portions of the strength of the
community into particular DEPOSITORIES, in one case at the disposal
of individuals, in the other case at the disposal of political
bodies.
A concise review of the events that have attended confederate
governments will further illustrate this important doctrine; an
inattention to which has been the great source of our political
mistakes, and has given our jealousy a direction to the wrong side.
This review shall form the subject of some ensuing papers.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 18.
The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present
Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the New York Packet. Friday, December 7, 1787
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
AMONG the confederacies of antiquity, the most considerable was that
of the Grecian republics, associated under the Amphictyonic council.
From the best accounts transmitted of this celebrated institution,
it bore a very instructive analogy to the present Confederation of
the American States.
The members retained the character of independent and sovereign
states, and had equal votes in the federal council. This council had
a general authority to propose and resolve whatever it judged
necessary for the common welfare of Greece; to declare and carry on
war; to decide, in the last resort, all controversies between the
members; to fine the aggressing party; to employ the whole force of
the confederacy against the disobedient; to admit new members. The
Amphictyons were the guardians of religion, and of the immense
riches belonging to the temple of Delphos, where they had the right
of jurisdiction in controversies between the inhabitants and those
who came to consult the oracle. As a further provision for the
efficacy of the federal powers, they took an oath mutually to defend
and protect the united cities, to punish the violators of this oath,
and to inflict vengeance on sacrilegious despoilers of the temple.
In theory, and upon paper, this apparatus of powers seems amply
sufficient for all general purposes. In several material instances,
they exceed the powers enumerated in the articles of confederation.
The Amphictyons had in their hands the superstition of the times,
one of the principal engines by which government was then
maintained; they had a declared authority to use coercion against
refractory cities, and were bound by oath to exert this authority on
the necessary occasions.
Very different, nevertheless, was the experiment from the theory.
The powers, like those of the present Congress, were administered by
deputies appointed wholly by the cities in their political
capacities; and exercised over them in the same capacities. Hence
the weakness, the disorders, and finally the destruction of the
confederacy. The more powerful members, instead of being kept in awe
and subordination, tyrannized successively over all the rest.
Athens, as we learn from Demosthenes, was the arbiter of Greece
seventy-three years. The Lacedaemonians next governed it twenty-nine
years; at a subsequent period, after the battle of Leuctra, the
Thebans had their turn of domination.
It happened but too often, according to Plutarch, that the deputies
of the strongest cities awed and corrupted those of the weaker; and
that judgment went in favor of the most powerful party.
Even in the midst of defensive and dangerous wars with Persia and
Macedon, the members never acted in concert, and were, more or fewer
of them, eternally the dupes or the hirelings of the common enemy.
The intervals of foreign war were filled up by domestic vicissitudes
convulsions, and carnage.
After the conclusion of the war with Xerxes, it appears that the
Lacedaemonians required that a number of the cities should be turned
out of the confederacy for the unfaithful part they had acted. The
Athenians, finding that the Lacedaemonians would lose fewer
partisans by such a measure than themselves, and would become
masters of the public deliberations, vigorously opposed and defeated
the attempt. This piece of history proves at once the inefficiency
of the union, the ambition and jealousy of its most powerful
members, and the dependent and degraded condition of the rest. The
smaller members, though entitled by the theory of their system to
revolve in equal pride and majesty around the common center, had
become, in fact, satellites of the orbs of primary magnitude.
Had the Greeks, says the Abbe Milot, been as wise as they were
courageous, they would have been admonished by experience of the
necessity of a closer union, and would have availed themselves of
the peace which followed their success against the Persian arms, to
establish such a reformation. Instead of this obvious policy, Athens
and Sparta, inflated with the victories and the glory they had
acquired, became first rivals and then enemies; and did each other
infinitely more mischief than they had suffered from Xerxes. Their
mutual jealousies, fears, hatreds, and injuries ended in the
celebrated Peloponnesian war; which itself ended in the ruin and
slavery of the Athenians who had begun it.
As a weak government, when not at war, is ever agitated by internal
dissentions, so these never fail to bring on fresh calamities from
abroad. The Phocians having ploughed up some consecrated ground
belonging to the temple of Apollo, the Amphictyonic council,
according to the superstition of the age, imposed a fine on the
sacrilegious offenders. The Phocians, being abetted by Athens and
Sparta, refused to submit to the decree. The Thebans, with others of
the cities, undertook to maintain the authority of the Amphictyons,
and to avenge the violated god. The latter, being the weaker party,
invited the assistance of Philip of Macedon, who had secretly
fostered the contest. Philip gladly seized the opportunity of
executing the designs he had long planned against the liberties of
Greece. By his intrigues and bribes he won over to his interests the
popular leaders of several cities; by their influence and votes,
gained admission into the Amphictyonic council; and by his arts and
his arms, made himself master of the confederacy.
Such were the consequences of the fallacious principle on which this
interesting establishment was founded. Had Greece, says a judicious
observer on her fate, been united by a stricter confederation, and
persevered in her union, she would never have worn the chains of
Macedon; and might have proved a barrier to the vast projects of
Rome.
The Achaean league, as it is called, was another society of Grecian
republics, which supplies us with valuable instruction.
The Union here was far more intimate, and its organization much
wiser, than in the preceding instance. It will accordingly appear,
that though not exempt from a similar catastrophe, it by no means
equally deserved it.
The cities composing this league retained their municipal
jurisdiction, appointed their own officers, and enjoyed a perfect
equality. The senate, in which they were represented, had the sole
and exclusive right of peace and war; of sending and receiving
ambassadors; of entering into treaties and alliances; of appointing
a chief magistrate or praetor, as he was called, who commanded their
armies, and who, with the advice and consent of ten of the senators,
not only administered the government in the recess of the senate,
but had a great share in its deliberations, when assembled.
According to the primitive constitution, there were two praetors
associated in the administration; but on trial a single one was
preferred.
It appears that the cities had all the same laws and customs, the
same weights and measures, and the same money. But how far this
effect proceeded from the authority of the federal council is left
in uncertainty. It is said only that the cities were in a manner
compelled to receive the same laws and usages. When Lacedaemon was
brought into the league by Philopoemen, it was attended with an
abolition of the institutions and laws of Lycurgus, and an adoption
of those of the Achaeans. The Amphictyonic confederacy, of which she
had been a member, left her in the full exercise of her government
and her legislation. This circumstance alone proves a very material
difference in the genius of the two systems.
It is much to be regretted that such imperfect monuments remain of
this curious political fabric. Could its interior structure and
regular operation be ascertained, it is probable that more light
would be thrown by it on the science of federal government, than by
any of the like experiments with which we are acquainted.
One important fact seems to be witnessed by all the historians who
take notice of Achaean affairs. It is, that as well after the
renovation of the league by Aratus, as before its dissolution by the
arts of Macedon, there was infinitely more of moderation and justice
in the administration of its government, and less of violence and
sedition in the people, than were to be found in any of the cities
exercising SINGLY all the prerogatives of sovereignty. The Abbe
Mably, in his observations on Greece, says that the popular
government, which was so tempestuous elsewhere, caused no disorders
in the members of the Achaean republic, BECAUSE IT WAS THERE
TEMPERED BY THE GENERAL AUTHORITY AND LAWS OF THE CONFEDERACY.
We are not to conclude too hastily, however, that faction did not,
in a certain degree, agitate the particular cities; much less that a
due subordination and harmony reigned in the general system. The
contrary is sufficiently displayed in the vicissitudes and fate of
the republic.
Whilst the Amphictyonic confederacy remained, that of the Achaeans,
which comprehended the less important cities only, made little
figure on the theatre of Greece. When the former became a victim to
Macedon, the latter was spared by the policy of Philip and
Alexander. Under the successors of these princes, however, a
different policy prevailed. The arts of division were practiced
among the Achaeans. Each city was seduced into a separate interest;
the union was dissolved. Some of the cities fell under the tyranny
of Macedonian garrisons; others under that of usurpers springing out
of their own confusions. Shame and oppression erelong awaken their
love of liberty. A few cities reunited. Their example was followed
by others, as opportunities were found of cutting off their tyrants.
The league soon embraced almost the whole Peloponnesus. Macedon saw
its progress; but was hindered by internal dissensions from stopping
it. All Greece caught the enthusiasm and seemed ready to unite in
one confederacy, when the jealousy and envy in Sparta and Athens, of
the rising glory of the Achaeans, threw a fatal damp on the
enterprise. The dread of the Macedonian power induced the league to
court the alliance of the Kings of Egypt and Syria, who, as
successors of Alexander, were rivals of the king of Macedon. This
policy was defeated by Cleomenes, king of Sparta, who was led by his
ambition to make an unprovoked attack on his neighbors, the
Achaeans, and who, as an enemy to Macedon, had interest enough with
the Egyptian and Syrian princes to effect a breach of their
engagements with the league.
The Achaeans were now reduced to the dilemma of submitting to
Cleomenes, or of supplicating the aid of Macedon, its former
oppressor. The latter expedient was adopted. The contests of the
Greeks always afforded a pleasing opportunity to that powerful
neighbor of intermeddling in their affairs. A Macedonian army
quickly appeared. Cleomenes was vanquished. The Achaeans soon
experienced, as often happens, that a victorious and powerful ally
is but another name for a master. All that their most abject
compliances could obtain from him was a toleration of the exercise
of their laws. Philip, who was now on the throne of Macedon, soon
provoked by his tyrannies, fresh combinations among the Greeks. The
Achaeans, though weakened by internal dissensions and by the revolt
of Messene, one of its members, being joined by the AEtolians and
Athenians, erected the standard of opposition. Finding themselves,
though thus supported, unequal to the undertaking, they once more
had recourse to the dangerous expedient of introducing the succor of
foreign arms. The Romans, to whom the invitation was made, eagerly
embraced it. Philip was conquered; Macedon subdued. A new crisis
ensued to the league. Dissensions broke out among it members. These
the Romans fostered. Callicrates and other popular leaders became
mercenary instruments for inveigling their countrymen. The more
effectually to nourish discord and disorder the Romans had, to the
astonishment of those who confided in their sincerity, already
proclaimed universal liberty(1) throughout Greece. With the same
insidious views, they now seduced the members from the league, by
representing to their pride the violation it committed on their
sovereignty. By these arts this union, the last hope of Greece, the
last hope of ancient liberty, was torn into pieces; and such
imbecility and distraction introduced, that the arms of Rome found
little difficulty in completing the ruin which their arts had
commenced. The Achaeans were cut to pieces, and Achaia loaded with
chains, under which it is groaning at this hour.
I have thought it not superfluous to give the outlines of this
important portion of history; both because it teaches more than one
lesson, and because, as a supplement to the outlines of the Achaean
constitution, it emphatically illustrates the tendency of federal
bodies rather to anarchy among the members, than to tyranny in the
head.
PUBLIUS
1. This was but another name more specious for the independence of
the members on the federal head.
FEDERALIST No. 19.
The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present
Confederation to Preserve the Union)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 8, 1787
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE examples of ancient confederacies, cited in my last paper, have
not exhausted the source of experimental instruction on this
subject. There are existing institutions, founded on a similar
principle, which merit particular consideration. The first which
presents itself is the Germanic body.
In the early ages of Christianity, Germany was occupied by seven
distinct nations, who had no common chief. The Franks, one of the
number, having conquered the Gauls, established the kingdom which
has taken its name from them. In the ninth century Charlemagne, its
warlike monarch, carried his victorious arms in every direction; and
Germany became a part of his vast dominions. On the dismemberment,
which took place under his sons, this part was erected into a
separate and independent empire. Charlemagne and his immediate
descendants possessed the reality, as well as the ensigns and
dignity of imperial power. But the principal vassals, whose fiefs
had become hereditary, and who composed the national diets which
Charlemagne had not abolished, gradually threw off the yoke and
advanced to sovereign jurisdiction and independence. The force of
imperial sovereignty was insufficient to restrain such powerful
dependants; or to preserve the unity and tranquillity of the empire.
The most furious private wars, accompanied with every species of
calamity, were carried on between the different princes and states.
The imperial authority, unable to maintain the public order,
declined by degrees till it was almost extinct in the anarchy, which
agitated the long interval between the death of the last emperor of
the Suabian, and the accession of the first emperor of the Austrian
lines. In the eleventh century the emperors enjoyed full
sovereignty: In the fifteenth they had little more than the symbols
and decorations of power.
Out of this feudal system, which has itself many of the important
features of a confederacy, has grown the federal system which
constitutes the Germanic empire. Its powers are vested in a diet
representing the component members of the confederacy; in the
emperor, who is the executive magistrate, with a negative on the
decrees of the diet; and in the imperial chamber and the aulic
council, two judiciary tribunals having supreme jurisdiction in
controversies which concern the empire, or which happen among its
members.
The diet possesses the general power of legislating for the empire;
of making war and peace; contracting alliances; assessing quotas of
troops and money; constructing fortresses; regulating coin;
admitting new members; and subjecting disobedient members to the ban
of the empire, by which the party is degraded from his sovereign
rights and his possessions forfeited. The members of the confederacy
are expressly restricted from entering into compacts prejudicial to
the empire; from imposing tolls and duties on their mutual
intercourse, without the consent of the emperor and diet; from
altering the value of money; from doing injustice to one another; or
from affording assistance or retreat to disturbers of the public
peace. And the ban is denounced against such as shall violate any of
these restrictions. The members of the diet, as such, are subject in
all cases to be judged by the emperor and diet, and in their private
capacities by the aulic council and imperial chamber.
The prerogatives of the emperor are numerous. The most important of
them are: his exclusive right to make propositions to the diet; to
negative its resolutions; to name ambassadors; to confer dignities
and titles; to fill vacant electorates; to found universities; to
grant privileges not injurious to the states of the empire; to
receive and apply the public revenues; and generally to watch over
the public safety. In certain cases, the electors form a council to
him. In quality of emperor, he possesses no territory within the
empire, nor receives any revenue for his support. But his revenue
and dominions, in other qualities, constitute him one of the most
powerful princes in Europe.
From such a parade of constitutional powers, in the representatives
and head of this confederacy, the natural supposition would be, that
it must form an exception to the general character which belongs to
its kindred systems. Nothing would be further from the reality. The
fundamental principle on which it rests, that the empire is a
community of sovereigns, that the diet is a representation of
sovereigns and that the laws are addressed to sovereigns, renders
the empire a nerveless body, incapable of regulating its own
members, insecure against external dangers, and agitated with
unceasing fermentations in its own bowels.
The history of Germany is a history of wars between the emperor and
the princes and states; of wars among the princes and states
themselves; of the licentiousness of the strong, and the oppression
of the weak; of foreign intrusions, and foreign intrigues; of
requisitions of men and money disregarded, or partially complied
with; of attempts to enforce them, altogether abortive, or attended
with slaughter and desolation, involving the innocent with the
guilty; of general imbecility, confusion, and misery.
In the sixteenth century, the emperor, with one part of the empire
on his side, was seen engaged against the other princes and states.
In one of the conflicts, the emperor himself was put to flight, and
very near being made prisoner by the elector of Saxony. The late
king of Prussia was more than once pitted against his imperial
sovereign; and commonly proved an overmatch for him. Controversies
and wars among the members themselves have been so common, that the
German annals are crowded with the bloody pages which describe them.
Previous to the peace of Westphalia, Germany was desolated by a war
of thirty years, in which the emperor, with one half of the empire,
was on one side, and Sweden, with the other half, on the opposite
side. Peace was at length negotiated, and dictated by foreign
powers; and the articles of it, to which foreign powers are parties,
made a fundamental part of the Germanic constitution.
If the nation happens, on any emergency, to be more united by the
necessity of self-defense, its situation is still deplorable.
Military preparations must be preceded by so many tedious
discussions, arising from the jealousies, pride, separate views, and
clashing pretensions of sovereign bodies, that before the diet can
settle the arrangements, the enemy are in the field; and before the
federal troops are ready to take it, are retiring into winter
quarters.
The small body of national troops, which has been judged necessary
in time of peace, is defectively kept up, badly paid, infected with
local prejudices, and supported by irregular and disproportionate
contributions to the treasury.
The impossibility of maintaining order and dispensing justice among
these sovereign subjects, produced the experiment of dividing the
empire into nine or ten circles or districts; of giving them an
interior organization, and of charging them with the military
execution of the laws against delinquent and contumacious members.
This experiment has only served to demonstrate more fully the
radical vice of the constitution. Each circle is the miniature
picture of the deformities of this political monster. They either
fail to execute their commissions, or they do it with all the
devastation and carnage of civil war. Sometimes whole circles are
defaulters; and then they increase the mischief which they were
instituted to remedy.
We may form some judgment of this scheme of military coercion from a
sample given by Thuanus. In Donawerth, a free and imperial city of
the circle of Suabia, the Abbe de St. Croix enjoyed certain
immunities which had been reserved to him. In the exercise of these,
on some public occasions, outrages were committed on him by the
people of the city. The consequence was that the city was put under
the ban of the empire, and the Duke of Bavaria, though director of
another circle, obtained an appointment to enforce it. He soon
appeared before the city with a corps of ten thousand troops, and
finding it a fit occasion, as he had secretly intended from the
beginning, to revive an antiquated claim, on the pretext that his
ancestors had suffered the place to be dismembered from his
territory,(1) he took possession of it in his own name, disarmed,
and punished the inhabitants, and reannexed the city to his domains.
It may be asked, perhaps, what has so long kept this disjointed
machine from falling entirely to pieces? The answer is obvious: The
weakness of most of the members, who are unwilling to expose
themselves to the mercy of foreign powers; the weakness of most of
the principal members, compared with the formidable powers all
around them; the vast weight and influence which the emperor derives
from his separate and hereditary dominions; and the interest he
feels in preserving a system with which his family pride is
connected, and which constitutes him the first prince in
Europe;—these causes support a feeble and precarious Union; whilst
the repellant quality, incident to the nature of sovereignty, and
which time continually strengthens, prevents any reform whatever,
founded on a proper consolidation. Nor is it to be imagined, if this
obstacle could be surmounted, that the neighboring powers would
suffer a revolution to take place which would give to the empire the
force and preeminence to which it is entitled. Foreign nations have
long considered themselves as interested in the changes made by
events in this constitution; and have, on various occasions,
betrayed their policy of perpetuating its anarchy and weakness.
If more direct examples were wanting, Poland, as a government over
local sovereigns, might not improperly be taken notice of. Nor could
any proof more striking be given of the calamities flowing from such
institutions. Equally unfit for self-government and self-defense, it
has long been at the mercy of its powerful neighbors; who have
lately had the mercy to disburden it of one third of its people and
territories.
The connection among the Swiss cantons scarcely amounts to a
confederacy; though it is sometimes cited as an instance of the
stability of such institutions.
They have no common treasury; no common troops even in war; no
common coin; no common judicatory; nor any other common mark of
sovereignty.
They are kept together by the peculiarity of their topographical
position; by their individual weakness and insignificancy; by the
fear of powerful neighbors, to one of which they were formerly
subject; by the few sources of contention among a people of such
simple and homogeneous manners; by their joint interest in their
dependent possessions; by the mutual aid they stand in need of, for
suppressing insurrections and rebellions, an aid expressly
stipulated and often required and afforded; and by the necessity of
some regular and permanent provision for accommodating disputes
among the cantons. The provision is, that the parties at variance
shall each choose four judges out of the neutral cantons, who, in
case of disagreement, choose an umpire. This tribunal, under an oath
of impartiality, pronounces definitive sentence, which all the
cantons are bound to enforce. The competency of this regulation may
be estimated by a clause in their treaty of 1683, with Victor
Amadeus of Savoy; in which he obliges himself to interpose as
mediator in disputes between the cantons, and to employ force, if
necessary, against the contumacious party.
So far as the peculiarity of their case will admit of comparison
with that of the United States, it serves to confirm the principle
intended to be established. Whatever efficacy the union may have had
in ordinary cases, it appears that the moment a cause of difference
sprang up, capable of trying its strength, it failed. The
controversies on the subject of religion, which in three instances
have kindled violent and bloody contests, may be said, in fact, to
have severed the league. The Protestant and Catholic cantons have
since had their separate diets, where all the most important
concerns are adjusted, and which have left the general diet little
other business than to take care of the common bailages.
That separation had another consequence, which merits attention. It
produced opposite alliances with foreign powers: of Berne, at the
head of the Protestant association, with the United Provinces; and
of Luzerne, at the head of the Catholic association, with France.
PUBLIUS
1. Pfeffel, "Nouvel Abrég. Chronol. de l'Hist., etc., d'Allemagne,"
says the pretext was to indemnify himself for the expense of the
expedition.
FEDERALIST No. 20.
The Same Subject Continued (The Insufficiency of the Present
Confederation to Preserve the Union)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 11, 1787.
MADISON, with HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE United Netherlands are a confederacy of republics, or rather of
aristocracies of a very remarkable texture, yet confirming all the
lessons derived from those which we have already reviewed.
The union is composed of seven coequal and sovereign states, and
each state or province is a composition of equal and independent
cities. In all important cases, not only the provinces but the
cities must be unanimous.
The sovereignty of the Union is represented by the States-General,
consisting usually of about fifty deputies appointed by the
provinces. They hold their seats, some for life, some for six,
three, and one years; from two provinces they continue in
appointment during pleasure.
The States-General have authority to enter into treaties and
alliances; to make war and peace; to raise armies and equip fleets;
to ascertain quotas and demand contributions. In all these cases,
however, unanimity and the sanction of their constituents are
requisite. They have authority to appoint and receive ambassadors;
to execute treaties and alliances already formed; to provide for the
collection of duties on imports and exports; to regulate the mint,
with a saving to the provincial rights; to govern as sovereigns the
dependent territories. The provinces are restrained, unless with the
general consent, from entering into foreign treaties; from
establishing imposts injurious to others, or charging their
neighbors with higher duties than their own subjects. A council of
state, a chamber of accounts, with five colleges of admiralty, aid
and fortify the federal administration.
The executive magistrate of the union is the stadtholder, who is now
an hereditary prince. His principal weight and influence in the
republic are derived from this independent title; from his great
patrimonial estates; from his family connections with some of the
chief potentates of Europe; and, more than all, perhaps, from his
being stadtholder in the several provinces, as well as for the
union; in which provincial quality he has the appointment of town
magistrates under certain regulations, executes provincial decrees,
presides when he pleases in the provincial tribunals, and has
throughout the power of pardon.
As stadtholder of the union, he has, however, considerable
prerogatives.
In his political capacity he has authority to settle disputes
between the provinces, when other methods fail; to assist at the
deliberations of the States-General, and at their particular
conferences; to give audiences to foreign ambassadors, and to keep
agents for his particular affairs at foreign courts.
In his military capacity he commands the federal troops, provides
for garrisons, and in general regulates military affairs; disposes
of all appointments, from colonels to ensigns, and of the
governments and posts of fortified towns.
In his marine capacity he is admiral-general, and superintends and
directs every thing relative to naval forces and other naval
affairs; presides in the admiralties in person or by proxy; appoints
lieutenant-admirals and other officers; and establishes councils of
war, whose sentences are not executed till he approves them.
His revenue, exclusive of his private income, amounts to three
hundred thousand florins. The standing army which he commands
consists of about forty thousand men.
Such is the nature of the celebrated Belgic confederacy, as
delineated on parchment. What are the characters which practice has
stamped upon it? Imbecility in the government; discord among the
provinces; foreign influence and indignities; a precarious existence
in peace, and peculiar calamities from war.
It was long ago remarked by Grotius, that nothing but the hatred of
his countrymen to the house of Austria kept them from being ruined
by the vices of their constitution.
The union of Utrecht, says another respectable writer, reposes an
authority in the States-General, seemingly sufficient to secure
harmony, but the jealousy in each province renders the practice very
different from the theory.
The same instrument, says another, obliges each province to levy
certain contributions; but this article never could, and probably
never will, be executed; because the inland provinces, who have
little commerce, cannot pay an equal quota.
In matters of contribution, it is the practice to waive the articles
of the constitution. The danger of delay obliges the consenting
provinces to furnish their quotas, without waiting for the others;
and then to obtain reimbursement from the others, by deputations,
which are frequent, or otherwise, as they can. The great wealth and
influence of the province of Holland enable her to effect both these
purposes.
It has more than once happened, that the deficiencies had to be
ultimately collected at the point of the bayonet; a thing
practicable, though dreadful, in a confederacy where one of the
members exceeds in force all the rest, and where several of them are
too small to meditate resistance; but utterly impracticable in one
composed of members, several of which are equal to each other in
strength and resources, and equal singly to a vigorous and
persevering defense.
Foreign ministers, says Sir William Temple, who was himself a
foreign minister, elude matters taken ad referendum, by tampering
with the provinces and cities. In 1726, the treaty of Hanover was
delayed by these means a whole year. Instances of a like nature are
numerous and notorious.
In critical emergencies, the States-General are often compelled to
overleap their constitutional bounds. In 1688, they concluded a
treaty of themselves at the risk of their heads. The treaty of
Westphalia, in 1648, by which their independence was formerly and
finally recognized, was concluded without the consent of Zealand.
Even as recently as the last treaty of peace with Great Britain, the
constitutional principle of unanimity was departed from. A weak
constitution must necessarily terminate in dissolution, for want of
proper powers, or the usurpation of powers requisite for the public
safety. Whether the usurpation, when once begun, will stop at the
salutary point, or go forward to the dangerous extreme, must depend
on the contingencies of the moment. Tyranny has perhaps oftener
grown out of the assumptions of power, called for, on pressing
exigencies, by a defective constitution, than out of the full
exercise of the largest constitutional authorities.
Notwithstanding the calamities produced by the stadtholdership, it
has been supposed that without his influence in the individual
provinces, the causes of anarchy manifest in the confederacy would
long ago have dissolved it. "Under such a government," says the Abbe
Mably, "the Union could never have subsisted, if the provinces had
not a spring within themselves, capable of quickening their
tardiness, and compelling them to the same way of thinking. This
spring is the stadtholder." It is remarked by Sir William Temple,
"that in the intermissions of the stadtholdership, Holland, by her
riches and her authority, which drew the others into a sort of
dependence, supplied the place."
These are not the only circumstances which have controlled the
tendency to anarchy and dissolution. The surrounding powers impose
an absolute necessity of union to a certain degree, at the same time
that they nourish by their intrigues the constitutional vices which
keep the republic in some degree always at their mercy.
The true patriots have long bewailed the fatal tendency of these
vices, and have made no less than four regular experiments by
EXTRAORDINARY ASSEMBLIES, convened for the special purpose, to apply
a remedy. As many times has their laudable zeal found it impossible
to UNITE THE PUBLIC COUNCILS in reforming the known, the
acknowledged, the fatal evils of the existing constitution. Let us
pause, my fellow-citizens, for one moment, over this melancholy and
monitory lesson of history; and with the tear that drops for the
calamities brought on mankind by their adverse opinions and selfish
passions, let our gratitude mingle an ejaculation to Heaven, for the
propitious concord which has distinguished the consultations for our
political happiness.
A design was also conceived of establishing a general tax to be
administered by the federal authority. This also had its adversaries
and failed.
This unhappy people seem to be now suffering from popular
convulsions, from dissensions among the states, and from the actual
invasion of foreign arms, the crisis of their destiny. All nations
have their eyes fixed on the awful spectacle. The first wish
prompted by humanity is, that this severe trial may issue in such a
revolution of their government as will establish their union, and
render it the parent of tranquillity, freedom and happiness: The
next, that the asylum under which, we trust, the enjoyment of these
blessings will speedily be secured in this country, may receive and
console them for the catastrophe of their own.
I make no apology for having dwelt so long on the contemplation of
these federal precedents. Experience is the oracle of truth; and
where its responses are unequivocal, they ought to be conclusive and
sacred. The important truth, which it unequivocally pronounces in
the present case, is that a sovereignty over sovereigns, a
government over governments, a legislation for communities, as
contradistinguished from individuals, as it is a solecism in theory,
so in practice it is subversive of the order and ends of civil
polity, by substituting VIOLENCE in place of LAW, or the destructive
COERCION of the SWORD in place of the mild and salutary COERCION of
the MAGISTRACY.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 21.
Other Defects of the Present Confederation
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 12, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING in the three last numbers taken a summary review of the
principal circumstances and events which have depicted the genius
and fate of other confederate governments, I shall now proceed in
the enumeration of the most important of those defects which have
hitherto disappointed our hopes from the system established among
ourselves. To form a safe and satisfactory judgment of the proper
remedy, it is absolutely necessary that we should be well acquainted
with the extent and malignity of the disease.
The next most palpable defect of the subsisting Confederation, is
the total want of a SANCTION to its laws. The United States, as now
composed, have no powers to exact obedience, or punish disobedience
to their resolutions, either by pecuniary mulcts, by a suspension or
divestiture of privileges, or by any other constitutional mode.
There is no express delegation of authority to them to use force
against delinquent members; and if such a right should be ascribed
to the federal head, as resulting from the nature of the social
compact between the States, it must be by inference and
construction, in the face of that part of the second article, by
which it is declared, "that each State shall retain every power,
jurisdiction, and right, not EXPRESSLY delegated to the United
States in Congress assembled." There is, doubtless, a striking
absurdity in supposing that a right of this kind does not exist, but
we are reduced to the dilemma either of embracing that supposition,
preposterous as it may seem, or of contravening or explaining away a
provision, which has been of late a repeated theme of the eulogies
of those who oppose the new Constitution; and the want of which, in
that plan, has been the subject of much plausible animadversion, and
severe criticism. If we are unwilling to impair the force of this
applauded provision, we shall be obliged to conclude, that the
United States afford the extraordinary spectacle of a government
destitute even of the shadow of constitutional power to enforce the
execution of its own laws. It will appear, from the specimens which
have been cited, that the American Confederacy, in this particular,
stands discriminated from every other institution of a similar kind,
and exhibits a new and unexampled phenomenon in the political world.
The want of a mutual guaranty of the State governments is another
capital imperfection in the federal plan. There is nothing of this
kind declared in the articles that compose it; and to imply a tacit
guaranty from considerations of utility, would be a still more
flagrant departure from the clause which has been mentioned, than to
imply a tacit power of coercion from the like considerations. The
want of a guaranty, though it might in its consequences endanger the
Union, does not so immediately attack its existence as the want of a
constitutional sanction to its laws.
Without a guaranty the assistance to be derived from the Union in
repelling those domestic dangers which may sometimes threaten the
existence of the State constitutions, must be renounced. Usurpation
may rear its crest in each State, and trample upon the liberties of
the people, while the national government could legally do nothing
more than behold its encroachments with indignation and regret. A
successful faction may erect a tyranny on the ruins of order and
law, while no succor could constitutionally be afforded by the Union
to the friends and supporters of the government. The tempestuous
situation from which Massachusetts has scarcely emerged, evinces
that dangers of this kind are not merely speculative. Who can
determine what might have been the issue of her late convulsions, if
the malcontents had been headed by a Caesar or by a Cromwell? Who
can predict what effect a despotism, established in Massachusetts,
would have upon the liberties of New Hampshire or Rhode Island, of
Connecticut or New York?
The inordinate pride of State importance has suggested to some minds
an objection to the principle of a guaranty in the federal
government, as involving an officious interference in the domestic
concerns of the members. A scruple of this kind would deprive us of
one of the principal advantages to be expected from union, and can
only flow from a misapprehension of the nature of the provision
itself. It could be no impediment to reforms of the State
constitution by a majority of the people in a legal and peaceable
mode. This right would remain undiminished. The guaranty could only
operate against changes to be effected by violence. Towards the
preventions of calamities of this kind, too many checks cannot be
provided. The peace of society and the stability of government
depend absolutely on the efficacy of the precautions adopted on this
head. Where the whole power of the government is in the hands of the
people, there is the less pretense for the use of violent remedies
in partial or occasional distempers of the State. The natural cure
for an ill-administration, in a popular or representative
constitution, is a change of men. A guaranty by the national
authority would be as much levelled against the usurpations of
rulers as against the ferments and outrages of faction and sedition
in the community.
The principle of regulating the contributions of the States to the
common treasury by QUOTAS is another fundamental error in the
Confederation. Its repugnancy to an adequate supply of the national
exigencies has been already pointed out, and has sufficiently
appeared from the trial which has been made of it. I speak of it now
solely with a view to equality among the States. Those who have been
accustomed to contemplate the circumstances which produce and
constitute national wealth, must be satisfied that there is no
common standard or barometer by which the degrees of it can be
ascertained. Neither the value of lands, nor the numbers of the
people, which have been successively proposed as the rule of State
contributions, has any pretension to being a just representative. If
we compare the wealth of the United Netherlands with that of Russia
or Germany, or even of France, and if we at the same time compare
the total value of the lands and the aggregate population of that
contracted district with the total value of the lands and the
aggregate population of the immense regions of either of the three
last-mentioned countries, we shall at once discover that there is no
comparison between the proportion of either of these two objects and
that of the relative wealth of those nations. If the like parallel
were to be run between several of the American States, it would
furnish a like result. Let Virginia be contrasted with North
Carolina, Pennsylvania with Connecticut, or Maryland with New
Jersey, and we shall be convinced that the respective abilities of
those States, in relation to revenue, bear little or no analogy to
their comparative stock in lands or to their comparative population.
The position may be equally illustrated by a similar process between
the counties of the same State. No man who is acquainted with the
State of New York will doubt that the active wealth of King's County
bears a much greater proportion to that of Montgomery than it would
appear to be if we should take either the total value of the lands
or the total number of the people as a criterion!
The wealth of nations depends upon an infinite variety of causes.
Situation, soil, climate, the nature of the productions, the nature
of the government, the genius of the citizens, the degree of
information they possess, the state of commerce, of arts, of
industry, these circumstances and many more, too complex, minute, or
adventitious to admit of a particular specification, occasion
differences hardly conceivable in the relative opulence and riches
of different countries. The consequence clearly is that there can be
no common measure of national wealth, and, of course, no general or
stationary rule by which the ability of a state to pay taxes can be
determined. The attempt, therefore, to regulate the contributions of
the members of a confederacy by any such rule, cannot fail to be
productive of glaring inequality and extreme oppression.
This inequality would of itself be sufficient in America to work the
eventual destruction of the Union, if any mode of enforcing a
compliance with its requisitions could be devised. The suffering
States would not long consent to remain associated upon a principle
which distributes the public burdens with so unequal a hand, and
which was calculated to impoverish and oppress the citizens of some
States, while those of others would scarcely be conscious of the
small proportion of the weight they were required to sustain. This,
however, is an evil inseparable from the principle of quotas and
requisitions.
There is no method of steering clear of this inconvenience, but by
authorizing the national government to raise its own revenues in its
own way. Imposts, excises, and, in general, all duties upon articles
of consumption, may be compared to a fluid, which will, in time,
find its level with the means of paying them. The amount to be
contributed by each citizen will in a degree be at his own option,
and can be regulated by an attention to his resources. The rich may
be extravagant, the poor can be frugal; and private oppression may
always be avoided by a judicious selection of objects proper for
such impositions. If inequalities should arise in some States from
duties on particular objects, these will, in all probability, be
counterbalanced by proportional inequalities in other States, from
the duties on other objects. In the course of time and things, an
equilibrium, as far as it is attainable in so complicated a subject,
will be established everywhere. Or, if inequalities should still
exist, they would neither be so great in their degree, so uniform in
their operation, nor so odious in their appearance, as those which
would necessarily spring from quotas, upon any scale that can
possibly be devised.
It is a signal advantage of taxes on articles of consumption, that
they contain in their own nature a security against excess. They
prescribe their own limit; which cannot be exceeded without
defeating the end proposed, that is, an extension of the revenue.
When applied to this object, the saying is as just as it is witty,
that, "in political arithmetic, two and two do not always make
four." If duties are too high, they lessen the consumption; the
collection is eluded; and the product to the treasury is not so
great as when they are confined within proper and moderate bounds.
This forms a complete barrier against any material oppression of the
citizens by taxes of this class, and is itself a natural limitation
of the power of imposing them.
Impositions of this kind usually fall under the denomination of
indirect taxes, and must for a long time constitute the chief part
of the revenue raised in this country. Those of the direct kind,
which principally relate to land and buildings, may admit of a rule
of apportionment. Either the value of land, or the number of the
people, may serve as a standard. The state of agriculture and the
populousness of a country have been considered as nearly connected
with each other. And, as a rule, for the purpose intended, numbers,
in the view of simplicity and certainty, are entitled to a
preference. In every country it is a herculean task to obtain a
valuation of the land; in a country imperfectly settled and
progressive in improvement, the difficulties are increased almost to
impracticability. The expense of an accurate valuation is, in all
situations, a formidable objection. In a branch of taxation where no
limits to the discretion of the government are to be found in the
nature of things, the establishment of a fixed rule, not
incompatible with the end, may be attended with fewer inconveniences
than to leave that discretion altogether at large.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 22.
The Same Subject Continued (Other Defects of the Present
Confederation)
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 14, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN ADDITION to the defects already enumerated in the existing
federal system, there are others of not less importance, which
concur in rendering it altogether unfit for the administration of
the affairs of the Union.
The want of a power to regulate commerce is by all parties allowed
to be of the number. The utility of such a power has been
anticipated under the first head of our inquiries; and for this
reason, as well as from the universal conviction entertained upon
the subject, little need be added in this place. It is indeed
evident, on the most superficial view, that there is no object,
either as it respects the interests of trade or finance, that more
strongly demands a federal superintendence. The want of it has
already operated as a bar to the formation of beneficial treaties
with foreign powers, and has given occasions of dissatisfaction
between the States. No nation acquainted with the nature of our
political association would be unwise enough to enter into
stipulations with the United States, by which they conceded
privileges of any importance to them, while they were apprised that
the engagements on the part of the Union might at any moment be
violated by its members, and while they found from experience that
they might enjoy every advantage they desired in our markets,
without granting us any return but such as their momentary
convenience might suggest. It is not, therefore, to be wondered at
that Mr. Jenkinson, in ushering into the House of Commons a bill for
regulating the temporary intercourse between the two countries,
should preface its introduction by a declaration that similar
provisions in former bills had been found to answer every purpose to
the commerce of Great Britain, and that it would be prudent to
persist in the plan until it should appear whether the American
government was likely or not to acquire greater consistency.(1)
Several States have endeavored, by separate prohibitions,
restrictions, and exclusions, to influence the conduct of that
kingdom in this particular, but the want of concert, arising from
the want of a general authority and from clashing and dissimilar
views in the State, has hitherto frustrated every experiment of the
kind, and will continue to do so as long as the same obstacles to a
uniformity of measures continue to exist.
The interfering and unneighborly regulations of some States,
contrary to the true spirit of the Union, have, in different
instances, given just cause of umbrage and complaint to others, and
it is to be feared that examples of this nature, if not restrained
by a national control, would be multiplied and extended till they
became not less serious sources of animosity and discord than
injurious impediments to the intercourse between the different parts
of the Confederacy. "The commerce of the German empire(2) is in
continual trammels from the multiplicity of the duties which the
several princes and states exact upon the merchandises passing
through their territories, by means of which the fine streams and
navigable rivers with which Germany is so happily watered are
rendered almost useless." Though the genius of the people of this
country might never permit this description to be strictly
applicable to us, yet we may reasonably expect, from the gradual
conflicts of State regulations, that the citizens of each would at
length come to be considered and treated by the others in no better
light than that of foreigners and aliens.
The power of raising armies, by the most obvious construction of the
articles of the Confederation, is merely a power of making
requisitions upon the States for quotas of men. This practice in the
course of the late war, was found replete with obstructions to a
vigorous and to an economical system of defense. It gave birth to a
competition between the States which created a kind of auction for
men. In order to furnish the quotas required of them, they outbid
each other till bounties grew to an enormous and insupportable size.
The hope of a still further increase afforded an inducement to those
who were disposed to serve to procrastinate their enlistment, and
disinclined them from engaging for any considerable periods. Hence,
slow and scanty levies of men, in the most critical emergencies of
our affairs; short enlistments at an unparalleled expense; continual
fluctuations in the troops, ruinous to their discipline and
subjecting the public safety frequently to the perilous crisis of a
disbanded army. Hence, also, those oppressive expedients for raising
men which were upon several occasions practiced, and which nothing
but the enthusiasm of liberty would have induced the people to
endure.
This method of raising troops is not more unfriendly to economy and
vigor than it is to an equal distribution of the burden. The States
near the seat of war, influenced by motives of self-preservation,
made efforts to furnish their quotas, which even exceeded their
abilities; while those at a distance from danger were, for the most
part, as remiss as the others were diligent, in their exertions. The
immediate pressure of this inequality was not in this case, as in
that of the contributions of money, alleviated by the hope of a
final liquidation. The States which did not pay their proportions of
money might at least be charged with their deficiencies; but no
account could be formed of the deficiencies in the supplies of men.
We shall not, however, see much reason to regret the want of this
hope, when we consider how little prospect there is, that the most
delinquent States will ever be able to make compensation for their
pecuniary failures. The system of quotas and requisitions, whether
it be applied to men or money, is, in every view, a system of
imbecility in the Union, and of inequality and injustice among the
members.
The right of equal suffrage among the States is another
exceptionable part of the Confederation. Every idea of proportion
and every rule of fair representation conspire to condemn a
principle, which gives to Rhode Island an equal weight in the scale
of power with Massachusetts, or Connecticut, or New York; and to
Delaware an equal voice in the national deliberations with
Pennsylvania, or Virginia, or North Carolina. Its operation
contradicts the fundamental maxim of republican government, which
requires that the sense of the majority should prevail. Sophistry
may reply, that sovereigns are equal, and that a majority of the
votes of the States will be a majority of confederated America. But
this kind of logical legerdemain will never counteract the plain
suggestions of justice and common-sense. It may happen that this
majority of States is a small minority of the people of America;(3)
and two thirds of the people of America could not long be persuaded,
upon the credit of artificial distinctions and syllogistic
subtleties, to submit their interests to the management and disposal
of one third. The larger States would after a while revolt from the
idea of receiving the law from the smaller. To acquiesce in such a
privation of their due importance in the political scale, would be
not merely to be insensible to the love of power, but even to
sacrifice the desire of equality. It is neither rational to expect
the first, nor just to require the last. The smaller States,
considering how peculiarly their safety and welfare depend on union,
ought readily to renounce a pretension which, if not relinquished,
would prove fatal to its duration.
It may be objected to this, that not seven but nine States, or two
thirds of the whole number, must consent to the most important
resolutions; and it may be thence inferred that nine States would
always comprehend a majority of the Union. But this does not obviate
the impropriety of an equal vote between States of the most unequal
dimensions and populousness; nor is the inference accurate in point
of fact; for we can enumerate nine States which contain less than a
majority of the people;(4) and it is constitutionally possible that
these nine may give the vote. Besides, there are matters of
considerable moment determinable by a bare majority; and there are
others, concerning which doubts have been entertained, which, if
interpreted in favor of the sufficiency of a vote of seven States,
would extend its operation to interests of the first magnitude. In
addition to this, it is to be observed that there is a probability
of an increase in the number of States, and no provision for a
proportional augmentation of the ratio of votes.
But this is not all: what at first sight may seem a remedy, is, in
reality, a poison. To give a minority a negative upon the majority
(which is always the case where more than a majority is requisite to
a decision), is, in its tendency, to subject the sense of the
greater number to that of the lesser. Congress, from the
nonattendance of a few States, have been frequently in the situation
of a Polish diet, where a single VOTE has been sufficient to put a
stop to all their movements. A sixtieth part of the Union, which is
about the proportion of Delaware and Rhode Island, has several times
been able to oppose an entire bar to its operations. This is one of
those refinements which, in practice, has an effect the reverse of
what is expected from it in theory. The necessity of unanimity in
public bodies, or of something approaching towards it, has been
founded upon a supposition that it would contribute to security. But
its real operation is to embarrass the administration, to destroy
the energy of the government, and to substitute the pleasure,
caprice, or artifices of an insignificant, turbulent, or corrupt
junto, to the regular deliberations and decisions of a respectable
majority. In those emergencies of a nation, in which the goodness or
badness, the weakness or strength of its government, is of the
greatest importance, there is commonly a necessity for action. The
public business must, in some way or other, go forward. If a
pertinacious minority can control the opinion of a majority,
respecting the best mode of conducting it, the majority, in order
that something may be done, must conform to the views of the
minority; and thus the sense of the smaller number will overrule
that of the greater, and give a tone to the national proceedings.
Hence, tedious delays; continual negotiation and intrigue;
contemptible compromises of the public good. And yet, in such a
system, it is even happy when such compromises can take place: for
upon some occasions things will not admit of accommodation; and then
the measures of government must be injuriously suspended, or fatally
defeated. It is often, by the impracticability of obtaining the
concurrence of the necessary number of votes, kept in a state of
inaction. Its situation must always savor of weakness, sometimes
border upon anarchy.
It is not difficult to discover, that a principle of this kind gives
greater scope to foreign corruption, as well as to domestic faction,
than that which permits the sense of the majority to decide; though
the contrary of this has been presumed. The mistake has proceeded
from not attending with due care to the mischiefs that may be
occasioned by obstructing the progress of government at certain
critical seasons. When the concurrence of a large number is required
by the Constitution to the doing of any national act, we are apt to
rest satisfied that all is safe, because nothing improper will be
likely TO BE DONE, but we forget how much good may be prevented, and
how much ill may be produced, by the power of hindering the doing
what may be necessary, and of keeping affairs in the same
unfavorable posture in which they may happen to stand at particular
periods.
Suppose, for instance, we were engaged in a war, in conjunction with
one foreign nation, against another. Suppose the necessity of our
situation demanded peace, and the interest or ambition of our ally
led him to seek the prosecution of the war, with views that might
justify us in making separate terms. In such a state of things, this
ally of ours would evidently find it much easier, by his bribes and
intrigues, to tie up the hands of government from making peace,
where two thirds of all the votes were requisite to that object,
than where a simple majority would suffice. In the first case, he
would have to corrupt a smaller number; in the last, a greater
number. Upon the same principle, it would be much easier for a
foreign power with which we were at war to perplex our councils and
embarrass our exertions. And, in a commercial view, we may be
subjected to similar inconveniences. A nation, with which we might
have a treaty of commerce, could with much greater facility prevent
our forming a connection with her competitor in trade, though such a
connection should be ever so beneficial to ourselves.
Evils of this description ought not to be regarded as imaginary. One
of the weak sides of republics, among their numerous advantages, is
that they afford too easy an inlet to foreign corruption. An
hereditary monarch, though often disposed to sacrifice his subjects
to his ambition, has so great a personal interest in the government
and in the external glory of the nation, that it is not easy for a
foreign power to give him an equivalent for what he would sacrifice
by treachery to the state. The world has accordingly been witness to
few examples of this species of royal prostitution, though there
have been abundant specimens of every other kind.
In republics, persons elevated from the mass of the community, by
the suffrages of their fellow-citizens, to stations of great
pre-eminence and power, may find compensations for betraying their
trust, which, to any but minds animated and guided by superior
virtue, may appear to exceed the proportion of interest they have in
the common stock, and to overbalance the obligations of duty. Hence
it is that history furnishes us with so many mortifying examples of
the prevalency of foreign corruption in republican governments. How
much this contributed to the ruin of the ancient commonwealths has
been already delineated. It is well known that the deputies of the
United Provinces have, in various instances, been purchased by the
emissaries of the neighboring kingdoms. The Earl of Chesterfield (if
my memory serves me right), in a letter to his court, intimates that
his success in an important negotiation must depend on his obtaining
a major's commission for one of those deputies. And in Sweden the
parties were alternately bought by France and England in so
barefaced and notorious a manner that it excited universal disgust
in the nation, and was a principal cause that the most limited
monarch in Europe, in a single day, without tumult, violence, or
opposition, became one of the most absolute and uncontrolled.
A circumstance which crowns the defects of the Confederation remains
yet to be mentioned, the want of a judiciary power. Laws are a dead
letter without courts to expound and define their true meaning and
operation. The treaties of the United States, to have any force at
all, must be considered as part of the law of the land. Their true
import, as far as respects individuals, must, like all other laws,
be ascertained by judicial determinations. To produce uniformity in
these determinations, they ought to be submitted, in the last
resort, to one SUPREME TRIBUNAL. And this tribunal ought to be
instituted under the same authority which forms the treaties
themselves. These ingredients are both indispensable. If there is in
each State a court of final jurisdiction, there may be as many
different final determinations on the same point as there are
courts. There are endless diversities in the opinions of men. We
often see not only different courts but the judges of the came court
differing from each other. To avoid the confusion which would
unavoidably result from the contradictory decisions of a number of
independent judicatories, all nations have found it necessary to
establish one court paramount to the rest, possessing a general
superintendence, and authorized to settle and declare in the last
resort a uniform rule of civil justice.
This is the more necessary where the frame of the government is so
compounded that the laws of the whole are in danger of being
contravened by the laws of the parts. In this case, if the
particular tribunals are invested with a right of ultimate
jurisdiction, besides the contradictions to be expected from
difference of opinion, there will be much to fear from the bias of
local views and prejudices, and from the interference of local
regulations. As often as such an interference was to happen, there
would be reason to apprehend that the provisions of the particular
laws might be preferred to those of the general laws; for nothing is
more natural to men in office than to look with peculiar deference
towards that authority to which they owe their official existence.
The treaties of the United States, under the present Constitution,
are liable to the infractions of thirteen different legislatures,
and as many different courts of final jurisdiction, acting under the
authority of those legislatures. The faith, the reputation, the
peace of the whole Union, are thus continually at the mercy of the
prejudices, the passions, and the interests of every member of which
it is composed. Is it possible that foreign nations can either
respect or confide in such a government? Is it possible that the
people of America will longer consent to trust their honor, their
happiness, their safety, on so precarious a foundation?
In this review of the Confederation, I have confined myself to the
exhibition of its most material defects; passing over those
imperfections in its details by which even a great part of the power
intended to be conferred upon it has been in a great measure
rendered abortive. It must be by this time evident to all men of
reflection, who can divest themselves of the prepossessions of
preconceived opinions, that it is a system so radically vicious and
unsound, as to admit not of amendment but by an entire change in its
leading features and characters.
The organization of Congress is itself utterly improper for the
exercise of those powers which are necessary to be deposited in the
Union. A single assembly may be a proper receptacle of those
slender, or rather fettered, authorities, which have been heretofore
delegated to the federal head; but it would be inconsistent with all
the principles of good government, to intrust it with those
additional powers which, even the moderate and more rational
adversaries of the proposed Constitution admit, ought to reside in
the United States. If that plan should not be adopted, and if the
necessity of the Union should be able to withstand the ambitious
aims of those men who may indulge magnificent schemes of personal
aggrandizement from its dissolution, the probability would be, that
we should run into the project of conferring supplementary powers
upon Congress, as they are now constituted; and either the machine,
from the intrinsic feebleness of its structure, will moulder into
pieces, in spite of our ill-judged efforts to prop it; or, by
successive augmentations of its force an energy, as necessity might
prompt, we shall finally accumulate, in a single body, all the most
important prerogatives of sovereignty, and thus entail upon our
posterity one of the most execrable forms of government that human
infatuation ever contrived. Thus, we should create in reality that
very tyranny which the adversaries of the new Constitution either
are, or affect to be, solicitous to avert.
It has not a little contributed to the infirmities of the existing
federal system, that it never had a ratification by the PEOPLE.
Resting on no better foundation than the consent of the several
legislatures, it has been exposed to frequent and intricate
questions concerning the validity of its powers, and has, in some
instances, given birth to the enormous doctrine of a right of
legislative repeal. Owing its ratification to the law of a State, it
has been contended that the same authority might repeal the law by
which it was ratified. However gross a heresy it may be to maintain
that a PARTY to a COMPACT has a right to revoke that COMPACT, the
doctrine itself has had respectable advocates. The possibility of a
question of this nature proves the necessity of laying the
foundations of our national government deeper than in the mere
sanction of delegated authority. The fabric of American empire ought
to rest on the solid basis of THE CONSENT OF THE PEOPLE. The streams
of national power ought to flow immediately from that pure, original
fountain of all legitimate authority.
PUBLIUS
1. This, as nearly as I can recollect, was the sense of his speech
on introducing the last bill.
2. Encyclopedia, article "Empire."
3. New Hampshire, Rhode Island, New Jersey, Delaware, Georgia, South
Carolina, and Maryland are a majority of the whole number of the
States, but they do not contain one third of the people.
4. Add New York and Connecticut to the foregoing seven, and they
will be less than a majority.
FEDERALIST No. 23.
The Necessity of a Government as Energetic as the One Proposed to
the Preservation of the Union
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 18, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE necessity of a Constitution, at least equally energetic with the
one proposed, to the preservation of the Union, is the point at the
examination of which we are now arrived.
This inquiry will naturally divide itself into three branches—the
objects to be provided for by the federal government, the quantity
of power necessary to the accomplishment of those objects, the
persons upon whom that power ought to operate. Its distribution and
organization will more properly claim our attention under the
succeeding head.
The principal purposes to be answered by union are these—the common
defense of the members; the preservation of the public peace as well
against internal convulsions as external attacks; the regulation of
commerce with other nations and between the States; the
superintendence of our intercourse, political and commercial, with
foreign countries.
The authorities essential to the common defense are these: to raise
armies; to build and equip fleets; to prescribe rules for the
government of both; to direct their operations; to provide for their
support. These powers ought to exist without limitation, BECAUSE IT
IS IMPOSSIBLE TO FORESEE OR DEFINE THE EXTENT AND VARIETY OF
NATIONAL EXIGENCIES, OR THE CORRESPONDENT EXTENT AND VARIETY OF THE
MEANS WHICH MAY BE NECESSARY TO SATISFY THEM. The circumstances that
endanger the safety of nations are infinite, and for this reason no
constitutional shackles can wisely be imposed on the power to which
the care of it is committed. This power ought to be coextensive with
all the possible combinations of such circumstances; and ought to be
under the direction of the same councils which are appointed to
preside over the common defense.
This is one of those truths which, to a correct and unprejudiced
mind, carries its own evidence along with it; and may be obscured,
but cannot be made plainer by argument or reasoning. It rests upon
axioms as simple as they are universal; the MEANS ought to be
proportioned to the END; the persons, from whose agency the
attainment of any END is expected, ought to possess the MEANS by
which it is to be attained.
Whether there ought to be a federal government intrusted with the
care of the common defense, is a question in the first instance,
open for discussion; but the moment it is decided in the
affirmative, it will follow, that that government ought to be
clothed with all the powers requisite to complete execution of its
trust. And unless it can be shown that the circumstances which may
affect the public safety are reducible within certain determinate
limits; unless the contrary of this position can be fairly and
rationally disputed, it must be admitted, as a necessary
consequence, that there can be no limitation of that authority which
is to provide for the defense and protection of the community, in
any matter essential to its efficacy that is, in any matter
essential to the FORMATION, DIRECTION, or SUPPORT of the NATIONAL
FORCES.
Defective as the present Confederation has been proved to be, this
principle appears to have been fully recognized by the framers of
it; though they have not made proper or adequate provision for its
exercise. Congress have an unlimited discretion to make requisitions
of men and money; to govern the army and navy; to direct their
operations. As their requisitions are made constitutionally binding
upon the States, who are in fact under the most solemn obligations
to furnish the supplies required of them, the intention evidently
was that the United States should command whatever resources were by
them judged requisite to the "common defense and general welfare."
It was presumed that a sense of their true interests, and a regard
to the dictates of good faith, would be found sufficient pledges for
the punctual performance of the duty of the members to the federal
head.
The experiment has, however, demonstrated that this expectation was
ill-founded and illusory; and the observations, made under the last
head, will, I imagine, have sufficed to convince the impartial and
discerning, that there is an absolute necessity for an entire change
in the first principles of the system; that if we are in earnest
about giving the Union energy and duration, we must abandon the vain
project of legislating upon the States in their collective
capacities; we must extend the laws of the federal government to the
individual citizens of America; we must discard the fallacious
scheme of quotas and requisitions, as equally impracticable and
unjust. The result from all this is that the Union ought to be
invested with full power to levy troops; to build and equip fleets;
and to raise the revenues which will be required for the formation
and support of an army and navy, in the customary and ordinary modes
practiced in other governments.
If the circumstances of our country are such as to demand a compound
instead of a simple, a confederate instead of a sole, government,
the essential point which will remain to be adjusted will be to
discriminate the OBJECTS, as far as it can be done, which shall
appertain to the different provinces or departments of power;
allowing to each the most ample authority for fulfilling the objects
committed to its charge. Shall the Union be constituted the guardian
of the common safety? Are fleets and armies and revenues necessary
to this purpose? The government of the Union must be empowered to
pass all laws, and to make all regulations which have relation to
them. The same must be the case in respect to commerce, and to every
other matter to which its jurisdiction is permitted to extend. Is
the administration of justice between the citizens of the same State
the proper department of the local governments? These must possess
all the authorities which are connected with this object, and with
every other that may be allotted to their particular cognizance and
direction. Not to confer in each case a degree of power commensurate
to the end, would be to violate the most obvious rules of prudence
and propriety, and improvidently to trust the great interests of the
nation to hands which are disabled from managing them with vigor and
success.
Who is likely to make suitable provisions for the public defense, as
that body to which the guardianship of the public safety is
confided; which, as the centre of information, will best understand
the extent and urgency of the dangers that threaten; as the
representative of the WHOLE, will feel itself most deeply interested
in the preservation of every part; which, from the responsibility
implied in the duty assigned to it, will be most sensibly impressed
with the necessity of proper exertions; and which, by the extension
of its authority throughout the States, can alone establish
uniformity and concert in the plans and measures by which the common
safety is to be secured? Is there not a manifest inconsistency in
devolving upon the federal government the care of the general
defense, and leaving in the State governments the EFFECTIVE powers
by which it is to be provided for? Is not a want of co-operation the
infallible consequence of such a system? And will not weakness,
disorder, an undue distribution of the burdens and calamities of
war, an unnecessary and intolerable increase of expense, be its
natural and inevitable concomitants? Have we not had unequivocal
experience of its effects in the course of the revolution which we
have just accomplished?
Every view we may take of the subject, as candid inquirers after
truth, will serve to convince us, that it is both unwise and
dangerous to deny the federal government an unconfined authority, as
to all those objects which are intrusted to its management. It will
indeed deserve the most vigilant and careful attention of the
people, to see that it be modeled in such a manner as to admit of
its being safely vested with the requisite powers. If any plan which
has been, or may be, offered to our consideration, should not, upon
a dispassionate inspection, be found to answer this description, it
ought to be rejected. A government, the constitution of which
renders it unfit to be trusted with all the powers which a free
people ought to delegate to any government, would be an unsafe and
improper depositary of the NATIONAL INTERESTS. Wherever THESE can
with propriety be confided, the coincident powers may safely
accompany them. This is the true result of all just reasoning upon
the subject. And the adversaries of the plan promulgated by the
convention ought to have confined themselves to showing, that the
internal structure of the proposed government was such as to render
it unworthy of the confidence of the people. They ought not to have
wandered into inflammatory declamations and unmeaning cavils about
the extent of the powers. The POWERS are not too extensive for the
OBJECTS of federal administration, or, in other words, for the
management of our NATIONAL INTERESTS; nor can any satisfactory
argument be framed to show that they are chargeable with such an
excess. If it be true, as has been insinuated by some of the writers
on the other side, that the difficulty arises from the nature of the
thing, and that the extent of the country will not permit us to form
a government in which such ample powers can safely be reposed, it
would prove that we ought to contract our views, and resort to the
expedient of separate confederacies, which will move within more
practicable spheres. For the absurdity must continually stare us in
the face of confiding to a government the direction of the most
essential national interests, without daring to trust it to the
authorities which are indispensable to their proper and efficient
management. Let us not attempt to reconcile contradictions, but
firmly embrace a rational alternative.
I trust, however, that the impracticability of one general system
cannot be shown. I am greatly mistaken, if any thing of weight has
yet been advanced of this tendency; and I flatter myself, that the
observations which have been made in the course of these papers have
served to place the reverse of that position in as clear a light as
any matter still in the womb of time and experience can be
susceptible of. This, at all events, must be evident, that the very
difficulty itself, drawn from the extent of the country, is the
strongest argument in favor of an energetic government; for any
other can certainly never preserve the Union of so large an empire.
If we embrace the tenets of those who oppose the adoption of the
proposed Constitution, as the standard of our political creed, we
cannot fail to verify the gloomy doctrines which predict the
impracticability of a national system pervading entire limits of the
present Confederacy.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 24.
The Powers Necessary to the Common Defense Further Considered
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 19, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO THE powers proposed to be conferred upon the federal government,
in respect to the creation and direction of the national forces, I
have met with but one specific objection, which, if I understand it
right, is this, that proper provision has not been made against the
existence of standing armies in time of peace; an objection which, I
shall now endeavor to show, rests on weak and unsubstantial
foundations.
It has indeed been brought forward in the most vague and general
form, supported only by bold assertions, without the appearance of
argument; without even the sanction of theoretical opinions; in
contradiction to the practice of other free nations, and to the
general sense of America, as expressed in most of the existing
constitutions. The proprietary of this remark will appear, the
moment it is recollected that the objection under consideration
turns upon a supposed necessity of restraining the LEGISLATIVE
authority of the nation, in the article of military establishments;
a principle unheard of, except in one or two of our State
constitutions, and rejected in all the rest.
A stranger to our politics, who was to read our newspapers at the
present juncture, without having previously inspected the plan
reported by the convention, would be naturally led to one of two
conclusions: either that it contained a positive injunction, that
standing armies should be kept up in time of peace; or that it
vested in the EXECUTIVE the whole power of levying troops, without
subjecting his discretion, in any shape, to the control of the
legislature.
If he came afterwards to peruse the plan itself, he would be
surprised to discover, that neither the one nor the other was the
case; that the whole power of raising armies was lodged in the
LEGISLATURE, not in the EXECUTIVE; that this legislature was to be a
popular body, consisting of the representatives of the people
periodically elected; and that instead of the provision he had
supposed in favor of standing armies, there was to be found, in
respect to this object, an important qualification even of the
legislative discretion, in that clause which forbids the
appropriation of money for the support of an army for any longer
period than two years a precaution which, upon a nearer view of it,
will appear to be a great and real security against the keeping up
of troops without evident necessity.
Disappointed in his first surmise, the person I have supposed would
be apt to pursue his conjectures a little further. He would
naturally say to himself, it is impossible that all this vehement
and pathetic declamation can be without some colorable pretext. It
must needs be that this people, so jealous of their liberties, have,
in all the preceding models of the constitutions which they have
established, inserted the most precise and rigid precautions on this
point, the omission of which, in the new plan, has given birth to
all this apprehension and clamor.
If, under this impression, he proceeded to pass in review the
several State constitutions, how great would be his disappointment
to find that TWO ONLY of them(1) contained an interdiction of
standing armies in time of peace; that the other eleven had either
observed a profound silence on the subject, or had in express terms
admitted the right of the Legislature to authorize their existence.
Still, however he would be persuaded that there must be some
plausible foundation for the cry raised on this head. He would never
be able to imagine, while any source of information remained
unexplored, that it was nothing more than an experiment upon the
public credulity, dictated either by a deliberate intention to
deceive, or by the overflowings of a zeal too intemperate to be
ingenuous. It would probably occur to him, that he would be likely
to find the precautions he was in search of in the primitive compact
between the States. Here, at length, he would expect to meet with a
solution of the enigma. No doubt, he would observe to himself, the
existing Confederation must contain the most explicit provisions
against military establishments in time of peace; and a departure
from this model, in a favorite point, has occasioned the discontent
which appears to influence these political champions.
If he should now apply himself to a careful and critical survey of
the articles of Confederation, his astonishment would not only be
increased, but would acquire a mixture of indignation, at the
unexpected discovery, that these articles, instead of containing the
prohibition he looked for, and though they had, with jealous
circumspection, restricted the authority of the State legislatures
in this particular, had not imposed a single restraint on that of
the United States. If he happened to be a man of quick sensibility,
or ardent temper, he could now no longer refrain from regarding
these clamors as the dishonest artifices of a sinister and
unprincipled opposition to a plan which ought at least to receive a
fair and candid examination from all sincere lovers of their
country! How else, he would say, could the authors of them have been
tempted to vent such loud censures upon that plan, about a point in
which it seems to have conformed itself to the general sense of
America as declared in its different forms of government, and in
which it has even superadded a new and powerful guard unknown to any
of them? If, on the contrary, he happened to be a man of calm and
dispassionate feelings, he would indulge a sigh for the frailty of
human nature, and would lament, that in a matter so interesting to
the happiness of millions, the true merits of the question should be
perplexed and entangled by expedients so unfriendly to an impartial
and right determination. Even such a man could hardly forbear
remarking, that a conduct of this kind has too much the appearance
of an intention to mislead the people by alarming their passions,
rather than to convince them by arguments addressed to their
understandings.
But however little this objection may be countenanced, even by
precedents among ourselves, it may be satisfactory to take a nearer
view of its intrinsic merits. From a close examination it will
appear that restraints upon the discretion of the legislature in
respect to military establishments in time of peace, would be
improper to be imposed, and if imposed, from the necessities of
society, would be unlikely to be observed.
Though a wide ocean separates the United States from Europe, yet
there are various considerations that warn us against an excess of
confidence or security. On one side of us, and stretching far into
our rear, are growing settlements subject to the dominion of
Britain. On the other side, and extending to meet the British
settlements, are colonies and establishments subject to the dominion
of Spain. This situation and the vicinity of the West India Islands,
belonging to these two powers create between them, in respect to
their American possessions and in relation to us, a common interest.
The savage tribes on our Western frontier ought to be regarded as
our natural enemies, their natural allies, because they have most to
fear from us, and most to hope from them. The improvements in the
art of navigation have, as to the facility of communication,
rendered distant nations, in a great measure, neighbors. Britain and
Spain are among the principal maritime powers of Europe. A future
concert of views between these nations ought not to be regarded as
improbable. The increasing remoteness of consanguinity is every day
diminishing the force of the family compact between France and
Spain. And politicians have ever with great reason considered the
ties of blood as feeble and precarious links of political
connection. These circumstances combined, admonish us not to be too
sanguine in considering ourselves as entirely out of the reach of
danger.
Previous to the Revolution, and ever since the peace, there has been
a constant necessity for keeping small garrisons on our Western
frontier. No person can doubt that these will continue to be
indispensable, if it should only be against the ravages and
depredations of the Indians. These garrisons must either be
furnished by occasional detachments from the militia, or by
permanent corps in the pay of the government. The first is
impracticable; and if practicable, would be pernicious. The militia
would not long, if at all, submit to be dragged from their
occupations and families to perform that most disagreeable duty in
times of profound peace. And if they could be prevailed upon or
compelled to do it, the increased expense of a frequent rotation of
service, and the loss of labor and disconcertion of the industrious
pursuits of individuals, would form conclusive objections to the
scheme. It would be as burdensome and injurious to the public as
ruinous to private citizens. The latter resource of permanent corps
in the pay of the government amounts to a standing army in time of
peace; a small one, indeed, but not the less real for being small.
Here is a simple view of the subject, that shows us at once the
impropriety of a constitutional interdiction of such establishments,
and the necessity of leaving the matter to the discretion and
prudence of the legislature.
In proportion to our increase in strength, it is probable, nay, it
may be said certain, that Britain and Spain would augment their
military establishments in our neighborhood. If we should not be
willing to be exposed, in a naked and defenseless condition, to
their insults and encroachments, we should find it expedient to
increase our frontier garrisons in some ratio to the force by which
our Western settlements might be annoyed. There are, and will be,
particular posts, the possession of which will include the command
of large districts of territory, and facilitate future invasions of
the remainder. It may be added that some of those posts will be keys
to the trade with the Indian nations. Can any man think it would be
wise to leave such posts in a situation to be at any instant seized
by one or the other of two neighboring and formidable powers? To act
this part would be to desert all the usual maxims of prudence and
policy.
If we mean to be a commercial people, or even to be secure on our
Atlantic side, we must endeavor, as soon as possible, to have a
navy. To this purpose there must be dock-yards and arsenals; and for
the defense of these, fortifications, and probably garrisons. When a
nation has become so powerful by sea that it can protect its
dock-yards by its fleets, this supersedes the necessity of garrisons
for that purpose; but where naval establishments are in their
infancy, moderate garrisons will, in all likelihood, be found an
indispensable security against descents for the destruction of the
arsenals and dock-yards, and sometimes of the fleet itself.
PUBLIUS
1 This statement of the matter is taken from the printed collection
of State constitutions. Pennsylvania and North Carolina are the two
which contain the interdiction in these words: "As standing armies
in time of peace are dangerous to liberty, THEY OUGHT NOT to be kept
up." This is, in truth, rather a CAUTION than a PROHIBITION. New
Hampshire, Massachusetts, Delaware, and Maryland have, in each of
their bils of rights, a clause to this effect: "Standing armies are
dangerous to liberty, and ought not to be raised or kept up WITHOUT
THE CONSENT OF THE LEGISLATURE"; which is a formal admission of the
authority of the Legislature. New York has no bills of rights, and
her constitution says not a word about the matter. No bills of
rights appear annexed to the constitutions of the other States,
except the foregoing, and their constitutions are equally silent. I
am told, however that one or two States have bills of rights which
do not appear in this collection; but that those also recognize the
right of the legislative authority in this respect.
FEDERALIST No. 25.
The Same Subject Continued (The Powers Necessary to the Common
Defense Further Considered)
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 21, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT MAY perhaps be urged that the objects enumerated in the preceding
number ought to be provided for by the State governments, under the
direction of the Union. But this would be, in reality, an inversion
of the primary principle of our political association, as it would
in practice transfer the care of the common defense from the federal
head to the individual members: a project oppressive to some States,
dangerous to all, and baneful to the Confederacy.
The territories of Britain, Spain, and of the Indian nations in our
neighborhood do not border on particular States, but encircle the
Union from Maine to Georgia. The danger, though in different
degrees, is therefore common. And the means of guarding against it
ought, in like manner, to be the objects of common councils and of a
common treasury. It happens that some States, from local situation,
are more directly exposed. New York is of this class. Upon the plan
of separate provisions, New York would have to sustain the whole
weight of the establishments requisite to her immediate safety, and
to the mediate or ultimate protection of her neighbors. This would
neither be equitable as it respected New York nor safe as it
respected the other States. Various inconveniences would attend such
a system. The States, to whose lot it might fall to support the
necessary establishments, would be as little able as willing, for a
considerable time to come, to bear the burden of competent
provisions. The security of all would thus be subjected to the
parsimony, improvidence, or inability of a part. If the resources of
such part becoming more abundant and extensive, its provisions
should be proportionally enlarged, the other States would quickly
take the alarm at seeing the whole military force of the Union in
the hands of two or three of its members, and those probably amongst
the most powerful. They would each choose to have some counterpoise,
and pretenses could easily be contrived. In this situation, military
establishments, nourished by mutual jealousy, would be apt to swell
beyond their natural or proper size; and being at the separate
disposal of the members, they would be engines for the abridgment or
demolition of the national authority.
Reasons have been already given to induce a supposition that the
State governments will too naturally be prone to a rivalship with
that of the Union, the foundation of which will be the love of
power; and that in any contest between the federal head and one of
its members the people will be most apt to unite with their local
government. If, in addition to this immense advantage, the ambition
of the members should be stimulated by the separate and independent
possession of military forces, it would afford too strong a
temptation and too great a facility to them to make enterprises
upon, and finally to subvert, the constitutional authority of the
Union. On the other hand, the liberty of the people would be less
safe in this state of things than in that which left the national
forces in the hands of the national government. As far as an army
may be considered as a dangerous weapon of power, it had better be
in those hands of which the people are most likely to be jealous
than in those of which they are least likely to be jealous. For it
is a truth, which the experience of ages has attested, that the
people are always most in danger when the means of injuring their
rights are in the possession of those of whom they entertain the
least suspicion.
The framers of the existing Confederation, fully aware of the danger
to the Union from the separate possession of military forces by the
States, have, in express terms, prohibited them from having either
ships or troops, unless with the consent of Congress. The truth is,
that the existence of a federal government and military
establishments under State authority are not less at variance with
each other than a due supply of the federal treasury and the system
of quotas and requisitions.
There are other lights besides those already taken notice of, in
which the impropriety of restraints on the discretion of the
national legislature will be equally manifest. The design of the
objection, which has been mentioned, is to preclude standing armies
in time of peace, though we have never been informed how far it is
designed the prohibition should extend; whether to raising armies as
well as to KEEPING THEM UP in a season of tranquillity or not. If it
be confined to the latter it will have no precise signification, and
it will be ineffectual for the purpose intended. When armies are
once raised what shall be denominated "keeping them up," contrary to
the sense of the Constitution? What time shall be requisite to
ascertain the violation? Shall it be a week, a month, a year? Or
shall we say they may be continued as long as the danger which
occasioned their being raised continues? This would be to admit that
they might be kept up IN TIME OF PEACE, against threatening or
impending danger, which would be at once to deviate from the literal
meaning of the prohibition, and to introduce an extensive latitude
of construction. Who shall judge of the continuance of the danger?
This must undoubtedly be submitted to the national government, and
the matter would then be brought to this issue, that the national
government, to provide against apprehended danger, might in the
first instance raise troops, and might afterwards keep them on foot
as long as they supposed the peace or safety of the community was in
any degree of jeopardy. It is easy to perceive that a discretion so
latitudinary as this would afford ample room for eluding the force
of the provision.
The supposed utility of a provision of this kind can only be founded
on the supposed probability, or at least possibility, of a
combination between the executive and the legislative, in some
scheme of usurpation. Should this at any time happen, how easy would
it be to fabricate pretenses of approaching danger! Indian
hostilities, instigated by Spain or Britain, would always be at
hand. Provocations to produce the desired appearances might even be
given to some foreign power, and appeased again by timely
concessions. If we can reasonably presume such a combination to have
been formed, and that the enterprise is warranted by a sufficient
prospect of success, the army, when once raised, from whatever
cause, or on whatever pretext, may be applied to the execution of
the project.
If, to obviate this consequence, it should be resolved to extend the
prohibition to the RAISING of armies in time of peace, the United
States would then exhibit the most extraordinary spectacle which the
world has yet seen, that of a nation incapacitated by its
Constitution to prepare for defense, before it was actually invaded.
As the ceremony of a formal denunciation of war has of late fallen
into disuse, the presence of an enemy within our territories must be
waited for, as the legal warrant to the government to begin its
levies of men for the protection of the State. We must receive the
blow, before we could even prepare to return it. All that kind of
policy by which nations anticipate distant danger, and meet the
gathering storm, must be abstained from, as contrary to the genuine
maxims of a free government. We must expose our property and liberty
to the mercy of foreign invaders, and invite them by our weakness to
seize the naked and defenseless prey, because we are afraid that
rulers, created by our choice, dependent on our will, might endanger
that liberty, by an abuse of the means necessary to its
preservation.
Here I expect we shall be told that the militia of the country is
its natural bulwark, and would be at all times equal to the national
defense. This doctrine, in substance, had like to have lost us our
independence. It cost millions to the United States that might have
been saved. The facts which, from our own experience, forbid a
reliance of this kind, are too recent to permit us to be the dupes
of such a suggestion. The steady operations of war against a regular
and disciplined army can only be successfully conducted by a force
of the same kind. Considerations of economy, not less than of
stability and vigor, confirm this position. The American militia, in
the course of the late war, have, by their valor on numerous
occasions, erected eternal monuments to their fame; but the bravest
of them feel and know that the liberty of their country could not
have been established by their efforts alone, however great and
valuable they were. War, like most other things, is a science to be
acquired and perfected by diligence, by perseverance, by time, and
by practice.
All violent policy, as it is contrary to the natural and experienced
course of human affairs, defeats itself. Pennsylvania, at this
instant, affords an example of the truth of this remark. The Bill of
Rights of that State declares that standing armies are dangerous to
liberty, and ought not to be kept up in time of peace. Pennsylvania,
nevertheless, in a time of profound peace, from the existence of
partial disorders in one or two of her counties, has resolved to
raise a body of troops; and in all probability will keep them up as
long as there is any appearance of danger to the public peace. The
conduct of Massachusetts affords a lesson on the same subject,
though on different ground. That State (without waiting for the
sanction of Congress, as the articles of the Confederation require)
was compelled to raise troops to quell a domestic insurrection, and
still keeps a corps in pay to prevent a revival of the spirit of
revolt. The particular constitution of Massachusetts opposed no
obstacle to the measure; but the instance is still of use to
instruct us that cases are likely to occur under our government, as
well as under those of other nations, which will sometimes render a
military force in time of peace essential to the security of the
society, and that it is therefore improper in this respect to
control the legislative discretion. It also teaches us, in its
application to the United States, how little the rights of a feeble
government are likely to be respected, even by its own constituents.
And it teaches us, in addition to the rest, how unequal parchment
provisions are to a struggle with public necessity.
It was a fundamental maxim of the Lacedaemonian commonwealth, that
the post of admiral should not be conferred twice on the same
person. The Peloponnesian confederates, having suffered a severe
defeat at sea from the Athenians, demanded Lysander, who had before
served with success in that capacity, to command the combined
fleets. The Lacedaemonians, to gratify their allies, and yet
preserve the semblance of an adherence to their ancient
institutions, had recourse to the flimsy subterfuge of investing
Lysander with the real power of admiral, under the nominal title of
vice-admiral. This instance is selected from among a multitude that
might be cited to confirm the truth already advanced and illustrated
by domestic examples; which is, that nations pay little regard to
rules and maxims calculated in their very nature to run counter to
the necessities of society. Wise politicians will be cautious about
fettering the government with restrictions that cannot be observed,
because they know that every breach of the fundamental laws, though
dictated by necessity, impairs that sacred reverence which ought to
be maintained in the breast of rulers towards the constitution of a
country, and forms a precedent for other breaches where the same
plea of necessity does not exist at all, or is less urgent and
palpable.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 26.
The Idea of Restraining the Legislative Authority in Regard to the
Common Defense Considered.
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, December 22, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT WAS a thing hardly to be expected that in a popular revolution
the minds of men should stop at that happy mean which marks the
salutary boundary between POWER and PRIVILEGE, and combines the
energy of government with the security of private rights. A failure
in this delicate and important point is the great source of the
inconveniences we experience, and if we are not cautious to avoid a
repetition of the error, in our future attempts to rectify and
ameliorate our system, we may travel from one chimerical project to
another; we may try change after change; but we shall never be
likely to make any material change for the better.
The idea of restraining the legislative authority, in the means of
providing for the national defense, is one of those refinements
which owe their origin to a zeal for liberty more ardent than
enlightened. We have seen, however, that it has not had thus far an
extensive prevalency; that even in this country, where it made its
first appearance, Pennsylvania and North Carolina are the only two
States by which it has been in any degree patronized; and that all
the others have refused to give it the least countenance; wisely
judging that confidence must be placed somewhere; that the necessity
of doing it, is implied in the very act of delegating power; and
that it is better to hazard the abuse of that confidence than to
embarrass the government and endanger the public safety by impolitic
restrictions on the legislative authority. The opponents of the
proposed Constitution combat, in this respect, the general decision
of America; and instead of being taught by experience the propriety
of correcting any extremes into which we may have heretofore run,
they appear disposed to conduct us into others still more dangerous,
and more extravagant. As if the tone of government had been found
too high, or too rigid, the doctrines they teach are calculated to
induce us to depress or to relax it, by expedients which, upon other
occasions, have been condemned or forborne. It may be affirmed
without the imputation of invective, that if the principles they
inculcate, on various points, could so far obtain as to become the
popular creed, they would utterly unfit the people of this country
for any species of government whatever. But a danger of this kind is
not to be apprehended. The citizens of America have too much
discernment to be argued into anarchy. And I am much mistaken, if
experience has not wrought a deep and solemn conviction in the
public mind, that greater energy of government is essential to the
welfare and prosperity of the community.
It may not be amiss in this place concisely to remark the origin and
progress of the idea, which aims at the exclusion of military
establishments in time of peace. Though in speculative minds it may
arise from a contemplation of the nature and tendency of such
institutions, fortified by the events that have happened in other
ages and countries, yet as a national sentiment, it must be traced
to those habits of thinking which we derive from the nation from
whom the inhabitants of these States have in general sprung.
In England, for a long time after the Norman Conquest, the authority
of the monarch was almost unlimited. Inroads were gradually made
upon the prerogative, in favor of liberty, first by the barons, and
afterwards by the people, till the greatest part of its most
formidable pretensions became extinct. But it was not till the
revolution in 1688, which elevated the Prince of Orange to the
throne of Great Britain, that English liberty was completely
triumphant. As incident to the undefined power of making war, an
acknowledged prerogative of the crown, Charles II. had, by his own
authority, kept on foot in time of peace a body of 5,000 regular
troops. And this number James II. increased to 30,000; who were paid
out of his civil list. At the revolution, to abolish the exercise of
so dangerous an authority, it became an article of the Bill of
Rights then framed, that "the raising or keeping a standing army
within the kingdom in time of peace, UNLESS WITH THE CONSENT OF
PARLIAMENT, was against law."
In that kingdom, when the pulse of liberty was at its highest pitch,
no security against the danger of standing armies was thought
requisite, beyond a prohibition of their being raised or kept up by
the mere authority of the executive magistrate. The patriots, who
effected that memorable revolution, were too temperate, too
wellinformed, to think of any restraint on the legislative
discretion. They were aware that a certain number of troops for
guards and garrisons were indispensable; that no precise bounds
could be set to the national exigencies; that a power equal to every
possible contingency must exist somewhere in the government: and
that when they referred the exercise of that power to the judgment
of the legislature, they had arrived at the ultimate point of
precaution which was reconcilable with the safety of the community.
From the same source, the people of America may be said to have
derived an hereditary impression of danger to liberty, from standing
armies in time of peace. The circumstances of a revolution quickened
the public sensibility on every point connected with the security of
popular rights, and in some instances raise the warmth of our zeal
beyond the degree which consisted with the due temperature of the
body politic. The attempts of two of the States to restrict the
authority of the legislature in the article of military
establishments, are of the number of these instances. The principles
which had taught us to be jealous of the power of an hereditary
monarch were by an injudicious excess extended to the
representatives of the people in their popular assemblies. Even in
some of the States, where this error was not adopted, we find
unnecessary declarations that standing armies ought not to be kept
up, in time of peace, WITHOUT THE CONSENT OF THE LEGISLATURE. I call
them unnecessary, because the reason which had introduced a similar
provision into the English Bill of Rights is not applicable to any
of the State constitutions. The power of raising armies at all,
under those constitutions, can by no construction be deemed to
reside anywhere else, than in the legislatures themselves; and it
was superfluous, if not absurd, to declare that a matter should not
be done without the consent of a body, which alone had the power of
doing it. Accordingly, in some of these constitutions, and among
others, in that of this State of New York, which has been justly
celebrated, both in Europe and America, as one of the best of the
forms of government established in this country, there is a total
silence upon the subject.
It is remarkable, that even in the two States which seem to have
meditated an interdiction of military establishments in time of
peace, the mode of expression made use of is rather cautionary than
prohibitory. It is not said, that standing armies SHALL NOT BE kept
up, but that they OUGHT NOT to be kept up, in time of peace. This
ambiguity of terms appears to have been the result of a conflict
between jealousy and conviction; between the desire of excluding
such establishments at all events, and the persuasion that an
absolute exclusion would be unwise and unsafe.
Can it be doubted that such a provision, whenever the situation of
public affairs was understood to require a departure from it, would
be interpreted by the legislature into a mere admonition, and would
be made to yield to the necessities or supposed necessities of the
State? Let the fact already mentioned, with respect to Pennsylvania,
decide. What then (it may be asked) is the use of such a provision,
if it cease to operate the moment there is an inclination to
disregard it?
Let us examine whether there be any comparison, in point of
efficacy, between the provision alluded to and that which is
contained in the new Constitution, for restraining the
appropriations of money for military purposes to the period of two
years. The former, by aiming at too much, is calculated to effect
nothing; the latter, by steering clear of an imprudent extreme, and
by being perfectly compatible with a proper provision for the
exigencies of the nation, will have a salutary and powerful
operation.
The legislature of the United States will be OBLIGED, by this
provision, once at least in every two years, to deliberate upon the
propriety of keeping a military force on foot; to come to a new
resolution on the point; and to declare their sense of the matter,
by a formal vote in the face of their constituents. They are not AT
LIBERTY to vest in the executive department permanent funds for the
support of an army, if they were even incautious enough to be
willing to repose in it so improper a confidence. As the spirit of
party, in different degrees, must be expected to infect all
political bodies, there will be, no doubt, persons in the national
legislature willing enough to arraign the measures and criminate the
views of the majority. The provision for the support of a military
force will always be a favorable topic for declamation. As often as
the question comes forward, the public attention will be roused and
attracted to the subject, by the party in opposition; and if the
majority should be really disposed to exceed the proper limits, the
community will be warned of the danger, and will have an opportunity
of taking measures to guard against it. Independent of parties in
the national legislature itself, as often as the period of
discussion arrived, the State legislatures, who will always be not
only vigilant but suspicious and jealous guardians of the rights of
the citizens against encroachments from the federal government, will
constantly have their attention awake to the conduct of the national
rulers, and will be ready enough, if any thing improper appears, to
sound the alarm to the people, and not only to be the VOICE, but, if
necessary, the ARM of their discontent.
Schemes to subvert the liberties of a great community REQUIRE TIME
to mature them for execution. An army, so large as seriously to
menace those liberties, could only be formed by progressive
augmentations; which would suppose, not merely a temporary
combination between the legislature and executive, but a continued
conspiracy for a series of time. Is it probable that such a
combination would exist at all? Is it probable that it would be
persevered in, and transmitted along through all the successive
variations in a representative body, which biennial elections would
naturally produce in both houses? Is it presumable, that every man,
the instant he took his seat in the national Senate or House of
Representatives, would commence a traitor to his constituents and to
his country? Can it be supposed that there would not be found one
man, discerning enough to detect so atrocious a conspiracy, or bold
or honest enough to apprise his constituents of their danger? If
such presumptions can fairly be made, there ought at once to be an
end of all delegated authority. The people should resolve to recall
all the powers they have heretofore parted with out of their own
hands, and to divide themselves into as many States as there are
counties, in order that they may be able to manage their own
concerns in person.
If such suppositions could even be reasonably made, still the
concealment of the design, for any duration, would be impracticable.
It would be announced, by the very circumstance of augmenting the
army to so great an extent in time of profound peace. What colorable
reason could be assigned, in a country so situated, for such vast
augmentations of the military force? It is impossible that the
people could be long deceived; and the destruction of the project,
and of the projectors, would quickly follow the discovery.
It has been said that the provision which limits the appropriation
of money for the support of an army to the period of two years would
be unavailing, because the Executive, when once possessed of a force
large enough to awe the people into submission, would find resources
in that very force sufficient to enable him to dispense with
supplies from the acts of the legislature. But the question again
recurs, upon what pretense could he be put in possession of a force
of that magnitude in time of peace? If we suppose it to have been
created in consequence of some domestic insurrection or foreign war,
then it becomes a case not within the principles of the objection;
for this is levelled against the power of keeping up troops in time
of peace. Few persons will be so visionary as seriously to contend
that military forces ought not to be raised to quell a rebellion or
resist an invasion; and if the defense of the community under such
circumstances should make it necessary to have an army so numerous
as to hazard its liberty, this is one of those calamities for which
there is neither preventative nor cure. It cannot be provided
against by any possible form of government; it might even result
from a simple league offensive and defensive, if it should ever be
necessary for the confederates or allies to form an army for common
defense.
But it is an evil infinitely less likely to attend us in a united
than in a disunited state; nay, it may be safely asserted that it is
an evil altogether unlikely to attend us in the latter situation. It
is not easy to conceive a possibility that dangers so formidable can
assail the whole Union, as to demand a force considerable enough to
place our liberties in the least jeopardy, especially if we take
into our view the aid to be derived from the militia, which ought
always to be counted upon as a valuable and powerful auxiliary. But
in a state of disunion (as has been fully shown in another place),
the contrary of this supposition would become not only probable, but
almost unavoidable.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 27.
The Same Subject Continued (The Idea of Restraining the
Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, December 25, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been urged, in different shapes, that a Constitution of the
kind proposed by the convention cannot operate without the aid of a
military force to execute its laws. This, however, like most other
things that have been alleged on that side, rests on mere general
assertion, unsupported by any precise or intelligible designation of
the reasons upon which it is founded. As far as I have been able to
divine the latent meaning of the objectors, it seems to originate in
a presupposition that the people will be disinclined to the exercise
of federal authority in any matter of an internal nature. Waiving
any exception that might be taken to the inaccuracy or
inexplicitness of the distinction between internal and external, let
us inquire what ground there is to presuppose that disinclination in
the people. Unless we presume at the same time that the powers of
the general government will be worse administered than those of the
State government, there seems to be no room for the presumption of
ill-will, disaffection, or opposition in the people. I believe it
may be laid down as a general rule that their confidence in and
obedience to a government will commonly be proportioned to the
goodness or badness of its administration. It must be admitted that
there are exceptions to this rule; but these exceptions depend so
entirely on accidental causes, that they cannot be considered as
having any relation to the intrinsic merits or demerits of a
constitution. These can only be judged of by general principles and
maxims.
Various reasons have been suggested, in the course of these papers,
to induce a probability that the general government will be better
administered than the particular governments; the principal of which
reasons are that the extension of the spheres of election will
present a greater option, or latitude of choice, to the people; that
through the medium of the State legislatures which are select bodies
of men, and which are to appoint the members of the national Senate
there is reason to expect that this branch will generally be
composed with peculiar care and judgment; that these circumstances
promise greater knowledge and more extensive information in the
national councils, and that they will be less apt to be tainted by
the spirit of faction, and more out of the reach of those occasional
ill-humors, or temporary prejudices and propensities, which, in
smaller societies, frequently contaminate the public councils, beget
injustice and oppression of a part of the community, and engender
schemes which, though they gratify a momentary inclination or
desire, terminate in general distress, dissatisfaction, and disgust.
Several additional reasons of considerable force, to fortify that
probability, will occur when we come to survey, with a more critical
eye, the interior structure of the edifice which we are invited to
erect. It will be sufficient here to remark, that until satisfactory
reasons can be assigned to justify an opinion, that the federal
government is likely to be administered in such a manner as to
render it odious or contemptible to the people, there can be no
reasonable foundation for the supposition that the laws of the Union
will meet with any greater obstruction from them, or will stand in
need of any other methods to enforce their execution, than the laws
of the particular members.
The hope of impunity is a strong incitement to sedition; the dread
of punishment, a proportionably strong discouragement to it. Will
not the government of the Union, which, if possessed of a due degree
of power, can call to its aid the collective resources of the whole
Confederacy, be more likely to repress the FORMER sentiment and to
inspire the LATTER, than that of a single State, which can only
command the resources within itself? A turbulent faction in a State
may easily suppose itself able to contend with the friends to the
government in that State; but it can hardly be so infatuated as to
imagine itself a match for the combined efforts of the Union. If
this reflection be just, there is less danger of resistance from
irregular combinations of individuals to the authority of the
Confederacy than to that of a single member.
I will, in this place, hazard an observation, which will not be the
less just because to some it may appear new; which is, that the more
the operations of the national authority are intermingled in the
ordinary exercise of government, the more the citizens are
accustomed to meet with it in the common occurrences of their
political life, the more it is familiarized to their sight and to
their feelings, the further it enters into those objects which touch
the most sensible chords and put in motion the most active springs
of the human heart, the greater will be the probability that it will
conciliate the respect and attachment of the community. Man is very
much a creature of habit. A thing that rarely strikes his senses
will generally have but little influence upon his mind. A government
continually at a distance and out of sight can hardly be expected to
interest the sensations of the people. The inference is, that the
authority of the Union, and the affections of the citizens towards
it, will be strengthened, rather than weakened, by its extension to
what are called matters of internal concern; and will have less
occasion to recur to force, in proportion to the familiarity and
comprehensiveness of its agency. The more it circulates through
those channels and currents in which the passions of mankind
naturally flow, the less will it require the aid of the violent and
perilous expedients of compulsion.
One thing, at all events, must be evident, that a government like
the one proposed would bid much fairer to avoid the necessity of
using force, than that species of league contend for by most of its
opponents; the authority of which should only operate upon the
States in their political or collective capacities. It has been
shown that in such a Confederacy there can be no sanction for the
laws but force; that frequent delinquencies in the members are the
natural offspring of the very frame of the government; and that as
often as these happen, they can only be redressed, if at all, by war
and violence.
The plan reported by the convention, by extending the authority of
the federal head to the individual citizens of the several States,
will enable the government to employ the ordinary magistracy of
each, in the execution of its laws. It is easy to perceive that this
will tend to destroy, in the common apprehension, all distinction
between the sources from which they might proceed; and will give the
federal government the same advantage for securing a due obedience
to its authority which is enjoyed by the government of each State,
in addition to the influence on public opinion which will result
from the important consideration of its having power to call to its
assistance and support the resources of the whole Union. It merits
particular attention in this place, that the laws of the
Confederacy, as to the ENUMERATED and LEGITIMATE objects of its
jurisdiction, will become the SUPREME LAW of the land; to the
observance of which all officers, legislative, executive, and
judicial, in each State, will be bound by the sanctity of an oath.
Thus the legislatures, courts, and magistrates, of the respective
members, will be incorporated into the operations of the national
government AS FAR AS ITS JUST AND CONSTITUTIONAL AUTHORITY EXTENDS;
and will be rendered auxiliary to the enforcement of its laws.(1)
Any man who will pursue, by his own reflections, the consequences of
this situation, will perceive that there is good ground to calculate
upon a regular and peaceable execution of the laws of the Union, if
its powers are administered with a common share of prudence. If we
will arbitrarily suppose the contrary, we may deduce any inferences
we please from the supposition; for it is certainly possible, by an
injudicious exercise of the authorities of the best government that
ever was, or ever can be instituted, to provoke and precipitate the
people into the wildest excesses. But though the adversaries of the
proposed Constitution should presume that the national rulers would
be insensible to the motives of public good, or to the obligations
of duty, I would still ask them how the interests of ambition, or
the views of encroachment, can be promoted by such a conduct?
PUBLIUS
1. The sophistry which has been employed to show that this will tend
to the destruction of the State governments, will, in its will, in
its proper place, be fully detected.
FEDERALIST No. 28.
The Same Subject Continued (The Idea of Restraining the
Legislative Authority in Regard to the Common Defense Considered)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, December 26, 1787
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THAT there may happen cases in which the national government may be
necessitated to resort to force, cannot be denied. Our own
experience has corroborated the lessons taught by the examples of
other nations; that emergencies of this sort will sometimes arise in
all societies, however constituted; that seditions and insurrections
are, unhappily, maladies as inseparable from the body politic as
tumors and eruptions from the natural body; that the idea of
governing at all times by the simple force of law (which we have
been told is the only admissible principle of republican
government), has no place but in the reveries of those political
doctors whose sagacity disdains the admonitions of experimental
instruction.
Should such emergencies at any time happen under the national
government, there could be no remedy but force. The means to be
employed must be proportioned to the extent of the mischief. If it
should be a slight commotion in a small part of a State, the militia
of the residue would be adequate to its suppression; and the
national presumption is that they would be ready to do their duty.
An insurrection, whatever may be its immediate cause, eventually
endangers all government. Regard to the public peace, if not to the
rights of the Union, would engage the citizens to whom the contagion
had not communicated itself to oppose the insurgents; and if the
general government should be found in practice conducive to the
prosperity and felicity of the people, it were irrational to believe
that they would be disinclined to its support.
If, on the contrary, the insurrection should pervade a whole State,
or a principal part of it, the employment of a different kind of
force might become unavoidable. It appears that Massachusetts found
it necessary to raise troops for repressing the disorders within
that State; that Pennsylvania, from the mere apprehension of
commotions among a part of her citizens, has thought proper to have
recourse to the same measure. Suppose the State of New York had been
inclined to re-establish her lost jurisdiction over the inhabitants
of Vermont, could she have hoped for success in such an enterprise
from the efforts of the militia alone? Would she not have been
compelled to raise and to maintain a more regular force for the
execution of her design? If it must then be admitted that the
necessity of recurring to a force different from the militia, in
cases of this extraordinary nature, is applicable to the State
governments themselves, why should the possibility, that the
national government might be under a like necessity, in similar
extremities, be made an objection to its existence? Is it not
surprising that men who declare an attachment to the Union in the
abstract, should urge as an objection to the proposed Constitution
what applies with tenfold weight to the plan for which they contend;
and what, as far as it has any foundation in truth, is an inevitable
consequence of civil society upon an enlarged scale? Who would not
prefer that possibility to the unceasing agitations and frequent
revolutions which are the continual scourges of petty republics?
Let us pursue this examination in another light. Suppose, in lieu of
one general system, two, or three, or even four Confederacies were
to be formed, would not the same difficulty oppose itself to the
operations of either of these Confederacies? Would not each of them
be exposed to the same casualties; and when these happened, be
obliged to have recourse to the same expedients for upholding its
authority which are objected to in a government for all the States?
Would the militia, in this supposition, be more ready or more able
to support the federal authority than in the case of a general
union? All candid and intelligent men must, upon due consideration,
acknowledge that the principle of the objection is equally
applicable to either of the two cases; and that whether we have one
government for all the States, or different governments for
different parcels of them, or even if there should be an entire
separation of the States, there might sometimes be a necessity to
make use of a force constituted differently from the militia, to
preserve the peace of the community and to maintain the just
authority of the laws against those violent invasions of them which
amount to insurrections and rebellions.
Independent of all other reasonings upon the subject, it is a full
answer to those who require a more peremptory provision against
military establishments in time of peace, to say that the whole
power of the proposed government is to be in the hands of the
representatives of the people. This is the essential, and, after
all, only efficacious security for the rights and privileges of the
people, which is attainable in civil society.(1)
If the representatives of the people betray their constituents,
there is then no resource left but in the exertion of that original
right of self-defense which is paramount to all positive forms of
government, and which against the usurpations of the national
rulers, may be exerted with infinitely better prospect of success
than against those of the rulers of an individual state. In a single
state, if the persons intrusted with supreme power become usurpers,
the different parcels, subdivisions, or districts of which it
consists, having no distinct government in each, can take no regular
measures for defense. The citizens must rush tumultuously to arms,
without concert, without system, without resource; except in their
courage and despair. The usurpers, clothed with the forms of legal
authority, can too often crush the opposition in embryo. The smaller
the extent of the territory, the more difficult will it be for the
people to form a regular or systematic plan of opposition, and the
more easy will it be to defeat their early efforts. Intelligence can
be more speedily obtained of their preparations and movements, and
the military force in the possession of the usurpers can be more
rapidly directed against the part where the opposition has begun. In
this situation there must be a peculiar coincidence of circumstances
to insure success to the popular resistance.
The obstacles to usurpation and the facilities of resistance
increase with the increased extent of the state, provided the
citizens understand their rights and are disposed to defend them.
The natural strength of the people in a large community, in
proportion to the artificial strength of the government, is greater
than in a small, and of course more competent to a struggle with the
attempts of the government to establish a tyranny. But in a
confederacy the people, without exaggeration, may be said to be
entirely the masters of their own fate. Power being almost always
the rival of power, the general government will at all times stand
ready to check the usurpations of the state governments, and these
will have the same disposition towards the general government. The
people, by throwing themselves into either scale, will infallibly
make it preponderate. If their rights are invaded by either, they
can make use of the other as the instrument of redress. How wise
will it be in them by cherishing the union to preserve to themselves
an advantage which can never be too highly prized!
It may safely be received as an axiom in our political system, that
the State governments will, in all possible contingencies, afford
complete security against invasions of the public liberty by the
national authority. Projects of usurpation cannot be masked under
pretenses so likely to escape the penetration of select bodies of
men, as of the people at large. The legislatures will have better
means of information. They can discover the danger at a distance;
and possessing all the organs of civil power, and the confidence of
the people, they can at once adopt a regular plan of opposition, in
which they can combine all the resources of the community. They can
readily communicate with each other in the different States, and
unite their common forces for the protection of their common
liberty.
The great extent of the country is a further security. We have
already experienced its utility against the attacks of a foreign
power. And it would have precisely the same effect against the
enterprises of ambitious rulers in the national councils. If the
federal army should be able to quell the resistance of one State,
the distant States would have it in their power to make head with
fresh forces. The advantages obtained in one place must be abandoned
to subdue the opposition in others; and the moment the part which
had been reduced to submission was left to itself, its efforts would
be renewed, and its resistance revive.
We should recollect that the extent of the military force must, at
all events, be regulated by the resources of the country. For a long
time to come, it will not be possible to maintain a large army; and
as the means of doing this increase, the population and natural
strength of the community will proportionably increase. When will
the time arrive that the federal government can raise and maintain
an army capable of erecting a despotism over the great body of the
people of an immense empire, who are in a situation, through the
medium of their State governments, to take measures for their own
defense, with all the celerity, regularity, and system of
independent nations? The apprehension may be considered as a
disease, for which there can be found no cure in the resources of
argument and reasoning.
PUBLIUS
1. Its full efficacy will be examined hereafter.
FEDERALIST No. 29.
Concerning the Militia
From the New York Packet. Wednesday, January 9, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE power of regulating the militia, and of commanding its services
in times of insurrection and invasion are natural incidents to the
duties of superintending the common defense, and of watching over
the internal peace of the Confederacy.
It requires no skill in the science of war to discern that
uniformity in the organization and discipline of the militia would
be attended with the most beneficial effects, whenever they were
called into service for the public defense. It would enable them to
discharge the duties of the camp and of the field with mutual
intelligence and concert an advantage of peculiar moment in the
operations of an army; and it would fit them much sooner to acquire
the degree of proficiency in military functions which would be
essential to their usefulness. This desirable uniformity can only be
accomplished by confiding the regulation of the militia to the
direction of the national authority. It is, therefore, with the most
evident propriety, that the plan of the convention proposes to
empower the Union "to provide for organizing, arming, and
disciplining the militia, and for governing such part of them as may
be employed in the service of the United States, RESERVING TO THE
STATES RESPECTIVELY THE APPOINTMENT OF THE OFFICERS, AND THE
AUTHORITY OF TRAINING THE MILITIA ACCORDING TO THE DISCIPLINE
PRESCRIBED BY CONGRESS."
Of the different grounds which have been taken in opposition to the
plan of the convention, there is none that was so little to have
been expected, or is so untenable in itself, as the one from which
this particular provision has been attacked. If a well-regulated
militia be the most natural defense of a free country, it ought
certainly to be under the regulation and at the disposal of that
body which is constituted the guardian of the national security. If
standing armies are dangerous to liberty, an efficacious power over
the militia, in the body to whose care the protection of the State
is committed, ought, as far as possible, to take away the inducement
and the pretext to such unfriendly institutions. If the federal
government can command the aid of the militia in those emergencies
which call for the military arm in support of the civil magistrate,
it can the better dispense with the employment of a different kind
of force. If it cannot avail itself of the former, it will be
obliged to recur to the latter. To render an army unnecessary, will
be a more certain method of preventing its existence than a thousand
prohibitions upon paper.
In order to cast an odium upon the power of calling forth the
militia to execute the laws of the Union, it has been remarked that
there is nowhere any provision in the proposed Constitution for
calling out the POSSE COMITATUS, to assist the magistrate in the
execution of his duty, whence it has been inferred, that military
force was intended to be his only auxiliary. There is a striking
incoherence in the objections which have appeared, and sometimes
even from the same quarter, not much calculated to inspire a very
favorable opinion of the sincerity or fair dealing of their authors.
The same persons who tell us in one breath, that the powers of the
federal government will be despotic and unlimited, inform us in the
next, that it has not authority sufficient even to call out the
POSSE COMITATUS. The latter, fortunately, is as much short of the
truth as the former exceeds it. It would be as absurd to doubt, that
a right to pass all laws NECESSARY AND PROPER to execute its
declared powers, would include that of requiring the assistance of
the citizens to the officers who may be intrusted with the execution
of those laws, as it would be to believe, that a right to enact laws
necessary and proper for the imposition and collection of taxes
would involve that of varying the rules of descent and of the
alienation of landed property, or of abolishing the trial by jury in
cases relating to it. It being therefore evident that the
supposition of a want of power to require the aid of the POSSE
COMITATUS is entirely destitute of color, it will follow, that the
conclusion which has been drawn from it, in its application to the
authority of the federal government over the militia, is as uncandid
as it is illogical. What reason could there be to infer, that force
was intended to be the sole instrument of authority, merely because
there is a power to make use of it when necessary? What shall we
think of the motives which could induce men of sense to reason in
this manner? How shall we prevent a conflict between charity and
conviction?
By a curious refinement upon the spirit of republican jealousy, we
are even taught to apprehend danger from the militia itself, in the
hands of the federal government. It is observed that select corps
may be formed, composed of the young and ardent, who may be rendered
subservient to the views of arbitrary power. What plan for the
regulation of the militia may be pursued by the national government,
is impossible to be foreseen. But so far from viewing the matter in
the same light with those who object to select corps as dangerous,
were the Constitution ratified, and were I to deliver my sentiments
to a member of the federal legislature from this State on the
subject of a militia establishment, I should hold to him, in
substance, the following discourse:
"The project of disciplining all the militia of the United States is
as futile as it would be injurious, if it were capable of being
carried into execution. A tolerable expertness in military movements
is a business that requires time and practice. It is not a day, or
even a week, that will suffice for the attainment of it. To oblige
the great body of the yeomanry, and of the other classes of the
citizens, to be under arms for the purpose of going through military
exercises and evolutions, as often as might be necessary to acquire
the degree of perfection which would entitle them to the character
of a well-regulated militia, would be a real grievance to the
people, and a serious public inconvenience and loss. It would form
an annual deduction from the productive labor of the country, to an
amount which, calculating upon the present numbers of the people,
would not fall far short of the whole expense of the civil
establishments of all the States. To attempt a thing which would
abridge the mass of labor and industry to so considerable an extent,
would be unwise: and the experiment, if made, could not succeed,
because it would not long be endured. Little more can reasonably be
aimed at, with respect to the people at large, than to have them
properly armed and equipped; and in order to see that this be not
neglected, it will be necessary to assemble them once or twice in
the course of a year.
"But though the scheme of disciplining the whole nation must be
abandoned as mischievous or impracticable; yet it is a matter of the
utmost importance that a well-digested plan should, as soon as
possible, be adopted for the proper establishment of the militia.
The attention of the government ought particularly to be directed to
the formation of a select corps of moderate extent, upon such
principles as will really fit them for service in case of need. By
thus circumscribing the plan, it will be possible to have an
excellent body of well-trained militia, ready to take the field
whenever the defense of the State shall require it. This will not
only lessen the call for military establishments, but if
circumstances should at any time oblige the government to form an
army of any magnitude that army can never be formidable to the
liberties of the people while there is a large body of citizens,
little, if at all, inferior to them in discipline and the use of
arms, who stand ready to defend their own rights and those of their
fellow-citizens. This appears to me the only substitute that can be
devised for a standing army, and the best possible security against
it, if it should exist."
Thus differently from the adversaries of the proposed Constitution
should I reason on the same subject, deducing arguments of safety
from the very sources which they represent as fraught with danger
and perdition. But how the national legislature may reason on the
point, is a thing which neither they nor I can foresee.
There is something so far-fetched and so extravagant in the idea of
danger to liberty from the militia, that one is at a loss whether to
treat it with gravity or with raillery; whether to consider it as a
mere trial of skill, like the paradoxes of rhetoricians; as a
disingenuous artifice to instil prejudices at any price; or as the
serious offspring of political fanaticism. Where in the name of
common-sense, are our fears to end if we may not trust our sons, our
brothers, our neighbors, our fellow-citizens? What shadow of danger
can there be from men who are daily mingling with the rest of their
countrymen and who participate with them in the same feelings,
sentiments, habits and interests? What reasonable cause of
apprehension can be inferred from a power in the Union to prescribe
regulations for the militia, and to command its services when
necessary, while the particular States are to have the SOLE AND
EXCLUSIVE APPOINTMENT OF THE OFFICERS? If it were possible seriously
to indulge a jealousy of the militia upon any conceivable
establishment under the federal government, the circumstance of the
officers being in the appointment of the States ought at once to
extinguish it. There can be no doubt that this circumstance will
always secure to them a preponderating influence over the militia.
In reading many of the publications against the Constitution, a man
is apt to imagine that he is perusing some ill-written tale or
romance, which instead of natural and agreeable images, exhibits to
the mind nothing but frightful and distorted shapes—
"Gorgons, hydras, and chimeras dire";
discoloring and disfiguring whatever it represents, and transforming
everything it touches into a monster.
A sample of this is to be observed in the exaggerated and improbable
suggestions which have taken place respecting the power of calling
for the services of the militia. That of New Hampshire is to be
marched to Georgia, of Georgia to New Hampshire, of New York to
Kentucky, and of Kentucky to Lake Champlain. Nay, the debts due to
the French and Dutch are to be paid in militiamen instead of louis
d'ors and ducats. At one moment there is to be a large army to lay
prostrate the liberties of the people; at another moment the militia
of Virginia are to be dragged from their homes five or six hundred
miles, to tame the republican contumacy of Massachusetts; and that
of Massachusetts is to be transported an equal distance to subdue
the refractory haughtiness of the aristocratic Virginians. Do the
persons who rave at this rate imagine that their art or their
eloquence can impose any conceits or absurdities upon the people of
America for infallible truths?
If there should be an army to be made use of as the engine of
despotism, what need of the militia? If there should be no army,
whither would the militia, irritated by being called upon to
undertake a distant and hopeless expedition, for the purpose of
riveting the chains of slavery upon a part of their countrymen,
direct their course, but to the seat of the tyrants, who had
meditated so foolish as well as so wicked a project, to crush them
in their imagined intrenchments of power, and to make them an
example of the just vengeance of an abused and incensed people? Is
this the way in which usurpers stride to dominion over a numerous
and enlightened nation? Do they begin by exciting the detestation of
the very instruments of their intended usurpations? Do they usually
commence their career by wanton and disgustful acts of power,
calculated to answer no end, but to draw upon themselves universal
hatred and execration? Are suppositions of this sort the sober
admonitions of discerning patriots to a discerning people? Or are
they the inflammatory ravings of incendiaries or distempered
enthusiasts? If we were even to suppose the national rulers actuated
by the most ungovernable ambition, it is impossible to believe that
they would employ such preposterous means to accomplish their
designs.
In times of insurrection, or invasion, it would be natural and
proper that the militia of a neighboring State should be marched
into another, to resist a common enemy, or to guard the republic
against the violence of faction or sedition. This was frequently the
case, in respect to the first object, in the course of the late war;
and this mutual succor is, indeed, a principal end of our political
association. If the power of affording it be placed under the
direction of the Union, there will be no danger of a supine and
listless inattention to the dangers of a neighbor, till its near
approach had superadded the incitements of self-preservation to the
too feeble impulses of duty and sympathy.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 30.
Concerning the General Power of Taxation
From the New York Packet. Friday, December 28, 1787.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been already observed that the federal government ought to
possess the power of providing for the support of the national
forces; in which proposition was intended to be included the expense
of raising troops, of building and equipping fleets, and all other
expenses in any wise connected with military arrangements and
operations. But these are not the only objects to which the
jurisdiction of the Union, in respect to revenue, must necessarily
be empowered to extend. It must embrace a provision for the support
of the national civil list; for the payment of the national debts
contracted, or that may be contracted; and, in general, for all
those matters which will call for disbursements out of the national
treasury. The conclusion is, that there must be interwoven, in the
frame of the government, a general power of taxation, in one shape
or another.
Money is, with propriety, considered as the vital principle of the
body politic; as that which sustains its life and motion, and
enables it to perform its most essential functions. A complete
power, therefore, to procure a regular and adequate supply of it, as
far as the resources of the community will permit, may be regarded
as an indispensable ingredient in every constitution. From a
deficiency in this particular, one of two evils must ensue; either
the people must be subjected to continual plunder, as a substitute
for a more eligible mode of supplying the public wants, or the
government must sink into a fatal atrophy, and, in a short course of
time, perish.
In the Ottoman or Turkish empire, the sovereign, though in other
respects absolute master of the lives and fortunes of his subjects,
has no right to impose a new tax. The consequence is that he permits
the bashaws or governors of provinces to pillage the people without
mercy; and, in turn, squeezes out of them the sums of which he
stands in need, to satisfy his own exigencies and those of the
state. In America, from a like cause, the government of the Union
has gradually dwindled into a state of decay, approaching nearly to
annihilation. Who can doubt, that the happiness of the people in
both countries would be promoted by competent authorities in the
proper hands, to provide the revenues which the necessities of the
public might require?
The present Confederation, feeble as it is intended to repose in the
United States, an unlimited power of providing for the pecuniary
wants of the Union. But proceeding upon an erroneous principle, it
has been done in such a manner as entirely to have frustrated the
intention. Congress, by the articles which compose that compact (as
has already been stated), are authorized to ascertain and call for
any sums of money necessary, in their judgment, to the service of
the United States; and their requisitions, if conformable to the
rule of apportionment, are in every constitutional sense obligatory
upon the States. These have no right to question the propriety of
the demand; no discretion beyond that of devising the ways and means
of furnishing the sums demanded. But though this be strictly and
truly the case; though the assumption of such a right would be an
infringement of the articles of Union; though it may seldom or never
have been avowedly claimed, yet in practice it has been constantly
exercised, and would continue to be so, as long as the revenues of
the Confederacy should remain dependent on the intermediate agency
of its members. What the consequences of this system have been, is
within the knowledge of every man the least conversant in our public
affairs, and has been amply unfolded in different parts of these
inquiries. It is this which has chiefly contributed to reduce us to
a situation, which affords ample cause both of mortification to
ourselves, and of triumph to our enemies.
What remedy can there be for this situation, but in a change of the
system which has produced it in a change of the fallacious and
delusive system of quotas and requisitions? What substitute can
there be imagined for this ignis fatuus in finance, but that of
permitting the national government to raise its own revenues by the
ordinary methods of taxation authorized in every well-ordered
constitution of civil government? Ingenious men may declaim with
plausibility on any subject; but no human ingenuity can point out
any other expedient to rescue us from the inconveniences and
embarrassments naturally resulting from defective supplies of the
public treasury.
The more intelligent adversaries of the new Constitution admit the
force of this reasoning; but they qualify their admission by a
distinction between what they call INTERNAL and EXTERNAL taxation.
The former they would reserve to the State governments; the latter,
which they explain into commercial imposts, or rather duties on
imported articles, they declare themselves willing to concede to the
federal head. This distinction, however, would violate the maxim of
good sense and sound policy, which dictates that every POWER ought
to be in proportion to its OBJECT; and would still leave the general
government in a kind of tutelage to the State governments,
inconsistent with every idea of vigor or efficiency. Who can pretend
that commercial imposts are, or would be, alone equal to the present
and future exigencies of the Union? Taking into the account the
existing debt, foreign and domestic, upon any plan of extinguishment
which a man moderately impressed with the importance of public
justice and public credit could approve, in addition to the
establishments which all parties will acknowledge to be necessary,
we could not reasonably flatter ourselves, that this resource alone,
upon the most improved scale, would even suffice for its present
necessities. Its future necessities admit not of calculation or
limitation; and upon the principle, more than once adverted to, the
power of making provision for them as they arise ought to be equally
unconfined. I believe it may be regarded as a position warranted by
the history of mankind, that, IN THE USUAL PROGRESS OF THINGS, THE
NECESSITIES OF A NATION, IN EVERY STAGE OF ITS EXISTENCE, WILL BE
FOUND AT LEAST EQUAL TO ITS RESOURCES.
To say that deficiencies may be provided for by requisitions upon
the States, is on the one hand to acknowledge that this system
cannot be depended upon, and on the other hand to depend upon it for
every thing beyond a certain limit. Those who have carefully
attended to its vices and deformities as they have been exhibited by
experience or delineated in the course of these papers, must feel
invincible repugnancy to trusting the national interests in any
degree to its operation. Its inevitable tendency, whenever it is
brought into activity, must be to enfeeble the Union, and sow the
seeds of discord and contention between the federal head and its
members, and between the members themselves. Can it be expected that
the deficiencies would be better supplied in this mode than the
total wants of the Union have heretofore been supplied in the same
mode? It ought to be recollected that if less will be required from
the States, they will have proportionably less means to answer the
demand. If the opinions of those who contend for the distinction
which has been mentioned were to be received as evidence of truth,
one would be led to conclude that there was some known point in the
economy of national affairs at which it would be safe to stop and to
say: Thus far the ends of public happiness will be promoted by
supplying the wants of government, and all beyond this is unworthy
of our care or anxiety. How is it possible that a government half
supplied and always necessitous, can fulfill the purposes of its
institution, can provide for the security, advance the prosperity,
or support the reputation of the commonwealth? How can it ever
possess either energy or stability, dignity or credit, confidence at
home or respectability abroad? How can its administration be any
thing else than a succession of expedients temporizing, impotent,
disgraceful? How will it be able to avoid a frequent sacrifice of
its engagements to immediate necessity? How can it undertake or
execute any liberal or enlarged plans of public good?
Let us attend to what would be the effects of this situation in the
very first war in which we should happen to be engaged. We will
presume, for argument's sake, that the revenue arising from the
impost duties answers the purposes of a provision for the public
debt and of a peace establishment for the Union. Thus circumstanced,
a war breaks out. What would be the probable conduct of the
government in such an emergency? Taught by experience that proper
dependence could not be placed on the success of requisitions,
unable by its own authority to lay hold of fresh resources, and
urged by considerations of national danger, would it not be driven
to the expedient of diverting the funds already appropriated from
their proper objects to the defense of the State? It is not easy to
see how a step of this kind could be avoided; and if it should be
taken, it is evident that it would prove the destruction of public
credit at the very moment that it was becoming essential to the
public safety. To imagine that at such a crisis credit might be
dispensed with, would be the extreme of infatuation. In the modern
system of war, nations the most wealthy are obliged to have recourse
to large loans. A country so little opulent as ours must feel this
necessity in a much stronger degree. But who would lend to a
government that prefaced its overtures for borrowing by an act which
demonstrated that no reliance could be placed on the steadiness of
its measures for paying? The loans it might be able to procure would
be as limited in their extent as burdensome in their conditions.
They would be made upon the same principles that usurers commonly
lend to bankrupt and fraudulent debtors, with a sparing hand and at
enormous premiums.
It may perhaps be imagined that, from the scantiness of the
resources of the country, the necessity of diverting the established
funds in the case supposed would exist, though the national
government should possess an unrestrained power of taxation. But two
considerations will serve to quiet all apprehension on this head:
one is, that we are sure the resources of the community, in their
full extent, will be brought into activity for the benefit of the
Union; the other is, that whatever deficiences there may be, can
without difficulty be supplied by loans.
The power of creating new funds upon new objects of taxation, by its
own authority, would enable the national government to borrow as far
as its necessities might require. Foreigners, as well as the
citizens of America, could then reasonably repose confidence in its
engagements; but to depend upon a government that must itself depend
upon thirteen other governments for the means of fulfilling its
contracts, when once its situation is clearly understood, would
require a degree of credulity not often to be met with in the
pecuniary transactions of mankind, and little reconcilable with the
usual sharp-sightedness of avarice.
Reflections of this kind may have trifling weight with men who hope
to see realized in America the halcyon scenes of the poetic or
fabulous age; but to those who believe we are likely to experience a
common portion of the vicissitudes and calamities which have fallen
to the lot of other nations, they must appear entitled to serious
attention. Such men must behold the actual situation of their
country with painful solicitude, and deprecate the evils which
ambition or revenge might, with too much facility, inflict upon it.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 31.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 1, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN DISQUISITIONS of every kind, there are certain primary truths, or
first principles, upon which all subsequent reasonings must depend.
These contain an internal evidence which, antecedent to all
reflection or combination, commands the assent of the mind. Where it
produces not this effect, it must proceed either from some defect or
disorder in the organs of perception, or from the influence of some
strong interest, or passion, or prejudice. Of this nature are the
maxims in geometry, that "the whole is greater than its part; things
equal to the same are equal to one another; two straight lines
cannot enclose a space; and all right angles are equal to each
other." Of the same nature are these other maxims in ethics and
politics, that there cannot be an effect without a cause; that the
means ought to be proportioned to the end; that every power ought to
be commensurate with its object; that there ought to be no
limitation of a power destined to effect a purpose which is itself
incapable of limitation. And there are other truths in the two
latter sciences which, if they cannot pretend to rank in the class
of axioms, are yet such direct inferences from them, and so obvious
in themselves, and so agreeable to the natural and unsophisticated
dictates of common-sense, that they challenge the assent of a sound
and unbiased mind, with a degree of force and conviction almost
equally irresistible.
The objects of geometrical inquiry are so entirely abstracted from
those pursuits which stir up and put in motion the unruly passions
of the human heart, that mankind, without difficulty, adopt not only
the more simple theorems of the science, but even those abstruse
paradoxes which, however they may appear susceptible of
demonstration, are at variance with the natural conceptions which
the mind, without the aid of philosophy, would be led to entertain
upon the subject. The INFINITE DIVISIBILITY of matter, or, in other
words, the INFINITE divisibility of a FINITE thing, extending even
to the minutest atom, is a point agreed among geometricians, though
not less incomprehensible to common-sense than any of those
mysteries in religion, against which the batteries of infidelity
have been so industriously leveled.
But in the sciences of morals and politics, men are found far less
tractable. To a certain degree, it is right and useful that this
should be the case. Caution and investigation are a necessary armor
against error and imposition. But this untractableness may be
carried too far, and may degenerate into obstinacy, perverseness, or
disingenuity. Though it cannot be pretended that the principles of
moral and political knowledge have, in general, the same degree of
certainty with those of the mathematics, yet they have much better
claims in this respect than, to judge from the conduct of men in
particular situations, we should be disposed to allow them. The
obscurity is much oftener in the passions and prejudices of the
reasoner than in the subject. Men, upon too many occasions, do not
give their own understandings fair play; but, yielding to some
untoward bias, they entangle themselves in words and confound
themselves in subtleties.
How else could it happen (if we admit the objectors to be sincere in
their opposition), that positions so clear as those which manifest
the necessity of a general power of taxation in the government of
the Union, should have to encounter any adversaries among men of
discernment? Though these positions have been elsewhere fully
stated, they will perhaps not be improperly recapitulated in this
place, as introductory to an examination of what may have been
offered by way of objection to them. They are in substance as
follows:
A government ought to contain in itself every power requisite to the
full accomplishment of the objects committed to its care, and to the
complete execution of the trusts for which it is responsible, free
from every other control but a regard to the public good and to the
sense of the people.
As the duties of superintending the national defense and of securing
the public peace against foreign or domestic violence involve a
provision for casualties and dangers to which no possible limits can
be assigned, the power of making that provision ought to know no
other bounds than the exigencies of the nation and the resources of
the community.
As revenue is the essential engine by which the means of answering
the national exigencies must be procured, the power of procuring
that article in its full extent must necessarily be comprehended in
that of providing for those exigencies.
As theory and practice conspire to prove that the power of procuring
revenue is unavailing when exercised over the States in their
collective capacities, the federal government must of necessity be
invested with an unqualified power of taxation in the ordinary
modes.
Did not experience evince the contrary, it would be natural to
conclude that the propriety of a general power of taxation in the
national government might safely be permitted to rest on the
evidence of these propositions, unassisted by any additional
arguments or illustrations. But we find, in fact, that the
antagonists of the proposed Constitution, so far from acquiescing in
their justness or truth, seem to make their principal and most
zealous effort against this part of the plan. It may therefore be
satisfactory to analyze the arguments with which they combat it.
Those of them which have been most labored with that view, seem in
substance to amount to this: "It is not true, because the exigencies
of the Union may not be susceptible of limitation, that its power of
laying taxes ought to be unconfined. Revenue is as requisite to the
purposes of the local administrations as to those of the Union; and
the former are at least of equal importance with the latter to the
happiness of the people. It is, therefore, as necessary that the
State governments should be able to command the means of supplying
their wants, as that the national government should possess the like
faculty in respect to the wants of the Union. But an indefinite
power of taxation in the LATTER might, and probably would in time,
deprive the FORMER of the means of providing for their own
necessities; and would subject them entirely to the mercy of the
national legislature. As the laws of the Union are to become the
supreme law of the land, as it is to have power to pass all laws
that may be NECESSARY for carrying into execution the authorities
with which it is proposed to vest it, the national government might
at any time abolish the taxes imposed for State objects upon the
pretense of an interference with its own. It might allege a
necessity of doing this in order to give efficacy to the national
revenues. And thus all the resources of taxation might by degrees
become the subjects of federal monopoly, to the entire exclusion and
destruction of the State governments."
This mode of reasoning appears sometimes to turn upon the
supposition of usurpation in the national government; at other times
it seems to be designed only as a deduction from the constitutional
operation of its intended powers. It is only in the latter light
that it can be admitted to have any pretensions to fairness. The
moment we launch into conjectures about the usurpations of the
federal government, we get into an unfathomable abyss, and fairly
put ourselves out of the reach of all reasoning. Imagination may
range at pleasure till it gets bewildered amidst the labyrinths of
an enchanted castle, and knows not on which side to turn to
extricate itself from the perplexities into which it has so rashly
adventured. Whatever may be the limits or modifications of the
powers of the Union, it is easy to imagine an endless train of
possible dangers; and by indulging an excess of jealousy and
timidity, we may bring ourselves to a state of absolute scepticism
and irresolution. I repeat here what I have observed in substance in
another place, that all observations founded upon the danger of
usurpation ought to be referred to the composition and structure of
the government, not to the nature or extent of its powers. The State
governments, by their original constitutions, are invested with
complete sovereignty. In what does our security consist against
usurpation from that quarter? Doubtless in the manner of their
formation, and in a due dependence of those who are to administer
them upon the people. If the proposed construction of the federal
government be found, upon an impartial examination of it, to be such
as to afford, to a proper extent, the same species of security, all
apprehensions on the score of usurpation ought to be discarded.
It should not be forgotten that a disposition in the State
governments to encroach upon the rights of the Union is quite as
probable as a disposition in the Union to encroach upon the rights
of the State governments. What side would be likely to prevail in
such a conflict, must depend on the means which the contending
parties could employ toward insuring success. As in republics
strength is always on the side of the people, and as there are
weighty reasons to induce a belief that the State governments will
commonly possess most influence over them, the natural conclusion is
that such contests will be most apt to end to the disadvantage of
the Union; and that there is greater probability of encroachments by
the members upon the federal head, than by the federal head upon the
members. But it is evident that all conjectures of this kind must be
extremely vague and fallible: and that it is by far the safest
course to lay them altogether aside, and to confine our attention
wholly to the nature and extent of the powers as they are delineated
in the Constitution. Every thing beyond this must be left to the
prudence and firmness of the people; who, as they will hold the
scales in their own hands, it is to be hoped, will always take care
to preserve the constitutional equilibrium between the general and
the State governments. Upon this ground, which is evidently the true
one, it will not be difficult to obviate the objections which have
been made to an indefinite power of taxation in the United States.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 32.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ALTHOUGH I am of opinion that there would be no real danger of the
consequences which seem to be apprehended to the State governments
from a power in the Union to control them in the levies of money,
because I am persuaded that the sense of the people, the extreme
hazard of provoking the resentments of the State governments, and a
conviction of the utility and necessity of local administrations for
local purposes, would be a complete barrier against the oppressive
use of such a power; yet I am willing here to allow, in its full
extent, the justness of the reasoning which requires that the
individual States should possess an independent and uncontrollable
authority to raise their own revenues for the supply of their own
wants. And making this concession, I affirm that (with the sole
exception of duties on imports and exports) they would, under the
plan of the convention, retain that authority in the most absolute
and unqualified sense; and that an attempt on the part of the
national government to abridge them in the exercise of it, would be
a violent assumption of power, unwarranted by any article or clause
of its Constitution.
An entire consolidation of the States into one complete national
sovereignty would imply an entire subordination of the parts; and
whatever powers might remain in them, would be altogether dependent
on the general will. But as the plan of the convention aims only at
a partial union or consolidation, the State governments would
clearly retain all the rights of sovereignty which they before had,
and which were not, by that act, EXCLUSIVELY delegated to the United
States. This exclusive delegation, or rather this alienation, of
State sovereignty, would only exist in three cases: where the
Constitution in express terms granted an exclusive authority to the
Union; where it granted in one instance an authority to the Union,
and in another prohibited the States from exercising the like
authority; and where it granted an authority to the Union, to which
a similar authority in the States would be absolutely and totally
CONTRADICTORY and REPUGNANT. I use these terms to distinguish this
last case from another which might appear to resemble it, but which
would, in fact, be essentially different; I mean where the exercise
of a concurrent jurisdiction might be productive of occasional
interferences in the POLICY of any branch of administration, but
would not imply any direct contradiction or repugnancy in point of
constitutional authority. These three cases of exclusive
jurisdiction in the federal government may be exemplified by the
following instances: The last clause but one in the eighth section
of the first article provides expressly that Congress shall exercise
"EXCLUSIVE LEGISLATION" over the district to be appropriated as the
seat of government. This answers to the first case. The first clause
of the same section empowers Congress "to lay and collect taxes,
duties, imposts and excises"; and the second clause of the tenth
section of the same article declares that, "NO STATE SHALL, without
the consent of Congress, lay any imposts or duties on imports or
exports, except for the purpose of executing its inspection laws."
Hence would result an exclusive power in the Union to lay duties on
imports and exports, with the particular exception mentioned; but
this power is abridged by another clause, which declares that no tax
or duty shall be laid on articles exported from any State; in
consequence of which qualification, it now only extends to the
DUTIES ON IMPORTS. This answers to the second case. The third will
be found in that clause which declares that Congress shall have
power "to establish an UNIFORM RULE of naturalization throughout the
United States." This must necessarily be exclusive; because if each
State had power to prescribe a DISTINCT RULE, there could not be a
UNIFORM RULE.
A case which may perhaps be thought to resemble the latter, but
which is in fact widely different, affects the question immediately
under consideration. I mean the power of imposing taxes on all
articles other than exports and imports. This, I contend, is
manifestly a concurrent and coequal authority in the United States
and in the individual States. There is plainly no expression in the
granting clause which makes that power EXCLUSIVE in the Union. There
is no independent clause or sentence which prohibits the States from
exercising it. So far is this from being the case, that a plain and
conclusive argument to the contrary is to be deduced from the
restraint laid upon the States in relation to duties on imports and
exports. This restriction implies an admission that, if it were not
inserted, the States would possess the power it excludes; and it
implies a further admission, that as to all other taxes, the
authority of the States remains undiminished. In any other view it
would be both unnecessary and dangerous; it would be unnecessary,
because if the grant to the Union of the power of laying such duties
implied the exclusion of the States, or even their subordination in
this particular, there could be no need of such a restriction; it
would be dangerous, because the introduction of it leads directly to
the conclusion which has been mentioned, and which, if the reasoning
of the objectors be just, could not have been intended; I mean that
the States, in all cases to which the restriction did not apply,
would have a concurrent power of taxation with the Union. The
restriction in question amounts to what lawyers call a NEGATIVE
PREGNANT that is, a NEGATION of one thing, and an AFFIRMANCE of
another; a negation of the authority of the States to impose taxes
on imports and exports, and an affirmance of their authority to
impose them on all other articles. It would be mere sophistry to
argue that it was meant to exclude them ABSOLUTELY from the
imposition of taxes of the former kind, and to leave them at liberty
to lay others SUBJECT TO THE CONTROL of the national legislature.
The restraining or prohibitory clause only says, that they shall
not, WITHOUT THE CONSENT OF CONGRESS, lay such duties; and if we are
to understand this in the sense last mentioned, the Constitution
would then be made to introduce a formal provision for the sake of a
very absurd conclusion; which is, that the States, WITH THE CONSENT
of the national legislature, might tax imports and exports; and that
they might tax every other article, UNLESS CONTROLLED by the same
body. If this was the intention, why not leave it, in the first
instance, to what is alleged to be the natural operation of the
original clause, conferring a general power of taxation upon the
Union? It is evident that this could not have been the intention,
and that it will not bear a construction of the kind.
As to a supposition of repugnancy between the power of taxation in
the States and in the Union, it cannot be supported in that sense
which would be requisite to work an exclusion of the States. It is,
indeed, possible that a tax might be laid on a particular article by
a State which might render it INEXPEDIENT that thus a further tax
should be laid on the same article by the Union; but it would not
imply a constitutional inability to impose a further tax. The
quantity of the imposition, the expediency or inexpediency of an
increase on either side, would be mutually questions of prudence;
but there would be involved no direct contradiction of power. The
particular policy of the national and of the State systems of
finance might now and then not exactly coincide, and might require
reciprocal forbearances. It is not, however a mere possibility of
inconvenience in the exercise of powers, but an immediate
constitutional repugnancy that can by implication alienate and
extinguish a pre-existing right of sovereignty.
The necessity of a concurrent jurisdiction in certain cases results
from the division of the sovereign power; and the rule that all
authorities, of which the States are not explicitly divested in
favor of the Union, remain with them in full vigor, is not a
theoretical consequence of that division, but is clearly admitted by
the whole tenor of the instrument which contains the articles of the
proposed Constitution. We there find that, notwithstanding the
affirmative grants of general authorities, there has been the most
pointed care in those cases where it was deemed improper that the
like authorities should reside in the States, to insert negative
clauses prohibiting the exercise of them by the States. The tenth
section of the first article consists altogether of such provisions.
This circumstance is a clear indication of the sense of the
convention, and furnishes a rule of interpretation out of the body
of the act, which justifies the position I have advanced and refutes
every hypothesis to the contrary.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 33.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE residue of the argument against the provisions of the
Constitution in respect to taxation is ingrafted upon the following
clause. The last clause of the eighth section of the first article
of the plan under consideration authorizes the national legislature
"to make all laws which shall be NECESSARY and PROPER for carrying
into execution THE POWERS by that Constitution vested in the
government of the United States, or in any department or officer
thereof"; and the second clause of the sixth article declares, "that
the Constitution and the laws of the United States made IN PURSUANCE
THEREOF, and the treaties made by their authority shall be the
SUPREME LAW of the land, any thing in the constitution or laws of
any State to the contrary notwithstanding."
These two clauses have been the source of much virulent invective
and petulant declamation against the proposed Constitution. They
have been held up to the people in all the exaggerated colors of
misrepresentation as the pernicious engines by which their local
governments were to be destroyed and their liberties exterminated;
as the hideous monster whose devouring jaws would spare neither sex
nor age, nor high nor low, nor sacred nor profane; and yet, strange
as it may appear, after all this clamor, to those who may not have
happened to contemplate them in the same light, it may be affirmed
with perfect confidence that the constitutional operation of the
intended government would be precisely the same, if these clauses
were entirely obliterated, as if they were repeated in every
article. They are only declaratory of a truth which would have
resulted by necessary and unavoidable implication from the very act
of constituting a federal government, and vesting it with certain
specified powers. This is so clear a proposition, that moderation
itself can scarcely listen to the railings which have been so
copiously vented against this part of the plan, without emotions
that disturb its equanimity.
What is a power, but the ability or faculty of doing a thing? What
is the ability to do a thing, but the power of employing the MEANS
necessary to its execution? What is a LEGISLATIVE power, but a power
of making LAWS? What are the MEANS to execute a LEGISLATIVE power
but LAWS? What is the power of laying and collecting taxes, but a
LEGISLATIVE POWER, or a power of MAKING LAWS, to lay and collect
taxes? What are the proper means of executing such a power, but
NECESSARY and PROPER laws?
This simple train of inquiry furnishes us at once with a test by
which to judge of the true nature of the clause complained of. It
conducts us to this palpable truth, that a power to lay and collect
taxes must be a power to pass all laws NECESSARY and PROPER for the
execution of that power; and what does the unfortunate and
calumniated provision in question do more than declare the same
truth, to wit, that the national legislature, to whom the power of
laying and collecting taxes had been previously given, might, in the
execution of that power, pass all laws NECESSARY and PROPER to carry
it into effect? I have applied these observations thus particularly
to the power of taxation, because it is the immediate subject under
consideration, and because it is the most important of the
authorities proposed to be conferred upon the Union. But the same
process will lead to the same result, in relation to all other
powers declared in the Constitution. And it is EXPRESSLY to execute
these powers that the sweeping clause, as it has been affectedly
called, authorizes the national legislature to pass all NECESSARY
and PROPER laws. If there is any thing exceptionable, it must be
sought for in the specific powers upon which this general
declaration is predicated. The declaration itself, though it may be
chargeable with tautology or redundancy, is at least perfectly
harmless.
But SUSPICION may ask, Why then was it introduced? The answer is,
that it could only have been done for greater caution, and to guard
against all cavilling refinements in those who might hereafter feel
a disposition to curtail and evade the legitimate authorities of the
Union. The Convention probably foresaw, what it has been a principal
aim of these papers to inculcate, that the danger which most
threatens our political welfare is that the State governments will
finally sap the foundations of the Union; and might therefore think
it necessary, in so cardinal a point, to leave nothing to
construction. Whatever may have been the inducement to it, the
wisdom of the precaution is evident from the cry which has been
raised against it; as that very cry betrays a disposition to
question the great and essential truth which it is manifestly the
object of that provision to declare.
But it may be again asked, Who is to judge of the NECESSITY and
PROPRIETY of the laws to be passed for executing the powers of the
Union? I answer, first, that this question arises as well and as
fully upon the simple grant of those powers as upon the declaratory
clause; and I answer, in the second place, that the national
government, like every other, must judge, in the first instance, of
the proper exercise of its powers, and its constituents in the last.
If the federal government should overpass the just bounds of its
authority and make a tyrannical use of its powers, the people, whose
creature it is, must appeal to the standard they have formed, and
take such measures to redress the injury done to the Constitution as
the exigency may suggest and prudence justify. The propriety of a
law, in a constitutional light, must always be determined by the
nature of the powers upon which it is founded. Suppose, by some
forced constructions of its authority (which, indeed, cannot easily
be imagined), the Federal legislature should attempt to vary the law
of descent in any State, would it not be evident that, in making
such an attempt, it had exceeded its jurisdiction, and infringed
upon that of the State? Suppose, again, that upon the pretense of an
interference with its revenues, it should undertake to abrogate a
landtax imposed by the authority of a State; would it not be equally
evident that this was an invasion of that concurrent jurisdiction in
respect to this species of tax, which its Constitution plainly
supposes to exist in the State governments? If there ever should be
a doubt on this head, the credit of it will be entirely due to those
reasoners who, in the imprudent zeal of their animosity to the plan
of the convention, have labored to envelop it in a cloud calculated
to obscure the plainest and simplest truths.
But it is said that the laws of the Union are to be the SUPREME LAW
of the land. But what inference can be drawn from this, or what
would they amount to, if they were not to be supreme? It is evident
they would amount to nothing. A LAW, by the very meaning of the
term, includes supremacy. It is a rule which those to whom it is
prescribed are bound to observe. This results from every political
association. If individuals enter into a state of society, the laws
of that society must be the supreme regulator of their conduct. If a
number of political societies enter into a larger political society,
the laws which the latter may enact, pursuant to the powers
intrusted to it by its constitution, must necessarily be supreme
over those societies, and the individuals of whom they are composed.
It would otherwise be a mere treaty, dependent on the good faith of
the parties, and not a government, which is only another word for
POLITICAL POWER AND SUPREMACY. But it will not follow from this
doctrine that acts of the large society which are NOT PURSUANT to
its constitutional powers, but which are invasions of the residuary
authorities of the smaller societies, will become the supreme law of
the land. These will be merely acts of usurpation, and will deserve
to be treated as such. Hence we perceive that the clause which
declares the supremacy of the laws of the Union, like the one we
have just before considered, only declares a truth, which flows
immediately and necessarily from the institution of a federal
government. It will not, I presume, have escaped observation, that
it EXPRESSLY confines this supremacy to laws made PURSUANT TO THE
CONSTITUTION; which I mention merely as an instance of caution in
the convention; since that limitation would have been to be
understood, though it had not been expressed.
Though a law, therefore, laying a tax for the use of the United
States would be supreme in its nature, and could not legally be
opposed or controlled, yet a law for abrogating or preventing the
collection of a tax laid by the authority of the State, (unless upon
imports and exports), would not be the supreme law of the land, but
a usurpation of power not granted by the Constitution. As far as an
improper accumulation of taxes on the same object might tend to
render the collection difficult or precarious, this would be a
mutual inconvenience, not arising from a superiority or defect of
power on either side, but from an injudicious exercise of power by
one or the other, in a manner equally disadvantageous to both. It is
to be hoped and presumed, however, that mutual interest would
dictate a concert in this respect which would avoid any material
inconvenience. The inference from the whole is, that the individual
States would, under the proposed Constitution, retain an independent
and uncontrollable authority to raise revenue to any extent of which
they may stand in need, by every kind of taxation, except duties on
imports and exports. It will be shown in the next paper that this
CONCURRENT JURISDICTION in the article of taxation was the only
admissible substitute for an entire subordination, in respect to
this branch of power, of the State authority to that of the Union.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 34.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, January 5, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
I FLATTER myself it has been clearly shown in my last number that
the particular States, under the proposed Constitution, would have
COEQUAL authority with the Union in the article of revenue, except
as to duties on imports. As this leaves open to the States far the
greatest part of the resources of the community, there can be no
color for the assertion that they would not possess means as
abundant as could be desired for the supply of their own wants,
independent of all external control. That the field is sufficiently
wide will more fully appear when we come to advert to the
inconsiderable share of the public expenses for which it will fall
to the lot of the State governments to provide.
To argue upon abstract principles that this co-ordinate authority
cannot exist, is to set up supposition and theory against fact and
reality. However proper such reasonings might be to show that a
thing OUGHT NOT TO EXIST, they are wholly to be rejected when they
are made use of to prove that it does not exist contrary to the
evidence of the fact itself. It is well known that in the Roman
republic the legislative authority, in the last resort, resided for
ages in two different political bodies not as branches of the same
legislature, but as distinct and independent legislatures, in each
of which an opposite interest prevailed: in one the patrician; in
the other, the plebian. Many arguments might have been adduced to
prove the unfitness of two such seemingly contradictory authorities,
each having power to ANNUL or REPEAL the acts of the other. But a
man would have been regarded as frantic who should have attempted at
Rome to disprove their existence. It will be readily understood that
I allude to the COMITIA CENTURIATA and the COMITIA TRIBUTA. The
former, in which the people voted by centuries, was so arranged as
to give a superiority to the patrician interest; in the latter, in
which numbers prevailed, the plebian interest had an entire
predominancy. And yet these two legislatures coexisted for ages, and
the Roman republic attained to the utmost height of human greatness.
In the case particularly under consideration, there is no such
contradiction as appears in the example cited; there is no power on
either side to annul the acts of the other. And in practice there is
little reason to apprehend any inconvenience; because, in a short
course of time, the wants of the States will naturally reduce
themselves within A VERY NARROW COMPASS; and in the interim, the
United States will, in all probability, find it convenient to
abstain wholly from those objects to which the particular States
would be inclined to resort.
To form a more precise judgment of the true merits of this question,
it will be well to advert to the proportion between the objects that
will require a federal provision in respect to revenue, and those
which will require a State provision. We shall discover that the
former are altogether unlimited, and that the latter are
circumscribed within very moderate bounds. In pursuing this inquiry,
we must bear in mind that we are not to confine our view to the
present period, but to look forward to remote futurity.
Constitutions of civil government are not to be framed upon a
calculation of existing exigencies, but upon a combination of these
with the probable exigencies of ages, according to the natural and
tried course of human affairs. Nothing, therefore, can be more
fallacious than to infer the extent of any power, proper to be
lodged in the national government, from an estimate of its immediate
necessities. There ought to be a CAPACITY to provide for future
contingencies as they may happen; and as these are illimitable in
their nature, it is impossible safely to limit that capacity. It is
true, perhaps, that a computation might be made with sufficient
accuracy to answer the purpose of the quantity of revenue requisite
to discharge the subsisting engagements of the Union, and to
maintain those establishments which, for some time to come, would
suffice in time of peace. But would it be wise, or would it not
rather be the extreme of folly, to stop at this point, and to leave
the government intrusted with the care of the national defense in a
state of absolute incapacity to provide for the protection of the
community against future invasions of the public peace, by foreign
war or domestic convulsions? If, on the contrary, we ought to exceed
this point, where can we stop, short of an indefinite power of
providing for emergencies as they may arise? Though it is easy to
assert, in general terms, the possibility of forming a rational
judgment of a due provision against probable dangers, yet we may
safely challenge those who make the assertion to bring forward their
data, and may affirm that they would be found as vague and uncertain
as any that could be produced to establish the probable duration of
the world. Observations confined to the mere prospects of internal
attacks can deserve no weight; though even these will admit of no
satisfactory calculation: but if we mean to be a commercial people,
it must form a part of our policy to be able one day to defend that
commerce. The support of a navy and of naval wars would involve
contingencies that must baffle all the efforts of political
arithmetic.
Admitting that we ought to try the novel and absurd experiment in
politics of tying up the hands of government from offensive war
founded upon reasons of state, yet certainly we ought not to disable
it from guarding the community against the ambition or enmity of
other nations. A cloud has been for some time hanging over the
European world. If it should break forth into a storm, who can
insure us that in its progress a part of its fury would not be spent
upon us? No reasonable man would hastily pronounce that we are
entirely out of its reach. Or if the combustible materials that now
seem to be collecting should be dissipated without coming to
maturity, or if a flame should be kindled without extending to us,
what security can we have that our tranquillity will long remain
undisturbed from some other cause or from some other quarter? Let us
recollect that peace or war will not always be left to our option;
that however moderate or unambitious we may be, we cannot count upon
the moderation, or hope to extinguish the ambition of others. Who
could have imagined at the conclusion of the last war that France
and Britain, wearied and exhausted as they both were, would so soon
have looked with so hostile an aspect upon each other? To judge from
the history of mankind, we shall be compelled to conclude that the
fiery and destructive passions of war reign in the human breast with
much more powerful sway than the mild and beneficent sentiments of
peace; and that to model our political systems upon speculations of
lasting tranquillity, is to calculate on the weaker springs of the
human character.
What are the chief sources of expense in every government? What has
occasioned that enormous accumulation of debts with which several of
the European nations are oppressed? The answers plainly is, wars and
rebellions; the support of those institutions which are necessary to
guard the body politic against these two most mortal diseases of
society. The expenses arising from those institutions which are
relative to the mere domestic police of a state, to the support of
its legislative, executive, and judicial departments, with their
different appendages, and to the encouragement of agriculture and
manufactures (which will comprehend almost all the objects of state
expenditure), are insignificant in comparison with those which
relate to the national defense.
In the kingdom of Great Britain, where all the ostentatious
apparatus of monarchy is to be provided for, not above a fifteenth
part of the annual income of the nation is appropriated to the class
of expenses last mentioned; the other fourteen fifteenths are
absorbed in the payment of the interest of debts contracted for
carrying on the wars in which that country has been engaged, and in
the maintenance of fleets and armies. If, on the one hand, it should
be observed that the expenses incurred in the prosecution of the
ambitious enterprises and vainglorious pursuits of a monarchy are
not a proper standard by which to judge of those which might be
necessary in a republic, it ought, on the other hand, to be remarked
that there should be as great a disproportion between the profusion
and extravagance of a wealthy kingdom in its domestic
administration, and the frugality and economy which in that
particular become the modest simplicity of republican government. If
we balance a proper deduction from one side against that which it is
supposed ought to be made from the other, the proportion may still
be considered as holding good.
But let us advert to the large debt which we have ourselves
contracted in a single war, and let us only calculate on a common
share of the events which disturb the peace of nations, and we shall
instantly perceive, without the aid of any elaborate illustration,
that there must always be an immense disproportion between the
objects of federal and state expenditures. It is true that several
of the States, separately, are encumbered with considerable debts,
which are an excrescence of the late war. But this cannot happen
again, if the proposed system be adopted; and when these debts are
discharged, the only call for revenue of any consequence, which the
State governments will continue to experience, will be for the mere
support of their respective civil list; to which, if we add all
contingencies, the total amount in every State ought to fall
considerably short of two hundred thousand pounds.
In framing a government for posterity as well as ourselves, we
ought, in those provisions which are designed to be permanent, to
calculate, not on temporary, but on permanent causes of expense. If
this principle be a just one our attention would be directed to a
provision in favor of the State governments for an annual sum of
about two hundred thousand pounds; while the exigencies of the Union
could be susceptible of no limits, even in imagination. In this view
of the subject, by what logic can it be maintained that the local
governments ought to command, in perpetuity, an EXCLUSIVE source of
revenue for any sum beyond the extent of two hundred thousand
pounds? To extend its power further, in EXCLUSION of the authority
of the Union, would be to take the resources of the community out of
those hands which stood in need of them for the public welfare, in
order to put them into other hands which could have no just or
proper occasion for them.
Suppose, then, the convention had been inclined to proceed upon the
principle of a repartition of the objects of revenue, between the
Union and its members, in PROPORTION to their comparative
necessities; what particular fund could have been selected for the
use of the States, that would not either have been too much or too
little too little for their present, too much for their future
wants? As to the line of separation between external and internal
taxes, this would leave to the States, at a rough computation, the
command of two thirds of the resources of the community to defray
from a tenth to a twentieth part of its expenses; and to the Union,
one third of the resources of the community, to defray from nine
tenths to nineteen twentieths of its expenses. If we desert this
boundary and content ourselves with leaving to the States an
exclusive power of taxing houses and lands, there would still be a
great disproportion between the MEANS and the END; the possession of
one third of the resources of the community to supply, at most, one
tenth of its wants. If any fund could have been selected and
appropriated, equal to and not greater than the object, it would
have been inadequate to the discharge of the existing debts of the
particular States, and would have left them dependent on the Union
for a provision for this purpose.
The preceding train of observation will justify the position which
has been elsewhere laid down, that "A CONCURRENT JURISDICTION in the
article of taxation was the only admissible substitute for an entire
subordination, in respect to this branch of power, of State
authority to that of the Union." Any separation of the objects of
revenue that could have been fallen upon, would have amounted to a
sacrifice of the great INTERESTS of the Union to the POWER of the
individual States. The convention thought the concurrent
jurisdiction preferable to that subordination; and it is evident
that it has at least the merit of reconciling an indefinite
constitutional power of taxation in the Federal government with an
adequate and independent power in the States to provide for their
own necessities. There remain a few other lights, in which this
important subject of taxation will claim a further consideration.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 35.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January 5, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
BEFORE we proceed to examine any other objections to an indefinite
power of taxation in the Union, I shall make one general remark;
which is, that if the jurisdiction of the national government, in
the article of revenue, should be restricted to particular objects,
it would naturally occasion an undue proportion of the public
burdens to fall upon those objects. Two evils would spring from this
source: the oppression of particular branches of industry; and an
unequal distribution of the taxes, as well among the several States
as among the citizens of the same State.
Suppose, as has been contended for, the federal power of taxation
were to be confined to duties on imports, it is evident that the
government, for want of being able to command other resources, would
frequently be tempted to extend these duties to an injurious excess.
There are persons who imagine that they can never be carried to too
great a length; since the higher they are, the more it is alleged
they will tend to discourage an extravagant consumption, to produce
a favorable balance of trade, and to promote domestic manufactures.
But all extremes are pernicious in various ways. Exorbitant duties
on imported articles would beget a general spirit of smuggling;
which is always prejudicial to the fair trader, and eventually to
the revenue itself: they tend to render other classes of the
community tributary, in an improper degree, to the manufacturing
classes, to whom they give a premature monopoly of the markets; they
sometimes force industry out of its more natural channels into
others in which it flows with less advantage; and in the last place,
they oppress the merchant, who is often obliged to pay them himself
without any retribution from the consumer. When the demand is equal
to the quantity of goods at market, the consumer generally pays the
duty; but when the markets happen to be overstocked, a great
proportion falls upon the merchant, and sometimes not only exhausts
his profits, but breaks in upon his capital. I am apt to think that
a division of the duty, between the seller and the buyer, more often
happens than is commonly imagined. It is not always possible to
raise the price of a commodity in exact proportion to every
additional imposition laid upon it. The merchant, especially in a
country of small commercial capital, is often under a necessity of
keeping prices down in order to a more expeditious sale.
The maxim that the consumer is the payer, is so much oftener true
than the reverse of the proposition, that it is far more equitable
that the duties on imports should go into a common stock, than that
they should redound to the exclusive benefit of the importing
States. But it is not so generally true as to render it equitable,
that those duties should form the only national fund. When they are
paid by the merchant they operate as an additional tax upon the
importing State, whose citizens pay their proportion of them in the
character of consumers. In this view they are productive of
inequality among the States; which inequality would be increased
with the increased extent of the duties. The confinement of the
national revenues to this species of imposts would be attended with
inequality, from a different cause, between the manufacturing and
the non-manufacturing States. The States which can go farthest
towards the supply of their own wants, by their own manufactures,
will not, according to their numbers or wealth, consume so great a
proportion of imported articles as those States which are not in the
same favorable situation. They would not, therefore, in this mode
alone contribute to the public treasury in a ratio to their
abilities. To make them do this it is necessary that recourse be had
to excises, the proper objects of which are particular kinds of
manufactures. New York is more deeply interested in these
considerations than such of her citizens as contend for limiting the
power of the Union to external taxation may be aware of. New York is
an importing State, and is not likely speedily to be, to any great
extent, a manufacturing State. She would, of course, suffer in a
double light from restraining the jurisdiction of the Union to
commercial imposts.
So far as these observations tend to inculcate a danger of the
import duties being extended to an injurious extreme it may be
observed, conformably to a remark made in another part of these
papers, that the interest of the revenue itself would be a
sufficient guard against such an extreme. I readily admit that this
would be the case, as long as other resources were open; but if the
avenues to them were closed, HOPE, stimulated by necessity, would
beget experiments, fortified by rigorous precautions and additional
penalties, which, for a time, would have the intended effect, till
there had been leisure to contrive expedients to elude these new
precautions. The first success would be apt to inspire false
opinions, which it might require a long course of subsequent
experience to correct. Necessity, especially in politics, often
occasions false hopes, false reasonings, and a system of measures
correspondingly erroneous. But even if this supposed excess should
not be a consequence of the limitation of the federal power of
taxation, the inequalities spoken of would still ensue, though not
in the same degree, from the other causes that have been noticed.
Let us now return to the examination of objections.
One which, if we may judge from the frequency of its repetition,
seems most to be relied on, is, that the House of Representatives is
not sufficiently numerous for the reception of all the different
classes of citizens, in order to combine the interests and feelings
of every part of the community, and to produce a due sympathy
between the representative body and its constituents. This argument
presents itself under a very specious and seducing form; and is well
calculated to lay hold of the prejudices of those to whom it is
addressed. But when we come to dissect it with attention, it will
appear to be made up of nothing but fair-sounding words. The object
it seems to aim at is, in the first place, impracticable, and in the
sense in which it is contended for, is unnecessary. I reserve for
another place the discussion of the question which relates to the
sufficiency of the representative body in respect to numbers, and
shall content myself with examining here the particular use which
has been made of a contrary supposition, in reference to the
immediate subject of our inquiries.
The idea of an actual representation of all classes of the people,
by persons of each class, is altogether visionary. Unless it were
expressly provided in the Constitution, that each different
occupation should send one or more members, the thing would never
take place in practice. Mechanics and manufacturers will always be
inclined, with few exceptions, to give their votes to merchants, in
preference to persons of their own professions or trades. Those
discerning citizens are well aware that the mechanic and
manufacturing arts furnish the materials of mercantile enterprise
and industry. Many of them, indeed, are immediately connected with
the operations of commerce. They know that the merchant is their
natural patron and friend; and they are aware, that however great
the confidence they may justly feel in their own good sense, their
interests can be more effectually promoted by the merchant than by
themselves. They are sensible that their habits in life have not
been such as to give them those acquired endowments, without which,
in a deliberative assembly, the greatest natural abilities are for
the most part useless; and that the influence and weight, and
superior acquirements of the merchants render them more equal to a
contest with any spirit which might happen to infuse itself into the
public councils, unfriendly to the manufacturing and trading
interests. These considerations, and many others that might be
mentioned prove, and experience confirms it, that artisans and
manufacturers will commonly be disposed to bestow their votes upon
merchants and those whom they recommend. We must therefore consider
merchants as the natural representatives of all these classes of the
community.
With regard to the learned professions, little need be observed;
they truly form no distinct interest in society, and according to
their situation and talents, will be indiscriminately the objects of
the confidence and choice of each other, and of other parts of the
community.
Nothing remains but the landed interest; and this, in a political
view, and particularly in relation to taxes, I take to be perfectly
united, from the wealthiest landlord down to the poorest tenant. No
tax can be laid on land which will not affect the proprietor of
millions of acres as well as the proprietor of a single acre. Every
landholder will therefore have a common interest to keep the taxes
on land as low as possible; and common interest may always be
reckoned upon as the surest bond of sympathy. But if we even could
suppose a distinction of interest between the opulent landholder and
the middling farmer, what reason is there to conclude, that the
first would stand a better chance of being deputed to the national
legislature than the last? If we take fact as our guide, and look
into our own senate and assembly, we shall find that moderate
proprietors of land prevail in both; nor is this less the case in
the senate, which consists of a smaller number, than in the
assembly, which is composed of a greater number. Where the
qualifications of the electors are the same, whether they have to
choose a small or a large number, their votes will fall upon those
in whom they have most confidence; whether these happen to be men of
large fortunes, or of moderate property, or of no property at all.
It is said to be necessary, that all classes of citizens should have
some of their own number in the representative body, in order that
their feelings and interests may be the better understood and
attended to. But we have seen that this will never happen under any
arrangement that leaves the votes of the people free. Where this is
the case, the representative body, with too few exceptions to have
any influence on the spirit of the government, will be composed of
landholders, merchants, and men of the learned professions. But
where is the danger that the interests and feelings of the different
classes of citizens will not be understood or attended to by these
three descriptions of men? Will not the landholder know and feel
whatever will promote or insure the interest of landed property? And
will he not, from his own interest in that species of property, be
sufficiently prone to resist every attempt to prejudice or encumber
it? Will not the merchant understand and be disposed to cultivate,
as far as may be proper, the interests of the mechanic and
manufacturing arts, to which his commerce is so nearly allied? Will
not the man of the learned profession, who will feel a neutrality to
the rivalships between the different branches of industry, be likely
to prove an impartial arbiter between them, ready to promote either,
so far as it shall appear to him conducive to the general interests
of the society?
If we take into the account the momentary humors or dispositions
which may happen to prevail in particular parts of the society, and
to which a wise administration will never be inattentive, is the man
whose situation leads to extensive inquiry and information less
likely to be a competent judge of their nature, extent, and
foundation than one whose observation does not travel beyond the
circle of his neighbors and acquaintances? Is it not natural that a
man who is a candidate for the favor of the people, and who is
dependent on the suffrages of his fellow-citizens for the
continuance of his public honors, should take care to inform himself
of their dispositions and inclinations, and should be willing to
allow them their proper degree of influence upon his conduct? This
dependence, and the necessity of being bound himself, and his
posterity, by the laws to which he gives his assent, are the true,
and they are the strong chords of sympathy between the
representative and the constituent.
There is no part of the administration of government that requires
extensive information and a thorough knowledge of the principles of
political economy, so much as the business of taxation. The man who
understands those principles best will be least likely to resort to
oppressive expedients, or sacrifice any particular class of citizens
to the procurement of revenue. It might be demonstrated that the
most productive system of finance will always be the least
burdensome. There can be no doubt that in order to a judicious
exercise of the power of taxation, it is necessary that the person
in whose hands it should be acquainted with the general genius,
habits, and modes of thinking of the people at large, and with the
resources of the country. And this is all that can be reasonably
meant by a knowledge of the interests and feelings of the people. In
any other sense the proposition has either no meaning, or an absurd
one. And in that sense let every considerate citizen judge for
himself where the requisite qualification is most likely to be
found.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 36.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the General Power of
Taxation)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 8, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen that the result of the observations, to which the
foregoing number has been principally devoted, is, that from the
natural operation of the different interests and views of the
various classes of the community, whether the representation of the
people be more or less numerous, it will consist almost entirely of
proprietors of land, of merchants, and of members of the learned
professions, who will truly represent all those different interests
and views. If it should be objected that we have seen other
descriptions of men in the local legislatures, I answer that it is
admitted there are exceptions to the rule, but not in sufficient
number to influence the general complexion or character of the
government. There are strong minds in every walk of life that will
rise superior to the disadvantages of situation, and will command
the tribute due to their merit, not only from the classes to which
they particularly belong, but from the society in general. The door
ought to be equally open to all; and I trust, for the credit of
human nature, that we shall see examples of such vigorous plants
flourishing in the soil of federal as well as of State legislation;
but occasional instances of this sort will not render the reasoning
founded upon the general course of things, less conclusive.
The subject might be placed in several other lights that would all
lead to the same result; and in particular it might be asked, What
greater affinity or relation of interest can be conceived between
the carpenter and blacksmith, and the linen manufacturer or stocking
weaver, than between the merchant and either of them? It is
notorious that there are often as great rivalships between different
branches of the mechanic or manufacturing arts as there are between
any of the departments of labor and industry; so that, unless the
representative body were to be far more numerous than would be
consistent with any idea of regularity or wisdom in its
deliberations, it is impossible that what seems to be the spirit of
the objection we have been considering should ever be realized in
practice. But I forbear to dwell any longer on a matter which has
hitherto worn too loose a garb to admit even of an accurate
inspection of its real shape or tendency.
There is another objection of a somewhat more precise nature that
claims our attention. It has been asserted that a power of internal
taxation in the national legislature could never be exercised with
advantage, as well from the want of a sufficient knowledge of local
circumstances, as from an interference between the revenue laws of
the Union and of the particular States. The supposition of a want of
proper knowledge seems to be entirely destitute of foundation. If
any question is depending in a State legislature respecting one of
the counties, which demands a knowledge of local details, how is it
acquired? No doubt from the information of the members of the
county. Cannot the like knowledge be obtained in the national
legislature from the representatives of each State? And is it not to
be presumed that the men who will generally be sent there will be
possessed of the necessary degree of intelligence to be able to
communicate that information? Is the knowledge of local
circumstances, as applied to taxation, a minute topographical
acquaintance with all the mountains, rivers, streams, highways, and
bypaths in each State; or is it a general acquaintance with its
situation and resources, with the state of its agriculture,
commerce, manufactures, with the nature of its products and
consumptions, with the different degrees and kinds of its wealth,
property, and industry?
Nations in general, even under governments of the more popular kind,
usually commit the administration of their finances to single men or
to boards composed of a few individuals, who digest and prepare, in
the first instance, the plans of taxation, which are afterwards
passed into laws by the authority of the sovereign or legislature.
Inquisitive and enlightened statesmen are deemed everywhere best
qualified to make a judicious selection of the objects proper for
revenue; which is a clear indication, as far as the sense of mankind
can have weight in the question, of the species of knowledge of
local circumstances requisite to the purposes of taxation.
The taxes intended to be comprised under the general denomination of
internal taxes may be subdivided into those of the DIRECT and those
of the INDIRECT kind. Though the objection be made to both, yet the
reasoning upon it seems to be confined to the former branch. And
indeed, as to the latter, by which must be understood duties and
excises on articles of consumption, one is at a loss to conceive
what can be the nature of the difficulties apprehended. The
knowledge relating to them must evidently be of a kind that will
either be suggested by the nature of the article itself, or can
easily be procured from any well-informed man, especially of the
mercantile class. The circumstances that may distinguish its
situation in one State from its situation in another must be few,
simple, and easy to be comprehended. The principal thing to be
attended to, would be to avoid those articles which had been
previously appropriated to the use of a particular State; and there
could be no difficulty in ascertaining the revenue system of each.
This could always be known from the respective codes of laws, as
well as from the information of the members from the several States.
The objection, when applied to real property or to houses and lands,
appears to have, at first sight, more foundation, but even in this
view it will not bear a close examination. Land taxes are commonly
laid in one of two modes, either by ACTUAL valuations, permanent or
periodical, or by OCCASIONAL assessments, at the discretion, or
according to the best judgment, of certain officers whose duty it is
to make them. In either case, the EXECUTION of the business, which
alone requires the knowledge of local details, must be devolved upon
discreet persons in the character of commissioners or assessors,
elected by the people or appointed by the government for the
purpose. All that the law can do must be to name the persons or to
prescribe the manner of their election or appointment, to fix their
numbers and qualifications and to draw the general outlines of their
powers and duties. And what is there in all this that cannot as well
be performed by the national legislature as by a State legislature?
The attention of either can only reach to general principles; local
details, as already observed, must be referred to those who are to
execute the plan.
But there is a simple point of view in which this matter may be
placed that must be altogether satisfactory. The national
legislature can make use of the SYSTEM OF EACH STATE WITHIN THAT
STATE. The method of laying and collecting this species of taxes in
each State can, in all its parts, be adopted and employed by the
federal government.
Let it be recollected that the proportion of these taxes is not to
be left to the discretion of the national legislature, but is to be
determined by the numbers of each State, as described in the second
section of the first article. An actual census or enumeration of the
people must furnish the rule, a circumstance which effectually shuts
the door to partiality or oppression. The abuse of this power of
taxation seems to have been provided against with guarded
circumspection. In addition to the precaution just mentioned, there
is a provision that "all duties, imposts, and excises shall be
UNIFORM throughout the United States."
It has been very properly observed by different speakers and writers
on the side of the Constitution, that if the exercise of the power
of internal taxation by the Union should be discovered on experiment
to be really inconvenient, the federal government may then forbear
the use of it, and have recourse to requisitions in its stead. By
way of answer to this, it has been triumphantly asked, Why not in
the first instance omit that ambiguous power, and rely upon the
latter resource? Two solid answers may be given. The first is, that
the exercise of that power, if convenient, will be preferable,
because it will be more effectual; and it is impossible to prove in
theory, or otherwise than by the experiment, that it cannot be
advantageously exercised. The contrary, indeed, appears most
probable. The second answer is, that the existence of such a power
in the Constitution will have a strong influence in giving efficacy
to requisitions. When the States know that the Union can apply
itself without their agency, it will be a powerful motive for
exertion on their part.
As to the interference of the revenue laws of the Union, and of its
members, we have already seen that there can be no clashing or
repugnancy of authority. The laws cannot, therefore, in a legal
sense, interfere with each other; and it is far from impossible to
avoid an interference even in the policy of their different systems.
An effectual expedient for this purpose will be, mutually, to
abstain from those objects which either side may have first had
recourse to. As neither can CONTROL the other, each will have an
obvious and sensible interest in this reciprocal forbearance. And
where there is an IMMEDIATE common interest, we may safely count
upon its operation. When the particular debts of the States are done
away, and their expenses come to be limited within their natural
compass, the possibility almost of interference will vanish. A small
land tax will answer the purpose of the States, and will be their
most simple and most fit resource.
Many spectres have been raised out of this power of internal
taxation, to excite the apprehensions of the people: double sets of
revenue officers, a duplication of their burdens by double
taxations, and the frightful forms of odious and oppressive
poll-taxes, have been played off with all the ingenious dexterity of
political legerdemain.
As to the first point, there are two cases in which there can be no
room for double sets of officers: one, where the right of imposing
the tax is exclusively vested in the Union, which applies to the
duties on imports; the other, where the object has not fallen under
any State regulation or provision, which may be applicable to a
variety of objects. In other cases, the probability is that the
United States will either wholly abstain from the objects
preoccupied for local purposes, or will make use of the State
officers and State regulations for collecting the additional
imposition. This will best answer the views of revenue, because it
will save expense in the collection, and will best avoid any
occasion of disgust to the State governments and to the people. At
all events, here is a practicable expedient for avoiding such an
inconvenience; and nothing more can be required than to show that
evils predicted to not necessarily result from the plan.
As to any argument derived from a supposed system of influence, it
is a sufficient answer to say that it ought not to be presumed; but
the supposition is susceptible of a more precise answer. If such a
spirit should infest the councils of the Union, the most certain
road to the accomplishment of its aim would be to employ the State
officers as much as possible, and to attach them to the Union by an
accumulation of their emoluments. This would serve to turn the tide
of State influence into the channels of the national government,
instead of making federal influence flow in an opposite and adverse
current. But all suppositions of this kind are invidious, and ought
to be banished from the consideration of the great question before
the people. They can answer no other end than to cast a mist over
the truth.
As to the suggestion of double taxation, the answer is plain. The
wants of the Union are to be supplied in one way or another; if to
be done by the authority of the federal government, it will not be
to be done by that of the State government. The quantity of taxes to
be paid by the community must be the same in either case; with this
advantage, if the provision is to be made by the Union that the
capital resource of commercial imposts, which is the most convenient
branch of revenue, can be prudently improved to a much greater
extent under federal than under State regulation, and of course will
render it less necessary to recur to more inconvenient methods; and
with this further advantage, that as far as there may be any real
difficulty in the exercise of the power of internal taxation, it
will impose a disposition to greater care in the choice and
arrangement of the means; and must naturally tend to make it a fixed
point of policy in the national administration to go as far as may
be practicable in making the luxury of the rich tributary to the
public treasury, in order to diminish the necessity of those
impositions which might create dissatisfaction in the poorer and
most numerous classes of the society. Happy it is when the interest
which the government has in the preservation of its own power,
coincides with a proper distribution of the public burdens, and
tends to guard the least wealthy part of the community from
oppression!
As to poll taxes, I, without scruple, confess my disapprobation of
them; and though they have prevailed from an early period in those
States(1) which have uniformly been the most tenacious of their
rights, I should lament to see them introduced into practice under
the national government. But does it follow because there is a power
to lay them that they will actually be laid? Every State in the
Union has power to impose taxes of this kind; and yet in several of
them they are unknown in practice. Are the State governments to be
stigmatized as tyrannies, because they possess this power? If they
are not, with what propriety can the like power justify such a
charge against the national government, or even be urged as an
obstacle to its adoption? As little friendly as I am to the species
of imposition, I still feel a thorough conviction that the power of
having recourse to it ought to exist in the federal government.
There are certain emergencies of nations, in which expedients, that
in the ordinary state of things ought to be forborne, become
essential to the public weal. And the government, from the
possibility of such emergencies, ought ever to have the option of
making use of them. The real scarcity of objects in this country,
which may be considered as productive sources of revenue, is a
reason peculiar to itself, for not abridging the discretion of the
national councils in this respect. There may exist certain critical
and tempestuous conjunctures of the State, in which a poll tax may
become an inestimable resource. And as I know nothing to exempt this
portion of the globe from the common calamities that have befallen
other parts of it, I acknowledge my aversion to every project that
is calculated to disarm the government of a single weapon, which in
any possible contingency might be usefully employed for the general
defense and security.
(I have now gone through the examination of such of the powers
proposed to be vested in the United States, which may be considered
as having an immediate relation to the energy of the government; and
have endeavored to answer the principal objections which have been
made to them. I have passed over in silence those minor authorities,
which are either too inconsiderable to have been thought worthy of
the hostilities of the opponents of the Constitution, or of too
manifest propriety to admit of controversy. The mass of judiciary
power, however, might have claimed an investigation under this head,
had it not been for the consideration that its organization and its
extent may be more advantageously considered in connection. This has
determined me to refer it to the branch of our inquiries upon which
we shall next enter.)(E1)
(I have now gone through the examination of those powers proposed to
be conferred upon the federal government which relate more
peculiarly to its energy, and to its efficiency for answering the
great and primary objects of union. There are others which, though
omitted here, will, in order to render the view of the subject more
complete, be taken notice of under the next head of our inquiries. I
flatter myself the progress already made will have sufficed to
satisfy the candid and judicious part of the community that some of
the objections which have been most strenuously urged against the
Constitution, and which were most formidable in their first
appearance, are not only destitute of substance, but if they had
operated in the formation of the plan, would have rendered it
incompetent to the great ends of public happiness and national
prosperity. I equally flatter myself that a further and more
critical investigation of the system will serve to recommend it
still more to every sincere and disinterested advocate for good
government and will leave no doubt with men of this character of the
propriety and expediency of adopting it. Happy will it be for
ourselves, and more honorable for human nature, if we have wisdom
and virtue enough to set so glorious an example to mankind!)(E1)
PUBLIUS
1. The New England States.
E1. Two versions of this paragraph appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 37.
Concerning the Difficulties of the Convention in Devising a Proper
Form of Government.
From the Daily Advertiser. Friday, January 11, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN REVIEWING the defects of the existing Confederation, and showing
that they cannot be supplied by a government of less energy than
that before the public, several of the most important principles of
the latter fell of course under consideration. But as the ultimate
object of these papers is to determine clearly and fully the merits
of this Constitution, and the expediency of adopting it, our plan
cannot be complete without taking a more critical and thorough
survey of the work of the convention, without examining it on all
its sides, comparing it in all its parts, and calculating its
probable effects. That this remaining task may be executed under
impressions conducive to a just and fair result, some reflections
must in this place be indulged, which candor previously suggests.
It is a misfortune, inseparable from human affairs, that public
measures are rarely investigated with that spirit of moderation
which is essential to a just estimate of their real tendency to
advance or obstruct the public good; and that this spirit is more
apt to be diminished than promoted, by those occasions which require
an unusual exercise of it. To those who have been led by experience
to attend to this consideration, it could not appear surprising,
that the act of the convention, which recommends so many important
changes and innovations, which may be viewed in so many lights and
relations, and which touches the springs of so many passions and
interests, should find or excite dispositions unfriendly, both on
one side and on the other, to a fair discussion and accurate
judgment of its merits. In some, it has been too evident from their
own publications, that they have scanned the proposed Constitution,
not only with a predisposition to censure, but with a
predetermination to condemn; as the language held by others betrays
an opposite predetermination or bias, which must render their
opinions also of little moment in the question. In placing, however,
these different characters on a level, with respect to the weight of
their opinions, I wish not to insinuate that there may not be a
material difference in the purity of their intentions. It is but
just to remark in favor of the latter description, that as our
situation is universally admitted to be peculiarly critical, and to
require indispensably that something should be done for our relief,
the predetermined patron of what has been actually done may have
taken his bias from the weight of these considerations, as well as
from considerations of a sinister nature. The predetermined
adversary, on the other hand, can have been governed by no venial
motive whatever. The intentions of the first may be upright, as they
may on the contrary be culpable. The views of the last cannot be
upright, and must be culpable. But the truth is, that these papers
are not addressed to persons falling under either of these
characters. They solicit the attention of those only, who add to a
sincere zeal for the happiness of their country, a temper favorable
to a just estimate of the means of promoting it.
Persons of this character will proceed to an examination of the plan
submitted by the convention, not only without a disposition to find
or to magnify faults; but will see the propriety of reflecting, that
a faultless plan was not to be expected. Nor will they barely make
allowances for the errors which may be chargeable on the fallibility
to which the convention, as a body of men, were liable; but will
keep in mind, that they themselves also are but men, and ought not
to assume an infallibility in rejudging the fallible opinions of
others.
With equal readiness will it be perceived, that besides these
inducements to candor, many allowances ought to be made for the
difficulties inherent in the very nature of the undertaking referred
to the convention.
The novelty of the undertaking immediately strikes us. It has been
shown in the course of these papers, that the existing Confederation
is founded on principles which are fallacious; that we must
consequently change this first foundation, and with it the
superstructure resting upon it. It has been shown, that the other
confederacies which could be consulted as precedents have been
vitiated by the same erroneous principles, and can therefore furnish
no other light than that of beacons, which give warning of the
course to be shunned, without pointing out that which ought to be
pursued. The most that the convention could do in such a situation,
was to avoid the errors suggested by the past experience of other
countries, as well as of our own; and to provide a convenient mode
of rectifying their own errors, as future experiences may unfold
them.
Among the difficulties encountered by the convention, a very
important one must have lain in combining the requisite stability
and energy in government, with the inviolable attention due to
liberty and to the republican form. Without substantially
accomplishing this part of their undertaking, they would have very
imperfectly fulfilled the object of their appointment, or the
expectation of the public; yet that it could not be easily
accomplished, will be denied by no one who is unwilling to betray
his ignorance of the subject. Energy in government is essential to
that security against external and internal danger, and to that
prompt and salutary execution of the laws which enter into the very
definition of good government. Stability in government is essential
to national character and to the advantages annexed to it, as well
as to that repose and confidence in the minds of the people, which
are among the chief blessings of civil society. An irregular and
mutable legislation is not more an evil in itself than it is odious
to the people; and it may be pronounced with assurance that the
people of this country, enlightened as they are with regard to the
nature, and interested, as the great body of them are, in the
effects of good government, will never be satisfied till some remedy
be applied to the vicissitudes and uncertainties which characterize
the State administrations. On comparing, however, these valuable
ingredients with the vital principles of liberty, we must perceive
at once the difficulty of mingling them together in their due
proportions. The genius of republican liberty seems to demand on one
side, not only that all power should be derived from the people, but
that those intrusted with it should be kept in independence on the
people, by a short duration of their appointments; and that even
during this short period the trust should be placed not in a few,
but a number of hands. Stability, on the contrary, requires that the
hands in which power is lodged should continue for a length of time
the same. A frequent change of men will result from a frequent
return of elections; and a frequent change of measures from a
frequent change of men: whilst energy in government requires not
only a certain duration of power, but the execution of it by a
single hand.
How far the convention may have succeeded in this part of their
work, will better appear on a more accurate view of it. From the
cursory view here taken, it must clearly appear to have been an
arduous part.
Not less arduous must have been the task of marking the proper line
of partition between the authority of the general and that of the
State governments. Every man will be sensible of this difficulty, in
proportion as he has been accustomed to contemplate and discriminate
objects extensive and complicated in their nature. The faculties of
the mind itself have never yet been distinguished and defined, with
satisfactory precision, by all the efforts of the most acute and
metaphysical philosophers. Sense, perception, judgment, desire,
volition, memory, imagination, are found to be separated by such
delicate shades and minute gradations that their boundaries have
eluded the most subtle investigations, and remain a pregnant source
of ingenious disquisition and controversy. The boundaries between
the great kingdom of nature, and, still more, between the various
provinces, and lesser portions, into which they are subdivided,
afford another illustration of the same important truth. The most
sagacious and laborious naturalists have never yet succeeded in
tracing with certainty the line which separates the district of
vegetable life from the neighboring region of unorganized matter, or
which marks the termination of the former and the commencement of
the animal empire. A still greater obscurity lies in the distinctive
characters by which the objects in each of these great departments
of nature have been arranged and assorted.
When we pass from the works of nature, in which all the delineations
are perfectly accurate, and appear to be otherwise only from the
imperfection of the eye which surveys them, to the institutions of
man, in which the obscurity arises as well from the object itself as
from the organ by which it is contemplated, we must perceive the
necessity of moderating still further our expectations and hopes
from the efforts of human sagacity. Experience has instructed us
that no skill in the science of government has yet been able to
discriminate and define, with sufficient certainty, its three great
provinces the legislative, executive, and judiciary; or even the
privileges and powers of the different legislative branches.
Questions daily occur in the course of practice, which prove the
obscurity which reins in these subjects, and which puzzle the
greatest adepts in political science.
The experience of ages, with the continued and combined labors of
the most enlightened legislatures and jurists, has been equally
unsuccessful in delineating the several objects and limits of
different codes of laws and different tribunals of justice. The
precise extent of the common law, and the statute law, the maritime
law, the ecclesiastical law, the law of corporations, and other
local laws and customs, remains still to be clearly and finally
established in Great Britain, where accuracy in such subjects has
been more industriously pursued than in any other part of the world.
The jurisdiction of her several courts, general and local, of law,
of equity, of admiralty, etc., is not less a source of frequent and
intricate discussions, sufficiently denoting the indeterminate
limits by which they are respectively circumscribed. All new laws,
though penned with the greatest technical skill, and passed on the
fullest and most mature deliberation, are considered as more or less
obscure and equivocal, until their meaning be liquidated and
ascertained by a series of particular discussions and adjudications.
Besides the obscurity arising from the complexity of objects, and
the imperfection of the human faculties, the medium through which
the conceptions of men are conveyed to each other adds a fresh
embarrassment. The use of words is to express ideas. Perspicuity,
therefore, requires not only that the ideas should be distinctly
formed, but that they should be expressed by words distinctly and
exclusively appropriate to them. But no language is so copious as to
supply words and phrases for every complex idea, or so correct as
not to include many equivocally denoting different ideas. Hence it
must happen that however accurately objects may be discriminated in
themselves, and however accurately the discrimination may be
considered, the definition of them may be rendered inaccurate by the
inaccuracy of the terms in which it is delivered. And this
unavoidable inaccuracy must be greater or less, according to the
complexity and novelty of the objects defined. When the Almighty
himself condescends to address mankind in their own language, his
meaning, luminous as it must be, is rendered dim and doubtful by the
cloudy medium through which it is communicated.
Here, then, are three sources of vague and incorrect definitions:
indistinctness of the object, imperfection of the organ of
conception, inadequateness of the vehicle of ideas. Any one of these
must produce a certain degree of obscurity. The convention, in
delineating the boundary between the federal and State
jurisdictions, must have experienced the full effect of them all.
To the difficulties already mentioned may be added the interfering
pretensions of the larger and smaller States. We cannot err in
supposing that the former would contend for a participation in the
government, fully proportioned to their superior wealth and
importance; and that the latter would not be less tenacious of the
equality at present enjoyed by them. We may well suppose that
neither side would entirely yield to the other, and consequently
that the struggle could be terminated only by compromise. It is
extremely probable, also, that after the ratio of representation had
been adjusted, this very compromise must have produced a fresh
struggle between the same parties, to give such a turn to the
organization of the government, and to the distribution of its
powers, as would increase the importance of the branches, in forming
which they had respectively obtained the greatest share of
influence. There are features in the Constitution which warrant each
of these suppositions; and as far as either of them is well founded,
it shows that the convention must have been compelled to sacrifice
theoretical propriety to the force of extraneous considerations.
Nor could it have been the large and small States only, which would
marshal themselves in opposition to each other on various points.
Other combinations, resulting from a difference of local position
and policy, must have created additional difficulties. As every
State may be divided into different districts, and its citizens into
different classes, which give birth to contending interests and
local jealousies, so the different parts of the United States are
distinguished from each other by a variety of circumstances, which
produce a like effect on a larger scale. And although this variety
of interests, for reasons sufficiently explained in a former paper,
may have a salutary influence on the administration of the
government when formed, yet every one must be sensible of the
contrary influence, which must have been experienced in the task of
forming it.
Would it be wonderful if, under the pressure of all these
difficulties, the convention should have been forced into some
deviations from that artificial structure and regular symmetry which
an abstract view of the subject might lead an ingenious theorist to
bestow on a Constitution planned in his closet or in his
imagination? The real wonder is that so many difficulties should
have been surmounted, and surmounted with a unanimity almost as
unprecedented as it must have been unexpected. It is impossible for
any man of candor to reflect on this circumstance without partaking
of the astonishment. It is impossible for the man of pious
reflection not to perceive in it a finger of that Almighty hand
which has been so frequently and signally extended to our relief in
the critical stages of the revolution.
We had occasion, in a former paper, to take notice of the repeated
trials which have been unsuccessfully made in the United Netherlands
for reforming the baneful and notorious vices of their constitution.
The history of almost all the great councils and consultations held
among mankind for reconciling their discordant opinions, assuaging
their mutual jealousies, and adjusting their respective interests,
is a history of factions, contentions, and disappointments, and may
be classed among the most dark and degraded pictures which display
the infirmities and depravities of the human character. If, in a few
scattered instances, a brighter aspect is presented, they serve only
as exceptions to admonish us of the general truth; and by their
lustre to darken the gloom of the adverse prospect to which they are
contrasted. In revolving the causes from which these exceptions
result, and applying them to the particular instances before us, we
are necessarily led to two important conclusions. The first is, that
the convention must have enjoyed, in a very singular degree, an
exemption from the pestilential influence of party animosities the
disease most incident to deliberative bodies, and most apt to
contaminate their proceedings. The second conclusion is that all the
deputations composing the convention were satisfactorily
accommodated by the final act, or were induced to accede to it by a
deep conviction of the necessity of sacrificing private opinions and
partial interests to the public good, and by a despair of seeing
this necessity diminished by delays or by new experiments.
FEDERALIST No. 38.
The Same Subject Continued, and the Incoherence of the Objections
to the New Plan Exposed.
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, January 12, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS not a little remarkable that in every case reported by ancient
history, in which government has been established with deliberation
and consent, the task of framing it has not been committed to an
assembly of men, but has been performed by some individual citizen
of preeminent wisdom and approved integrity.
Minos, we learn, was the primitive founder of the government of
Crete, as Zaleucus was of that of the Locrians. Theseus first, and
after him Draco and Solon, instituted the government of Athens.
Lycurgus was the lawgiver of Sparta. The foundation of the original
government of Rome was laid by Romulus, and the work completed by
two of his elective successors, Numa and Tullius Hostilius. On the
abolition of royalty the consular administration was substituted by
Brutus, who stepped forward with a project for such a reform, which,
he alleged, had been prepared by Tullius Hostilius, and to which his
address obtained the assent and ratification of the senate and
people. This remark is applicable to confederate governments also.
Amphictyon, we are told, was the author of that which bore his name.
The Achaean league received its first birth from Achaeus, and its
second from Aratus.
What degree of agency these reputed lawgivers might have in their
respective establishments, or how far they might be clothed with the
legitimate authority of the people, cannot in every instance be
ascertained. In some, however, the proceeding was strictly regular.
Draco appears to have been intrusted by the people of Athens with
indefinite powers to reform its government and laws. And Solon,
according to Plutarch, was in a manner compelled, by the universal
suffrage of his fellow-citizens, to take upon him the sole and
absolute power of new-modeling the constitution. The proceedings
under Lycurgus were less regular; but as far as the advocates for a
regular reform could prevail, they all turned their eyes towards the
single efforts of that celebrated patriot and sage, instead of
seeking to bring about a revolution by the intervention of a
deliberative body of citizens.
Whence could it have proceeded, that a people, jealous as the Greeks
were of their liberty, should so far abandon the rules of caution as
to place their destiny in the hands of a single citizen? Whence
could it have proceeded, that the Athenians, a people who would not
suffer an army to be commanded by fewer than ten generals, and who
required no other proof of danger to their liberties than the
illustrious merit of a fellow-citizen, should consider one
illustrious citizen as a more eligible depositary of the fortunes of
themselves and their posterity, than a select body of citizens, from
whose common deliberations more wisdom, as well as more safety,
might have been expected? These questions cannot be fully answered,
without supposing that the fears of discord and disunion among a
number of counsellors exceeded the apprehension of treachery or
incapacity in a single individual. History informs us, likewise, of
the difficulties with which these celebrated reformers had to
contend, as well as the expedients which they were obliged to employ
in order to carry their reforms into effect. Solon, who seems to
have indulged a more temporizing policy, confessed that he had not
given to his countrymen the government best suited to their
happiness, but most tolerable to their prejudices. And Lycurgus,
more true to his object, was under the necessity of mixing a portion
of violence with the authority of superstition, and of securing his
final success by a voluntary renunciation, first of his country, and
then of his life. If these lessons teach us, on one hand, to admire
the improvement made by America on the ancient mode of preparing and
establishing regular plans of government, they serve not less, on
the other, to admonish us of the hazards and difficulties incident
to such experiments, and of the great imprudence of unnecessarily
multiplying them.
Is it an unreasonable conjecture, that the errors which may be
contained in the plan of the convention are such as have resulted
rather from the defect of antecedent experience on this complicated
and difficult subject, than from a want of accuracy or care in the
investigation of it; and, consequently such as will not be
ascertained until an actual trial shall have pointed them out? This
conjecture is rendered probable, not only by many considerations of
a general nature, but by the particular case of the Articles of
Confederation. It is observable that among the numerous objections
and amendments suggested by the several States, when these articles
were submitted for their ratification, not one is found which
alludes to the great and radical error which on actual trial has
discovered itself. And if we except the observations which New
Jersey was led to make, rather by her local situation, than by her
peculiar foresight, it may be questioned whether a single suggestion
was of sufficient moment to justify a revision of the system. There
is abundant reason, nevertheless, to suppose that immaterial as
these objections were, they would have been adhered to with a very
dangerous inflexibility, in some States, had not a zeal for their
opinions and supposed interests been stifled by the more powerful
sentiment of self-preservation. One State, we may remember,
persisted for several years in refusing her concurrence, although
the enemy remained the whole period at our gates, or rather in the
very bowels of our country. Nor was her pliancy in the end effected
by a less motive, than the fear of being chargeable with protracting
the public calamities, and endangering the event of the contest.
Every candid reader will make the proper reflections on these
important facts.
A patient who finds his disorder daily growing worse, and that an
efficacious remedy can no longer be delayed without extreme danger,
after coolly revolving his situation, and the characters of
different physicians, selects and calls in such of them as he judges
most capable of administering relief, and best entitled to his
confidence. The physicians attend; the case of the patient is
carefully examined; a consultation is held; they are unanimously
agreed that the symptoms are critical, but that the case, with
proper and timely relief, is so far from being desperate, that it
may be made to issue in an improvement of his constitution. They are
equally unanimous in prescribing the remedy, by which this happy
effect is to be produced. The prescription is no sooner made known,
however, than a number of persons interpose, and, without denying
the reality or danger of the disorder, assure the patient that the
prescription will be poison to his constitution, and forbid him,
under pain of certain death, to make use of it. Might not the
patient reasonably demand, before he ventured to follow this advice,
that the authors of it should at least agree among themselves on
some other remedy to be substituted? And if he found them differing
as much from one another as from his first counsellors, would he not
act prudently in trying the experiment unanimously recommended by
the latter, rather than be hearkening to those who could neither
deny the necessity of a speedy remedy, nor agree in proposing one?
Such a patient and in such a situation is America at this moment.
She has been sensible of her malady. She has obtained a regular and
unanimous advice from men of her own deliberate choice. And she is
warned by others against following this advice under pain of the
most fatal consequences. Do the monitors deny the reality of her
danger? No. Do they deny the necessity of some speedy and powerful
remedy? No. Are they agreed, are any two of them agreed, in their
objections to the remedy proposed, or in the proper one to be
substituted? Let them speak for themselves. This one tells us that
the proposed Constitution ought to be rejected, because it is not a
confederation of the States, but a government over individuals.
Another admits that it ought to be a government over individuals to
a certain extent, but by no means to the extent proposed. A third
does not object to the government over individuals, or to the extent
proposed, but to the want of a bill of rights. A fourth concurs in
the absolute necessity of a bill of rights, but contends that it
ought to be declaratory, not of the personal rights of individuals,
but of the rights reserved to the States in their political
capacity. A fifth is of opinion that a bill of rights of any sort
would be superfluous and misplaced, and that the plan would be
unexceptionable but for the fatal power of regulating the times and
places of election. An objector in a large State exclaims loudly
against the unreasonable equality of representation in the Senate.
An objector in a small State is equally loud against the dangerous
inequality in the House of Representatives. From this quarter, we
are alarmed with the amazing expense, from the number of persons who
are to administer the new government. From another quarter, and
sometimes from the same quarter, on another occasion, the cry is
that the Congress will be but a shadow of a representation, and that
the government would be far less objectionable if the number and the
expense were doubled. A patriot in a State that does not import or
export, discerns insuperable objections against the power of direct
taxation. The patriotic adversary in a State of great exports and
imports, is not less dissatisfied that the whole burden of taxes may
be thrown on consumption. This politician discovers in the
Constitution a direct and irresistible tendency to monarchy; that is
equally sure it will end in aristocracy. Another is puzzled to say
which of these shapes it will ultimately assume, but sees clearly it
must be one or other of them; whilst a fourth is not wanting, who
with no less confidence affirms that the Constitution is so far from
having a bias towards either of these dangers, that the weight on
that side will not be sufficient to keep it upright and firm against
its opposite propensities. With another class of adversaries to the
Constitution the language is that the legislative, executive, and
judiciary departments are intermixed in such a manner as to
contradict all the ideas of regular government and all the requisite
precautions in favor of liberty. Whilst this objection circulates in
vague and general expressions, there are but a few who lend their
sanction to it. Let each one come forward with his particular
explanation, and scarce any two are exactly agreed upon the subject.
In the eyes of one the junction of the Senate with the President in
the responsible function of appointing to offices, instead of
vesting this executive power in the Executive alone, is the vicious
part of the organization. To another, the exclusion of the House of
Representatives, whose numbers alone could be a due security against
corruption and partiality in the exercise of such a power, is
equally obnoxious. With another, the admission of the President into
any share of a power which ever must be a dangerous engine in the
hands of the executive magistrate, is an unpardonable violation of
the maxims of republican jealousy. No part of the arrangement,
according to some, is more inadmissible than the trial of
impeachments by the Senate, which is alternately a member both of
the legislative and executive departments, when this power so
evidently belonged to the judiciary department. "We concur fully,"
reply others, "in the objection to this part of the plan, but we can
never agree that a reference of impeachments to the judiciary
authority would be an amendment of the error. Our principal dislike
to the organization arises from the extensive powers already lodged
in that department." Even among the zealous patrons of a council of
state the most irreconcilable variance is discovered concerning the
mode in which it ought to be constituted. The demand of one
gentleman is, that the council should consist of a small number to
be appointed by the most numerous branch of the legislature. Another
would prefer a larger number, and considers it as a fundamental
condition that the appointment should be made by the President
himself.
As it can give no umbrage to the writers against the plan of the
federal Constitution, let us suppose, that as they are the most
zealous, so they are also the most sagacious, of those who think the
late convention were unequal to the task assigned them, and that a
wiser and better plan might and ought to be substituted. Let us
further suppose that their country should concur, both in this
favorable opinion of their merits, and in their unfavorable opinion
of the convention; and should accordingly proceed to form them into
a second convention, with full powers, and for the express purpose
of revising and remoulding the work of the first. Were the
experiment to be seriously made, though it required some effort to
view it seriously even in fiction, I leave it to be decided by the
sample of opinions just exhibited, whether, with all their enmity to
their predecessors, they would, in any one point, depart so widely
from their example, as in the discord and ferment that would mark
their own deliberations; and whether the Constitution, now before
the public, would not stand as fair a chance for immortality, as
Lycurgus gave to that of Sparta, by making its change to depend on
his own return from exile and death, if it were to be immediately
adopted, and were to continue in force, not until a BETTER, but
until ANOTHER should be agreed upon by this new assembly of
lawgivers.
It is a matter both of wonder and regret, that those who raise so
many objections against the new Constitution should never call to
mind the defects of that which is to be exchanged for it. It is not
necessary that the former should be perfect; it is sufficient that
the latter is more imperfect. No man would refuse to give brass for
silver or gold, because the latter had some alloy in it. No man
would refuse to quit a shattered and tottering habitation for a firm
and commodious building, because the latter had not a porch to it,
or because some of the rooms might be a little larger or smaller, or
the ceilings a little higher or lower than his fancy would have
planned them. But waiving illustrations of this sort, is it not
manifest that most of the capital objections urged against the new
system lie with tenfold weight against the existing Confederation?
Is an indefinite power to raise money dangerous in the hands of the
federal government? The present Congress can make requisitions to
any amount they please, and the States are constitutionally bound to
furnish them; they can emit bills of credit as long as they will pay
for the paper; they can borrow, both abroad and at home, as long as
a shilling will be lent. Is an indefinite power to raise troops
dangerous? The Confederation gives to Congress that power also; and
they have already begun to make use of it. Is it improper and unsafe
to intermix the different powers of government in the same body of
men? Congress, a single body of men, are the sole depositary of all
the federal powers. Is it particularly dangerous to give the keys of
the treasury, and the command of the army, into the same hands? The
Confederation places them both in the hands of Congress. Is a bill
of rights essential to liberty? The Confederation has no bill of
rights. Is it an objection against the new Constitution, that it
empowers the Senate, with the concurrence of the Executive, to make
treaties which are to be the laws of the land? The existing
Congress, without any such control, can make treaties which they
themselves have declared, and most of the States have recognized, to
be the supreme law of the land. Is the importation of slaves
permitted by the new Constitution for twenty years? By the old it is
permitted forever.
I shall be told, that however dangerous this mixture of powers may
be in theory, it is rendered harmless by the dependence of Congress
on the State for the means of carrying them into practice; that
however large the mass of powers may be, it is in fact a lifeless
mass. Then, say I, in the first place, that the Confederation is
chargeable with the still greater folly of declaring certain powers
in the federal government to be absolutely necessary, and at the
same time rendering them absolutely nugatory; and, in the next
place, that if the Union is to continue, and no better government be
substituted, effective powers must either be granted to, or assumed
by, the existing Congress; in either of which events, the contrast
just stated will hold good. But this is not all. Out of this
lifeless mass has already grown an excrescent power, which tends to
realize all the dangers that can be apprehended from a defective
construction of the supreme government of the Union. It is now no
longer a point of speculation and hope, that the Western territory
is a mine of vast wealth to the United States; and although it is
not of such a nature as to extricate them from their present
distresses, or for some time to come, to yield any regular supplies
for the public expenses, yet must it hereafter be able, under proper
management, both to effect a gradual discharge of the domestic debt,
and to furnish, for a certain period, liberal tributes to the
federal treasury. A very large proportion of this fund has been
already surrendered by individual States; and it may with reason be
expected that the remaining States will not persist in withholding
similar proofs of their equity and generosity. We may calculate,
therefore, that a rich and fertile country, of an area equal to the
inhabited extent of the United States, will soon become a national
stock. Congress have assumed the administration of this stock. They
have begun to render it productive. Congress have undertaken to do
more: they have proceeded to form new States, to erect temporary
governments, to appoint officers for them, and to prescribe the
conditions on which such States shall be admitted into the
Confederacy. All this has been done; and done without the least
color of constitutional authority. Yet no blame has been whispered;
no alarm has been sounded. A GREAT and INDEPENDENT fund of revenue
is passing into the hands of a SINGLE BODY of men, who can RAISE
TROOPS to an INDEFINITE NUMBER, and appropriate money to their
support for an INDEFINITE PERIOD OF TIME. And yet there are men, who
have not only been silent spectators of this prospect, but who are
advocates for the system which exhibits it; and, at the same time,
urge against the new system the objections which we have heard.
Would they not act with more consistency, in urging the
establishment of the latter, as no less necessary to guard the Union
against the future powers and resources of a body constructed like
the existing Congress, than to save it from the dangers threatened
by the present impotency of that Assembly?
I mean not, by any thing here said, to throw censure on the measures
which have been pursued by Congress. I am sensible they could not
have done otherwise. The public interest, the necessity of the case,
imposed upon them the task of overleaping their constitutional
limits. But is not the fact an alarming proof of the danger
resulting from a government which does not possess regular powers
commensurate to its objects? A dissolution or usurpation is the
dreadful dilemma to which it is continually exposed.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 39.
The Conformity of the Plan to Republican Principles
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 16, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE last paper having concluded the observations which were meant to
introduce a candid survey of the plan of government reported by the
convention, we now proceed to the execution of that part of our
undertaking.
The first question that offers itself is, whether the general form
and aspect of the government be strictly republican. It is evident
that no other form would be reconcilable with the genius of the
people of America; with the fundamental principles of the
Revolution; or with that honorable determination which animates
every votary of freedom, to rest all our political experiments on
the capacity of mankind for self-government. If the plan of the
convention, therefore, be found to depart from the republican
character, its advocates must abandon it as no longer defensible.
What, then, are the distinctive characters of the republican form?
Were an answer to this question to be sought, not by recurring to
principles, but in the application of the term by political writers,
to the constitution of different States, no satisfactory one would
ever be found. Holland, in which no particle of the supreme
authority is derived from the people, has passed almost universally
under the denomination of a republic. The same title has been
bestowed on Venice, where absolute power over the great body of the
people is exercised, in the most absolute manner, by a small body of
hereditary nobles. Poland, which is a mixture of aristocracy and of
monarchy in their worst forms, has been dignified with the same
appellation. The government of England, which has one republican
branch only, combined with an hereditary aristocracy and monarchy,
has, with equal impropriety, been frequently placed on the list of
republics. These examples, which are nearly as dissimilar to each
other as to a genuine republic, show the extreme inaccuracy with
which the term has been used in political disquisitions.
If we resort for a criterion to the different principles on which
different forms of government are established, we may define a
republic to be, or at least may bestow that name on, a government
which derives all its powers directly or indirectly from the great
body of the people, and is administered by persons holding their
offices during pleasure, for a limited period, or during good
behavior. It is ESSENTIAL to such a government that it be derived
from the great body of the society, not from an inconsiderable
proportion, or a favored class of it; otherwise a handful of
tyrannical nobles, exercising their oppressions by a delegation of
their powers, might aspire to the rank of republicans, and claim for
their government the honorable title of republic. It is SUFFICIENT
for such a government that the persons administering it be
appointed, either directly or indirectly, by the people; and that
they hold their appointments by either of the tenures just
specified; otherwise every government in the United States, as well
as every other popular government that has been or can be well
organized or well executed, would be degraded from the republican
character. According to the constitution of every State in the
Union, some or other of the officers of government are appointed
indirectly only by the people. According to most of them, the chief
magistrate himself is so appointed. And according to one, this mode
of appointment is extended to one of the co-ordinate branches of the
legislature. According to all the constitutions, also, the tenure of
the highest offices is extended to a definite period, and in many
instances, both within the legislative and executive departments, to
a period of years. According to the provisions of most of the
constitutions, again, as well as according to the most respectable
and received opinions on the subject, the members of the judiciary
department are to retain their offices by the firm tenure of good
behavior.
On comparing the Constitution planned by the convention with the
standard here fixed, we perceive at once that it is, in the most
rigid sense, conformable to it. The House of Representatives, like
that of one branch at least of all the State legislatures, is
elected immediately by the great body of the people. The Senate,
like the present Congress, and the Senate of Maryland, derives its
appointment indirectly from the people. The President is indirectly
derived from the choice of the people, according to the example in
most of the States. Even the judges, with all other officers of the
Union, will, as in the several States, be the choice, though a
remote choice, of the people themselves, the duration of the
appointments is equally conformable to the republican standard, and
to the model of State constitutions The House of Representatives is
periodically elective, as in all the States; and for the period of
two years, as in the State of South Carolina. The Senate is
elective, for the period of six years; which is but one year more
than the period of the Senate of Maryland, and but two more than
that of the Senates of New York and Virginia. The President is to
continue in office for the period of four years; as in New York and
Delaware, the chief magistrate is elected for three years, and in
South Carolina for two years. In the other States the election is
annual. In several of the States, however, no constitutional
provision is made for the impeachment of the chief magistrate. And
in Delaware and Virginia he is not impeachable till out of office.
The President of the United States is impeachable at any time during
his continuance in office. The tenure by which the judges are to
hold their places, is, as it unquestionably ought to be, that of
good behavior. The tenure of the ministerial offices generally, will
be a subject of legal regulation, conformably to the reason of the
case and the example of the State constitutions.
Could any further proof be required of the republican complexion of
this system, the most decisive one might be found in its absolute
prohibition of titles of nobility, both under the federal and the
State governments; and in its express guaranty of the republican
form to each of the latter.
"But it was not sufficient," say the adversaries of the proposed
Constitution, "for the convention to adhere to the republican form.
They ought, with equal care, to have preserved the FEDERAL form,
which regards the Union as a CONFEDERACY of sovereign states;
instead of which, they have framed a NATIONAL government, which
regards the Union as a CONSOLIDATION of the States." And it is asked
by what authority this bold and radical innovation was undertaken?
The handle which has been made of this objection requires that it
should be examined with some precision.
Without inquiring into the accuracy of the distinction on which the
objection is founded, it will be necessary to a just estimate of its
force, first, to ascertain the real character of the government in
question; secondly, to inquire how far the convention were
authorized to propose such a government; and thirdly, how far the
duty they owed to their country could supply any defect of regular
authority.
First. In order to ascertain the real character of the government,
it may be considered in relation to the foundation on which it is to
be established; to the sources from which its ordinary powers are to
be drawn; to the operation of those powers; to the extent of them;
and to the authority by which future changes in the government are
to be introduced.
On examining the first relation, it appears, on one hand, that the
Constitution is to be founded on the assent and ratification of the
people of America, given by deputies elected for the special
purpose; but, on the other, that this assent and ratification is to
be given by the people, not as individuals composing one entire
nation, but as composing the distinct and independent States to
which they respectively belong. It is to be the assent and
ratification of the several States, derived from the supreme
authority in each State, the authority of the people themselves. The
act, therefore, establishing the Constitution, will not be a
NATIONAL, but a FEDERAL act.
That it will be a federal and not a national act, as these terms are
understood by the objectors; the act of the people, as forming so
many independent States, not as forming one aggregate nation, is
obvious from this single consideration, that it is to result neither
from the decision of a MAJORITY of the people of the Union, nor from
that of a MAJORITY of the States. It must result from the UNANIMOUS
assent of the several States that are parties to it, differing no
otherwise from their ordinary assent than in its being expressed,
not by the legislative authority, but by that of the people
themselves. Were the people regarded in this transaction as forming
one nation, the will of the majority of the whole people of the
United States would bind the minority, in the same manner as the
majority in each State must bind the minority; and the will of the
majority must be determined either by a comparison of the individual
votes, or by considering the will of the majority of the States as
evidence of the will of a majority of the people of the United
States. Neither of these rules have been adopted. Each State, in
ratifying the Constitution, is considered as a sovereign body,
independent of all others, and only to be bound by its own voluntary
act. In this relation, then, the new Constitution will, if
established, be a FEDERAL, and not a NATIONAL constitution.
The next relation is, to the sources from which the ordinary powers
of government are to be derived. The House of Representatives will
derive its powers from the people of America; and the people will be
represented in the same proportion, and on the same principle, as
they are in the legislature of a particular State. So far the
government is NATIONAL, not FEDERAL. The Senate, on the other hand,
will derive its powers from the States, as political and coequal
societies; and these will be represented on the principle of
equality in the Senate, as they now are in the existing Congress. So
far the government is FEDERAL, not NATIONAL. The executive power
will be derived from a very compound source. The immediate election
of the President is to be made by the States in their political
characters. The votes allotted to them are in a compound ratio,
which considers them partly as distinct and coequal societies,
partly as unequal members of the same society. The eventual
election, again, is to be made by that branch of the legislature
which consists of the national representatives; but in this
particular act they are to be thrown into the form of individual
delegations, from so many distinct and coequal bodies politic. From
this aspect of the government it appears to be of a mixed character,
presenting at least as many FEDERAL as NATIONAL features.
The difference between a federal and national government, as it
relates to the OPERATION OF THE GOVERNMENT, is supposed to consist
in this, that in the former the powers operate on the political
bodies composing the Confederacy, in their political capacities; in
the latter, on the individual citizens composing the nation, in
their individual capacities. On trying the Constitution by this
criterion, it falls under the NATIONAL, not the FEDERAL character;
though perhaps not so completely as has been understood. In several
cases, and particularly in the trial of controversies to which
States may be parties, they must be viewed and proceeded against in
their collective and political capacities only. So far the national
countenance of the government on this side seems to be disfigured by
a few federal features. But this blemish is perhaps unavoidable in
any plan; and the operation of the government on the people, in
their individual capacities, in its ordinary and most essential
proceedings, may, on the whole, designate it, in this relation, a
NATIONAL government.
But if the government be national with regard to the OPERATION of
its powers, it changes its aspect again when we contemplate it in
relation to the EXTENT of its powers. The idea of a national
government involves in it, not only an authority over the individual
citizens, but an indefinite supremacy over all persons and things,
so far as they are objects of lawful government. Among a people
consolidated into one nation, this supremacy is completely vested in
the national legislature. Among communities united for particular
purposes, it is vested partly in the general and partly in the
municipal legislatures. In the former case, all local authorities
are subordinate to the supreme; and may be controlled, directed, or
abolished by it at pleasure. In the latter, the local or municipal
authorities form distinct and independent portions of the supremacy,
no more subject, within their respective spheres, to the general
authority, than the general authority is subject to them, within its
own sphere. In this relation, then, the proposed government cannot
be deemed a NATIONAL one; since its jurisdiction extends to certain
enumerated objects only, and leaves to the several States a
residuary and inviolable sovereignty over all other objects. It is
true that in controversies relating to the boundary between the two
jurisdictions, the tribunal which is ultimately to decide, is to be
established under the general government. But this does not change
the principle of the case. The decision is to be impartially made,
according to the rules of the Constitution; and all the usual and
most effectual precautions are taken to secure this impartiality.
Some such tribunal is clearly essential to prevent an appeal to the
sword and a dissolution of the compact; and that it ought to be
established under the general rather than under the local
governments, or, to speak more properly, that it could be safely
established under the first alone, is a position not likely to be
combated.
If we try the Constitution by its last relation to the authority by
which amendments are to be made, we find it neither wholly NATIONAL
nor wholly FEDERAL. Were it wholly national, the supreme and
ultimate authority would reside in the MAJORITY of the people of the
Union; and this authority would be competent at all times, like that
of a majority of every national society, to alter or abolish its
established government. Were it wholly federal, on the other hand,
the concurrence of each State in the Union would be essential to
every alteration that would be binding on all. The mode provided by
the plan of the convention is not founded on either of these
principles. In requiring more than a majority, and principles. In
requiring more than a majority, and particularly in computing the
proportion by STATES, not by CITIZENS, it departs from the NATIONAL
and advances towards the FEDERAL character; in rendering the
concurrence of less than the whole number of States sufficient, it
loses again the FEDERAL and partakes of the NATIONAL character.
The proposed Constitution, therefore, is, in strictness, neither a
national nor a federal Constitution, but a composition of both. In
its foundation it is federal, not national; in the sources from
which the ordinary powers of the government are drawn, it is partly
federal and partly national; in the operation of these powers, it is
national, not federal; in the extent of them, again, it is federal,
not national; and, finally, in the authoritative mode of introducing
amendments, it is neither wholly federal nor wholly national.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 40.
On the Powers of the Convention to Form a Mixed Government
Examined and Sustained.
For the New York Packet. Friday, January 18, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND point to be examined is, whether the convention were
authorized to frame and propose this mixed Constitution.
The powers of the convention ought, in strictness, to be determined
by an inspection of the commissions given to the members by their
respective constituents. As all of these, however, had reference,
either to the recommendation from the meeting at Annapolis, in
September, 1786, or to that from Congress, in February, 1787, it
will be sufficient to recur to these particular acts.
The act from Annapolis recommends the "appointment of commissioners
to take into consideration the situation of the United States; to
devise SUCH FURTHER PROVISIONS as shall appear to them necessary to
render the Constitution of the federal government ADEQUATE TO THE
EXIGENCIES OF THE UNION; and to report such an act for that purpose,
to the United States in Congress assembled, as when agreed to by
them, and afterwards confirmed by the legislature of every State,
will effectually provide for the same."
The recommendatory act of Congress is in the words following:
"WHEREAS, There is provision in the articles of Confederation and
perpetual Union, for making alterations therein, by the assent of a
Congress of the United States, and of the legislatures of the
several States; and whereas experience hath evinced, that there are
defects in the present Confederation; as a mean to remedy which,
several of the States, and PARTICULARLY THE STATE OF NEW YORK, by
express instructions to their delegates in Congress, have suggested
a convention for the purposes expressed in the following resolution;
and such convention appearing to be the most probable mean of
establishing in these States A FIRM NATIONAL GOVERNMENT:
"Resolved, That in the opinion of Congress it is expedient, that on
the second Monday of May next a convention of delegates, who shall
have been appointed by the several States, be held at Philadelphia,
for the sole and express purpose OF REVISING THE ARTICLES OF
CONFEDERATION, and reporting to Congress and the several
legislatures such ALTERATIONS AND PROVISIONS THEREIN, as shall, when
agreed to in Congress, and confirmed by the States, render the
federal Constitution ADEQUATE TO THE EXIGENCIES OF GOVERNMENT AND
THE PRESERVATION OF THE UNION."
From these two acts, it appears, 1st, that the object of the
convention was to establish, in these States, A FIRM NATIONAL
GOVERNMENT; 2d, that this government was to be such as would be
ADEQUATE TO THE EXIGENCIES OF GOVERNMENT and THE PRESERVATION OF THE
UNION; 3d, that these purposes were to be effected by ALTERATIONS
AND PROVISIONS IN THE ARTICLES OF CONFEDERATION, as it is expressed
in the act of Congress, or by SUCH FURTHER PROVISIONS AS SHOULD
APPEAR NECESSARY, as it stands in the recommendatory act from
Annapolis; 4th, that the alterations and provisions were to be
reported to Congress, and to the States, in order to be agreed to by
the former and confirmed by the latter.
From a comparison and fair construction of these several modes of
expression, is to be deduced the authority under which the
convention acted. They were to frame a NATIONAL GOVERNMENT, adequate
to the EXIGENCIES OF GOVERNMENT, and OF THE UNION; and to reduce the
articles of Confederation into such form as to accomplish these
purposes.
There are two rules of construction, dictated by plain reason, as
well as founded on legal axioms. The one is, that every part of the
expression ought, if possible, to be allowed some meaning, and be
made to conspire to some common end. The other is, that where the
several parts cannot be made to coincide, the less important should
give way to the more important part; the means should be sacrificed
to the end, rather than the end to the means.
Suppose, then, that the expressions defining the authority of the
convention were irreconcilably at variance with each other; that a
NATIONAL and ADEQUATE GOVERNMENT could not possibly, in the judgment
of the convention, be affected by ALTERATIONS and PROVISIONS in the
ARTICLES OF CONFEDERATION; which part of the definition ought to
have been embraced, and which rejected? Which was the more
important, which the less important part? Which the end; which the
means? Let the most scrupulous expositors of delegated powers; let
the most inveterate objectors against those exercised by the
convention, answer these questions. Let them declare, whether it was
of most importance to the happiness of the people of America, that
the articles of Confederation should be disregarded, and an adequate
government be provided, and the Union preserved; or that an adequate
government should be omitted, and the articles of Confederation
preserved. Let them declare, whether the preservation of these
articles was the end, for securing which a reform of the government
was to be introduced as the means; or whether the establishment of a
government, adequate to the national happiness, was the end at which
these articles themselves originally aimed, and to which they ought,
as insufficient means, to have been sacrificed.
But is it necessary to suppose that these expressions are absolutely
irreconcilable to each other; that no ALTERATIONS or PROVISIONS in
the articles of the confederation could possibly mould them into a
national and adequate government; into such a government as has been
proposed by the convention?
No stress, it is presumed, will, in this case, be laid on the TITLE;
a change of that could never be deemed an exercise of ungranted
power. ALTERATIONS in the body of the instrument are expressly
authorized. NEW PROVISIONS therein are also expressly authorized.
Here then is a power to change the title; to insert new articles; to
alter old ones. Must it of necessity be admitted that this power is
infringed, so long as a part of the old articles remain? Those who
maintain the affirmative ought at least to mark the boundary between
authorized and usurped innovations; between that degree of change
which lies within the compass of ALTERATIONS AND FURTHER PROVISIONS,
and that which amounts to a TRANSMUTATION of the government. Will it
be said that the alterations ought not to have touched the substance
of the Confederation? The States would never have appointed a
convention with so much solemnity, nor described its objects with so
much latitude, if some SUBSTANTIAL reform had not been in
contemplation. Will it be said that the FUNDAMENTAL PRINCIPLES of
the Confederation were not within the purview of the convention, and
ought not to have been varied? I ask, What are these principles? Do
they require that, in the establishment of the Constitution, the
States should be regarded as distinct and independent sovereigns?
They are so regarded by the Constitution proposed. Do they require
that the members of the government should derive their appointment
from the legislatures, not from the people of the States? One branch
of the new government is to be appointed by these legislatures; and
under the Confederation, the delegates to Congress MAY ALL be
appointed immediately by the people, and in two States(1) are
actually so appointed. Do they require that the powers of the
government should act on the States, and not immediately on
individuals? In some instances, as has been shown, the powers of the
new government will act on the States in their collective
characters. In some instances, also, those of the existing
government act immediately on individuals. In cases of capture; of
piracy; of the post office; of coins, weights, and measures; of
trade with the Indians; of claims under grants of land by different
States; and, above all, in the case of trials by courts-marshal in
the army and navy, by which death may be inflicted without the
intervention of a jury, or even of a civil magistrate; in all these
cases the powers of the Confederation operate immediately on the
persons and interests of individual citizens. Do these fundamental
principles require, particularly, that no tax should be levied
without the intermediate agency of the States? The Confederation
itself authorizes a direct tax, to a certain extent, on the post
office. The power of coinage has been so construed by Congress as to
levy a tribute immediately from that source also. But pretermitting
these instances, was it not an acknowledged object of the convention
and the universal expectation of the people, that the regulation of
trade should be submitted to the general government in such a form
as would render it an immediate source of general revenue? Had not
Congress repeatedly recommended this measure as not inconsistent
with the fundamental principles of the Confederation? Had not every
State but one; had not New York herself, so far complied with the
plan of Congress as to recognize the PRINCIPLE of the innovation? Do
these principles, in fine, require that the powers of the general
government should be limited, and that, beyond this limit, the
States should be left in possession of their sovereignty and
independence? We have seen that in the new government, as in the
old, the general powers are limited; and that the States, in all
unenumerated cases, are left in the enjoyment of their sovereign and
independent jurisdiction.
The truth is, that the great principles of the Constitution proposed
by the convention may be considered less as absolutely new, than as
the expansion of principles which are found in the articles of
Confederation. The misfortune under the latter system has been, that
these principles are so feeble and confined as to justify all the
charges of inefficiency which have been urged against it, and to
require a degree of enlargement which gives to the new system the
aspect of an entire transformation of the old.
In one particular it is admitted that the convention have departed
from the tenor of their commission. Instead of reporting a plan
requiring the confirmation OF THE LEGISLATURES OF ALL THE STATES,
they have reported a plan which is to be confirmed by the PEOPLE,
and may be carried into effect by NINE STATES ONLY. It is worthy of
remark that this objection, though the most plausible, has been the
least urged in the publications which have swarmed against the
convention. The forbearance can only have proceeded from an
irresistible conviction of the absurdity of subjecting the fate of
twelve States to the perverseness or corruption of a thirteenth;
from the example of inflexible opposition given by a MAJORITY of one
sixtieth of the people of America to a measure approved and called
for by the voice of twelve States, comprising fifty-nine sixtieths
of the people an example still fresh in the memory and indignation
of every citizen who has felt for the wounded honor and prosperity
of his country. As this objection, therefore, has been in a manner
waived by those who have criticised the powers of the convention, I
dismiss it without further observation.
The THIRD point to be inquired into is, how far considerations of
duty arising out of the case itself could have supplied any defect
of regular authority.
In the preceding inquiries the powers of the convention have been
analyzed and tried with the same rigor, and by the same rules, as if
they had been real and final powers for the establishment of a
Constitution for the United States. We have seen in what manner they
have borne the trial even on that supposition. It is time now to
recollect that the powers were merely advisory and recommendatory;
that they were so meant by the States, and so understood by the
convention; and that the latter have accordingly planned and
proposed a Constitution which is to be of no more consequence than
the paper on which it is written, unless it be stamped with the
approbation of those to whom it is addressed. This reflection places
the subject in a point of view altogether different, and will enable
us to judge with propriety of the course taken by the convention.
Let us view the ground on which the convention stood. It may be
collected from their proceedings, that they were deeply and
unanimously impressed with the crisis, which had led their country
almost with one voice to make so singular and solemn an experiment
for correcting the errors of a system by which this crisis had been
produced; that they were no less deeply and unanimously convinced
that such a reform as they have proposed was absolutely necessary to
effect the purposes of their appointment. It could not be unknown to
them that the hopes and expectations of the great body of citizens,
throughout this great empire, were turned with the keenest anxiety
to the event of their deliberations. They had every reason to
believe that the contrary sentiments agitated the minds and bosoms
of every external and internal foe to the liberty and prosperity of
the United States. They had seen in the origin and progress of the
experiment, the alacrity with which the PROPOSITION, made by a
single State (Virginia), towards a partial amendment of the
Confederation, had been attended to and promoted. They had seen the
LIBERTY ASSUMED by a VERY FEW deputies from a VERY FEW States,
convened at Annapolis, of recommending a great and critical object,
wholly foreign to their commission, not only justified by the public
opinion, but actually carried into effect by twelve out of the
thirteen States. They had seen, in a variety of instances,
assumptions by Congress, not only of recommendatory, but of
operative, powers, warranted, in the public estimation, by occasions
and objects infinitely less urgent than those by which their conduct
was to be governed. They must have reflected, that in all great
changes of established governments, forms ought to give way to
substance; that a rigid adherence in such cases to the former, would
render nominal and nugatory the transcendent and precious right of
the people to "abolish or alter their governments as to them shall
seem most likely to effect their safety and happiness,"(2) since it
is impossible for the people spontaneously and universally to move
in concert towards their object; and it is therefore essential that
such changes be instituted by some INFORMAL AND UNAUTHORIZED
PROPOSITIONS, made by some patriotic and respectable citizen or
number of citizens. They must have recollected that it was by this
irregular and assumed privilege of proposing to the people plans for
their safety and happiness, that the States were first united
against the danger with which they were threatened by their ancient
government; that committees and congresses were formed for
concentrating their efforts and defending their rights; and that
CONVENTIONS were ELECTED in THE SEVERAL STATES for establishing the
constitutions under which they are now governed; nor could it have
been forgotten that no little ill-timed scruples, no zeal for
adhering to ordinary forms, were anywhere seen, except in those who
wished to indulge, under these masks, their secret enmity to the
substance contended for. They must have borne in mind, that as the
plan to be framed and proposed was to be submitted TO THE PEOPLE
THEMSELVES, the disapprobation of this supreme authority would
destroy it forever; its approbation blot out antecedent errors and
irregularities. It might even have occurred to them, that where a
disposition to cavil prevailed, their neglect to execute the degree
of power vested in them, and still more their recommendation of any
measure whatever, not warranted by their commission, would not less
excite animadversion, than a recommendation at once of a measure
fully commensurate to the national exigencies.
Had the convention, under all these impressions, and in the midst of
all these considerations, instead of exercising a manly confidence
in their country, by whose confidence they had been so peculiarly
distinguished, and of pointing out a system capable, in their
judgment, of securing its happiness, taken the cold and sullen
resolution of disappointing its ardent hopes, of sacrificing
substance to forms, of committing the dearest interests of their
country to the uncertainties of delay and the hazard of events, let
me ask the man who can raise his mind to one elevated conception,
who can awaken in his bosom one patriotic emotion, what judgment
ought to have been pronounced by the impartial world, by the friends
of mankind, by every virtuous citizen, on the conduct and character
of this assembly? Or if there be a man whose propensity to condemn
is susceptible of no control, let me then ask what sentence he has
in reserve for the twelve States who USURPED THE POWER of sending
deputies to the convention, a body utterly unknown to their
constitutions; for Congress, who recommended the appointment of this
body, equally unknown to the Confederation; and for the State of New
York, in particular, which first urged and then complied with this
unauthorized interposition?
But that the objectors may be disarmed of every pretext, it shall be
granted for a moment that the convention were neither authorized by
their commission, nor justified by circumstances in proposing a
Constitution for their country: does it follow that the Constitution
ought, for that reason alone, to be rejected? If, according to the
noble precept, it be lawful to accept good advice even from an
enemy, shall we set the ignoble example of refusing such advice even
when it is offered by our friends? The prudent inquiry, in all
cases, ought surely to be, not so much FROM WHOM the advice comes,
as whether the advice be GOOD.
The sum of what has been here advanced and proved is, that the
charge against the convention of exceeding their powers, except in
one instance little urged by the objectors, has no foundation to
support it; that if they had exceeded their powers, they were not
only warranted, but required, as the confidential servants of their
country, by the circumstances in which they were placed, to exercise
the liberty which they assume; and that finally, if they had
violated both their powers and their obligations, in proposing a
Constitution, this ought nevertheless to be embraced, if it be
calculated to accomplish the views and happiness of the people of
America. How far this character is due to the Constitution, is the
subject under investigation.
PUBLIUS
1. Connecticut and Rhode Island.
2. Declaration of Independence.
FEDERALIST No. 41.
General View of the Powers Conferred by The Constitution
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January 19, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE Constitution proposed by the convention may be considered under
two general points of view. The FIRST relates to the sum or quantity
of power which it vests in the government, including the restraints
imposed on the States. The SECOND, to the particular structure of
the government, and the distribution of this power among its several
branches.
Under the FIRST view of the subject, two important questions arise:
1. Whether any part of the powers transferred to the general
government be unnecessary or improper? 2. Whether the entire mass of
them be dangerous to the portion of jurisdiction left in the several
States?
Is the aggregate power of the general government greater than ought
to have been vested in it? This is the FIRST question.
It cannot have escaped those who have attended with candor to the
arguments employed against the extensive powers of the government,
that the authors of them have very little considered how far these
powers were necessary means of attaining a necessary end. They have
chosen rather to dwell on the inconveniences which must be
unavoidably blended with all political advantages; and on the
possible abuses which must be incident to every power or trust, of
which a beneficial use can be made. This method of handling the
subject cannot impose on the good sense of the people of America. It
may display the subtlety of the writer; it may open a boundless
field for rhetoric and declamation; it may inflame the passions of
the unthinking, and may confirm the prejudices of the misthinking:
but cool and candid people will at once reflect, that the purest of
human blessings must have a portion of alloy in them; that the
choice must always be made, if not of the lesser evil, at least of
the GREATER, not the PERFECT, good; and that in every political
institution, a power to advance the public happiness involves a
discretion which may be misapplied and abused. They will see,
therefore, that in all cases where power is to be conferred, the
point first to be decided is, whether such a power be necessary to
the public good; as the next will be, in case of an affirmative
decision, to guard as effectually as possible against a perversion
of the power to the public detriment.
That we may form a correct judgment on this subject, it will be
proper to review the several powers conferred on the government of
the Union; and that this may be the more conveniently done they may
be reduced into different classes as they relate to the following
different objects: 1. Security against foreign danger; 2. Regulation
of the intercourse with foreign nations; 3. Maintenance of harmony
and proper intercourse among the States; 4. Certain miscellaneous
objects of general utility; 5. Restraint of the States from certain
injurious acts; 6. Provisions for giving due efficacy to all these
powers.
The powers falling within the FIRST class are those of declaring war
and granting letters of marque; of providing armies and fleets; of
regulating and calling forth the militia; of levying and borrowing
money.
Security against foreign danger is one of the primitive objects of
civil society. It is an avowed and essential object of the American
Union. The powers requisite for attaining it must be effectually
confided to the federal councils.
Is the power of declaring war necessary? No man will answer this
question in the negative. It would be superfluous, therefore, to
enter into a proof of the affirmative. The existing Confederation
establishes this power in the most ample form.
Is the power of raising armies and equipping fleets necessary? This
is involved in the foregoing power. It is involved in the power of
self-defense.
But was it necessary to give an INDEFINITE POWER of raising TROOPS,
as well as providing fleets; and of maintaining both in PEACE, as
well as in WAR?
The answer to these questions has been too far anticipated in
another place to admit an extensive discussion of them in this
place. The answer indeed seems to be so obvious and conclusive as
scarcely to justify such a discussion in any place. With what color
of propriety could the force necessary for defense be limited by
those who cannot limit the force of offense? If a federal
Constitution could chain the ambition or set bounds to the exertions
of all other nations, then indeed might it prudently chain the
discretion of its own government, and set bounds to the exertions
for its own safety.
How could a readiness for war in time of peace be safely prohibited,
unless we could prohibit, in like manner, the preparations and
establishments of every hostile nation? The means of security can
only be regulated by the means and the danger of attack. They will,
in fact, be ever determined by these rules, and by no others. It is
in vain to oppose constitutional barriers to the impulse of
self-preservation. It is worse than in vain; because it plants in
the Constitution itself necessary usurpations of power, every
precedent of which is a germ of unnecessary and multiplied
repetitions. If one nation maintains constantly a disciplined army,
ready for the service of ambition or revenge, it obliges the most
pacific nations who may be within the reach of its enterprises to
take corresponding precautions. The fifteenth century was the
unhappy epoch of military establishments in the time of peace. They
were introduced by Charles VII. of France. All Europe has followed,
or been forced into, the example. Had the example not been followed
by other nations, all Europe must long ago have worn the chains of a
universal monarch. Were every nation except France now to disband
its peace establishments, the same event might follow. The veteran
legions of Rome were an overmatch for the undisciplined valor of all
other nations and rendered her the mistress of the world.
Not the less true is it, that the liberties of Rome proved the final
victim to her military triumphs; and that the liberties of Europe,
as far as they ever existed, have, with few exceptions, been the
price of her military establishments. A standing force, therefore,
is a dangerous, at the same time that it may be a necessary,
provision. On the smallest scale it has its inconveniences. On an
extensive scale its consequences may be fatal. On any scale it is an
object of laudable circumspection and precaution. A wise nation will
combine all these considerations; and, whilst it does not rashly
preclude itself from any resource which may become essential to its
safety, will exert all its prudence in diminishing both the
necessity and the danger of resorting to one which may be
inauspicious to its liberties.
The clearest marks of this prudence are stamped on the proposed
Constitution. The Union itself, which it cements and secures,
destroys every pretext for a military establishment which could be
dangerous. America united, with a handful of troops, or without a
single soldier, exhibits a more forbidding posture to foreign
ambition than America disunited, with a hundred thousand veterans
ready for combat. It was remarked, on a former occasion, that the
want of this pretext had saved the liberties of one nation in
Europe. Being rendered by her insular situation and her maritime
resources impregnable to the armies of her neighbors, the rulers of
Great Britain have never been able, by real or artificial dangers,
to cheat the public into an extensive peace establishment. The
distance of the United States from the powerful nations of the world
gives them the same happy security. A dangerous establishment can
never be necessary or plausible, so long as they continue a united
people. But let it never, for a moment, be forgotten that they are
indebted for this advantage to the Union alone. The moment of its
dissolution will be the date of a new order of things. The fears of
the weaker, or the ambition of the stronger States, or
Confederacies, will set the same example in the New, as Charles VII.
did in the Old World. The example will be followed here from the
same motives which produced universal imitation there. Instead of
deriving from our situation the precious advantage which Great
Britain has derived from hers, the face of America will be but a
copy of that of the continent of Europe. It will present liberty
everywhere crushed between standing armies and perpetual taxes. The
fortunes of disunited America will be even more disastrous than
those of Europe. The sources of evil in the latter are confined to
her own limits. No superior powers of another quarter of the globe
intrigue among her rival nations, inflame their mutual animosities,
and render them the instruments of foreign ambition, jealousy, and
revenge. In America the miseries springing from her internal
jealousies, contentions, and wars, would form a part only of her
lot. A plentiful addition of evils would have their source in that
relation in which Europe stands to this quarter of the earth, and
which no other quarter of the earth bears to Europe.
This picture of the consequences of disunion cannot be too highly
colored, or too often exhibited. Every man who loves peace, every
man who loves his country, every man who loves liberty, ought to
have it ever before his eyes, that he may cherish in his heart a due
attachment to the Union of America, and be able to set a due value
on the means of preserving it.
Next to the effectual establishment of the Union, the best possible
precaution against danger from standing armies is a limitation of
the term for which revenue may be appropriated to their support.
This precaution the Constitution has prudently added. I will not
repeat here the observations which I flatter myself have placed this
subject in a just and satisfactory light. But it may not be improper
to take notice of an argument against this part of the Constitution,
which has been drawn from the policy and practice of Great Britain.
It is said that the continuance of an army in that kingdom requires
an annual vote of the legislature; whereas the American Constitution
has lengthened this critical period to two years. This is the form
in which the comparison is usually stated to the public: but is it a
just form? Is it a fair comparison? Does the British Constitution
restrain the parliamentary discretion to one year? Does the American
impose on the Congress appropriations for two years? On the
contrary, it cannot be unknown to the authors of the fallacy
themselves, that the British Constitution fixes no limit whatever to
the discretion of the legislature, and that the American ties down
the legislature to two years, as the longest admissible term.
Had the argument from the British example been truly stated, it
would have stood thus: The term for which supplies may be
appropriated to the army establishment, though unlimited by the
British Constitution, has nevertheless, in practice, been limited by
parliamentary discretion to a single year. Now, if in Great Britain,
where the House of Commons is elected for seven years; where so
great a proportion of the members are elected by so small a
proportion of the people; where the electors are so corrupted by the
representatives, and the representatives so corrupted by the Crown,
the representative body can possess a power to make appropriations
to the army for an indefinite term, without desiring, or without
daring, to extend the term beyond a single year, ought not suspicion
herself to blush, in pretending that the representatives of the
United States, elected FREELY by the WHOLE BODY of the people, every
SECOND YEAR, cannot be safely intrusted with the discretion over
such appropriations, expressly limited to the short period of TWO
YEARS?
A bad cause seldom fails to betray itself. Of this truth, the
management of the opposition to the federal government is an
unvaried exemplification. But among all the blunders which have been
committed, none is more striking than the attempt to enlist on that
side the prudent jealousy entertained by the people, of standing
armies. The attempt has awakened fully the public attention to that
important subject; and has led to investigations which must
terminate in a thorough and universal conviction, not only that the
constitution has provided the most effectual guards against danger
from that quarter, but that nothing short of a Constitution fully
adequate to the national defense and the preservation of the Union,
can save America from as many standing armies as it may be split
into States or Confederacies, and from such a progressive
augmentation, of these establishments in each, as will render them
as burdensome to the properties and ominous to the liberties of the
people, as any establishment that can become necessary, under a
united and efficient government, must be tolerable to the former and
safe to the latter.
The palpable necessity of the power to provide and maintain a navy
has protected that part of the Constitution against a spirit of
censure, which has spared few other parts. It must, indeed, be
numbered among the greatest blessings of America, that as her Union
will be the only source of her maritime strength, so this will be a
principal source of her security against danger from abroad. In this
respect our situation bears another likeness to the insular
advantage of Great Britain. The batteries most capable of repelling
foreign enterprises on our safety, are happily such as can never be
turned by a perfidious government against our liberties.
The inhabitants of the Atlantic frontier are all of them deeply
interested in this provision for naval protection, and if they have
hitherto been suffered to sleep quietly in their beds; if their
property has remained safe against the predatory spirit of
licentious adventurers; if their maritime towns have not yet been
compelled to ransom themselves from the terrors of a conflagration,
by yielding to the exactions of daring and sudden invaders, these
instances of good fortune are not to be ascribed to the capacity of
the existing government for the protection of those from whom it
claims allegiance, but to causes that are fugitive and fallacious.
If we except perhaps Virginia and Maryland, which are peculiarly
vulnerable on their eastern frontiers, no part of the Union ought to
feel more anxiety on this subject than New York. Her seacoast is
extensive. A very important district of the State is an island. The
State itself is penetrated by a large navigable river for more than
fifty leagues. The great emporium of its commerce, the great
reservoir of its wealth, lies every moment at the mercy of events,
and may almost be regarded as a hostage for ignominious compliances
with the dictates of a foreign enemy, or even with the rapacious
demands of pirates and barbarians. Should a war be the result of the
precarious situation of European affairs, and all the unruly
passions attending it be let loose on the ocean, our escape from
insults and depredations, not only on that element, but every part
of the other bordering on it, will be truly miraculous. In the
present condition of America, the States more immediately exposed to
these calamities have nothing to hope from the phantom of a general
government which now exists; and if their single resources were
equal to the task of fortifying themselves against the danger, the
object to be protected would be almost consumed by the means of
protecting them.
The power of regulating and calling forth the militia has been
already sufficiently vindicated and explained.
The power of levying and borrowing money, being the sinew of that
which is to be exerted in the national defense, is properly thrown
into the same class with it. This power, also, has been examined
already with much attention, and has, I trust, been clearly shown to
be necessary, both in the extent and form given to it by the
Constitution. I will address one additional reflection only to those
who contend that the power ought to have been restrained to
external—taxation by which they mean, taxes on articles imported
from other countries. It cannot be doubted that this will always be
a valuable source of revenue; that for a considerable time it must
be a principal source; that at this moment it is an essential one.
But we may form very mistaken ideas on this subject, if we do not
call to mind in our calculations, that the extent of revenue drawn
from foreign commerce must vary with the variations, both in the
extent and the kind of imports; and that these variations do not
correspond with the progress of population, which must be the
general measure of the public wants. As long as agriculture
continues the sole field of labor, the importation of manufactures
must increase as the consumers multiply. As soon as domestic
manufactures are begun by the hands not called for by agriculture,
the imported manufactures will decrease as the numbers of people
increase. In a more remote stage, the imports may consist in a
considerable part of raw materials, which will be wrought into
articles for exportation, and will, therefore, require rather the
encouragement of bounties, than to be loaded with discouraging
duties. A system of government, meant for duration, ought to
contemplate these revolutions, and be able to accommodate itself to
them.
Some, who have not denied the necessity of the power of taxation,
have grounded a very fierce attack against the Constitution, on the
language in which it is defined. It has been urged and echoed, that
the power "to lay and collect taxes, duties, imposts, and excises,
to pay the debts, and provide for the common defense and general
welfare of the United States," amounts to an unlimited commission to
exercise every power which may be alleged to be necessary for the
common defense or general welfare. No stronger proof could be given
of the distress under which these writers labor for objections, than
their stooping to such a misconstruction.
Had no other enumeration or definition of the powers of the Congress
been found in the Constitution, than the general expressions just
cited, the authors of the objection might have had some color for
it; though it would have been difficult to find a reason for so
awkward a form of describing an authority to legislate in all
possible cases. A power to destroy the freedom of the press, the
trial by jury, or even to regulate the course of descents, or the
forms of conveyances, must be very singularly expressed by the terms
"to raise money for the general welfare."
But what color can the objection have, when a specification of the
objects alluded to by these general terms immediately follows, and
is not even separated by a longer pause than a semicolon? If the
different parts of the same instrument ought to be so expounded, as
to give meaning to every part which will bear it, shall one part of
the same sentence be excluded altogether from a share in the
meaning; and shall the more doubtful and indefinite terms be
retained in their full extent, and the clear and precise expressions
be denied any signification whatsoever? For what purpose could the
enumeration of particular powers be inserted, if these and all
others were meant to be included in the preceding general power?
Nothing is more natural nor common than first to use a general
phrase, and then to explain and qualify it by a recital of
particulars. But the idea of an enumeration of particulars which
neither explain nor qualify the general meaning, and can have no
other effect than to confound and mislead, is an absurdity, which,
as we are reduced to the dilemma of charging either on the authors
of the objection or on the authors of the Constitution, we must take
the liberty of supposing, had not its origin with the latter.
The objection here is the more extraordinary, as it appears that the
language used by the convention is a copy from the articles of
Confederation. The objects of the Union among the States, as
described in article third, are "their common defense, security of
their liberties, and mutual and general welfare." The terms of
article eighth are still more identical: "All charges of war and all
other expenses that shall be incurred for the common defense or
general welfare, and allowed by the United States in Congress, shall
be defrayed out of a common treasury," etc. A similar language again
occurs in article ninth. Construe either of these articles by the
rules which would justify the construction put on the new
Constitution, and they vest in the existing Congress a power to
legislate in all cases whatsoever. But what would have been thought
of that assembly, if, attaching themselves to these general
expressions, and disregarding the specifications which ascertain and
limit their import, they had exercised an unlimited power of
providing for the common defense and general welfare? I appeal to
the objectors themselves, whether they would in that case have
employed the same reasoning in justification of Congress as they now
make use of against the convention. How difficult it is for error to
escape its own condemnation!
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 42.
The Powers Conferred by the Constitution Further Considered
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 22, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND class of powers, lodged in the general government,
consists of those which regulate the intercourse with foreign
nations, to wit: to make treaties; to send and receive ambassadors,
other public ministers, and consuls; to define and punish piracies
and felonies committed on the high seas, and offenses against the
law of nations; to regulate foreign commerce, including a power to
prohibit, after the year 1808, the importation of slaves, and to lay
an intermediate duty of ten dollars per head, as a discouragement to
such importations.
This class of powers forms an obvious and essential branch of the
federal administration. If we are to be one nation in any respect,
it clearly ought to be in respect to other nations.
The powers to make treaties and to send and receive ambassadors,
speak their own propriety. Both of them are comprised in the
articles of Confederation, with this difference only, that the
former is disembarrassed, by the plan of the convention, of an
exception, under which treaties might be substantially frustrated by
regulations of the States; and that a power of appointing and
receiving "other public ministers and consuls," is expressly and
very properly added to the former provision concerning ambassadors.
The term ambassador, if taken strictly, as seems to be required by
the second of the articles of Confederation, comprehends the highest
grade only of public ministers, and excludes the grades which the
United States will be most likely to prefer, where foreign embassies
may be necessary. And under no latitude of construction will the
term comprehend consuls. Yet it has been found expedient, and has
been the practice of Congress, to employ the inferior grades of
public ministers, and to send and receive consuls.
It is true, that where treaties of commerce stipulate for the mutual
appointment of consuls, whose functions are connected with commerce,
the admission of foreign consuls may fall within the power of making
commercial treaties; and that where no such treaties exist, the
mission of American consuls into foreign countries may PERHAPS be
covered under the authority, given by the ninth article of the
Confederation, to appoint all such civil officers as may be
necessary for managing the general affairs of the United States. But
the admission of consuls into the United States, where no previous
treaty has stipulated it, seems to have been nowhere provided for. A
supply of the omission is one of the lesser instances in which the
convention have improved on the model before them. But the most
minute provisions become important when they tend to obviate the
necessity or the pretext for gradual and unobserved usurpations of
power. A list of the cases in which Congress have been betrayed, or
forced by the defects of the Confederation, into violations of their
chartered authorities, would not a little surprise those who have
paid no attention to the subject; and would be no inconsiderable
argument in favor of the new Constitution, which seems to have
provided no less studiously for the lesser, than the more obvious
and striking defects of the old.
The power to define and punish piracies and felonies committed on
the high seas, and offenses against the law of nations, belongs with
equal propriety to the general government, and is a still greater
improvement on the articles of Confederation. These articles contain
no provision for the case of offenses against the law of nations;
and consequently leave it in the power of any indiscreet member to
embroil the Confederacy with foreign nations. The provision of the
federal articles on the subject of piracies and felonies extends no
further than to the establishment of courts for the trial of these
offenses. The definition of piracies might, perhaps, without
inconveniency, be left to the law of nations; though a legislative
definition of them is found in most municipal codes. A definition of
felonies on the high seas is evidently requisite. Felony is a term
of loose signification, even in the common law of England; and of
various import in the statute law of that kingdom. But neither the
common nor the statute law of that, or of any other nation, ought to
be a standard for the proceedings of this, unless previously made
its own by legislative adoption. The meaning of the term, as defined
in the codes of the several States, would be as impracticable as the
former would be a dishonorable and illegitimate guide. It is not
precisely the same in any two of the States; and varies in each with
every revision of its criminal laws. For the sake of certainty and
uniformity, therefore, the power of defining felonies in this case
was in every respect necessary and proper.
The regulation of foreign commerce, having fallen within several
views which have been taken of this subject, has been too fully
discussed to need additional proofs here of its being properly
submitted to the federal administration.
It were doubtless to be wished, that the power of prohibiting the
importation of slaves had not been postponed until the year 1808, or
rather that it had been suffered to have immediate operation. But it
is not difficult to account, either for this restriction on the
general government, or for the manner in which the whole clause is
expressed. It ought to be considered as a great point gained in
favor of humanity, that a period of twenty years may terminate
forever, within these States, a traffic which has so long and so
loudly upbraided the barbarism of modern policy; that within that
period, it will receive a considerable discouragement from the
federal government, and may be totally abolished, by a concurrence
of the few States which continue the unnatural traffic, in the
prohibitory example which has been given by so great a majority of
the Union. Happy would it be for the unfortunate Africans, if an
equal prospect lay before them of being redeemed from the
oppressions of their European brethren!
Attempts have been made to pervert this clause into an objection
against the Constitution, by representing it on one side as a
criminal toleration of an illicit practice, and on another as
calculated to prevent voluntary and beneficial emigrations from
Europe to America. I mention these misconstructions, not with a view
to give them an answer, for they deserve none, but as specimens of
the manner and spirit in which some have thought fit to conduct
their opposition to the proposed government.
The powers included in the THIRD class are those which provide for
the harmony and proper intercourse among the States.
Under this head might be included the particular restraints imposed
on the authority of the States, and certain powers of the judicial
department; but the former are reserved for a distinct class, and
the latter will be particularly examined when we arrive at the
structure and organization of the government. I shall confine myself
to a cursory review of the remaining powers comprehended under this
third description, to wit: to regulate commerce among the several
States and the Indian tribes; to coin money, regulate the value
thereof, and of foreign coin; to provide for the punishment of
counterfeiting the current coin and securities of the United States;
to fix the standard of weights and measures; to establish a uniform
rule of naturalization, and uniform laws of bankruptcy, to prescribe
the manner in which the public acts, records, and judicial
proceedings of each State shall be proved, and the effect they shall
have in other States; and to establish post offices and post roads.
The defect of power in the existing Confederacy to regulate the
commerce between its several members, is in the number of those
which have been clearly pointed out by experience. To the proofs and
remarks which former papers have brought into view on this subject,
it may be added that without this supplemental provision, the great
and essential power of regulating foreign commerce would have been
incomplete and ineffectual. A very material object of this power was
the relief of the States which import and export through other
States, from the improper contributions levied on them by the
latter. Were these at liberty to regulate the trade between State
and State, it must be foreseen that ways would be found out to load
the articles of import and export, during the passage through their
jurisdiction, with duties which would fall on the makers of the
latter and the consumers of the former. We may be assured by past
experience, that such a practice would be introduced by future
contrivances; and both by that and a common knowledge of human
affairs, that it would nourish unceasing animosities, and not
improbably terminate in serious interruptions of the public
tranquillity. To those who do not view the question through the
medium of passion or of interest, the desire of the commercial
States to collect, in any form, an indirect revenue from their
uncommercial neighbors, must appear not less impolitic than it is
unfair; since it would stimulate the injured party, by resentment as
well as interest, to resort to less convenient channels for their
foreign trade. But the mild voice of reason, pleading the cause of
an enlarged and permanent interest, is but too often drowned, before
public bodies as well as individuals, by the clamors of an impatient
avidity for immediate and immoderate gain.
The necessity of a superintending authority over the reciprocal
trade of confederated States, has been illustrated by other examples
as well as our own. In Switzerland, where the Union is so very
slight, each canton is obliged to allow to merchandises a passage
through its jurisdiction into other cantons, without an augmentation
of the tolls. In Germany it is a law of the empire, that the princes
and states shall not lay tolls or customs on bridges, rivers, or
passages, without the consent of the emperor and the diet; though it
appears from a quotation in an antecedent paper, that the practice
in this, as in many other instances in that confederacy, has not
followed the law, and has produced there the mischiefs which have
been foreseen here. Among the restraints imposed by the Union of the
Netherlands on its members, one is, that they shall not establish
imposts disadvantageous to their neighbors, without the general
permission.
The regulation of commerce with the Indian tribes is very properly
unfettered from two limitations in the articles of Confederation,
which render the provision obscure and contradictory. The power is
there restrained to Indians, not members of any of the States, and
is not to violate or infringe the legislative right of any State
within its own limits. What description of Indians are to be deemed
members of a State, is not yet settled, and has been a question of
frequent perplexity and contention in the federal councils. And how
the trade with Indians, though not members of a State, yet residing
within its legislative jurisdiction, can be regulated by an external
authority, without so far intruding on the internal rights of
legislation, is absolutely incomprehensible. This is not the only
case in which the articles of Confederation have inconsiderately
endeavored to accomplish impossibilities; to reconcile a partial
sovereignty in the Union, with complete sovereignty in the States;
to subvert a mathematical axiom, by taking away a part, and letting
the whole remain.
All that need be remarked on the power to coin money, regulate the
value thereof, and of foreign coin, is, that by providing for this
last case, the Constitution has supplied a material omission in the
articles of Confederation. The authority of the existing Congress is
restrained to the regulation of coin STRUCK by their own authority,
or that of the respective States. It must be seen at once that the
proposed uniformity in the VALUE of the current coin might be
destroyed by subjecting that of foreign coin to the different
regulations of the different States.
The punishment of counterfeiting the public securities, as well as
the current coin, is submitted of course to that authority which is
to secure the value of both.
The regulation of weights and measures is transferred from the
articles of Confederation, and is founded on like considerations
with the preceding power of regulating coin.
The dissimilarity in the rules of naturalization has long been
remarked as a fault in our system, and as laying a foundation for
intricate and delicate questions. In the fourth article of the
Confederation, it is declared "that the FREE INHABITANTS of each of
these States, paupers, vagabonds, and fugitives from justice,
excepted, shall be entitled to all privileges and immunities of FREE
CITIZENS in the several States; and THE PEOPLE of each State shall,
in every other, enjoy all the privileges of trade and commerce,"
etc. There is a confusion of language here, which is remarkable. Why
the terms FREE INHABITANTS are used in one part of the article, FREE
CITIZENS in another, and PEOPLE in another; or what was meant by
superadding to "all privileges and immunities of free citizens,"
"all the privileges of trade and commerce," cannot easily be
determined. It seems to be a construction scarcely avoidable,
however, that those who come under the denomination of FREE
INHABITANTS of a State, although not citizens of such State, are
entitled, in every other State, to all the privileges of FREE
CITIZENS of the latter; that is, to greater privileges than they may
be entitled to in their own State: so that it may be in the power of
a particular State, or rather every State is laid under a necessity,
not only to confer the rights of citizenship in other States upon
any whom it may admit to such rights within itself, but upon any
whom it may allow to become inhabitants within its jurisdiction. But
were an exposition of the term "inhabitants" to be admitted which
would confine the stipulated privileges to citizens alone, the
difficulty is diminished only, not removed. The very improper power
would still be retained by each State, of naturalizing aliens in
every other State. In one State, residence for a short term confirms
all the rights of citizenship: in another, qualifications of greater
importance are required. An alien, therefore, legally incapacitated
for certain rights in the latter, may, by previous residence only in
the former, elude his incapacity; and thus the law of one State be
preposterously rendered paramount to the law of another, within the
jurisdiction of the other. We owe it to mere casualty, that very
serious embarrassments on this subject have been hitherto escaped.
By the laws of several States, certain descriptions of aliens, who
had rendered themselves obnoxious, were laid under interdicts
inconsistent not only with the rights of citizenship but with the
privilege of residence. What would have been the consequence, if
such persons, by residence or otherwise, had acquired the character
of citizens under the laws of another State, and then asserted their
rights as such, both to residence and citizenship, within the State
proscribing them? Whatever the legal consequences might have been,
other consequences would probably have resulted, of too serious a
nature not to be provided against. The new Constitution has
accordingly, with great propriety, made provision against them, and
all others proceeding from the defect of the Confederation on this
head, by authorizing the general government to establish a uniform
rule of naturalization throughout the United States.
The power of establishing uniform laws of bankruptcy is so
intimately connected with the regulation of commerce, and will
prevent so many frauds where the parties or their property may lie
or be removed into different States, that the expediency of it seems
not likely to be drawn into question.
The power of prescribing by general laws, the manner in which the
public acts, records and judicial proceedings of each State shall be
proved, and the effect they shall have in other States, is an
evident and valuable improvement on the clause relating to this
subject in the articles of Confederation. The meaning of the latter
is extremely indeterminate, and can be of little importance under
any interpretation which it will bear. The power here established
may be rendered a very convenient instrument of justice, and be
particularly beneficial on the borders of contiguous States, where
the effects liable to justice may be suddenly and secretly
translated, in any stage of the process, within a foreign
jurisdiction.
The power of establishing post roads must, in every view, be a
harmless power, and may, perhaps, by judicious management, become
productive of great public conveniency. Nothing which tends to
facilitate the intercourse between the States can be deemed unworthy
of the public care.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 43.
The Same Subject Continued (The Powers Conferred by the
Constitution Further Considered)
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 23, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE FOURTH class comprises the following miscellaneous powers:
1. A power "to promote the progress of science and useful arts, by
securing, for a limited time, to authors and inventors, the
exclusive right to their respective writings and discoveries."
The utility of this power will scarcely be questioned. The copyright
of authors has been solemnly adjudged, in Great Britain, to be a
right of common law. The right to useful inventions seems with equal
reason to belong to the inventors. The public good fully coincides
in both cases with the claims of individuals. The States cannot
separately make effectual provisions for either of the cases, and
most of them have anticipated the decision of this point, by laws
passed at the instance of Congress.
2. "To exercise exclusive legislation, in all cases whatsoever, over
such district (not exceeding ten miles square) as may, by cession of
particular States and the acceptance of Congress, become the seat of
the government of the United States; and to exercise like authority
over all places purchased by the consent of the legislatures of the
States in which the same shall be, for the erection of forts,
magazines, arsenals, dockyards, and other needful buildings."
The indispensable necessity of complete authority at the seat of
government, carries its own evidence with it. It is a power
exercised by every legislature of the Union, I might say of the
world, by virtue of its general supremacy. Without it, not only the
public authority might be insulted and its proceedings interrupted
with impunity; but a dependence of the members of the general
government on the State comprehending the seat of the government,
for protection in the exercise of their duty, might bring on the
national councils an imputation of awe or influence, equally
dishonorable to the government and dissatisfactory to the other
members of the Confederacy. This consideration has the more weight,
as the gradual accumulation of public improvements at the stationary
residence of the government would be both too great a public pledge
to be left in the hands of a single State, and would create so many
obstacles to a removal of the government, as still further to
abridge its necessary independence. The extent of this federal
district is sufficiently circumscribed to satisfy every jealousy of
an opposite nature. And as it is to be appropriated to this use with
the consent of the State ceding it; as the State will no doubt
provide in the compact for the rights and the consent of the
citizens inhabiting it; as the inhabitants will find sufficient
inducements of interest to become willing parties to the cession; as
they will have had their voice in the election of the government
which is to exercise authority over them; as a municipal legislature
for local purposes, derived from their own suffrages, will of course
be allowed them; and as the authority of the legislature of the
State, and of the inhabitants of the ceded part of it, to concur in
the cession, will be derived from the whole people of the State in
their adoption of the Constitution, every imaginable objection seems
to be obviated.
The necessity of a like authority over forts, magazines, etc.,
established by the general government, is not less evident. The
public money expended on such places, and the public property
deposited in them, requires that they should be exempt from the
authority of the particular State. Nor would it be proper for the
places on which the security of the entire Union may depend, to be
in any degree dependent on a particular member of it. All objections
and scruples are here also obviated, by requiring the concurrence of
the States concerned, in every such establishment.
3. "To declare the punishment of treason, but no attainder of
treason shall work corruption of blood, or forfeiture, except during
the life of the person attained."
As treason may be committed against the United States, the authority
of the United States ought to be enabled to punish it. But as
new-fangled and artificial treasons have been the great engines by
which violent factions, the natural offspring of free government,
have usually wreaked their alternate malignity on each other, the
convention have, with great judgment, opposed a barrier to this
peculiar danger, by inserting a constitutional definition of the
crime, fixing the proof necessary for conviction of it, and
restraining the Congress, even in punishing it, from extending the
consequences of guilt beyond the person of its author.
4. "To admit new States into the Union; but no new State shall be
formed or erected within the jurisdiction of any other State; nor
any State be formed by the junction of two or more States, or parts
of States, without the consent of the legislatures of the States
concerned, as well as of the Congress."
In the articles of Confederation, no provision is found on this
important subject. Canada was to be admitted of right, on her
joining in the measures of the United States; and the other
COLONIES, by which were evidently meant the other British colonies,
at the discretion of nine States. The eventual establishment of NEW
STATES seems to have been overlooked by the compilers of that
instrument. We have seen the inconvenience of this omission, and the
assumption of power into which Congress have been led by it. With
great propriety, therefore, has the new system supplied the defect.
The general precaution, that no new States shall be formed, without
the concurrence of the federal authority, and that of the States
concerned, is consonant to the principles which ought to govern such
transactions. The particular precaution against the erection of new
States, by the partition of a State without its consent, quiets the
jealousy of the larger States; as that of the smaller is quieted by
a like precaution, against a junction of States without their
consent.
5. "To dispose of and make all needful rules and regulations
respecting the territory or other property belonging to the United
States," with a proviso, that "nothing in the Constitution shall be
so construed as to prejudice any claims of the United States, or of
any particular State."
This is a power of very great importance, and required by
considerations similar to those which show the propriety of the
former. The proviso annexed is proper in itself, and was probably
rendered absolutely necessary by jealousies and questions concerning
the Western territory sufficiently known to the public.
6. "To guarantee to every State in the Union a republican form of
government; to protect each of them against invasion; and on
application of the legislature, or of the executive (when the
legislature cannot be convened), against domestic violence."
In a confederacy founded on republican principles, and composed of
republican members, the superintending government ought clearly to
possess authority to defend the system against aristocratic or
monarchial innovations. The more intimate the nature of such a union
may be, the greater interest have the members in the political
institutions of each other; and the greater right to insist that the
forms of government under which the compact was entered into should
be SUBSTANTIALLY maintained. But a right implies a remedy; and where
else could the remedy be deposited, than where it is deposited by
the Constitution? Governments of dissimilar principles and forms
have been found less adapted to a federal coalition of any sort,
than those of a kindred nature. "As the confederate republic of
Germany," says Montesquieu, "consists of free cities and petty
states, subject to different princes, experience shows us that it is
more imperfect than that of Holland and Switzerland." "Greece was
undone," he adds, "as soon as the king of Macedon obtained a seat
among the Amphictyons." In the latter case, no doubt, the
disproportionate force, as well as the monarchical form, of the new
confederate, had its share of influence on the events. It may
possibly be asked, what need there could be of such a precaution,
and whether it may not become a pretext for alterations in the State
governments, without the concurrence of the States themselves. These
questions admit of ready answers. If the interposition of the
general government should not be needed, the provision for such an
event will be a harmless superfluity only in the Constitution. But
who can say what experiments may be produced by the caprice of
particular States, by the ambition of enterprising leaders, or by
the intrigues and influence of foreign powers? To the second
question it may be answered, that if the general government should
interpose by virtue of this constitutional authority, it will be, of
course, bound to pursue the authority. But the authority extends no
further than to a GUARANTY of a republican form of government, which
supposes a pre-existing government of the form which is to be
guaranteed. As long, therefore, as the existing republican forms are
continued by the States, they are guaranteed by the federal
Constitution. Whenever the States may choose to substitute other
republican forms, they have a right to do so, and to claim the
federal guaranty for the latter. The only restriction imposed on
them is, that they shall not exchange republican for antirepublican
Constitutions; a restriction which, it is presumed, will hardly be
considered as a grievance.
A protection against invasion is due from every society to the parts
composing it. The latitude of the expression here used seems to
secure each State, not only against foreign hostility, but against
ambitious or vindictive enterprises of its more powerful neighbors.
The history, both of ancient and modern confederacies, proves that
the weaker members of the union ought not to be insensible to the
policy of this article.
Protection against domestic violence is added with equal propriety.
It has been remarked, that even among the Swiss cantons, which,
properly speaking, are not under one government, provision is made
for this object; and the history of that league informs us that
mutual aid is frequently claimed and afforded; and as well by the
most democratic, as the other cantons. A recent and well-known event
among ourselves has warned us to be prepared for emergencies of a
like nature.
At first view, it might seem not to square with the republican
theory, to suppose, either that a majority have not the right, or
that a minority will have the force, to subvert a government; and
consequently, that the federal interposition can never be required,
but when it would be improper. But theoretic reasoning, in this as
in most other cases, must be qualified by the lessons of practice.
Why may not illicit combinations, for purposes of violence, be
formed as well by a majority of a State, especially a small State as
by a majority of a county, or a district of the same State; and if
the authority of the State ought, in the latter case, to protect the
local magistracy, ought not the federal authority, in the former, to
support the State authority? Besides, there are certain parts of the
State constitutions which are so interwoven with the federal
Constitution, that a violent blow cannot be given to the one without
communicating the wound to the other. Insurrections in a State will
rarely induce a federal interposition, unless the number concerned
in them bear some proportion to the friends of government. It will
be much better that the violence in such cases should be repressed
by the superintending power, than that the majority should be left
to maintain their cause by a bloody and obstinate contest. The
existence of a right to interpose, will generally prevent the
necessity of exerting it.
Is it true that force and right are necessarily on the same side in
republican governments? May not the minor party possess such a
superiority of pecuniary resources, of military talents and
experience, or of secret succors from foreign powers, as will render
it superior also in an appeal to the sword? May not a more compact
and advantageous position turn the scale on the same side, against a
superior number so situated as to be less capable of a prompt and
collected exertion of its strength? Nothing can be more chimerical
than to imagine that in a trial of actual force, victory may be
calculated by the rules which prevail in a census of the
inhabitants, or which determine the event of an election! May it not
happen, in fine, that the minority of CITIZENS may become a majority
of PERSONS, by the accession of alien residents, of a casual
concourse of adventurers, or of those whom the constitution of the
State has not admitted to the rights of suffrage? I take no notice
of an unhappy species of population abounding in some of the States,
who, during the calm of regular government, are sunk below the level
of men; but who, in the tempestuous scenes of civil violence, may
emerge into the human character, and give a superiority of strength
to any party with which they may associate themselves.
In cases where it may be doubtful on which side justice lies, what
better umpires could be desired by two violent factions, flying to
arms, and tearing a State to pieces, than the representatives of
confederate States, not heated by the local flame? To the
impartiality of judges, they would unite the affection of friends.
Happy would it be if such a remedy for its infirmities could be
enjoyed by all free governments; if a project equally effectual
could be established for the universal peace of mankind!
Should it be asked, what is to be the redress for an insurrection
pervading all the States, and comprising a superiority of the entire
force, though not a constitutional right? the answer must be, that
such a case, as it would be without the compass of human remedies,
so it is fortunately not within the compass of human probability;
and that it is a sufficient recommendation of the federal
Constitution, that it diminishes the risk of a calamity for which no
possible constitution can provide a cure.
Among the advantages of a confederate republic enumerated by
Montesquieu, an important one is, "that should a popular
insurrection happen in one of the States, the others are able to
quell it. Should abuses creep into one part, they are reformed by
those that remain sound."
7. "To consider all debts contracted, and engagements entered into,
before the adoption of this Constitution, as being no less valid
against the United States, under this Constitution, than under the
Confederation."
This can only be considered as a declaratory proposition; and may
have been inserted, among other reasons, for the satisfaction of the
foreign creditors of the United States, who cannot be strangers to
the pretended doctrine, that a change in the political form of civil
society has the magical effect of dissolving its moral obligations.
Among the lesser criticisms which have been exercised on the
Constitution, it has been remarked that the validity of engagements
ought to have been asserted in favor of the United States, as well
as against them; and in the spirit which usually characterizes
little critics, the omission has been transformed and magnified into
a plot against the national rights. The authors of this discovery
may be told, what few others need to be informed of, that as
engagements are in their nature reciprocal, an assertion of their
validity on one side, necessarily involves a validity on the other
side; and that as the article is merely declaratory, the
establishment of the principle in one case is sufficient for every
case. They may be further told, that every constitution must limit
its precautions to dangers that are not altogether imaginary; and
that no real danger can exist that the government would DARE, with,
or even without, this constitutional declaration before it, to remit
the debts justly due to the public, on the pretext here condemned.
8. "To provide for amendments to be ratified by three fourths of the
States under two exceptions only."
That useful alterations will be suggested by experience, could not
but be foreseen. It was requisite, therefore, that a mode for
introducing them should be provided. The mode preferred by the
convention seems to be stamped with every mark of propriety. It
guards equally against that extreme facility, which would render the
Constitution too mutable; and that extreme difficulty, which might
perpetuate its discovered faults. It, moreover, equally enables the
general and the State governments to originate the amendment of
errors, as they may be pointed out by the experience on one side, or
on the other. The exception in favor of the equality of suffrage in
the Senate, was probably meant as a palladium to the residuary
sovereignty of the States, implied and secured by that principle of
representation in one branch of the legislature; and was probably
insisted on by the States particularly attached to that equality.
The other exception must have been admitted on the same
considerations which produced the privilege defended by it.
9. "The ratification of the conventions of nine States shall be
sufficient for the establishment of this Constitution between the
States, ratifying the same."
This article speaks for itself. The express authority of the people
alone could give due validity to the Constitution. To have required
the unanimous ratification of the thirteen States, would have
subjected the essential interests of the whole to the caprice or
corruption of a single member. It would have marked a want of
foresight in the convention, which our own experience would have
rendered inexcusable.
Two questions of a very delicate nature present themselves on this
occasion: 1. On what principle the Confederation, which stands in
the solemn form of a compact among the States, can be superseded
without the unanimous consent of the parties to it? 2. What relation
is to subsist between the nine or more States ratifying the
Constitution, and the remaining few who do not become parties to it?
The first question is answered at once by recurring to the absolute
necessity of the case; to the great principle of self-preservation;
to the transcendent law of nature and of nature's God, which
declares that the safety and happiness of society are the objects at
which all political institutions aim, and to which all such
institutions must be sacrificed. PERHAPS, also, an answer may be
found without searching beyond the principles of the compact itself.
It has been heretofore noted among the defects of the Confederation,
that in many of the States it had received no higher sanction than a
mere legislative ratification. The principle of reciprocality seems
to require that its obligation on the other States should be reduced
to the same standard. A compact between independent sovereigns,
founded on ordinary acts of legislative authority, can pretend to no
higher validity than a league or treaty between the parties. It is
an established doctrine on the subject of treaties, that all the
articles are mutually conditions of each other; that a breach of any
one article is a breach of the whole treaty; and that a breach,
committed by either of the parties, absolves the others, and
authorizes them, if they please, to pronounce the compact violated
and void. Should it unhappily be necessary to appeal to these
delicate truths for a justification for dispensing with the consent
of particular States to a dissolution of the federal pact, will not
the complaining parties find it a difficult task to answer the
MULTIPLIED and IMPORTANT infractions with which they may be
confronted? The time has been when it was incumbent on us all to
veil the ideas which this paragraph exhibits. The scene is now
changed, and with it the part which the same motives dictate.
The second question is not less delicate; and the flattering
prospect of its being merely hypothetical forbids an overcurious
discussion of it. It is one of those cases which must be left to
provide for itself. In general, it may be observed, that although no
political relation can subsist between the assenting and dissenting
States, yet the moral relations will remain uncancelled. The claims
of justice, both on one side and on the other, will be in force, and
must be fulfilled; the rights of humanity must in all cases be duly
and mutually respected; whilst considerations of a common interest,
and, above all, the remembrance of the endearing scenes which are
past, and the anticipation of a speedy triumph over the obstacles to
reunion, will, it is hoped, not urge in vain MODERATION on one side,
and PRUDENCE on the other.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 44.
Restrictions on the Authority of the Several States
From the New York Packet. Friday, January 25, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIFTH class of provisions in favor of the federal authority
consists of the following restrictions on the authority of the
several States:
1. "No State shall enter into any treaty, alliance, or
confederation; grant letters of marque and reprisal; coin money;
emit bills of credit; make any thing but gold and silver a legal
tender in payment of debts; pass any bill of attainder, ex post
facto law, or law impairing the obligation of contracts; or grant
any title of nobility."
The prohibition against treaties, alliances, and confederations
makes a part of the existing articles of Union; and for reasons
which need no explanation, is copied into the new Constitution. The
prohibition of letters of marque is another part of the old system,
but is somewhat extended in the new. According to the former,
letters of marque could be granted by the States after a declaration
of war; according to the latter, these licenses must be obtained, as
well during war as previous to its declaration, from the government
of the United States. This alteration is fully justified by the
advantage of uniformity in all points which relate to foreign
powers; and of immediate responsibility to the nation in all those
for whose conduct the nation itself is to be responsible.
The right of coining money, which is here taken from the States, was
left in their hands by the Confederation, as a concurrent right with
that of Congress, under an exception in favor of the exclusive right
of Congress to regulate the alloy and value. In this instance, also,
the new provision is an improvement on the old. Whilst the alloy and
value depended on the general authority, a right of coinage in the
particular States could have no other effect than to multiply
expensive mints and diversify the forms and weights of the
circulating pieces. The latter inconveniency defeats one purpose for
which the power was originally submitted to the federal head; and as
far as the former might prevent an inconvenient remittance of gold
and silver to the central mint for recoinage, the end can be as well
attained by local mints established under the general authority.
The extension of the prohibition to bills of credit must give
pleasure to every citizen, in proportion to his love of justice and
his knowledge of the true springs of public prosperity. The loss
which America has sustained since the peace, from the pestilent
effects of paper money on the necessary confidence between man and
man, on the necessary confidence in the public councils, on the
industry and morals of the people, and on the character of
republican government, constitutes an enormous debt against the
States chargeable with this unadvised measure, which must long
remain unsatisfied; or rather an accumulation of guilt, which can be
expiated no otherwise than by a voluntary sacrifice on the altar of
justice, of the power which has been the instrument of it. In
addition to these persuasive considerations, it may be observed,
that the same reasons which show the necessity of denying to the
States the power of regulating coin, prove with equal force that
they ought not to be at liberty to substitute a paper medium in the
place of coin. Had every State a right to regulate the value of its
coin, there might be as many different currencies as States, and
thus the intercourse among them would be impeded; retrospective
alterations in its value might be made, and thus the citizens of
other States be injured, and animosities be kindled among the States
themselves. The subjects of foreign powers might suffer from the
same cause, and hence the Union be discredited and embroiled by the
indiscretion of a single member. No one of these mischiefs is less
incident to a power in the States to emit paper money, than to coin
gold or silver. The power to make any thing but gold and silver a
tender in payment of debts, is withdrawn from the States, on the
same principle with that of issuing a paper currency.
Bills of attainder, ex post facto laws, and laws impairing the
obligation of contracts, are contrary to the first principles of the
social compact, and to every principle of sound legislation. The two
former are expressly prohibited by the declarations prefixed to some
of the State constitutions, and all of them are prohibited by the
spirit and scope of these fundamental charters. Our own experience
has taught us, nevertheless, that additional fences against these
dangers ought not to be omitted. Very properly, therefore, have the
convention added this constitutional bulwark in favor of personal
security and private rights; and I am much deceived if they have
not, in so doing, as faithfully consulted the genuine sentiments as
the undoubted interests of their constituents. The sober people of
America are weary of the fluctuating policy which has directed the
public councils. They have seen with regret and indignation that
sudden changes and legislative interferences, in cases affecting
personal rights, become jobs in the hands of enterprising and
influential speculators, and snares to the more-industrious and
less-informed part of the community. They have seen, too, that one
legislative interference is but the first link of a long chain of
repetitions, every subsequent interference being naturally produced
by the effects of the preceding. They very rightly infer, therefore,
that some thorough reform is wanting, which will banish speculations
on public measures, inspire a general prudence and industry, and
give a regular course to the business of society. The prohibition
with respect to titles of nobility is copied from the articles of
Confederation and needs no comment.
2. "No State shall, without the consent of the Congress, lay any
imposts or duties on imports or exports, except what may be
absolutely necessary for executing its inspection laws, and the net
produce of all duties and imposts laid by any State on imports or
exports, shall be for the use of the treasury of the United States;
and all such laws shall be subject to the revision and control of
the Congress. No State shall, without the consent of Congress, lay
any duty on tonnage, keep troops or ships of war in time of peace,
enter into any agreement or compact with another State, or with a
foreign power, or engage in war unless actually invaded, or in such
imminent danger as will not admit of delay."
The restraint on the power of the States over imports and exports is
enforced by all the arguments which prove the necessity of
submitting the regulation of trade to the federal councils. It is
needless, therefore, to remark further on this head, than that the
manner in which the restraint is qualified seems well calculated at
once to secure to the States a reasonable discretion in providing
for the conveniency of their imports and exports, and to the United
States a reasonable check against the abuse of this discretion. The
remaining particulars of this clause fall within reasonings which
are either so obvious, or have been so fully developed, that they
may be passed over without remark.
The SIXTH and last class consists of the several powers and
provisions by which efficacy is given to all the rest.
1. Of these the first is, the "power to make all laws which shall be
necessary and proper for carrying into execution the foregoing
powers, and all other powers vested by this Constitution in the
government of the United States, or in any department or officer
thereof."
Few parts of the Constitution have been assailed with more
intemperance than this; yet on a fair investigation of it, no part
can appear more completely invulnerable. Without the SUBSTANCE of
this power, the whole Constitution would be a dead letter. Those who
object to the article, therefore, as a part of the Constitution, can
only mean that the FORM of the provision is improper. But have they
considered whether a better form could have been substituted?
There are four other possible methods which the Constitution might
have taken on this subject. They might have copied the second
article of the existing Confederation, which would have prohibited
the exercise of any power not EXPRESSLY delegated; they might have
attempted a positive enumeration of the powers comprehended under
the general terms "necessary and proper"; they might have attempted
a negative enumeration of them, by specifying the powers excepted
from the general definition; they might have been altogether silent
on the subject, leaving these necessary and proper powers to
construction and inference.
Had the convention taken the first method of adopting the second
article of Confederation, it is evident that the new Congress would
be continually exposed, as their predecessors have been, to the
alternative of construing the term "EXPRESSLY" with so much rigor,
as to disarm the government of all real authority whatever, or with
so much latitude as to destroy altogether the force of the
restriction. It would be easy to show, if it were necessary, that no
important power, delegated by the articles of Confederation, has
been or can be executed by Congress, without recurring more or less
to the doctrine of CONSTRUCTION or IMPLICATION. As the powers
delegated under the new system are more extensive, the government
which is to administer it would find itself still more distressed
with the alternative of betraying the public interests by doing
nothing, or of violating the Constitution by exercising powers
indispensably necessary and proper, but, at the same time, not
EXPRESSLY granted.
Had the convention attempted a positive enumeration of the powers
necessary and proper for carrying their other powers into effect,
the attempt would have involved a complete digest of laws on every
subject to which the Constitution relates; accommodated too, not
only to the existing state of things, but to all the possible
changes which futurity may produce; for in every new application of
a general power, the PARTICULAR POWERS, which are the means of
attaining the OBJECT of the general power, must always necessarily
vary with that object, and be often properly varied whilst the
object remains the same.
Had they attempted to enumerate the particular powers or means not
necessary or proper for carrying the general powers into execution,
the task would have been no less chimerical; and would have been
liable to this further objection, that every defect in the
enumeration would have been equivalent to a positive grant of
authority. If, to avoid this consequence, they had attempted a
partial enumeration of the exceptions, and described the residue by
the general terms, NOT NECESSARY OR PROPER, it must have happened
that the enumeration would comprehend a few of the excepted powers
only; that these would be such as would be least likely to be
assumed or tolerated, because the enumeration would of course select
such as would be least necessary or proper; and that the unnecessary
and improper powers included in the residuum, would be less forcibly
excepted, than if no partial enumeration had been made.
Had the Constitution been silent on this head, there can be no doubt
that all the particular powers requisite as means of executing the
general powers would have resulted to the government, by unavoidable
implication. No axiom is more clearly established in law, or in
reason, than that wherever the end is required, the means are
authorized; wherever a general power to do a thing is given, every
particular power necessary for doing it is included. Had this last
method, therefore, been pursued by the convention, every objection
now urged against their plan would remain in all its plausibility;
and the real inconveniency would be incurred of not removing a
pretext which may be seized on critical occasions for drawing into
question the essential powers of the Union.
If it be asked what is to be the consequence, in case the Congress
shall misconstrue this part of the Constitution, and exercise powers
not warranted by its true meaning, I answer, the same as if they
should misconstrue or enlarge any other power vested in them; as if
the general power had been reduced to particulars, and any one of
these were to be violated; the same, in short, as if the State
legislatures should violate the irrespective constitutional
authorities. In the first instance, the success of the usurpation
will depend on the executive and judiciary departments, which are to
expound and give effect to the legislative acts; and in the last
resort a remedy must be obtained from the people who can, by the
election of more faithful representatives, annul the acts of the
usurpers. The truth is, that this ultimate redress may be more
confided in against unconstitutional acts of the federal than of the
State legislatures, for this plain reason, that as every such act of
the former will be an invasion of the rights of the latter, these
will be ever ready to mark the innovation, to sound the alarm to the
people, and to exert their local influence in effecting a change of
federal representatives. There being no such intermediate body
between the State legislatures and the people interested in watching
the conduct of the former, violations of the State constitutions are
more likely to remain unnoticed and unredressed.
2. "This Constitution and the laws of the United States which shall
be made in pursuance thereof, and all treaties made, or which shall
be made, under the authority of the United States, shall be the
supreme law of the land, and the judges in every State shall be
bound thereby, any thing in the constitution or laws of any State to
the contrary notwithstanding."
The indiscreet zeal of the adversaries to the Constitution has
betrayed them into an attack on this part of it also, without which
it would have been evidently and radically defective. To be fully
sensible of this, we need only suppose for a moment that the
supremacy of the State constitutions had been left complete by a
saving clause in their favor.
In the first place, as these constitutions invest the State
legislatures with absolute sovereignty, in all cases not excepted by
the existing articles of Confederation, all the authorities
contained in the proposed Constitution, so far as they exceed those
enumerated in the Confederation, would have been annulled, and the
new Congress would have been reduced to the same impotent condition
with their predecessors.
In the next place, as the constitutions of some of the States do not
even expressly and fully recognize the existing powers of the
Confederacy, an express saving of the supremacy of the former would,
in such States, have brought into question every power contained in
the proposed Constitution.
In the third place, as the constitutions of the States differ much
from each other, it might happen that a treaty or national law, of
great and equal importance to the States, would interfere with some
and not with other constitutions, and would consequently be valid in
some of the States, at the same time that it would have no effect in
others.
In fine, the world would have seen, for the first time, a system of
government founded on an inversion of the fundamental principles of
all government; it would have seen the authority of the whole
society every where subordinate to the authority of the parts; it
would have seen a monster, in which the head was under the direction
of the members.
3. "The Senators and Representatives, and the members of the several
State legislatures, and all executive and judicial officers, both of
the United States and the several States, shall be bound by oath or
affirmation to support this Constitution."
It has been asked why it was thought necessary, that the State
magistracy should be bound to support the federal Constitution, and
unnecessary that a like oath should be imposed on the officers of
the United States, in favor of the State constitutions.
Several reasons might be assigned for the distinction. I content
myself with one, which is obvious and conclusive. The members of the
federal government will have no agency in carrying the State
constitutions into effect. The members and officers of the State
governments, on the contrary, will have an essential agency in
giving effect to the federal Constitution. The election of the
President and Senate will depend, in all cases, on the legislatures
of the several States. And the election of the House of
Representatives will equally depend on the same authority in the
first instance; and will, probably, forever be conducted by the
officers, and according to the laws, of the States.
4. Among the provisions for giving efficacy to the federal powers
might be added those which belong to the executive and judiciary
departments: but as these are reserved for particular examination in
another place, I pass them over in this.
We have now reviewed, in detail, all the articles composing the sum
or quantity of power delegated by the proposed Constitution to the
federal government, and are brought to this undeniable conclusion,
that no part of the power is unnecessary or improper for
accomplishing the necessary objects of the Union. The question,
therefore, whether this amount of power shall be granted or not,
resolves itself into another question, whether or not a government
commensurate to the exigencies of the Union shall be established;
or, in other words, whether the Union itself shall be preserved.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 45.
The Alleged Danger From the Powers of the Union to the State
Governments.
Considered For the Independent Journal. Saturday, January
26, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING shown that no one of the powers transferred to the federal
government is unnecessary or improper, the next question to be
considered is, whether the whole mass of them will be dangerous to
the portion of authority left in the several States.
The adversaries to the plan of the convention, instead of
considering in the first place what degree of power was absolutely
necessary for the purposes of the federal government, have exhausted
themselves in a secondary inquiry into the possible consequences of
the proposed degree of power to the governments of the particular
States. But if the Union, as has been shown, be essential to the
security of the people of America against foreign danger; if it be
essential to their security against contentions and wars among the
different States; if it be essential to guard them against those
violent and oppressive factions which embitter the blessings of
liberty, and against those military establishments which must
gradually poison its very fountain; if, in a word, the Union be
essential to the happiness of the people of America, is it not
preposterous, to urge as an objection to a government, without which
the objects of the Union cannot be attained, that such a government
may derogate from the importance of the governments of the
individual States? Was, then, the American Revolution effected, was
the American Confederacy formed, was the precious blood of thousands
spilt, and the hard-earned substance of millions lavished, not that
the people of America should enjoy peace, liberty, and safety, but
that the government of the individual States, that particular
municipal establishments, might enjoy a certain extent of power, and
be arrayed with certain dignities and attributes of sovereignty? We
have heard of the impious doctrine in the Old World, that the people
were made for kings, not kings for the people. Is the same doctrine
to be revived in the New, in another shape that the solid happiness
of the people is to be sacrificed to the views of political
institutions of a different form? It is too early for politicians to
presume on our forgetting that the public good, the real welfare of
the great body of the people, is the supreme object to be pursued;
and that no form of government whatever has any other value than as
it may be fitted for the attainment of this object. Were the plan of
the convention adverse to the public happiness, my voice would be,
Reject the plan. Were the Union itself inconsistent with the public
happiness, it would be, Abolish the Union. In like manner, as far as
the sovereignty of the States cannot be reconciled to the happiness
of the people, the voice of every good citizen must be, Let the
former be sacrificed to the latter. How far the sacrifice is
necessary, has been shown. How far the unsacrificed residue will be
endangered, is the question before us.
Several important considerations have been touched in the course of
these papers, which discountenance the supposition that the
operation of the federal government will by degrees prove fatal to
the State governments. The more I revolve the subject, the more
fully I am persuaded that the balance is much more likely to be
disturbed by the preponderancy of the last than of the first scale.
We have seen, in all the examples of ancient and modern
confederacies, the strongest tendency continually betraying itself
in the members, to despoil the general government of its
authorities, with a very ineffectual capacity in the latter to
defend itself against the encroachments. Although, in most of these
examples, the system has been so dissimilar from that under
consideration as greatly to weaken any inference concerning the
latter from the fate of the former, yet, as the States will retain,
under the proposed Constitution, a very extensive portion of active
sovereignty, the inference ought not to be wholly disregarded. In
the Achaean league it is probable that the federal head had a degree
and species of power, which gave it a considerable likeness to the
government framed by the convention. The Lycian Confederacy, as far
as its principles and form are transmitted, must have borne a still
greater analogy to it. Yet history does not inform us that either of
them ever degenerated, or tended to degenerate, into one
consolidated government. On the contrary, we know that the ruin of
one of them proceeded from the incapacity of the federal authority
to prevent the dissensions, and finally the disunion, of the
subordinate authorities. These cases are the more worthy of our
attention, as the external causes by which the component parts were
pressed together were much more numerous and powerful than in our
case; and consequently less powerful ligaments within would be
sufficient to bind the members to the head, and to each other.
In the feudal system, we have seen a similar propensity exemplified.
Notwithstanding the want of proper sympathy in every instance
between the local sovereigns and the people, and the sympathy in
some instances between the general sovereign and the latter, it
usually happened that the local sovereigns prevailed in the
rivalship for encroachments. Had no external dangers enforced
internal harmony and subordination, and particularly, had the local
sovereigns possessed the affections of the people, the great
kingdoms in Europe would at this time consist of as many independent
princes as there were formerly feudatory barons.
The State governments will have the advantage of the Federal
government, whether we compare them in respect to the immediate
dependence of the one on the other; to the weight of personal
influence which each side will possess; to the powers respectively
vested in them; to the predilection and probable support of the
people; to the disposition and faculty of resisting and frustrating
the measures of each other.
The State governments may be regarded as constituent and essential
parts of the federal government; whilst the latter is nowise
essential to the operation or organization of the former. Without
the intervention of the State legislatures, the President of the
United States cannot be elected at all. They must in all cases have
a great share in his appointment, and will, perhaps, in most cases,
of themselves determine it. The Senate will be elected absolutely
and exclusively by the State legislatures. Even the House of
Representatives, though drawn immediately from the people, will be
chosen very much under the influence of that class of men, whose
influence over the people obtains for themselves an election into
the State legislatures. Thus, each of the principal branches of the
federal government will owe its existence more or less to the favor
of the State governments, and must consequently feel a dependence,
which is much more likely to beget a disposition too obsequious than
too overbearing towards them. On the other side, the component parts
of the State governments will in no instance be indebted for their
appointment to the direct agency of the federal government, and very
little, if at all, to the local influence of its members.
The number of individuals employed under the Constitution of the
United States will be much smaller than the number employed under
the particular States. There will consequently be less of personal
influence on the side of the former than of the latter. The members
of the legislative, executive, and judiciary departments of thirteen
and more States, the justices of peace, officers of militia,
ministerial officers of justice, with all the county, corporation,
and town officers, for three millions and more of people,
intermixed, and having particular acquaintance with every class and
circle of people, must exceed, beyond all proportion, both in number
and influence, those of every description who will be employed in
the administration of the federal system. Compare the members of the
three great departments of the thirteen States, excluding from the
judiciary department the justices of peace, with the members of the
corresponding departments of the single government of the Union;
compare the militia officers of three millions of people with the
military and marine officers of any establishment which is within
the compass of probability, or, I may add, of possibility, and in
this view alone, we may pronounce the advantage of the States to be
decisive. If the federal government is to have collectors of
revenue, the State governments will have theirs also. And as those
of the former will be principally on the seacoast, and not very
numerous, whilst those of the latter will be spread over the face of
the country, and will be very numerous, the advantage in this view
also lies on the same side. It is true, that the Confederacy is to
possess, and may exercise, the power of collecting internal as well
as external taxes throughout the States; but it is probable that
this power will not be resorted to, except for supplemental purposes
of revenue; that an option will then be given to the States to
supply their quotas by previous collections of their own; and that
the eventual collection, under the immediate authority of the Union,
will generally be made by the officers, and according to the rules,
appointed by the several States. Indeed it is extremely probable,
that in other instances, particularly in the organization of the
judicial power, the officers of the States will be clothed with the
correspondent authority of the Union. Should it happen, however,
that separate collectors of internal revenue should be appointed
under the federal government, the influence of the whole number
would not bear a comparison with that of the multitude of State
officers in the opposite scale. Within every district to which a
federal collector would be allotted, there would not be less than
thirty or forty, or even more, officers of different descriptions,
and many of them persons of character and weight, whose influence
would lie on the side of the State.
The powers delegated by the proposed Constitution to the federal
government, are few and defined. Those which are to remain in the
State governments are numerous and indefinite. The former will be
exercised principally on external objects, as war, peace,
negotiation, and foreign commerce; with which last the power of
taxation will, for the most part, be connected. The powers reserved
to the several States will extend to all the objects which, in the
ordinary course of affairs, concern the lives, liberties, and
properties of the people, and the internal order, improvement, and
prosperity of the State.
The operations of the federal government will be most extensive and
important in times of war and danger; those of the State
governments, in times of peace and security. As the former periods
will probably bear a small proportion to the latter, the State
governments will here enjoy another advantage over the federal
government. The more adequate, indeed, the federal powers may be
rendered to the national defense, the less frequent will be those
scenes of danger which might favor their ascendancy over the
governments of the particular States.
If the new Constitution be examined with accuracy and candor, it
will be found that the change which it proposes consists much less
in the addition of NEW POWERS to the Union, than in the invigoration
of its ORIGINAL POWERS. The regulation of commerce, it is true, is a
new power; but that seems to be an addition which few oppose, and
from which no apprehensions are entertained. The powers relating to
war and peace, armies and fleets, treaties and finance, with the
other more considerable powers, are all vested in the existing
Congress by the articles of Confederation. The proposed change does
not enlarge these powers; it only substitutes a more effectual mode
of administering them. The change relating to taxation may be
regarded as the most important; and yet the present Congress have as
complete authority to REQUIRE of the States indefinite supplies of
money for the common defense and general welfare, as the future
Congress will have to require them of individual citizens; and the
latter will be no more bound than the States themselves have been,
to pay the quotas respectively taxed on them. Had the States
complied punctually with the articles of Confederation, or could
their compliance have been enforced by as peaceable means as may be
used with success towards single persons, our past experience is
very far from countenancing an opinion, that the State governments
would have lost their constitutional powers, and have gradually
undergone an entire consolidation. To maintain that such an event
would have ensued, would be to say at once, that the existence of
the State governments is incompatible with any system whatever that
accomplishes the essential purposes of the Union.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 46.
The Influence of the State and Federal Governments Compared
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, January 29, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
RESUMING the subject of the last paper, I proceed to inquire whether
the federal government or the State governments will have the
advantage with regard to the predilection and support of the people.
Notwithstanding the different modes in which they are appointed, we
must consider both of them as substantially dependent on the great
body of the citizens of the United States. I assume this position
here as it respects the first, reserving the proofs for another
place. The federal and State governments are in fact but different
agents and trustees of the people, constituted with different
powers, and designed for different purposes. The adversaries of the
Constitution seem to have lost sight of the people altogether in
their reasonings on this subject; and to have viewed these different
establishments, not only as mutual rivals and enemies, but as
uncontrolled by any common superior in their efforts to usurp the
authorities of each other. These gentlemen must here be reminded of
their error. They must be told that the ultimate authority, wherever
the derivative may be found, resides in the people alone, and that
it will not depend merely on the comparative ambition or address of
the different governments, whether either, or which of them, will be
able to enlarge its sphere of jurisdiction at the expense of the
other. Truth, no less than decency, requires that the event in every
case should be supposed to depend on the sentiments and sanction of
their common constituents.
Many considerations, besides those suggested on a former occasion,
seem to place it beyond doubt that the first and most natural
attachment of the people will be to the governments of their
respective States. Into the administration of these a greater number
of individuals will expect to rise. From the gift of these a greater
number of offices and emoluments will flow. By the superintending
care of these, all the more domestic and personal interests of the
people will be regulated and provided for. With the affairs of
these, the people will be more familiarly and minutely conversant.
And with the members of these, will a greater proportion of the
people have the ties of personal acquaintance and friendship, and of
family and party attachments; on the side of these, therefore, the
popular bias may well be expected most strongly to incline.
Experience speaks the same language in this case. The federal
administration, though hitherto very defective in comparison with
what may be hoped under a better system, had, during the war, and
particularly whilst the independent fund of paper emissions was in
credit, an activity and importance as great as it can well have in
any future circumstances whatever. It was engaged, too, in a course
of measures which had for their object the protection of everything
that was dear, and the acquisition of everything that could be
desirable to the people at large. It was, nevertheless, invariably
found, after the transient enthusiasm for the early Congresses was
over, that the attention and attachment of the people were turned
anew to their own particular governments; that the federal council
was at no time the idol of popular favor; and that opposition to
proposed enlargements of its powers and importance was the side
usually taken by the men who wished to build their political
consequence on the prepossessions of their fellow-citizens.
If, therefore, as has been elsewhere remarked, the people should in
future become more partial to the federal than to the State
governments, the change can only result from such manifest and
irresistible proofs of a better administration, as will overcome all
their antecedent propensities. And in that case, the people ought
not surely to be precluded from giving most of their confidence
where they may discover it to be most due; but even in that case the
State governments could have little to apprehend, because it is only
within a certain sphere that the federal power can, in the nature of
things, be advantageously administered.
The remaining points on which I propose to compare the federal and
State governments, are the disposition and the faculty they may
respectively possess, to resist and frustrate the measures of each
other.
It has been already proved that the members of the federal will be
more dependent on the members of the State governments, than the
latter will be on the former. It has appeared also, that the
prepossessions of the people, on whom both will depend, will be more
on the side of the State governments, than of the federal
government. So far as the disposition of each towards the other may
be influenced by these causes, the State governments must clearly
have the advantage. But in a distinct and very important point of
view, the advantage will lie on the same side. The prepossessions,
which the members themselves will carry into the federal government,
will generally be favorable to the States; whilst it will rarely
happen, that the members of the State governments will carry into
the public councils a bias in favor of the general government. A
local spirit will infallibly prevail much more in the members of
Congress, than a national spirit will prevail in the legislatures of
the particular States. Every one knows that a great proportion of
the errors committed by the State legislatures proceeds from the
disposition of the members to sacrifice the comprehensive and
permanent interest of the State, to the particular and separate
views of the counties or districts in which they reside. And if they
do not sufficiently enlarge their policy to embrace the collective
welfare of their particular State, how can it be imagined that they
will make the aggregate prosperity of the Union, and the dignity and
respectability of its government, the objects of their affections
and consultations? For the same reason that the members of the State
legislatures will be unlikely to attach themselves sufficiently to
national objects, the members of the federal legislature will be
likely to attach themselves too much to local objects. The States
will be to the latter what counties and towns are to the former.
Measures will too often be decided according to their probable
effect, not on the national prosperity and happiness, but on the
prejudices, interests, and pursuits of the governments and people of
the individual States. What is the spirit that has in general
characterized the proceedings of Congress? A perusal of their
journals, as well as the candid acknowledgments of such as have had
a seat in that assembly, will inform us, that the members have but
too frequently displayed the character, rather of partisans of their
respective States, than of impartial guardians of a common interest;
that where on one occasion improper sacrifices have been made of
local considerations, to the aggrandizement of the federal
government, the great interests of the nation have suffered on a
hundred, from an undue attention to the local prejudices, interests,
and views of the particular States. I mean not by these reflections
to insinuate, that the new federal government will not embrace a
more enlarged plan of policy than the existing government may have
pursued; much less, that its views will be as confined as those of
the State legislatures; but only that it will partake sufficiently
of the spirit of both, to be disinclined to invade the rights of the
individual States, or the prerogatives of their governments. The
motives on the part of the State governments, to augment their
prerogatives by defalcations from the federal government, will be
overruled by no reciprocal predispositions in the members.
Were it admitted, however, that the Federal government may feel an
equal disposition with the State governments to extend its power
beyond the due limits, the latter would still have the advantage in
the means of defeating such encroachments. If an act of a particular
State, though unfriendly to the national government, be generally
popular in that State and should not too grossly violate the oaths
of the State officers, it is executed immediately and, of course, by
means on the spot and depending on the State alone. The opposition
of the federal government, or the interposition of federal officers,
would but inflame the zeal of all parties on the side of the State,
and the evil could not be prevented or repaired, if at all, without
the employment of means which must always be resorted to with
reluctance and difficulty. On the other hand, should an
unwarrantable measure of the federal government be unpopular in
particular States, which would seldom fail to be the case, or even a
warrantable measure be so, which may sometimes be the case, the
means of opposition to it are powerful and at hand. The disquietude
of the people; their repugnance and, perhaps, refusal to co-operate
with the officers of the Union; the frowns of the executive
magistracy of the State; the embarrassments created by legislative
devices, which would often be added on such occasions, would oppose,
in any State, difficulties not to be despised; would form, in a
large State, very serious impediments; and where the sentiments of
several adjoining States happened to be in unison, would present
obstructions which the federal government would hardly be willing to
encounter.
But ambitious encroachments of the federal government, on the
authority of the State governments, would not excite the opposition
of a single State, or of a few States only. They would be signals of
general alarm. Every government would espouse the common cause. A
correspondence would be opened. Plans of resistance would be
concerted. One spirit would animate and conduct the whole. The same
combinations, in short, would result from an apprehension of the
federal, as was produced by the dread of a foreign, yoke; and unless
the projected innovations should be voluntarily renounced, the same
appeal to a trial of force would be made in the one case as was made
in the other. But what degree of madness could ever drive the
federal government to such an extremity. In the contest with Great
Britain, one part of the empire was employed against the other. The
more numerous part invaded the rights of the less numerous part. The
attempt was unjust and unwise; but it was not in speculation
absolutely chimerical. But what would be the contest in the case we
are supposing? Who would be the parties? A few representatives of
the people would be opposed to the people themselves; or rather one
set of representatives would be contending against thirteen sets of
representatives, with the whole body of their common constituents on
the side of the latter.
The only refuge left for those who prophesy the downfall of the
State governments is the visionary supposition that the federal
government may previously accumulate a military force for the
projects of ambition. The reasonings contained in these papers must
have been employed to little purpose indeed, if it could be
necessary now to disprove the reality of this danger. That the
people and the States should, for a sufficient period of time, elect
an uninterrupted succession of men ready to betray both; that the
traitors should, throughout this period, uniformly and
systematically pursue some fixed plan for the extension of the
military establishment; that the governments and the people of the
States should silently and patiently behold the gathering storm, and
continue to supply the materials, until it should be prepared to
burst on their own heads, must appear to every one more like the
incoherent dreams of a delirious jealousy, or the misjudged
exaggerations of a counterfeit zeal, than like the sober
apprehensions of genuine patriotism. Extravagant as the supposition
is, let it however be made. Let a regular army, fully equal to the
resources of the country, be formed; and let it be entirely at the
devotion of the federal government; still it would not be going too
far to say, that the State governments, with the people on their
side, would be able to repel the danger. The highest number to
which, according to the best computation, a standing army can be
carried in any country, does not exceed one hundredth part of the
whole number of souls; or one twenty-fifth part of the number able
to bear arms. This proportion would not yield, in the United States,
an army of more than twenty-five or thirty thousand men. To these
would be opposed a militia amounting to near half a million of
citizens with arms in their hands, officered by men chosen from
among themselves, fighting for their common liberties, and united
and conducted by governments possessing their affections and
confidence. It may well be doubted, whether a militia thus
circumstanced could ever be conquered by such a proportion of
regular troops. Those who are best acquainted with the last
successful resistance of this country against the British arms, will
be most inclined to deny the possibility of it. Besides the
advantage of being armed, which the Americans possess over the
people of almost every other nation, the existence of subordinate
governments, to which the people are attached, and by which the
militia officers are appointed, forms a barrier against the
enterprises of ambition, more insurmountable than any which a simple
government of any form can admit of. Notwithstanding the military
establishments in the several kingdoms of Europe, which are carried
as far as the public resources will bear, the governments are afraid
to trust the people with arms. And it is not certain, that with this
aid alone they would not be able to shake off their yokes. But were
the people to possess the additional advantages of local governments
chosen by themselves, who could collect the national will and direct
the national force, and of officers appointed out of the militia, by
these governments, and attached both to them and to the militia, it
may be affirmed with the greatest assurance, that the throne of
every tyranny in Europe would be speedily overturned in spite of the
legions which surround it. Let us not insult the free and gallant
citizens of America with the suspicion, that they would be less able
to defend the rights of which they would be in actual possession,
than the debased subjects of arbitrary power would be to rescue
theirs from the hands of their oppressors. Let us rather no longer
insult them with the supposition that they can ever reduce
themselves to the necessity of making the experiment, by a blind and
tame submission to the long train of insidious measures which must
precede and produce it.
The argument under the present head may be put into a very concise
form, which appears altogether conclusive. Either the mode in which
the federal government is to be constructed will render it
sufficiently dependent on the people, or it will not. On the first
supposition, it will be restrained by that dependence from forming
schemes obnoxious to their constituents. On the other supposition,
it will not possess the confidence of the people, and its schemes of
usurpation will be easily defeated by the State governments, who
will be supported by the people.
On summing up the considerations stated in this and the last paper,
they seem to amount to the most convincing evidence, that the powers
proposed to be lodged in the federal government are as little
formidable to those reserved to the individual States, as they are
indispensably necessary to accomplish the purposes of the Union; and
that all those alarms which have been sounded, of a meditated and
consequential annihilation of the State governments, must, on the
most favorable interpretation, be ascribed to the chimerical fears
of the authors of them.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 47.
The Particular Structure of the New Government and the
Distribution of Power Among Its Different Parts.
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, January 30, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING reviewed the general form of the proposed government and the
general mass of power allotted to it, I proceed to examine the
particular structure of this government, and the distribution of
this mass of power among its constituent parts.
One of the principal objections inculcated by the more respectable
adversaries to the Constitution, is its supposed violation of the
political maxim, that the legislative, executive, and judiciary
departments ought to be separate and distinct. In the structure of
the federal government, no regard, it is said, seems to have been
paid to this essential precaution in favor of liberty. The several
departments of power are distributed and blended in such a manner as
at once to destroy all symmetry and beauty of form, and to expose
some of the essential parts of the edifice to the danger of being
crushed by the disproportionate weight of other parts.
No political truth is certainly of greater intrinsic value, or is
stamped with the authority of more enlightened patrons of liberty,
than that on which the objection is founded. The accumulation of all
powers, legislative, executive, and judiciary, in the same hands,
whether of one, a few, or many, and whether hereditary,
self-appointed, or elective, may justly be pronounced the very
definition of tyranny. Were the federal Constitution, therefore,
really chargeable with the accumulation of power, or with a mixture
of powers, having a dangerous tendency to such an accumulation, no
further arguments would be necessary to inspire a universal
reprobation of the system. I persuade myself, however, that it will
be made apparent to every one, that the charge cannot be supported,
and that the maxim on which it relies has been totally misconceived
and misapplied. In order to form correct ideas on this important
subject, it will be proper to investigate the sense in which the
preservation of liberty requires that the three great departments of
power should be separate and distinct.
The oracle who is always consulted and cited on this subject is the
celebrated Montesquieu. If he be not the author of this invaluable
precept in the science of politics, he has the merit at least of
displaying and recommending it most effectually to the attention of
mankind. Let us endeavor, in the first place, to ascertain his
meaning on this point.
The British Constitution was to Montesquieu what Homer has been to
the didactic writers on epic poetry. As the latter have considered
the work of the immortal bard as the perfect model from which the
principles and rules of the epic art were to be drawn, and by which
all similar works were to be judged, so this great political critic
appears to have viewed the Constitution of England as the standard,
or to use his own expression, as the mirror of political liberty;
and to have delivered, in the form of elementary truths, the several
characteristic principles of that particular system. That we may be
sure, then, not to mistake his meaning in this case, let us recur to
the source from which the maxim was drawn.
On the slightest view of the British Constitution, we must perceive
that the legislative, executive, and judiciary departments are by no
means totally separate and distinct from each other. The executive
magistrate forms an integral part of the legislative authority. He
alone has the prerogative of making treaties with foreign
sovereigns, which, when made, have, under certain limitations, the
force of legislative acts. All the members of the judiciary
department are appointed by him, can be removed by him on the
address of the two Houses of Parliament, and form, when he pleases
to consult them, one of his constitutional councils. One branch of
the legislative department forms also a great constitutional council
to the executive chief, as, on another hand, it is the sole
depositary of judicial power in cases of impeachment, and is
invested with the supreme appellate jurisdiction in all other cases.
The judges, again, are so far connected with the legislative
department as often to attend and participate in its deliberations,
though not admitted to a legislative vote.
From these facts, by which Montesquieu was guided, it may clearly be
inferred that, in saying "There can be no liberty where the
legislative and executive powers are united in the same person, or
body of magistrates," or, "if the power of judging be not separated
from the legislative and executive powers," he did not mean that
these departments ought to have no PARTIAL AGENCY in, or no CONTROL
over, the acts of each other. His meaning, as his own words import,
and still more conclusively as illustrated by the example in his
eye, can amount to no more than this, that where the WHOLE power of
one department is exercised by the same hands which possess the
WHOLE power of another department, the fundamental principles of a
free constitution are subverted. This would have been the case in
the constitution examined by him, if the king, who is the sole
executive magistrate, had possessed also the complete legislative
power, or the supreme administration of justice; or if the entire
legislative body had possessed the supreme judiciary, or the supreme
executive authority. This, however, is not among the vices of that
constitution. The magistrate in whom the whole executive power
resides cannot of himself make a law, though he can put a negative
on every law; nor administer justice in person, though he has the
appointment of those who do administer it. The judges can exercise
no executive prerogative, though they are shoots from the executive
stock; nor any legislative function, though they may be advised with
by the legislative councils. The entire legislature can perform no
judiciary act, though by the joint act of two of its branches the
judges may be removed from their offices, and though one of its
branches is possessed of the judicial power in the last resort. The
entire legislature, again, can exercise no executive prerogative,
though one of its branches constitutes the supreme executive
magistracy, and another, on the impeachment of a third, can try and
condemn all the subordinate officers in the executive department.
The reasons on which Montesquieu grounds his maxim are a further
demonstration of his meaning. "When the legislative and executive
powers are united in the same person or body," says he, "there can
be no liberty, because apprehensions may arise lest THE SAME monarch
or senate should ENACT tyrannical laws to EXECUTE them in a
tyrannical manner." Again: "Were the power of judging joined with
the legislative, the life and liberty of the subject would be
exposed to arbitrary control, for THE JUDGE would then be THE
LEGISLATOR. Were it joined to the executive power, THE JUDGE might
behave with all the violence of AN OPPRESSOR." Some of these reasons
are more fully explained in other passages; but briefly stated as
they are here, they sufficiently establish the meaning which we have
put on this celebrated maxim of this celebrated author.
If we look into the constitutions of the several States, we find
that, notwithstanding the emphatical and, in some instances, the
unqualified terms in which this axiom has been laid down, there is
not a single instance in which the several departments of power have
been kept absolutely separate and distinct. New Hampshire, whose
constitution was the last formed, seems to have been fully aware of
the impossibility and inexpediency of avoiding any mixture whatever
of these departments, and has qualified the doctrine by declaring
"that the legislative, executive, and judiciary powers ought to be
kept as separate from, and independent of, each other AS THE NATURE
OF A FREE GOVERNMENT WILL ADMIT; OR AS IS CONSISTENT WITH THAT CHAIN
OF CONNECTION THAT BINDS THE WHOLE FABRIC OF THE CONSTITUTION IN ONE
INDISSOLUBLE BOND OF UNITY AND AMITY." Her constitution accordingly
mixes these departments in several respects. The Senate, which is a
branch of the legislative department, is also a judicial tribunal
for the trial of impeachments. The President, who is the head of the
executive department, is the presiding member also of the Senate;
and, besides an equal vote in all cases, has a casting vote in case
of a tie. The executive head is himself eventually elective every
year by the legislative department, and his council is every year
chosen by and from the members of the same department. Several of
the officers of state are also appointed by the legislature. And the
members of the judiciary department are appointed by the executive
department.
The constitution of Massachusetts has observed a sufficient though
less pointed caution, in expressing this fundamental article of
liberty. It declares "that the legislative department shall never
exercise the executive and judicial powers, or either of them; the
executive shall never exercise the legislative and judicial powers,
or either of them; the judicial shall never exercise the legislative
and executive powers, or either of them." This declaration
corresponds precisely with the doctrine of Montesquieu, as it has
been explained, and is not in a single point violated by the plan of
the convention. It goes no farther than to prohibit any one of the
entire departments from exercising the powers of another department.
In the very Constitution to which it is prefixed, a partial mixture
of powers has been admitted. The executive magistrate has a
qualified negative on the legislative body, and the Senate, which is
a part of the legislature, is a court of impeachment for members
both of the executive and judiciary departments. The members of the
judiciary department, again, are appointable by the executive
department, and removable by the same authority on the address of
the two legislative branches. Lastly, a number of the officers of
government are annually appointed by the legislative department. As
the appointment to offices, particularly executive offices, is in
its nature an executive function, the compilers of the Constitution
have, in this last point at least, violated the rule established by
themselves.
I pass over the constitutions of Rhode Island and Connecticut,
because they were formed prior to the Revolution, and even before
the principle under examination had become an object of political
attention.
The constitution of New York contains no declaration on this
subject; but appears very clearly to have been framed with an eye to
the danger of improperly blending the different departments. It
gives, nevertheless, to the executive magistrate, a partial control
over the legislative department; and, what is more, gives a like
control to the judiciary department; and even blends the executive
and judiciary departments in the exercise of this control. In its
council of appointment members of the legislative are associated
with the executive authority, in the appointment of officers, both
executive and judiciary. And its court for the trial of impeachments
and correction of errors is to consist of one branch of the
legislature and the principal members of the judiciary department.
The constitution of New Jersey has blended the different powers of
government more than any of the preceding. The governor, who is the
executive magistrate, is appointed by the legislature; is chancellor
and ordinary, or surrogate of the State; is a member of the Supreme
Court of Appeals, and president, with a casting vote, of one of the
legislative branches. The same legislative branch acts again as
executive council of the governor, and with him constitutes the
Court of Appeals. The members of the judiciary department are
appointed by the legislative department and removable by one branch
of it, on the impeachment of the other.
According to the constitution of Pennsylvania, the president, who is
the head of the executive department, is annually elected by a vote
in which the legislative department predominates. In conjunction
with an executive council, he appoints the members of the judiciary
department, and forms a court of impeachment for trial of all
officers, judiciary as well as executive. The judges of the Supreme
Court and justices of the peace seem also to be removable by the
legislature; and the executive power of pardoning in certain cases,
to be referred to the same department. The members of the executive
council are made EX-OFFICIO justices of peace throughout the State.
In Delaware, the chief executive magistrate is annually elected by
the legislative department. The speakers of the two legislative
branches are vice-presidents in the executive department. The
executive chief, with six others, appointed, three by each of the
legislative branches constitutes the Supreme Court of Appeals; he is
joined with the legislative department in the appointment of the
other judges. Throughout the States, it appears that the members of
the legislature may at the same time be justices of the peace; in
this State, the members of one branch of it are EX-OFFICIO justices
of the peace; as are also the members of the executive council. The
principal officers of the executive department are appointed by the
legislative; and one branch of the latter forms a court of
impeachments. All officers may be removed on address of the
legislature.
Maryland has adopted the maxim in the most unqualified terms;
declaring that the legislative, executive, and judicial powers of
government ought to be forever separate and distinct from each
other. Her constitution, notwithstanding, makes the executive
magistrate appointable by the legislative department; and the
members of the judiciary by the executive department.
The language of Virginia is still more pointed on this subject. Her
constitution declares, "that the legislative, executive, and
judiciary departments shall be separate and distinct; so that
neither exercise the powers properly belonging to the other; nor
shall any person exercise the powers of more than one of them at the
same time, except that the justices of county courts shall be
eligible to either House of Assembly." Yet we find not only this
express exception, with respect to the members of the inferior
courts, but that the chief magistrate, with his executive council,
are appointable by the legislature; that two members of the latter
are triennially displaced at the pleasure of the legislature; and
that all the principal offices, both executive and judiciary, are
filled by the same department. The executive prerogative of pardon,
also, is in one case vested in the legislative department.
The constitution of North Carolina, which declares "that the
legislative, executive, and supreme judicial powers of government
ought to be forever separate and distinct from each other," refers,
at the same time, to the legislative department, the appointment not
only of the executive chief, but all the principal officers within
both that and the judiciary department.
In South Carolina, the constitution makes the executive magistracy
eligible by the legislative department. It gives to the latter,
also, the appointment of the members of the judiciary department,
including even justices of the peace and sheriffs; and the
appointment of officers in the executive department, down to
captains in the army and navy of the State.
In the constitution of Georgia, where it is declared "that the
legislative, executive, and judiciary departments shall be separate
and distinct, so that neither exercise the powers properly belonging
to the other," we find that the executive department is to be filled
by appointments of the legislature; and the executive prerogative of
pardon to be finally exercised by the same authority. Even justices
of the peace are to be appointed by the legislature.
In citing these cases, in which the legislative, executive, and
judiciary departments have not been kept totally separate and
distinct, I wish not to be regarded as an advocate for the
particular organizations of the several State governments. I am
fully aware that among the many excellent principles which they
exemplify, they carry strong marks of the haste, and still stronger
of the inexperience, under which they were framed. It is but too
obvious that in some instances the fundamental principle under
consideration has been violated by too great a mixture, and even an
actual consolidation, of the different powers; and that in no
instance has a competent provision been made for maintaining in
practice the separation delineated on paper. What I have wished to
evince is, that the charge brought against the proposed
Constitution, of violating the sacred maxim of free government, is
warranted neither by the real meaning annexed to that maxim by its
author, nor by the sense in which it has hitherto been understood in
America. This interesting subject will be resumed in the ensuing
paper.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 48.
These Departments Should Not Be So Far Separated as to Have No
Constitutional Control Over Each Other.
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 1, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT WAS shown in the last paper that the political apothegm there
examined does not require that the legislative, executive, and
judiciary departments should be wholly unconnected with each other.
I shall undertake, in the next place, to show that unless these
departments be so far connected and blended as to give to each a
constitutional control over the others, the degree of separation
which the maxim requires, as essential to a free government, can
never in practice be duly maintained.
It is agreed on all sides, that the powers properly belonging to one
of the departments ought not to be directly and completely
administered by either of the other departments. It is equally
evident, that none of them ought to possess, directly or indirectly,
an overruling influence over the others, in the administration of
their respective powers. It will not be denied, that power is of an
encroaching nature, and that it ought to be effectually restrained
from passing the limits assigned to it. After discriminating,
therefore, in theory, the several classes of power, as they may in
their nature be legislative, executive, or judiciary, the next and
most difficult task is to provide some practical security for each,
against the invasion of the others. What this security ought to be,
is the great problem to be solved.
Will it be sufficient to mark, with precision, the boundaries of
these departments, in the constitution of the government, and to
trust to these parchment barriers against the encroaching spirit of
power? This is the security which appears to have been principally
relied on by the compilers of most of the American constitutions.
But experience assures us, that the efficacy of the provision has
been greatly overrated; and that some more adequate defense is
indispensably necessary for the more feeble, against the more
powerful, members of the government. The legislative department is
everywhere extending the sphere of its activity, and drawing all
power into its impetuous vortex.
The founders of our republics have so much merit for the wisdom
which they have displayed, that no task can be less pleasing than
that of pointing out the errors into which they have fallen. A
respect for truth, however, obliges us to remark, that they seem
never for a moment to have turned their eyes from the danger to
liberty from the overgrown and all-grasping prerogative of an
hereditary magistrate, supported and fortified by an hereditary
branch of the legislative authority. They seem never to have
recollected the danger from legislative usurpations, which, by
assembling all power in the same hands, must lead to the same
tyranny as is threatened by executive usurpations.
In a government where numerous and extensive prerogatives are placed
in the hands of an hereditary monarch, the executive department is
very justly regarded as the source of danger, and watched with all
the jealousy which a zeal for liberty ought to inspire. In a
democracy, where a multitude of people exercise in person the
legislative functions, and are continually exposed, by their
incapacity for regular deliberation and concerted measures, to the
ambitious intrigues of their executive magistrates, tyranny may well
be apprehended, on some favorable emergency, to start up in the same
quarter. But in a representative republic, where the executive
magistracy is carefully limited; both in the extent and the duration
of its power; and where the legislative power is exercised by an
assembly, which is inspired, by a supposed influence over the
people, with an intrepid confidence in its own strength; which is
sufficiently numerous to feel all the passions which actuate a
multitude, yet not so numerous as to be incapable of pursuing the
objects of its passions, by means which reason prescribes; it is
against the enterprising ambition of this department that the people
ought to indulge all their jealousy and exhaust all their
precautions.
The legislative department derives a superiority in our governments
from other circumstances. Its constitutional powers being at once
more extensive, and less susceptible of precise limits, it can, with
the greater facility, mask, under complicated and indirect measures,
the encroachments which it makes on the co-ordinate departments. It
is not unfrequently a question of real nicety in legislative bodies,
whether the operation of a particular measure will, or will not,
extend beyond the legislative sphere. On the other side, the
executive power being restrained within a narrower compass, and
being more simple in its nature, and the judiciary being described
by landmarks still less uncertain, projects of usurpation by either
of these departments would immediately betray and defeat themselves.
Nor is this all: as the legislative department alone has access to
the pockets of the people, and has in some constitutions full
discretion, and in all a prevailing influence, over the pecuniary
rewards of those who fill the other departments, a dependence is
thus created in the latter, which gives still greater facility to
encroachments of the former.
I have appealed to our own experience for the truth of what I
advance on this subject. Were it necessary to verify this experience
by particular proofs, they might be multiplied without end. I might
find a witness in every citizen who has shared in, or been attentive
to, the course of public administrations. I might collect vouchers
in abundance from the records and archives of every State in the
Union. But as a more concise, and at the same time equally
satisfactory, evidence, I will refer to the example of two States,
attested by two unexceptionable authorities.
The first example is that of Virginia, a State which, as we have
seen, has expressly declared in its constitution, that the three
great departments ought not to be intermixed. The authority in
support of it is Mr. Jefferson, who, besides his other advantages
for remarking the operation of the government, was himself the chief
magistrate of it. In order to convey fully the ideas with which his
experience had impressed him on this subject, it will be necessary
to quote a passage of some length from his very interesting Notes on
the State of Virginia, p. 195. "All the powers of government,
legislative, executive, and judiciary, result to the legislative
body. The concentrating these in the same hands, is precisely the
definition of despotic government. It will be no alleviation, that
these powers will be exercised by a plurality of hands, and not by a
single one. One hundred and seventy-three despots would surely be as
oppressive as one. Let those who doubt it, turn their eyes on the
republic of Venice. As little will it avail us, that they are chosen
by ourselves. An ELECTIVE DESPOTISM was not the government we fought
for; but one which should not only be founded on free principles,
but in which the powers of government should be so divided and
balanced among several bodies of magistracy, as that no one could
transcend their legal limits, without being effectually checked and
restrained by the others. For this reason, that convention which
passed the ordinance of government, laid its foundation on this
basis, that the legislative, executive, and judiciary departments
should be separate and distinct, so that no person should exercise
the powers of more than one of them at the same time. BUT NO BARRIER
WAS PROVIDED BETWEEN THESE SEVERAL POWERS. The judiciary and the
executive members were left dependent on the legislative for their
subsistence in office, and some of them for their continuance in it.
If, therefore, the legislature assumes executive and judiciary
powers, no opposition is likely to be made; nor, if made, can be
effectual; because in that case they may put their proceedings into
the form of acts of Assembly, which will render them obligatory on
the other branches. They have accordingly, IN MANY instances,
DECIDED RIGHTS which should have been left to JUDICIARY CONTROVERSY,
and THE DIRECTION OF THE EXECUTIVE, DURING THE WHOLE TIME OF THEIR
SESSION, IS BECOMING HABITUAL AND FAMILIAR."
The other State which I shall take for an example is Pennsylvania;
and the other authority, the Council of Censors, which assembled in
the years 1783 and 1784. A part of the duty of this body, as marked
out by the constitution, was "to inquire whether the constitution
had been preserved inviolate in every part; and whether the
legislative and executive branches of government had performed their
duty as guardians of the people, or assumed to themselves, or
exercised, other or greater powers than they are entitled to by the
constitution." In the execution of this trust, the council were
necessarily led to a comparison of both the legislative and
executive proceedings, with the constitutional powers of these
departments; and from the facts enumerated, and to the truth of most
of which both sides in the council subscribed, it appears that the
constitution had been flagrantly violated by the legislature in a
variety of important instances.
A great number of laws had been passed, violating, without any
apparent necessity, the rule requiring that all bills of a public
nature shall be previously printed for the consideration of the
people; although this is one of the precautions chiefly relied on by
the constitution against improper acts of legislature.
The constitutional trial by jury had been violated, and powers
assumed which had not been delegated by the constitution.
Executive powers had been usurped.
The salaries of the judges, which the constitution expressly
requires to be fixed, had been occasionally varied; and cases
belonging to the judiciary department frequently drawn within
legislative cognizance and determination.
Those who wish to see the several particulars falling under each of
these heads, may consult the journals of the council, which are in
print. Some of them, it will be found, may be imputable to peculiar
circumstances connected with the war; but the greater part of them
may be considered as the spontaneous shoots of an ill-constituted
government.
It appears, also, that the executive department had not been
innocent of frequent breaches of the constitution. There are three
observations, however, which ought to be made on this head: FIRST, a
great proportion of the instances were either immediately produced
by the necessities of the war, or recommended by Congress or the
commander-in-chief; SECOND, in most of the other instances, they
conformed either to the declared or the known sentiments of the
legislative department; THIRD, the executive department of
Pennsylvania is distinguished from that of the other States by the
number of members composing it. In this respect, it has as much
affinity to a legislative assembly as to an executive council. And
being at once exempt from the restraint of an individual
responsibility for the acts of the body, and deriving confidence
from mutual example and joint influence, unauthorized measures
would, of course, be more freely hazarded, than where the executive
department is administered by a single hand, or by a few hands.
The conclusion which I am warranted in drawing from these
observations is, that a mere demarcation on parchment of the
constitutional limits of the several departments, is not a
sufficient guard against those encroachments which lead to a
tyrannical concentration of all the powers of government in the same
hands.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 49.
Method of Guarding Against the Encroachments of Any One Department
of Government by Appealing to the People Through a Convention.
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 2, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE author of the "Notes on the State of Virginia," quoted in the
last paper, has subjoined to that valuable work the draught of a
constitution, which had been prepared in order to be laid before a
convention, expected to be called in 1783, by the legislature, for
the establishment of a constitution for that commonwealth. The plan,
like every thing from the same pen, marks a turn of thinking,
original, comprehensive, and accurate; and is the more worthy of
attention as it equally displays a fervent attachment to republican
government and an enlightened view of the dangerous propensities
against which it ought to be guarded. One of the precautions which
he proposes, and on which he appears ultimately to rely as a
palladium to the weaker departments of power against the invasions
of the stronger, is perhaps altogether his own, and as it
immediately relates to the subject of our present inquiry, ought not
to be overlooked.
His proposition is, "that whenever any two of the three branches of
government shall concur in opinion, each by the voices of two thirds
of their whole number, that a convention is necessary for altering
the constitution, or CORRECTING BREACHES OF IT, a convention shall
be called for the purpose."
As the people are the only legitimate fountain of power, and it is
from them that the constitutional charter, under which the several
branches of government hold their power, is derived, it seems
strictly consonant to the republican theory, to recur to the same
original authority, not only whenever it may be necessary to
enlarge, diminish, or new-model the powers of the government, but
also whenever any one of the departments may commit encroachments on
the chartered authorities of the others. The several departments
being perfectly co-ordinate by the terms of their common commission,
none of them, it is evident, can pretend to an exclusive or superior
right of settling the boundaries between their respective powers;
and how are the encroachments of the stronger to be prevented, or
the wrongs of the weaker to be redressed, without an appeal to the
people themselves, who, as the grantors of the commissions, can
alone declare its true meaning, and enforce its observance?
There is certainly great force in this reasoning, and it must be
allowed to prove that a constitutional road to the decision of the
people ought to be marked out and kept open, for certain great and
extraordinary occasions. But there appear to be insuperable
objections against the proposed recurrence to the people, as a
provision in all cases for keeping the several departments of power
within their constitutional limits.
In the first place, the provision does not reach the case of a
combination of two of the departments against the third. If the
legislative authority, which possesses so many means of operating on
the motives of the other departments, should be able to gain to its
interest either of the others, or even one third of its members, the
remaining department could derive no advantage from its remedial
provision. I do not dwell, however, on this objection, because it
may be thought to be rather against the modification of the
principle, than against the principle itself.
In the next place, it may be considered as an objection inherent in
the principle, that as every appeal to the people would carry an
implication of some defect in the government, frequent appeals
would, in a great measure, deprive the government of that veneration
which time bestows on every thing, and without which perhaps the
wisest and freest governments would not possess the requisite
stability. If it be true that all governments rest on opinion, it is
no less true that the strength of opinion in each individual, and
its practical influence on his conduct, depend much on the number
which he supposes to have entertained the same opinion. The reason
of man, like man himself, is timid and cautious when left alone, and
acquires firmness and confidence in proportion to the number with
which it is associated. When the examples which fortify opinion are
ANCIENT as well as NUMEROUS, they are known to have a double effect.
In a nation of philosophers, this consideration ought to be
disregarded. A reverence for the laws would be sufficiently
inculcated by the voice of an enlightened reason. But a nation of
philosophers is as little to be expected as the philosophical race
of kings wished for by Plato. And in every other nation, the most
rational government will not find it a superfluous advantage to have
the prejudices of the community on its side.
The danger of disturbing the public tranquillity by interesting too
strongly the public passions, is a still more serious objection
against a frequent reference of constitutional questions to the
decision of the whole society. Notwithstanding the success which has
attended the revisions of our established forms of government, and
which does so much honor to the virtue and intelligence of the
people of America, it must be confessed that the experiments are of
too ticklish a nature to be unnecessarily multiplied. We are to
recollect that all the existing constitutions were formed in the
midst of a danger which repressed the passions most unfriendly to
order and concord; of an enthusiastic confidence of the people in
their patriotic leaders, which stifled the ordinary diversity of
opinions on great national questions; of a universal ardor for new
and opposite forms, produced by a universal resentment and
indignation against the ancient government; and whilst no spirit of
party connected with the changes to be made, or the abuses to be
reformed, could mingle its leaven in the operation. The future
situations in which we must expect to be usually placed, do not
present any equivalent security against the danger which is
apprehended.
But the greatest objection of all is, that the decisions which would
probably result from such appeals would not answer the purpose of
maintaining the constitutional equilibrium of the government. We
have seen that the tendency of republican governments is to an
aggrandizement of the legislative at the expense of the other
departments. The appeals to the people, therefore, would usually be
made by the executive and judiciary departments. But whether made by
one side or the other, would each side enjoy equal advantages on the
trial? Let us view their different situations. The members of the
executive and judiciary departments are few in number, and can be
personally known to a small part only of the people. The latter, by
the mode of their appointment, as well as by the nature and
permanency of it, are too far removed from the people to share much
in their prepossessions. The former are generally the objects of
jealousy, and their administration is always liable to be discolored
and rendered unpopular. The members of the legislative department,
on the other hand, are numerous. They are distributed and dwell
among the people at large. Their connections of blood, of
friendship, and of acquaintance embrace a great proportion of the
most influential part of the society. The nature of their public
trust implies a personal influence among the people, and that they
are more immediately the confidential guardians of the rights and
liberties of the people. With these advantages, it can hardly be
supposed that the adverse party would have an equal chance for a
favorable issue.
But the legislative party would not only be able to plead their
cause most successfully with the people. They would probably be
constituted themselves the judges. The same influence which had
gained them an election into the legislature, would gain them a seat
in the convention. If this should not be the case with all, it would
probably be the case with many, and pretty certainly with those
leading characters, on whom every thing depends in such bodies. The
convention, in short, would be composed chiefly of men who had been,
who actually were, or who expected to be, members of the department
whose conduct was arraigned. They would consequently be parties to
the very question to be decided by them.
It might, however, sometimes happen, that appeals would be made
under circumstances less adverse to the executive and judiciary
departments. The usurpations of the legislature might be so flagrant
and so sudden, as to admit of no specious coloring. A strong party
among themselves might take side with the other branches. The
executive power might be in the hands of a peculiar favorite of the
people. In such a posture of things, the public decision might be
less swayed by prepossessions in favor of the legislative party. But
still it could never be expected to turn on the true merits of the
question. It would inevitably be connected with the spirit of
pre-existing parties, or of parties springing out of the question
itself. It would be connected with persons of distinguished
character and extensive influence in the community. It would be
pronounced by the very men who had been agents in, or opponents of,
the measures to which the decision would relate. The PASSIONS,
therefore, not the REASON, of the public would sit in judgment. But
it is the reason, alone, of the public, that ought to control and
regulate the government. The passions ought to be controlled and
regulated by the government.
We found in the last paper, that mere declarations in the written
constitution are not sufficient to restrain the several departments
within their legal rights. It appears in this, that occasional
appeals to the people would be neither a proper nor an effectual
provision for that purpose. How far the provisions of a different
nature contained in the plan above quoted might be adequate, I do
not examine. Some of them are unquestionably founded on sound
political principles, and all of them are framed with singular
ingenuity and precision.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 50.
Periodical Appeals to the People Considered
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 5, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT MAY be contended, perhaps, that instead of OCCASIONAL appeals to
the people, which are liable to the objections urged against them,
PERIODICAL appeals are the proper and adequate means of PREVENTING
AND CORRECTING INFRACTIONS OF THE CONSTITUTION.
It will be attended to, that in the examination of these expedients,
I confine myself to their aptitude for ENFORCING the Constitution,
by keeping the several departments of power within their due bounds,
without particularly considering them as provisions for ALTERING the
Constitution itself. In the first view, appeals to the people at
fixed periods appear to be nearly as ineligible as appeals on
particular occasions as they emerge. If the periods be separated by
short intervals, the measures to be reviewed and rectified will have
been of recent date, and will be connected with all the
circumstances which tend to vitiate and pervert the result of
occasional revisions. If the periods be distant from each other, the
same remark will be applicable to all recent measures; and in
proportion as the remoteness of the others may favor a dispassionate
review of them, this advantage is inseparable from inconveniences
which seem to counterbalance it. In the first place, a distant
prospect of public censure would be a very feeble restraint on power
from those excesses to which it might be urged by the force of
present motives. Is it to be imagined that a legislative assembly,
consisting of a hundred or two hundred members, eagerly bent on some
favorite object, and breaking through the restraints of the
Constitution in pursuit of it, would be arrested in their career, by
considerations drawn from a censorial revision of their conduct at
the future distance of ten, fifteen, or twenty years? In the next
place, the abuses would often have completed their mischievous
effects before the remedial provision would be applied. And in the
last place, where this might not be the case, they would be of long
standing, would have taken deep root, and would not easily be
extirpated.
The scheme of revising the constitution, in order to correct recent
breaches of it, as well as for other purposes, has been actually
tried in one of the States. One of the objects of the Council of
Censors which met in Pennsylvania in 1783 and 1784, was, as we have
seen, to inquire, "whether the constitution had been violated, and
whether the legislative and executive departments had encroached
upon each other." This important and novel experiment in politics
merits, in several points of view, very particular attention. In
some of them it may, perhaps, as a single experiment, made under
circumstances somewhat peculiar, be thought to be not absolutely
conclusive. But as applied to the case under consideration, it
involves some facts, which I venture to remark, as a complete and
satisfactory illustration of the reasoning which I have employed.
First. It appears, from the names of the gentlemen who composed the
council, that some, at least, of its most active members had also
been active and leading characters in the parties which pre-existed
in the State.
Second. It appears that the same active and leading members of the
council had been active and influential members of the legislative
and executive branches, within the period to be reviewed; and even
patrons or opponents of the very measures to be thus brought to the
test of the constitution. Two of the members had been
vice-presidents of the State, and several other members of the
executive council, within the seven preceding years. One of them had
been speaker, and a number of others distinguished members, of the
legislative assembly within the same period.
Third. Every page of their proceedings witnesses the effect of all
these circumstances on the temper of their deliberations. Throughout
the continuance of the council, it was split into two fixed and
violent parties. The fact is acknowledged and lamented by
themselves. Had this not been the case, the face of their
proceedings exhibits a proof equally satisfactory. In all questions,
however unimportant in themselves, or unconnected with each other,
the same names stand invariably contrasted on the opposite columns.
Every unbiased observer may infer, without danger of mistake, and at
the same time without meaning to reflect on either party, or any
individuals of either party, that, unfortunately, PASSION, not
REASON, must have presided over their decisions. When men exercise
their reason coolly and freely on a variety of distinct questions,
they inevitably fall into different opinions on some of them. When
they are governed by a common passion, their opinions, if they are
so to be called, will be the same.
Fourth. It is at least problematical, whether the decisions of this
body do not, in several instances, misconstrue the limits prescribed
for the legislative and executive departments, instead of reducing
and limiting them within their constitutional places.
Fifth. I have never understood that the decisions of the council on
constitutional questions, whether rightly or erroneously formed,
have had any effect in varying the practice founded on legislative
constructions. It even appears, if I mistake not, that in one
instance the contemporary legislature denied the constructions of
the council, and actually prevailed in the contest.
This censorial body, therefore, proves at the same time, by its
researches, the existence of the disease, and by its example, the
inefficacy of the remedy.
This conclusion cannot be invalidated by alleging that the State in
which the experiment was made was at that crisis, and had been for a
long time before, violently heated and distracted by the rage of
party. Is it to be presumed, that at any future septennial epoch the
same State will be free from parties? Is it to be presumed that any
other State, at the same or any other given period, will be exempt
from them? Such an event ought to be neither presumed nor desired;
because an extinction of parties necessarily implies either a
universal alarm for the public safety, or an absolute extinction of
liberty.
Were the precaution taken of excluding from the assemblies elected
by the people, to revise the preceding administration of the
government, all persons who should have been concerned with the
government within the given period, the difficulties would not be
obviated. The important task would probably devolve on men, who,
with inferior capacities, would in other respects be little better
qualified. Although they might not have been personally concerned in
the administration, and therefore not immediately agents in the
measures to be examined, they would probably have been involved in
the parties connected with these measures, and have been elected
under their auspices.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 51.
The Structure of the Government Must Furnish the Proper Checks and
Balances Between the Different Departments.
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 6, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO WHAT expedient, then, shall we finally resort, for maintaining in
practice the necessary partition of power among the several
departments, as laid down in the Constitution? The only answer that
can be given is, that as all these exterior provisions are found to
be inadequate, the defect must be supplied, by so contriving the
interior structure of the government as that its several constituent
parts may, by their mutual relations, be the means of keeping each
other in their proper places. Without presuming to undertake a full
development of this important idea, I will hazard a few general
observations, which may perhaps place it in a clearer light, and
enable us to form a more correct judgment of the principles and
structure of the government planned by the convention.
In order to lay a due foundation for that separate and distinct
exercise of the different powers of government, which to a certain
extent is admitted on all hands to be essential to the preservation
of liberty, it is evident that each department should have a will of
its own; and consequently should be so constituted that the members
of each should have as little agency as possible in the appointment
of the members of the others. Were this principle rigorously adhered
to, it would require that all the appointments for the supreme
executive, legislative, and judiciary magistracies should be drawn
from the same fountain of authority, the people, through channels
having no communication whatever with one another. Perhaps such a
plan of constructing the several departments would be less difficult
in practice than it may in contemplation appear. Some difficulties,
however, and some additional expense would attend the execution of
it. Some deviations, therefore, from the principle must be admitted.
In the constitution of the judiciary department in particular, it
might be inexpedient to insist rigorously on the principle: first,
because peculiar qualifications being essential in the members, the
primary consideration ought to be to select that mode of choice
which best secures these qualifications; secondly, because the
permanent tenure by which the appointments are held in that
department, must soon destroy all sense of dependence on the
authority conferring them.
It is equally evident, that the members of each department should be
as little dependent as possible on those of the others, for the
emoluments annexed to their offices. Were the executive magistrate,
or the judges, not independent of the legislature in this
particular, their independence in every other would be merely
nominal.
But the great security against a gradual concentration of the
several powers in the same department, consists in giving to those
who administer each department the necessary constitutional means
and personal motives to resist encroachments of the others. The
provision for defense must in this, as in all other cases, be made
commensurate to the danger of attack. Ambition must be made to
counteract ambition. The interest of the man must be connected with
the constitutional rights of the place. It may be a reflection on
human nature, that such devices should be necessary to control the
abuses of government. But what is government itself, but the
greatest of all reflections on human nature? If men were angels, no
government would be necessary. If angels were to govern men, neither
external nor internal controls on government would be necessary. In
framing a government which is to be administered by men over men,
the great difficulty lies in this: you must first enable the
government to control the governed; and in the next place oblige it
to control itself. A dependence on the people is, no doubt, the
primary control on the government; but experience has taught mankind
the necessity of auxiliary precautions.
This policy of supplying, by opposite and rival interests, the
defect of better motives, might be traced through the whole system
of human affairs, private as well as public. We see it particularly
displayed in all the subordinate distributions of power, where the
constant aim is to divide and arrange the several offices in such a
manner as that each may be a check on the other—that the private
interest of every individual may be a sentinel over the public
rights. These inventions of prudence cannot be less requisite in the
distribution of the supreme powers of the State.
But it is not possible to give to each department an equal power of
self-defense. In republican government, the legislative authority
necessarily predominates. The remedy for this inconveniency is to
divide the legislature into different branches; and to render them,
by different modes of election and different principles of action,
as little connected with each other as the nature of their common
functions and their common dependence on the society will admit. It
may even be necessary to guard against dangerous encroachments by
still further precautions. As the weight of the legislative
authority requires that it should be thus divided, the weakness of
the executive may require, on the other hand, that it should be
fortified. An absolute negative on the legislature appears, at first
view, to be the natural defense with which the executive magistrate
should be armed. But perhaps it would be neither altogether safe nor
alone sufficient. On ordinary occasions it might not be exerted with
the requisite firmness, and on extraordinary occasions it might be
perfidiously abused. May not this defect of an absolute negative be
supplied by some qualified connection between this weaker department
and the weaker branch of the stronger department, by which the
latter may be led to support the constitutional rights of the
former, without being too much detached from the rights of its own
department?
If the principles on which these observations are founded be just,
as I persuade myself they are, and they be applied as a criterion to
the several State constitutions, and to the federal Constitution it
will be found that if the latter does not perfectly correspond with
them, the former are infinitely less able to bear such a test.
There are, moreover, two considerations particularly applicable to
the federal system of America, which place that system in a very
interesting point of view.
First. In a single republic, all the power surrendered by the people
is submitted to the administration of a single government; and the
usurpations are guarded against by a division of the government into
distinct and separate departments. In the compound republic of
America, the power surrendered by the people is first divided
between two distinct governments, and then the portion allotted to
each subdivided among distinct and separate departments. Hence a
double security arises to the rights of the people. The different
governments will control each other, at the same time that each will
be controlled by itself.
Second. It is of great importance in a republic not only to guard
the society against the oppression of its rulers, but to guard one
part of the society against the injustice of the other part.
Different interests necessarily exist in different classes of
citizens. If a majority be united by a common interest, the rights
of the minority will be insecure. There are but two methods of
providing against this evil: the one by creating a will in the
community independent of the majority—that is, of the society
itself; the other, by comprehending in the society so many separate
descriptions of citizens as will render an unjust combination of a
majority of the whole very improbable, if not impracticable. The
first method prevails in all governments possessing an hereditary or
self-appointed authority. This, at best, is but a precarious
security; because a power independent of the society may as well
espouse the unjust views of the major, as the rightful interests of
the minor party, and may possibly be turned against both parties.
The second method will be exemplified in the federal republic of the
United States. Whilst all authority in it will be derived from and
dependent on the society, the society itself will be broken into so
many parts, interests, and classes of citizens, that the rights of
individuals, or of the minority, will be in little danger from
interested combinations of the majority. In a free government the
security for civil rights must be the same as that for religious
rights. It consists in the one case in the multiplicity of
interests, and in the other in the multiplicity of sects. The degree
of security in both cases will depend on the number of interests and
sects; and this may be presumed to depend on the extent of country
and number of people comprehended under the same government. This
view of the subject must particularly recommend a proper federal
system to all the sincere and considerate friends of republican
government, since it shows that in exact proportion as the territory
of the Union may be formed into more circumscribed Confederacies, or
States oppressive combinations of a majority will be facilitated:
the best security, under the republican forms, for the rights of
every class of citizens, will be diminished: and consequently the
stability and independence of some member of the government, the
only other security, must be proportionately increased. Justice is
the end of government. It is the end of civil society. It ever has
been and ever will be pursued until it be obtained, or until liberty
be lost in the pursuit. In a society under the forms of which the
stronger faction can readily unite and oppress the weaker, anarchy
may as truly be said to reign as in a state of nature, where the
weaker individual is not secured against the violence of the
stronger; and as, in the latter state, even the stronger individuals
are prompted, by the uncertainty of their condition, to submit to a
government which may protect the weak as well as themselves; so, in
the former state, will the more powerful factions or parties be
gradually induced, by a like motive, to wish for a government which
will protect all parties, the weaker as well as the more powerful.
It can be little doubted that if the State of Rhode Island was
separated from the Confederacy and left to itself, the insecurity of
rights under the popular form of government within such narrow
limits would be displayed by such reiterated oppressions of factious
majorities that some power altogether independent of the people
would soon be called for by the voice of the very factions whose
misrule had proved the necessity of it. In the extended republic of
the United States, and among the great variety of interests,
parties, and sects which it embraces, a coalition of a majority of
the whole society could seldom take place on any other principles
than those of justice and the general good; whilst there being thus
less danger to a minor from the will of a major party, there must be
less pretext, also, to provide for the security of the former, by
introducing into the government a will not dependent on the latter,
or, in other words, a will independent of the society itself. It is
no less certain than it is important, notwithstanding the contrary
opinions which have been entertained, that the larger the society,
provided it lie within a practical sphere, the more duly capable it
will be of self-government. And happily for the REPUBLICAN CAUSE,
the practicable sphere may be carried to a very great extent, by a
judicious modification and mixture of the FEDERAL PRINCIPLE.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 52.
The House of Representatives
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 8, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
FROM the more general inquiries pursued in the four last papers, I
pass on to a more particular examination of the several parts of the
government. I shall begin with the House of Representatives.
The first view to be taken of this part of the government relates to
the qualifications of the electors and the elected. Those of the
former are to be the same with those of the electors of the most
numerous branch of the State legislatures. The definition of the
right of suffrage is very justly regarded as a fundamental article
of republican government. It was incumbent on the convention,
therefore, to define and establish this right in the Constitution.
To have left it open for the occasional regulation of the Congress,
would have been improper for the reason just mentioned. To have
submitted it to the legislative discretion of the States, would have
been improper for the same reason; and for the additional reason
that it would have rendered too dependent on the State governments
that branch of the federal government which ought to be dependent on
the people alone. To have reduced the different qualifications in
the different States to one uniform rule, would probably have been
as dissatisfactory to some of the States as it would have been
difficult to the convention. The provision made by the convention
appears, therefore, to be the best that lay within their option. It
must be satisfactory to every State, because it is conformable to
the standard already established, or which may be established, by
the State itself. It will be safe to the United States, because,
being fixed by the State constitutions, it is not alterable by the
State governments, and it cannot be feared that the people of the
States will alter this part of their constitutions in such a manner
as to abridge the rights secured to them by the federal
Constitution.
The qualifications of the elected, being less carefully and properly
defined by the State constitutions, and being at the same time more
susceptible of uniformity, have been very properly considered and
regulated by the convention. A representative of the United States
must be of the age of twenty-five years; must have been seven years
a citizen of the United States; must, at the time of his election,
be an inhabitant of the State he is to represent; and, during the
time of his service, must be in no office under the United States.
Under these reasonable limitations, the door of this part of the
federal government is open to merit of every description, whether
native or adoptive, whether young or old, and without regard to
poverty or wealth, or to any particular profession of religious
faith.
The term for which the representatives are to be elected falls under
a second view which may be taken of this branch. In order to decide
on the propriety of this article, two questions must be considered:
first, whether biennial elections will, in this case, be safe;
secondly, whether they be necessary or useful.
First. As it is essential to liberty that the government in general
should have a common interest with the people, so it is particularly
essential that the branch of it under consideration should have an
immediate dependence on, and an intimate sympathy with, the people.
Frequent elections are unquestionably the only policy by which this
dependence and sympathy can be effectually secured. But what
particular degree of frequency may be absolutely necessary for the
purpose, does not appear to be susceptible of any precise
calculation, and must depend on a variety of circumstances with
which it may be connected. Let us consult experience, the guide that
ought always to be followed whenever it can be found.
The scheme of representation, as a substitute for a meeting of the
citizens in person, being at most but very imperfectly known to
ancient polity, it is in more modern times only that we are to
expect instructive examples. And even here, in order to avoid a
research too vague and diffusive, it will be proper to confine
ourselves to the few examples which are best known, and which bear
the greatest analogy to our particular case. The first to which this
character ought to be applied, is the House of Commons in Great
Britain. The history of this branch of the English Constitution,
anterior to the date of Magna Charta, is too obscure to yield
instruction. The very existence of it has been made a question among
political antiquaries. The earliest records of subsequent date prove
that parliaments were to SIT only every year; not that they were to
be ELECTED every year. And even these annual sessions were left so
much at the discretion of the monarch, that, under various pretexts,
very long and dangerous intermissions were often contrived by royal
ambition. To remedy this grievance, it was provided by a statute in
the reign of Charles II, that the intermissions should not be
protracted beyond a period of three years. On the accession of
William III, when a revolution took place in the government, the
subject was still more seriously resumed, and it was declared to be
among the fundamental rights of the people that parliaments ought to
be held FREQUENTLY. By another statute, which passed a few years
later in the same reign, the term "frequently," which had alluded to
the triennial period settled in the time of Charles II, is reduced
to a precise meaning, it being expressly enacted that a new
parliament shall be called within three years after the termination
of the former. The last change, from three to seven years, is well
known to have been introduced pretty early in the present century,
under on alarm for the Hanoverian succession. From these facts it
appears that the greatest frequency of elections which has been
deemed necessary in that kingdom, for binding the representatives to
their constituents, does not exceed a triennial return of them. And
if we may argue from the degree of liberty retained even under
septennial elections, and all the other vicious ingredients in the
parliamentary constitution, we cannot doubt that a reduction of the
period from seven to three years, with the other necessary reforms,
would so far extend the influence of the people over their
representatives as to satisfy us that biennial elections, under the
federal system, cannot possibly be dangerous to the requisite
dependence of the House of Representatives on their constituents.
Elections in Ireland, till of late, were regulated entirely by the
discretion of the crown, and were seldom repeated, except on the
accession of a new prince, or some other contingent event. The
parliament which commenced with George II. was continued throughout
his whole reign, a period of about thirty-five years. The only
dependence of the representatives on the people consisted in the
right of the latter to supply occasional vacancies by the election
of new members, and in the chance of some event which might produce
a general new election. The ability also of the Irish parliament to
maintain the rights of their constituents, so far as the disposition
might exist, was extremely shackled by the control of the crown over
the subjects of their deliberation. Of late these shackles, if I
mistake not, have been broken; and octennial parliaments have
besides been established. What effect may be produced by this
partial reform, must be left to further experience. The example of
Ireland, from this view of it, can throw but little light on the
subject. As far as we can draw any conclusion from it, it must be
that if the people of that country have been able under all these
disadvantages to retain any liberty whatever, the advantage of
biennial elections would secure to them every degree of liberty,
which might depend on a due connection between their representatives
and themselves.
Let us bring our inquiries nearer home. The example of these States,
when British colonies, claims particular attention, at the same time
that it is so well known as to require little to be said on it. The
principle of representation, in one branch of the legislature at
least, was established in all of them. But the periods of election
were different. They varied from one to seven years. Have we any
reason to infer, from the spirit and conduct of the representatives
of the people, prior to the Revolution, that biennial elections
would have been dangerous to the public liberties? The spirit which
everywhere displayed itself at the commencement of the struggle, and
which vanquished the obstacles to independence, is the best of
proofs that a sufficient portion of liberty had been everywhere
enjoyed to inspire both a sense of its worth and a zeal for its
proper enlargement This remark holds good, as well with regard to
the then colonies whose elections were least frequent, as to those
whose elections were most frequent Virginia was the colony which
stood first in resisting the parliamentary usurpations of Great
Britain; it was the first also in espousing, by public act, the
resolution of independence. In Virginia, nevertheless, if I have not
been misinformed, elections under the former government were
septennial. This particular example is brought into view, not as a
proof of any peculiar merit, for the priority in those instances was
probably accidental; and still less of any advantage in SEPTENNIAL
elections, for when compared with a greater frequency they are
inadmissible; but merely as a proof, and I conceive it to be a very
substantial proof, that the liberties of the people can be in no
danger from BIENNIAL elections.
The conclusion resulting from these examples will be not a little
strengthened by recollecting three circumstances. The first is, that
the federal legislature will possess a part only of that supreme
legislative authority which is vested completely in the British
Parliament; and which, with a few exceptions, was exercised by the
colonial assemblies and the Irish legislature. It is a received and
well-founded maxim, that where no other circumstances affect the
case, the greater the power is, the shorter ought to be its
duration; and, conversely, the smaller the power, the more safely
may its duration be protracted. In the second place, it has, on
another occasion, been shown that the federal legislature will not
only be restrained by its dependence on its people, as other
legislative bodies are, but that it will be, moreover, watched and
controlled by the several collateral legislatures, which other
legislative bodies are not. And in the third place, no comparison
can be made between the means that will be possessed by the more
permanent branches of the federal government for seducing, if they
should be disposed to seduce, the House of Representatives from
their duty to the people, and the means of influence over the
popular branch possessed by the other branches of the government
above cited. With less power, therefore, to abuse, the federal
representatives can be less tempted on one side, and will be doubly
watched on the other.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 53.
The Same Subject Continued (The House of Representatives)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 9, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
I SHALL here, perhaps, be reminded of a current observation, "that
where annual elections end, tyranny begins." If it be true, as has
often been remarked, that sayings which become proverbial are
generally founded in reason, it is not less true, that when once
established, they are often applied to cases to which the reason of
them does not extend. I need not look for a proof beyond the case
before us. What is the reason on which this proverbial observation
is founded? No man will subject himself to the ridicule of
pretending that any natural connection subsists between the sun or
the seasons, and the period within which human virtue can bear the
temptations of power. Happily for mankind, liberty is not, in this
respect, confined to any single point of time; but lies within
extremes, which afford sufficient latitude for all the variations
which may be required by the various situations and circumstances of
civil society. The election of magistrates might be, if it were
found expedient, as in some instances it actually has been, daily,
weekly, or monthly, as well as annual; and if circumstances may
require a deviation from the rule on one side, why not also on the
other side? Turning our attention to the periods established among
ourselves, for the election of the most numerous branches of the
State legislatures, we find them by no means coinciding any more in
this instance, than in the elections of other civil magistrates. In
Connecticut and Rhode Island, the periods are half-yearly. In the
other States, South Carolina excepted, they are annual. In South
Carolina they are biennial—as is proposed in the federal government.
Here is a difference, as four to one, between the longest and
shortest periods; and yet it would be not easy to show, that
Connecticut or Rhode Island is better governed, or enjoys a greater
share of rational liberty, than South Carolina; or that either the
one or the other of these States is distinguished in these respects,
and by these causes, from the States whose elections are different
from both.
In searching for the grounds of this doctrine, I can discover but
one, and that is wholly inapplicable to our case. The important
distinction so well understood in America, between a Constitution
established by the people and unalterable by the government, and a
law established by the government and alterable by the government,
seems to have been little understood and less observed in any other
country. Wherever the supreme power of legislation has resided, has
been supposed to reside also a full power to change the form of the
government. Even in Great Britain, where the principles of political
and civil liberty have been most discussed, and where we hear most
of the rights of the Constitution, it is maintained that the
authority of the Parliament is transcendent and uncontrollable, as
well with regard to the Constitution, as the ordinary objects of
legislative provision. They have accordingly, in several instances,
actually changed, by legislative acts, some of the most fundamental
articles of the government. They have in particular, on several
occasions, changed the period of election; and, on the last
occasion, not only introduced septennial in place of triennial
elections, but by the same act, continued themselves in place four
years beyond the term for which they were elected by the people. An
attention to these dangerous practices has produced a very natural
alarm in the votaries of free government, of which frequency of
elections is the corner-stone; and has led them to seek for some
security to liberty, against the danger to which it is exposed.
Where no Constitution, paramount to the government, either existed
or could be obtained, no constitutional security, similar to that
established in the United States, was to be attempted. Some other
security, therefore, was to be sought for; and what better security
would the case admit, than that of selecting and appealing to some
simple and familiar portion of time, as a standard for measuring the
danger of innovations, for fixing the national sentiment, and for
uniting the patriotic exertions? The most simple and familiar
portion of time, applicable to the subject was that of a year; and
hence the doctrine has been inculcated by a laudable zeal, to erect
some barrier against the gradual innovations of an unlimited
government, that the advance towards tyranny was to be calculated by
the distance of departure from the fixed point of annual elections.
But what necessity can there be of applying this expedient to a
government limited, as the federal government will be, by the
authority of a paramount Constitution? Or who will pretend that the
liberties of the people of America will not be more secure under
biennial elections, unalterably fixed by such a Constitution, than
those of any other nation would be, where elections were annual, or
even more frequent, but subject to alterations by the ordinary power
of the government?
The second question stated is, whether biennial elections be
necessary or useful. The propriety of answering this question in the
affirmative will appear from several very obvious considerations.
No man can be a competent legislator who does not add to an upright
intention and a sound judgment a certain degree of knowledge of the
subjects on which he is to legislate. A part of this knowledge may
be acquired by means of information which lie within the compass of
men in private as well as public stations. Another part can only be
attained, or at least thoroughly attained, by actual experience in
the station which requires the use of it. The period of service,
ought, therefore, in all such cases, to bear some proportion to the
extent of practical knowledge requisite to the due performance of
the service. The period of legislative service established in most
of the States for the more numerous branch is, as we have seen, one
year. The question then may be put into this simple form: does the
period of two years bear no greater proportion to the knowledge
requisite for federal legislation than one year does to the
knowledge requisite for State legislation? The very statement of the
question, in this form, suggests the answer that ought to be given
to it.
In a single State, the requisite knowledge relates to the existing
laws which are uniform throughout the State, and with which all the
citizens are more or less conversant; and to the general affairs of
the State, which lie within a small compass, are not very
diversified, and occupy much of the attention and conversation of
every class of people. The great theatre of the United States
presents a very different scene. The laws are so far from being
uniform, that they vary in every State; whilst the public affairs of
the Union are spread throughout a very extensive region, and are
extremely diversified by the local affairs connected with them, and
can with difficulty be correctly learnt in any other place than in
the central councils to which a knowledge of them will be brought by
the representatives of every part of the empire. Yet some knowledge
of the affairs, and even of the laws, of all the States, ought to be
possessed by the members from each of the States. How can foreign
trade be properly regulated by uniform laws, without some
acquaintance with the commerce, the ports, the usages, and the
regulations of the different States? How can the trade between the
different States be duly regulated, without some knowledge of their
relative situations in these and other respects? How can taxes be
judiciously imposed and effectually collected, if they be not
accommodated to the different laws and local circumstances relating
to these objects in the different States? How can uniform
regulations for the militia be duly provided, without a similar
knowledge of many internal circumstances by which the States are
distinguished from each other? These are the principal objects of
federal legislation, and suggest most forcibly the extensive
information which the representatives ought to acquire. The other
interior objects will require a proportional degree of information
with regard to them.
It is true that all these difficulties will, by degrees, be very
much diminished. The most laborious task will be the proper
inauguration of the government and the primeval formation of a
federal code. Improvements on the first draughts will every year
become both easier and fewer. Past transactions of the government
will be a ready and accurate source of information to new members.
The affairs of the Union will become more and more objects of
curiosity and conversation among the citizens at large. And the
increased intercourse among those of different States will
contribute not a little to diffuse a mutual knowledge of their
affairs, as this again will contribute to a general assimilation of
their manners and laws. But with all these abatements, the business
of federal legislation must continue so far to exceed, both in
novelty and difficulty, the legislative business of a single State,
as to justify the longer period of service assigned to those who are
to transact it.
A branch of knowledge which belongs to the acquirements of a federal
representative, and which has not been mentioned is that of foreign
affairs. In regulating our own commerce he ought to be not only
acquainted with the treaties between the United States and other
nations, but also with the commercial policy and laws of other
nations. He ought not to be altogether ignorant of the law of
nations; for that, as far as it is a proper object of municipal
legislation, is submitted to the federal government. And although
the House of Representatives is not immediately to participate in
foreign negotiations and arrangements, yet from the necessary
connection between the several branches of public affairs, those
particular branches will frequently deserve attention in the
ordinary course of legislation, and will sometimes demand particular
legislative sanction and co-operation. Some portion of this
knowledge may, no doubt, be acquired in a man's closet; but some of
it also can only be derived from the public sources of information;
and all of it will be acquired to best effect by a practical
attention to the subject during the period of actual service in the
legislature.
There are other considerations, of less importance, perhaps, but
which are not unworthy of notice. The distance which many of the
representatives will be obliged to travel, and the arrangements
rendered necessary by that circumstance, might be much more serious
objections with fit men to this service, if limited to a single
year, than if extended to two years. No argument can be drawn on
this subject, from the case of the delegates to the existing
Congress. They are elected annually, it is true; but their
re-election is considered by the legislative assemblies almost as a
matter of course. The election of the representatives by the people
would not be governed by the same principle.
A few of the members, as happens in all such assemblies, will
possess superior talents; will, by frequent reelections, become
members of long standing; will be thoroughly masters of the public
business, and perhaps not unwilling to avail themselves of those
advantages. The greater the proportion of new members, and the less
the information of the bulk of the members the more apt will they be
to fall into the snares that may be laid for them. This remark is no
less applicable to the relation which will subsist between the House
of Representatives and the Senate.
It is an inconvenience mingled with the advantages of our frequent
elections even in single States, where they are large, and hold but
one legislative session in a year, that spurious elections cannot be
investigated and annulled in time for the decision to have its due
effect. If a return can be obtained, no matter by what unlawful
means, the irregular member, who takes his seat of course, is sure
of holding it a sufficient time to answer his purposes. Hence, a
very pernicious encouragement is given to the use of unlawful means,
for obtaining irregular returns. Were elections for the federal
legislature to be annual, this practice might become a very serious
abuse, particularly in the more distant States. Each house is, as it
necessarily must be, the judge of the elections, qualifications, and
returns of its members; and whatever improvements may be suggested
by experience, for simplifying and accelerating the process in
disputed cases, so great a portion of a year would unavoidably
elapse, before an illegitimate member could be dispossessed of his
seat, that the prospect of such an event would be little check to
unfair and illicit means of obtaining a seat.
All these considerations taken together warrant us in affirming,
that biennial elections will be as useful to the affairs of the
public as we have seen that they will be safe to the liberty of the
people.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 54.
The Apportionment of Members Among the States
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 12, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE next view which I shall take of the House of Representatives
relates to the appointment of its members to the several States
which is to be determined by the same rule with that of direct
taxes.
It is not contended that the number of people in each State ought
not to be the standard for regulating the proportion of those who
are to represent the people of each State. The establishment of the
same rule for the appointment of taxes, will probably be as little
contested; though the rule itself in this case, is by no means
founded on the same principle. In the former case, the rule is
understood to refer to the personal rights of the people, with which
it has a natural and universal connection. In the latter, it has
reference to the proportion of wealth, of which it is in no case a
precise measure, and in ordinary cases a very unfit one. But
notwithstanding the imperfection of the rule as applied to the
relative wealth and contributions of the States, it is evidently the
least objectionable among the practicable rules, and had too
recently obtained the general sanction of America, not to have found
a ready preference with the convention.
All this is admitted, it will perhaps be said; but does it follow,
from an admission of numbers for the measure of representation, or
of slaves combined with free citizens as a ratio of taxation, that
slaves ought to be included in the numerical rule of representation?
Slaves are considered as property, not as persons. They ought
therefore to be comprehended in estimates of taxation which are
founded on property, and to be excluded from representation which is
regulated by a census of persons. This is the objection, as I
understand it, stated in its full force. I shall be equally candid
in stating the reasoning which may be offered on the opposite side.
"We subscribe to the doctrine," might one of our Southern brethren
observe, "that representation relates more immediately to persons,
and taxation more immediately to property, and we join in the
application of this distinction to the case of our slaves. But we
must deny the fact, that slaves are considered merely as property,
and in no respect whatever as persons. The true state of the case
is, that they partake of both these qualities: being considered by
our laws, in some respects, as persons, and in other respects as
property. In being compelled to labor, not for himself, but for a
master; in being vendible by one master to another master; and in
being subject at all times to be restrained in his liberty and
chastised in his body, by the capricious will of another—the slave
may appear to be degraded from the human rank, and classed with
those irrational animals which fall under the legal denomination of
property. In being protected, on the other hand, in his life and in
his limbs, against the violence of all others, even the master of
his labor and his liberty; and in being punishable himself for all
violence committed against others—the slave is no less evidently
regarded by the law as a member of the society, not as a part of the
irrational creation; as a moral person, not as a mere article of
property. The federal Constitution, therefore, decides with great
propriety on the case of our slaves, when it views them in the mixed
character of persons and of property. This is in fact their true
character. It is the character bestowed on them by the laws under
which they live; and it will not be denied, that these are the
proper criterion; because it is only under the pretext that the laws
have transformed the negroes into subjects of property, that a place
is disputed them in the computation of numbers; and it is admitted,
that if the laws were to restore the rights which have been taken
away, the negroes could no longer be refused an equal share of
representation with the other inhabitants.
"This question may be placed in another light. It is agreed on all
sides, that numbers are the best scale of wealth and taxation, as
they are the only proper scale of representation. Would the
convention have been impartial or consistent, if they had rejected
the slaves from the list of inhabitants, when the shares of
representation were to be calculated, and inserted them on the lists
when the tariff of contributions was to be adjusted? Could it be
reasonably expected, that the Southern States would concur in a
system, which considered their slaves in some degree as men, when
burdens were to be imposed, but refused to consider them in the same
light, when advantages were to be conferred? Might not some surprise
also be expressed, that those who reproach the Southern States with
the barbarous policy of considering as property a part of their
human brethren, should themselves contend, that the government to
which all the States are to be parties, ought to consider this
unfortunate race more completely in the unnatural light of property,
than the very laws of which they complain?
"It may be replied, perhaps, that slaves are not included in the
estimate of representatives in any of the States possessing them.
They neither vote themselves nor increase the votes of their
masters. Upon what principle, then, ought they to be taken into the
federal estimate of representation? In rejecting them altogether,
the Constitution would, in this respect, have followed the very laws
which have been appealed to as the proper guide.
"This objection is repelled by a single observation. It is a
fundamental principle of the proposed Constitution, that as the
aggregate number of representatives allotted to the several States
is to be determined by a federal rule, founded on the aggregate
number of inhabitants, so the right of choosing this allotted number
in each State is to be exercised by such part of the inhabitants as
the State itself may designate. The qualifications on which the
right of suffrage depend are not, perhaps, the same in any two
States. In some of the States the difference is very material. In
every State, a certain proportion of inhabitants are deprived of
this right by the constitution of the State, who will be included in
the census by which the federal Constitution apportions the
representatives. In this point of view the Southern States might
retort the complaint, by insisting that the principle laid down by
the convention required that no regard should be had to the policy
of particular States towards their own inhabitants; and
consequently, that the slaves, as inhabitants, should have been
admitted into the census according to their full number, in like
manner with other inhabitants, who, by the policy of other States,
are not admitted to all the rights of citizens. A rigorous
adherence, however, to this principle, is waived by those who would
be gainers by it. All that they ask is that equal moderation be
shown on the other side. Let the case of the slaves be considered,
as it is in truth, a peculiar one. Let the compromising expedient of
the Constitution be mutually adopted, which regards them as
inhabitants, but as debased by servitude below the equal level of
free inhabitants, which regards the SLAVE as divested of two fifths
of the MAN.
"After all, may not another ground be taken on which this article of
the Constitution will admit of a still more ready defense? We have
hitherto proceeded on the idea that representation related to
persons only, and not at all to property. But is it a just idea?
Government is instituted no less for protection of the property,
than of the persons, of individuals. The one as well as the other,
therefore, may be considered as represented by those who are charged
with the government. Upon this principle it is, that in several of
the States, and particularly in the State of New York, one branch of
the government is intended more especially to be the guardian of
property, and is accordingly elected by that part of the society
which is most interested in this object of government. In the
federal Constitution, this policy does not prevail. The rights of
property are committed into the same hands with the personal rights.
Some attention ought, therefore, to be paid to property in the
choice of those hands.
"For another reason, the votes allowed in the federal legislature to
the people of each State, ought to bear some proportion to the
comparative wealth of the States. States have not, like individuals,
an influence over each other, arising from superior advantages of
fortune. If the law allows an opulent citizen but a single vote in
the choice of his representative, the respect and consequence which
he derives from his fortunate situation very frequently guide the
votes of others to the objects of his choice; and through this
imperceptible channel the rights of property are conveyed into the
public representation. A State possesses no such influence over
other States. It is not probable that the richest State in the
Confederacy will ever influence the choice of a single
representative in any other State. Nor will the representatives of
the larger and richer States possess any other advantage in the
federal legislature, over the representatives of other States, than
what may result from their superior number alone. As far, therefore,
as their superior wealth and weight may justly entitle them to any
advantage, it ought to be secured to them by a superior share of
representation. The new Constitution is, in this respect, materially
different from the existing Confederation, as well as from that of
the United Netherlands, and other similar confederacies. In each of
the latter, the efficacy of the federal resolutions depends on the
subsequent and voluntary resolutions of the states composing the
union. Hence the states, though possessing an equal vote in the
public councils, have an unequal influence, corresponding with the
unequal importance of these subsequent and voluntary resolutions.
Under the proposed Constitution, the federal acts will take effect
without the necessary intervention of the individual States. They
will depend merely on the majority of votes in the federal
legislature, and consequently each vote, whether proceeding from a
larger or smaller State, or a State more or less wealthy or
powerful, will have an equal weight and efficacy: in the same manner
as the votes individually given in a State legislature, by the
representatives of unequal counties or other districts, have each a
precise equality of value and effect; or if there be any difference
in the case, it proceeds from the difference in the personal
character of the individual representative, rather than from any
regard to the extent of the district from which he comes."
Such is the reasoning which an advocate for the Southern interests
might employ on this subject; and although it may appear to be a
little strained in some points, yet, on the whole, I must confess
that it fully reconciles me to the scale of representation which the
convention have established.
In one respect, the establishment of a common measure for
representation and taxation will have a very salutary effect. As the
accuracy of the census to be obtained by the Congress will
necessarily depend, in a considerable degree on the disposition, if
not on the co-operation, of the States, it is of great importance
that the States should feel as little bias as possible, to swell or
to reduce the amount of their numbers. Were their share of
representation alone to be governed by this rule, they would have an
interest in exaggerating their inhabitants. Were the rule to decide
their share of taxation alone, a contrary temptation would prevail.
By extending the rule to both objects, the States will have opposite
interests, which will control and balance each other, and produce
the requisite impartiality.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 55.
The Total Number of the House of Representatives
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 13, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE number of which the House of Representatives is to consist,
forms another and a very interesting point of view, under which this
branch of the federal legislature may be contemplated. Scarce any
article, indeed, in the whole Constitution seems to be rendered more
worthy of attention, by the weight of character and the apparent
force of argument with which it has been assailed. The charges
exhibited against it are, first, that so small a number of
representatives will be an unsafe depositary of the public
interests; secondly, that they will not possess a proper knowledge
of the local circumstances of their numerous constituents; thirdly,
that they will be taken from that class of citizens which will
sympathize least with the feelings of the mass of the people, and be
most likely to aim at a permanent elevation of the few on the
depression of the many; fourthly, that defective as the number will
be in the first instance, it will be more and more disproportionate,
by the increase of the people, and the obstacles which will prevent
a correspondent increase of the representatives.
In general it may be remarked on this subject, that no political
problem is less susceptible of a precise solution than that which
relates to the number most convenient for a representative
legislature; nor is there any point on which the policy of the
several States is more at variance, whether we compare their
legislative assemblies directly with each other, or consider the
proportions which they respectively bear to the number of their
constituents. Passing over the difference between the smallest and
largest States, as Delaware, whose most numerous branch consists of
twenty-one representatives, and Massachusetts, where it amounts to
between three and four hundred, a very considerable difference is
observable among States nearly equal in population. The number of
representatives in Pennsylvania is not more than one fifth of that
in the State last mentioned. New York, whose population is to that
of South Carolina as six to five, has little more than one third of
the number of representatives. As great a disparity prevails between
the States of Georgia and Delaware or Rhode Island. In Pennsylvania,
the representatives do not bear a greater proportion to their
constituents than of one for every four or five thousand. In Rhode
Island, they bear a proportion of at least one for every thousand.
And according to the constitution of Georgia, the proportion may be
carried to one to every ten electors; and must unavoidably far
exceed the proportion in any of the other States.
Another general remark to be made is, that the ratio between the
representatives and the people ought not to be the same where the
latter are very numerous as where they are very few. Were the
representatives in Virginia to be regulated by the standard in Rhode
Island, they would, at this time, amount to between four and five
hundred; and twenty or thirty years hence, to a thousand. On the
other hand, the ratio of Pennsylvania, if applied to the State of
Delaware, would reduce the representative assembly of the latter to
seven or eight members. Nothing can be more fallacious than to found
our political calculations on arithmetical principles. Sixty or
seventy men may be more properly trusted with a given degree of
power than six or seven. But it does not follow that six or seven
hundred would be proportionably a better depositary. And if we carry
on the supposition to six or seven thousand, the whole reasoning
ought to be reversed. The truth is, that in all cases a certain
number at least seems to be necessary to secure the benefits of free
consultation and discussion, and to guard against too easy a
combination for improper purposes; as, on the other hand, the number
ought at most to be kept within a certain limit, in order to avoid
the confusion and intemperance of a multitude. In all very numerous
assemblies, of whatever character composed, passion never fails to
wrest the sceptre from reason. Had every Athenian citizen been a
Socrates, every Athenian assembly would still have been a mob.
It is necessary also to recollect here the observations which were
applied to the case of biennial elections. For the same reason that
the limited powers of the Congress, and the control of the State
legislatures, justify less frequent elections than the public safely
might otherwise require, the members of the Congress need be less
numerous than if they possessed the whole power of legislation, and
were under no other than the ordinary restraints of other
legislative bodies.
With these general ideas in our mind, let us weigh the objections
which have been stated against the number of members proposed for
the House of Representatives. It is said, in the first place, that
so small a number cannot be safely trusted with so much power.
The number of which this branch of the legislature is to consist, at
the outset of the government, will be sixty-five. Within three years
a census is to be taken, when the number may be augmented to one for
every thirty thousand inhabitants; and within every successive
period of ten years the census is to be renewed, and augmentations
may continue to be made under the above limitation. It will not be
thought an extravagant conjecture that the first census will, at the
rate of one for every thirty thousand, raise the number of
representatives to at least one hundred. Estimating the negroes in
the proportion of three fifths, it can scarcely be doubted that the
population of the United States will by that time, if it does not
already, amount to three millions. At the expiration of twenty-five
years, according to the computed rate of increase, the number of
representatives will amount to two hundred, and of fifty years, to
four hundred. This is a number which, I presume, will put an end to
all fears arising from the smallness of the body. I take for granted
here what I shall, in answering the fourth objection, hereafter
show, that the number of representatives will be augmented from time
to time in the manner provided by the Constitution. On a contrary
supposition, I should admit the objection to have very great weight
indeed.
The true question to be decided then is, whether the smallness of
the number, as a temporary regulation, be dangerous to the public
liberty? Whether sixty-five members for a few years, and a hundred
or two hundred for a few more, be a safe depositary for a limited
and well-guarded power of legislating for the United States? I must
own that I could not give a negative answer to this question,
without first obliterating every impression which I have received
with regard to the present genius of the people of America, the
spirit which actuates the State legislatures, and the principles
which are incorporated with the political character of every class
of citizens I am unable to conceive that the people of America, in
their present temper, or under any circumstances which can speedily
happen, will choose, and every second year repeat the choice of,
sixty-five or a hundred men who would be disposed to form and pursue
a scheme of tyranny or treachery. I am unable to conceive that the
State legislatures, which must feel so many motives to watch, and
which possess so many means of counteracting, the federal
legislature, would fail either to detect or to defeat a conspiracy
of the latter against the liberties of their common constituents. I
am equally unable to conceive that there are at this time, or can be
in any short time, in the United States, any sixty-five or a hundred
men capable of recommending themselves to the choice of the people
at large, who would either desire or dare, within the short space of
two years, to betray the solemn trust committed to them. What change
of circumstances, time, and a fuller population of our country may
produce, requires a prophetic spirit to declare, which makes no part
of my pretensions. But judging from the circumstances now before us,
and from the probable state of them within a moderate period of
time, I must pronounce that the liberties of America cannot be
unsafe in the number of hands proposed by the federal Constitution.
From what quarter can the danger proceed? Are we afraid of foreign
gold? If foreign gold could so easily corrupt our federal rulers and
enable them to ensnare and betray their constituents, how has it
happened that we are at this time a free and independent nation? The
Congress which conducted us through the Revolution was a less
numerous body than their successors will be; they were not chosen
by, nor responsible to, their fellowcitizens at large; though
appointed from year to year, and recallable at pleasure, they were
generally continued for three years, and prior to the ratification
of the federal articles, for a still longer term. They held their
consultations always under the veil of secrecy; they had the sole
transaction of our affairs with foreign nations; through the whole
course of the war they had the fate of their country more in their
hands than it is to be hoped will ever be the case with our future
representatives; and from the greatness of the prize at stake, and
the eagerness of the party which lost it, it may well be supposed
that the use of other means than force would not have been scrupled.
Yet we know by happy experience that the public trust was not
betrayed; nor has the purity of our public councils in this
particular ever suffered, even from the whispers of calumny.
Is the danger apprehended from the other branches of the federal
government? But where are the means to be found by the President, or
the Senate, or both? Their emoluments of office, it is to be
presumed, will not, and without a previous corruption of the House
of Representatives cannot, more than suffice for very different
purposes; their private fortunes, as they must all be American
citizens, cannot possibly be sources of danger. The only means,
then, which they can possess, will be in the dispensation of
appointments. Is it here that suspicion rests her charge? Sometimes
we are told that this fund of corruption is to be exhausted by the
President in subduing the virtue of the Senate. Now, the fidelity of
the other House is to be the victim. The improbability of such a
mercenary and perfidious combination of the several members of
government, standing on as different foundations as republican
principles will well admit, and at the same time accountable to the
society over which they are placed, ought alone to quiet this
apprehension. But, fortunately, the Constitution has provided a
still further safeguard. The members of the Congress are rendered
ineligible to any civil offices that may be created, or of which the
emoluments may be increased, during the term of their election. No
offices therefore can be dealt out to the existing members but such
as may become vacant by ordinary casualties: and to suppose that
these would be sufficient to purchase the guardians of the people,
selected by the people themselves, is to renounce every rule by
which events ought to be calculated, and to substitute an
indiscriminate and unbounded jealousy, with which all reasoning must
be vain. The sincere friends of liberty, who give themselves up to
the extravagancies of this passion, are not aware of the injury they
do their own cause. As there is a degree of depravity in mankind
which requires a certain degree of circumspection and distrust, so
there are other qualities in human nature which justify a certain
portion of esteem and confidence. Republican government presupposes
the existence of these qualities in a higher degree than any other
form. Were the pictures which have been drawn by the political
jealousy of some among us faithful likenesses of the human
character, the inference would be, that there is not sufficient
virtue among men for self-government; and that nothing less than the
chains of despotism can restrain them from destroying and devouring
one another.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 56.
The Same Subject Continued (The Total Number of the House of
Representatives)
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, February 16, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE SECOND charge against the House of Representatives is, that it
will be too small to possess a due knowledge of the interests of its
constituents.
As this objection evidently proceeds from a comparison of the
proposed number of representatives with the great extent of the
United States, the number of their inhabitants, and the diversity of
their interests, without taking into view at the same time the
circumstances which will distinguish the Congress from other
legislative bodies, the best answer that can be given to it will be
a brief explanation of these peculiarities.
It is a sound and important principle that the representative ought
to be acquainted with the interests and circumstances of his
constituents. But this principle can extend no further than to those
circumstances and interests to which the authority and care of the
representative relate. An ignorance of a variety of minute and
particular objects, which do not lie within the compass of
legislation, is consistent with every attribute necessary to a due
performance of the legislative trust. In determining the extent of
information required in the exercise of a particular authority,
recourse then must be had to the objects within the purview of that
authority.
What are to be the objects of federal legislation? Those which are
of most importance, and which seem most to require local knowledge,
are commerce, taxation, and the militia.
A proper regulation of commerce requires much information, as has
been elsewhere remarked; but as far as this information relates to
the laws and local situation of each individual State, a very few
representatives would be very sufficient vehicles of it to the
federal councils.
Taxation will consist, in a great measure, of duties which will be
involved in the regulation of commerce. So far the preceding remark
is applicable to this object. As far as it may consist of internal
collections, a more diffusive knowledge of the circumstances of the
State may be necessary. But will not this also be possessed in
sufficient degree by a very few intelligent men, diffusively elected
within the State? Divide the largest State into ten or twelve
districts, and it will be found that there will be no peculiar local
interests in either, which will not be within the knowledge of the
representative of the district. Besides this source of information,
the laws of the State, framed by representatives from every part of
it, will be almost of themselves a sufficient guide. In every State
there have been made, and must continue to be made, regulations on
this subject which will, in many cases, leave little more to be done
by the federal legislature, than to review the different laws, and
reduce them in one general act. A skillful individual in his closet
with all the local codes before him, might compile a law on some
subjects of taxation for the whole union, without any aid from oral
information, and it may be expected that whenever internal taxes may
be necessary, and particularly in cases requiring uniformity
throughout the States, the more simple objects will be preferred. To
be fully sensible of the facility which will be given to this branch
of federal legislation by the assistance of the State codes, we need
only suppose for a moment that this or any other State were divided
into a number of parts, each having and exercising within itself a
power of local legislation. Is it not evident that a degree of local
information and preparatory labor would be found in the several
volumes of their proceedings, which would very much shorten the
labors of the general legislature, and render a much smaller number
of members sufficient for it? The federal councils will derive great
advantage from another circumstance. The representatives of each
State will not only bring with them a considerable knowledge of its
laws, and a local knowledge of their respective districts, but will
probably in all cases have been members, and may even at the very
time be members, of the State legislature, where all the local
information and interests of the State are assembled, and from
whence they may easily be conveyed by a very few hands into the
legislature of the United States.
(The observations made on the subject of taxation apply with greater
force to the case of the militia. For however different the rules of
discipline may be in different States, they are the same throughout
each particular State; and depend on circumstances which can differ
but little in different parts of the same State.)(E1)
(With regard to the regulation of the militia, there are scarcely
any circumstances in reference to which local knowledge can be said
to be necessary. The general face of the country, whether
mountainous or level, most fit for the operations of infantry or
cavalry, is almost the only consideration of this nature that can
occur. The art of war teaches general principles of organization,
movement, and discipline, which apply universally.)(E1)
The attentive reader will discern that the reasoning here used, to
prove the sufficiency of a moderate number of representatives, does
not in any respect contradict what was urged on another occasion
with regard to the extensive information which the representatives
ought to possess, and the time that might be necessary for acquiring
it. This information, so far as it may relate to local objects, is
rendered necessary and difficult, not by a difference of laws and
local circumstances within a single State, but of those among
different States. Taking each State by itself, its laws are the
same, and its interests but little diversified. A few men,
therefore, will possess all the knowledge requisite for a proper
representation of them. Were the interests and affairs of each
individual State perfectly simple and uniform, a knowledge of them
in one part would involve a knowledge of them in every other, and
the whole State might be competently represented by a single member
taken from any part of it. On a comparison of the different States
together, we find a great dissimilarity in their laws, and in many
other circumstances connected with the objects of federal
legislation, with all of which the federal representatives ought to
have some acquaintance. Whilst a few representatives, therefore,
from each State, may bring with them a due knowledge of their own
State, every representative will have much information to acquire
concerning all the other States. The changes of time, as was
formerly remarked, on the comparative situation of the different
States, will have an assimilating effect. The effect of time on the
internal affairs of the States, taken singly, will be just the
contrary. At present some of the States are little more than a
society of husbandmen. Few of them have made much progress in those
branches of industry which give a variety and complexity to the
affairs of a nation. These, however, will in all of them be the
fruits of a more advanced population, and will require, on the part
of each State, a fuller representation. The foresight of the
convention has accordingly taken care that the progress of
population may be accompanied with a proper increase of the
representative branch of the government.
The experience of Great Britain, which presents to mankind so many
political lessons, both of the monitory and exemplary kind, and
which has been frequently consulted in the course of these
inquiries, corroborates the result of the reflections which we have
just made. The number of inhabitants in the two kingdoms of England
and Scotland cannot be stated at less than eight millions. The
representatives of these eight millions in the House of Commons
amount to five hundred and fifty-eight. Of this number, one ninth
are elected by three hundred and sixty-four persons, and one half,
by five thousand seven hundred and twenty-three persons.(1) It
cannot be supposed that the half thus elected, and who do not even
reside among the people at large, can add any thing either to the
security of the people against the government, or to the knowledge
of their circumstances and interests in the legislative councils. On
the contrary, it is notorious, that they are more frequently the
representatives and instruments of the executive magistrate, than
the guardians and advocates of the popular rights. They might
therefore, with great propriety, be considered as something more
than a mere deduction from the real representatives of the nation.
We will, however, consider them in this light alone, and will not
extend the deduction to a considerable number of others, who do not
reside among their constitutents, are very faintly connected with
them, and have very little particular knowledge of their affairs.
With all these concessions, two hundred and seventy-nine persons
only will be the depository of the safety, interest, and happiness
of eight millions that is to say, there will be one representative
only to maintain the rights and explain the situation of
TWENTY-EIGHT THOUSAND SIX HUNDRED AND SEVENTY constitutents, in an
assembly exposed to the whole force of executive influence, and
extending its authority to every object of legislation within a
nation whose affairs are in the highest degree diversified and
complicated. Yet it is very certain, not only that a valuable
portion of freedom has been preserved under all these circumstances,
but that the defects in the British code are chargeable, in a very
small proportion, on the ignorance of the legislature concerning the
circumstances of the people. Allowing to this case the weight which
is due to it, and comparing it with that of the House of
Representatives as above explained it seems to give the fullest
assurance, that a representative for every THIRTY THOUSAND
INHABITANTS will render the latter both a safe and competent
guardian of the interests which will be confided to it.
PUBLIUS
1. Burgh's "Political Disquisitions."
E1. Two versions of this paragraph appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 57.
The Alleged Tendency of the New Plan to Elevate the Few at the
Expense of the Many Considered in Connection with
Representation.
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 19, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE THIRD charge against the House of Representatives is, that it
will be taken from that class of citizens which will have least
sympathy with the mass of the people, and be most likely to aim at
an ambitious sacrifice of the many to the aggrandizement of the few.
Of all the objections which have been framed against the federal
Constitution, this is perhaps the most extraordinary. Whilst the
objection itself is levelled against a pretended oligarchy, the
principle of it strikes at the very root of republican government.
The aim of every political constitution is, or ought to be, first to
obtain for rulers men who possess most wisdom to discern, and most
virtue to pursue, the common good of the society; and in the next
place, to take the most effectual precautions for keeping them
virtuous whilst they continue to hold their public trust. The
elective mode of obtaining rulers is the characteristic policy of
republican government. The means relied on in this form of
government for preventing their degeneracy are numerous and various.
The most effectual one, is such a limitation of the term of
appointments as will maintain a proper responsibility to the people.
Let me now ask what circumstance there is in the constitution of the
House of Representatives that violates the principles of republican
government, or favors the elevation of the few on the ruins of the
many? Let me ask whether every circumstance is not, on the contrary,
strictly conformable to these principles, and scrupulously impartial
to the rights and pretensions of every class and description of
citizens?
Who are to be the electors of the federal representatives? Not the
rich, more than the poor; not the learned, more than the ignorant;
not the haughty heirs of distinguished names, more than the humble
sons of obscurity and unpropitious fortune. The electors are to be
the great body of the people of the United States. They are to be
the same who exercise the right in every State of electing the
corresponding branch of the legislature of the State.
Who are to be the objects of popular choice? Every citizen whose
merit may recommend him to the esteem and confidence of his country.
No qualification of wealth, of birth, of religious faith, or of
civil profession is permitted to fetter the judgement or disappoint
the inclination of the people.
If we consider the situation of the men on whom the free suffrages
of their fellow-citizens may confer the representative trust, we
shall find it involving every security which can be devised or
desired for their fidelity to their constituents.
In the first place, as they will have been distinguished by the
preference of their fellow-citizens, we are to presume that in
general they will be somewhat distinguished also by those qualities
which entitle them to it, and which promise a sincere and scrupulous
regard to the nature of their engagements.
In the second place, they will enter into the public service under
circumstances which cannot fail to produce a temporary affection at
least to their constituents. There is in every breast a sensibility
to marks of honor, of favor, of esteem, and of confidence, which,
apart from all considerations of interest, is some pledge for
grateful and benevolent returns. Ingratitude is a common topic of
declamation against human nature; and it must be confessed that
instances of it are but too frequent and flagrant, both in public
and in private life. But the universal and extreme indignation which
it inspires is itself a proof of the energy and prevalence of the
contrary sentiment.
In the third place, those ties which bind the representative to his
constituents are strengthened by motives of a more selfish nature.
His pride and vanity attach him to a form of government which favors
his pretensions and gives him a share in its honors and
distinctions. Whatever hopes or projects might be entertained by a
few aspiring characters, it must generally happen that a great
proportion of the men deriving their advancement from their
influence with the people, would have more to hope from a
preservation of the favor, than from innovations in the government
subversive of the authority of the people.
All these securities, however, would be found very insufficient
without the restraint of frequent elections. Hence, in the fourth
place, the House of Representatives is so constituted as to support
in the members an habitual recollection of their dependence on the
people. Before the sentiments impressed on their minds by the mode
of their elevation can be effaced by the exercise of power, they
will be compelled to anticipate the moment when their power is to
cease, when their exercise of it is to be reviewed, and when they
must descend to the level from which they were raised; there forever
to remain unless a faithful discharge of their trust shall have
established their title to a renewal of it.
I will add, as a fifth circumstance in the situation of the House of
Representatives, restraining them from oppressive measures, that
they can make no law which will not have its full operation on
themselves and their friends, as well as on the great mass of the
society. This has always been deemed one of the strongest bonds by
which human policy can connect the rulers and the people together.
It creates between them that communion of interests and sympathy of
sentiments, of which few governments have furnished examples; but
without which every government degenerates into tyranny. If it be
asked, what is to restrain the House of Representatives from making
legal discriminations in favor of themselves and a particular class
of the society? I answer: the genius of the whole system; the nature
of just and constitutional laws; and above all, the vigilant and
manly spirit which actuates the people of America—a spirit which
nourishes freedom, and in return is nourished by it.
If this spirit shall ever be so far debased as to tolerate a law not
obligatory on the legislature, as well as on the people, the people
will be prepared to tolerate any thing but liberty.
Such will be the relation between the House of Representatives and
their constituents. Duty, gratitude, interest, ambition itself, are
the chords by which they will be bound to fidelity and sympathy with
the great mass of the people. It is possible that these may all be
insufficient to control the caprice and wickedness of man. But are
they not all that government will admit, and that human prudence can
devise? Are they not the genuine and the characteristic means by
which republican government provides for the liberty and happiness
of the people? Are they not the identical means on which every State
government in the Union relies for the attainment of these important
ends? What then are we to understand by the objection which this
paper has combated? What are we to say to the men who profess the
most flaming zeal for republican government, yet boldly impeach the
fundamental principle of it; who pretend to be champions for the
right and the capacity of the people to choose their own rulers, yet
maintain that they will prefer those only who will immediately and
infallibly betray the trust committed to them?
Were the objection to be read by one who had not seen the mode
prescribed by the Constitution for the choice of representatives, he
could suppose nothing less than that some unreasonable qualification
of property was annexed to the right of suffrage; or that the right
of eligibility was limited to persons of particular families or
fortunes; or at least that the mode prescribed by the State
constitutions was in some respect or other, very grossly departed
from. We have seen how far such a supposition would err, as to the
two first points. Nor would it, in fact, be less erroneous as to the
last. The only difference discoverable between the two cases is,
that each representative of the United States will be elected by
five or six thousand citizens; whilst in the individual States, the
election of a representative is left to about as many hundreds. Will
it be pretended that this difference is sufficient to justify an
attachment to the State governments, and an abhorrence to the
federal government? If this be the point on which the objection
turns, it deserves to be examined.
Is it supported by REASON? This cannot be said, without maintaining
that five or six thousand citizens are less capable of choosing a
fit representative, or more liable to be corrupted by an unfit one,
than five or six hundred. Reason, on the contrary, assures us, that
as in so great a number a fit representative would be most likely to
be found, so the choice would be less likely to be diverted from him
by the intrigues of the ambitious or the ambitious or the bribes of
the rich.
Is the CONSEQUENCE from this doctrine admissible? If we say that
five or six hundred citizens are as many as can jointly exercise
their right of suffrage, must we not deprive the people of the
immediate choice of their public servants, in every instance where
the administration of the government does not require as many of
them as will amount to one for that number of citizens?
Is the doctrine warranted by FACTS? It was shown in the last paper,
that the real representation in the British House of Commons very
little exceeds the proportion of one for every thirty thousand
inhabitants. Besides a variety of powerful causes not existing here,
and which favor in that country the pretensions of rank and wealth,
no person is eligible as a representative of a county, unless he
possess real estate of the clear value of six hundred pounds
sterling per year; nor of a city or borough, unless he possess a
like estate of half that annual value. To this qualification on the
part of the county representatives is added another on the part of
the county electors, which restrains the right of suffrage to
persons having a freehold estate of the annual value of more than
twenty pounds sterling, according to the present rate of money.
Notwithstanding these unfavorable circumstances, and notwithstanding
some very unequal laws in the British code, it cannot be said that
the representatives of the nation have elevated the few on the ruins
of the many.
But we need not resort to foreign experience on this subject. Our
own is explicit and decisive. The districts in New Hampshire in
which the senators are chosen immediately by the people, are nearly
as large as will be necessary for her representatives in the
Congress. Those of Massachusetts are larger than will be necessary
for that purpose; and those of New York still more so. In the last
State the members of Assembly for the cities and counties of New
York and Albany are elected by very nearly as many voters as will be
entitled to a representative in the Congress, calculating on the
number of sixty-five representatives only. It makes no difference
that in these senatorial districts and counties a number of
representatives are voted for by each elector at the same time. If
the same electors at the same time are capable of choosing four or
five representatives, they cannot be incapable of choosing one.
Pennsylvania is an additional example. Some of her counties, which
elect her State representatives, are almost as large as her
districts will be by which her federal representatives will be
elected. The city of Philadelphia is supposed to contain between
fifty and sixty thousand souls. It will therefore form nearly two
districts for the choice of federal representatives. It forms,
however, but one county, in which every elector votes for each of
its representatives in the State legislature. And what may appear to
be still more directly to our purpose, the whole city actually
elects a SINGLE MEMBER for the executive council. This is the case
in all the other counties of the State.
Are not these facts the most satisfactory proofs of the fallacy
which has been employed against the branch of the federal government
under consideration? Has it appeared on trial that the senators of
New Hampshire, Massachusetts, and New York, or the executive council
of Pennsylvania, or the members of the Assembly in the two last
States, have betrayed any peculiar disposition to sacrifice the many
to the few, or are in any respect less worthy of their places than
the representatives and magistrates appointed in other States by
very small divisions of the people?
But there are cases of a stronger complexion than any which I have
yet quoted. One branch of the legislature of Connecticut is so
constituted that each member of it is elected by the whole State. So
is the governor of that State, of Massachusetts, and of this State,
and the president of New Hampshire. I leave every man to decide
whether the result of any one of these experiments can be said to
countenance a suspicion, that a diffusive mode of choosing
representatives of the people tends to elevate traitors and to
undermine the public liberty.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 58.
Objection That The Number of Members Will Not Be Augmented as the
Progress of Population Demands.
Considered For the Independent Journal Wednesday, February
20, 1788.
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE remaining charge against the House of Representatives, which I
am to examine, is grounded on a supposition that the number of
members will not be augmented from time to time, as the progress of
population may demand.
It has been admitted, that this objection, if well supported, would
have great weight. The following observations will show that, like
most other objections against the Constitution, it can only proceed
from a partial view of the subject, or from a jealousy which
discolors and disfigures every object which is beheld.
1. Those who urge the objection seem not to have recollected that
the federal Constitution will not suffer by a comparison with the
State constitutions, in the security provided for a gradual
augmentation of the number of representatives. The number which is
to prevail in the first instance is declared to be temporary. Its
duration is limited to the short term of three years.
Within every successive term of ten years a census of inhabitants is
to be repeated. The unequivocal objects of these regulations are,
first, to readjust, from time to time, the apportionment of
representatives to the number of inhabitants, under the single
exception that each State shall have one representative at least;
secondly, to augment the number of representatives at the same
periods, under the sole limitation that the whole number shall not
exceed one for every thirty thousand inhabitants. If we review the
constitutions of the several States, we shall find that some of them
contain no determinate regulations on this subject, that others
correspond pretty much on this point with the federal Constitution,
and that the most effectual security in any of them is resolvable
into a mere directory provision.
2. As far as experience has taken place on this subject, a gradual
increase of representatives under the State constitutions has at
least kept pace with that of the constituents, and it appears that
the former have been as ready to concur in such measures as the
latter have been to call for them.
3. There is a peculiarity in the federal Constitution which insures
a watchful attention in a majority both of the people and of their
representatives to a constitutional augmentation of the latter. The
peculiarity lies in this, that one branch of the legislature is a
representation of citizens, the other of the States: in the former,
consequently, the larger States will have most weight; in the
latter, the advantage will be in favor of the smaller States. From
this circumstance it may with certainty be inferred that the larger
States will be strenuous advocates for increasing the number and
weight of that part of the legislature in which their influence
predominates. And it so happens that four only of the largest will
have a majority of the whole votes in the House of Representatives.
Should the representatives or people, therefore, of the smaller
States oppose at any time a reasonable addition of members, a
coalition of a very few States will be sufficient to overrule the
opposition; a coalition which, notwithstanding the rivalship and
local prejudices which might prevent it on ordinary occasions, would
not fail to take place, when not merely prompted by common interest,
but justified by equity and the principles of the Constitution.
It may be alleged, perhaps, that the Senate would be prompted by
like motives to an adverse coalition; and as their concurrence would
be indispensable, the just and constitutional views of the other
branch might be defeated. This is the difficulty which has probably
created the most serious apprehensions in the jealous friends of a
numerous representation. Fortunately it is among the difficulties
which, existing only in appearance, vanish on a close and accurate
inspection. The following reflections will, if I mistake not, be
admitted to be conclusive and satisfactory on this point.
Notwithstanding the equal authority which will subsist between the
two houses on all legislative subjects, except the originating of
money bills, it cannot be doubted that the House, composed of the
greater number of members, when supported by the more powerful
States, and speaking the known and determined sense of a majority of
the people, will have no small advantage in a question depending on
the comparative firmness of the two houses.
This advantage must be increased by the consciousness, felt by the
same side of being supported in its demands by right, by reason, and
by the Constitution; and the consciousness, on the opposite side, of
contending against the force of all these solemn considerations.
It is farther to be considered, that in the gradation between the
smallest and largest States, there are several, which, though most
likely in general to arrange themselves among the former are too
little removed in extent and population from the latter, to second
an opposition to their just and legitimate pretensions. Hence it is
by no means certain that a majority of votes, even in the Senate,
would be unfriendly to proper augmentations in the number of
representatives.
It will not be looking too far to add, that the senators from all
the new States may be gained over to the just views of the House of
Representatives, by an expedient too obvious to be overlooked. As
these States will, for a great length of time, advance in population
with peculiar rapidity, they will be interested in frequent
reapportionments of the representatives to the number of
inhabitants. The large States, therefore, who will prevail in the
House of Representatives, will have nothing to do but to make
reapportionments and augmentations mutually conditions of each
other; and the senators from all the most growing States will be
bound to contend for the latter, by the interest which their States
will feel in the former.
These considerations seem to afford ample security on this subject,
and ought alone to satisfy all the doubts and fears which have been
indulged with regard to it. Admitting, however, that they should all
be insufficient to subdue the unjust policy of the smaller States,
or their predominant influence in the councils of the Senate, a
constitutional and infallible resource still remains with the larger
States, by which they will be able at all times to accomplish their
just purposes. The House of Representatives cannot only refuse, but
they alone can propose, the supplies requisite for the support of
government. They, in a word, hold the purse—that powerful instrument
by which we behold, in the history of the British Constitution, an
infant and humble representation of the people gradually enlarging
the sphere of its activity and importance, and finally reducing, as
far as it seems to have wished, all the overgrown prerogatives of
the other branches of the government. This power over the purse may,
in fact, be regarded as the most complete and effectual weapon with
which any constitution can arm the immediate representatives of the
people, for obtaining a redress of every grievance, and for carrying
into effect every just and salutary measure.
But will not the House of Representatives be as much interested as
the Senate in maintaining the government in its proper functions,
and will they not therefore be unwilling to stake its existence or
its reputation on the pliancy of the Senate? Or, if such a trial of
firmness between the two branches were hazarded, would not the one
be as likely first to yield as the other? These questions will
create no difficulty with those who reflect that in all cases the
smaller the number, and the more permanent and conspicuous the
station, of men in power, the stronger must be the interest which
they will individually feel in whatever concerns the government.
Those who represent the dignity of their country in the eyes of
other nations, will be particularly sensible to every prospect of
public danger, or of dishonorable stagnation in public affairs. To
those causes we are to ascribe the continual triumph of the British
House of Commons over the other branches of the government, whenever
the engine of a money bill has been employed. An absolute
inflexibility on the side of the latter, although it could not have
failed to involve every department of the state in the general
confusion, has neither been apprehended nor experienced. The utmost
degree of firmness that can be displayed by the federal Senate or
President, will not be more than equal to a resistance in which they
will be supported by constitutional and patriotic principles.
In this review of the Constitution of the House of Representatives,
I have passed over the circumstances of economy, which, in the
present state of affairs, might have had some effect in lessening
the temporary number of representatives, and a disregard of which
would probably have been as rich a theme of declamation against the
Constitution as has been shown by the smallness of the number
proposed. I omit also any remarks on the difficulty which might be
found, under present circumstances, in engaging in the federal
service a large number of such characters as the people will
probably elect. One observation, however, I must be permitted to add
on this subject as claiming, in my judgment, a very serious
attention. It is, that in all legislative assemblies the greater the
number composing them may be, the fewer will be the men who will in
fact direct their proceedings. In the first place, the more numerous
an assembly may be, of whatever characters composed, the greater is
known to be the ascendency of passion over reason. In the next
place, the larger the number, the greater will be the proportion of
members of limited information and of weak capacities. Now, it is
precisely on characters of this description that the eloquence and
address of the few are known to act with all their force. In the
ancient republics, where the whole body of the people assembled in
person, a single orator, or an artful statesman, was generally seen
to rule with as complete a sway as if a sceptre had been placed in
his single hand. On the same principle, the more multitudinous a
representative assembly may be rendered, the more it will partake of
the infirmities incident to collective meetings of the people.
Ignorance will be the dupe of cunning, and passion the slave of
sophistry and declamation. The people can never err more than in
supposing that by multiplying their representatives beyond a certain
limit, they strengthen the barrier against the government of a few.
Experience will forever admonish them that, on the contrary, AFTER
SECURING A SUFFICIENT NUMBER FOR THE PURPOSES OF SAFETY, OF LOCAL
INFORMATION, AND OF DIFFUSIVE SYMPATHY WITH THE WHOLE SOCIETY, they
will counteract their own views by every addition to their
representatives. The countenance of the government may become more
democratic, but the soul that animates it will be more oligarchic.
The machine will be enlarged, but the fewer, and often the more
secret, will be the springs by which its motions are directed.
As connected with the objection against the number of
representatives, may properly be here noticed, that which has been
suggested against the number made competent for legislative
business. It has been said that more than a majority ought to have
been required for a quorum; and in particular cases, if not in all,
more than a majority of a quorum for a decision. That some
advantages might have resulted from such a precaution, cannot be
denied. It might have been an additional shield to some particular
interests, and another obstacle generally to hasty and partial
measures. But these considerations are outweighed by the
inconveniences in the opposite scale. In all cases where justice or
the general good might require new laws to be passed, or active
measures to be pursued, the fundamental principle of free government
would be reversed. It would be no longer the majority that would
rule: the power would be transferred to the minority. Were the
defensive privilege limited to particular cases, an interested
minority might take advantage of it to screen themselves from
equitable sacrifices to the general weal, or, in particular
emergencies, to extort unreasonable indulgences. Lastly, it would
facilitate and foster the baneful practice of secessions; a practice
which has shown itself even in States where a majority only is
required; a practice subversive of all the principles of order and
regular government; a practice which leads more directly to public
convulsions, and the ruin of popular governments, than any other
which has yet been displayed among us.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 59.
Concerning the Power of Congress to Regulate the Election of
Members
From the New York Packet. Friday, February 22, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE natural order of the subject leads us to consider, in this
place, that provision of the Constitution which authorizes the
national legislature to regulate, in the last resort, the election
of its own members. It is in these words: "The TIMES, PLACES, and
MANNER of holding elections for senators and representatives shall
be prescribed in each State by the legislature thereof; but the
Congress may, at any time, by law, make or alter SUCH REGULATIONS,
except as to the PLACES of choosing senators."(1) This provision has
not only been declaimed against by those who condemn the
Constitution in the gross, but it has been censured by those who
have objected with less latitude and greater moderation; and, in one
instance it has been thought exceptionable by a gentleman who has
declared himself the advocate of every other part of the system.
I am greatly mistaken, notwithstanding, if there be any article in
the whole plan more completely defensible than this. Its propriety
rests upon the evidence of this plain proposition, that EVERY
GOVERNMENT OUGHT TO CONTAIN IN ITSELF THE MEANS OF ITS OWN
PRESERVATION. Every just reasoner will, at first sight, approve an
adherence to this rule, in the work of the convention; and will
disapprove every deviation from it which may not appear to have been
dictated by the necessity of incorporating into the work some
particular ingredient, with which a rigid conformity to the rule was
incompatible. Even in this case, though he may acquiesce in the
necessity, yet he will not cease to regard and to regret a departure
from so fundamental a principle, as a portion of imperfection in the
system which may prove the seed of future weakness, and perhaps
anarchy.
It will not be alleged, that an election law could have been framed
and inserted in the Constitution, which would have been always
applicable to every probable change in the situation of the country;
and it will therefore not be denied, that a discretionary power over
elections ought to exist somewhere. It will, I presume, be as
readily conceded, that there were only three ways in which this
power could have been reasonably modified and disposed: that it must
either have been lodged wholly in the national legislature, or
wholly in the State legislatures, or primarily in the latter and
ultimately in the former. The last mode has, with reason, been
preferred by the convention. They have submitted the regulation of
elections for the federal government, in the first instance, to the
local administrations; which, in ordinary cases, and when no
improper views prevail, may be both more convenient and more
satisfactory; but they have reserved to the national authority a
right to interpose, whenever extraordinary circumstances might
render that interposition necessary to its safety.
Nothing can be more evident, than that an exclusive power of
regulating elections for the national government, in the hands of
the State legislatures, would leave the existence of the Union
entirely at their mercy. They could at any moment annihilate it, by
neglecting to provide for the choice of persons to administer its
affairs. It is to little purpose to say, that a neglect or omission
of this kind would not be likely to take place. The constitutional
possibility of the thing, without an equivalent for the risk, is an
unanswerable objection. Nor has any satisfactory reason been yet
assigned for incurring that risk. The extravagant surmises of a
distempered jealousy can never be dignified with that character. If
we are in a humor to presume abuses of power, it is as fair to
presume them on the part of the State governments as on the part of
the general government. And as it is more consonant to the rules of
a just theory, to trust the Union with the care of its own
existence, than to transfer that care to any other hands, if abuses
of power are to be hazarded on the one side or on the other, it is
more rational to hazard them where the power would naturally be
placed, than where it would unnaturally be placed.
Suppose an article had been introduced into the Constitution,
empowering the United States to regulate the elections for the
particular States, would any man have hesitated to condemn it, both
as an unwarrantable transposition of power, and as a premeditated
engine for the destruction of the State governments? The violation
of principle, in this case, would have required no comment; and, to
an unbiased observer, it will not be less apparent in the project of
subjecting the existence of the national government, in a similar
respect, to the pleasure of the State governments. An impartial view
of the matter cannot fail to result in a conviction, that each, as
far as possible, ought to depend on itself for its own preservation.
As an objection to this position, it may be remarked that the
constitution of the national Senate would involve, in its full
extent, the danger which it is suggested might flow from an
exclusive power in the State legislatures to regulate the federal
elections. It may be alleged, that by declining the appointment of
Senators, they might at any time give a fatal blow to the Union; and
from this it may be inferred, that as its existence would be thus
rendered dependent upon them in so essential a point, there can be
no objection to intrusting them with it in the particular case under
consideration. The interest of each State, it may be added, to
maintain its representation in the national councils, would be a
complete security against an abuse of the trust.
This argument, though specious, will not, upon examination, be found
solid. It is certainly true that the State legislatures, by
forbearing the appointment of senators, may destroy the national
government. But it will not follow that, because they have a power
to do this in one instance, they ought to have it in every other.
There are cases in which the pernicious tendency of such a power may
be far more decisive, without any motive equally cogent with that
which must have regulated the conduct of the convention in respect
to the formation of the Senate, to recommend their admission into
the system. So far as that construction may expose the Union to the
possibility of injury from the State legislatures, it is an evil;
but it is an evil which could not have been avoided without
excluding the States, in their political capacities, wholly from a
place in the organization of the national government. If this had
been done, it would doubtless have been interpreted into an entire
dereliction of the federal principle; and would certainly have
deprived the State governments of that absolute safeguard which they
will enjoy under this provision. But however wise it may have been
to have submitted in this instance to an inconvenience, for the
attainment of a necessary advantage or a greater good, no inference
can be drawn from thence to favor an accumulation of the evil, where
no necessity urges, nor any greater good invites.
It may be easily discerned also that the national government would
run a much greater risk from a power in the State legislatures over
the elections of its House of Representatives, than from their power
of appointing the members of its Senate. The senators are to be
chosen for the period of six years; there is to be a rotation, by
which the seats of a third part of them are to be vacated and
replenished every two years; and no State is to be entitled to more
than two senators; a quorum of the body is to consist of sixteen
members. The joint result of these circumstances would be, that a
temporary combination of a few States to intermit the appointment of
senators, could neither annul the existence nor impair the activity
of the body; and it is not from a general and permanent combination
of the States that we can have any thing to fear. The first might
proceed from sinister designs in the leading members of a few of the
State legislatures; the last would suppose a fixed and rooted
disaffection in the great body of the people, which will either
never exist at all, or will, in all probability, proceed from an
experience of the inaptitude of the general government to the
advancement of their happiness in which event no good citizen could
desire its continuance.
But with regard to the federal House of Representatives, there is
intended to be a general election of members once in two years. If
the State legislatures were to be invested with an exclusive power
of regulating these elections, every period of making them would be
a delicate crisis in the national situation, which might issue in a
dissolution of the Union, if the leaders of a few of the most
important States should have entered into a previous conspiracy to
prevent an election.
I shall not deny, that there is a degree of weight in the
observation, that the interests of each State, to be represented in
the federal councils, will be a security against the abuse of a
power over its elections in the hands of the State legislatures. But
the security will not be considered as complete, by those who attend
to the force of an obvious distinction between the interest of the
people in the public felicity, and the interest of their local
rulers in the power and consequence of their offices. The people of
America may be warmly attached to the government of the Union, at
times when the particular rulers of particular States, stimulated by
the natural rivalship of power, and by the hopes of personal
aggrandizement, and supported by a strong faction in each of those
States, may be in a very opposite temper. This diversity of
sentiment between a majority of the people, and the individuals who
have the greatest credit in their councils, is exemplified in some
of the States at the present moment, on the present question. The
scheme of separate confederacies, which will always multiply the
chances of ambition, will be a never failing bait to all such
influential characters in the State administrations as are capable
of preferring their own emolument and advancement to the public
weal. With so effectual a weapon in their hands as the exclusive
power of regulating elections for the national government, a
combination of a few such men, in a few of the most considerable
States, where the temptation will always be the strongest, might
accomplish the destruction of the Union, by seizing the opportunity
of some casual dissatisfaction among the people (and which perhaps
they may themselves have excited), to discontinue the choice of
members for the federal House of Representatives. It ought never to
be forgotten, that a firm union of this country, under an efficient
government, will probably be an increasing object of jealousy to
more than one nation of Europe; and that enterprises to subvert it
will sometimes originate in the intrigues of foreign powers, and
will seldom fail to be patronized and abetted by some of them. Its
preservation, therefore ought in no case that can be avoided, to be
committed to the guardianship of any but those whose situation will
uniformly beget an immediate interest in the faithful and vigilant
performance of the trust.
PUBLIUS
1. 1st clause, 4th section, of the 1st article.
FEDERALIST No. 60.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the Power of Congress to
Regulate the Election of Members)
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, February 23, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE HAVE seen, that an uncontrollable power over the elections to the
federal government could not, without hazard, be committed to the
State legislatures. Let us now see, what would be the danger on the
other side; that is, from confiding the ultimate right of regulating
its own elections to the Union itself. It is not pretended, that
this right would ever be used for the exclusion of any State from
its share in the representation. The interest of all would, in this
respect at least, be the security of all. But it is alleged, that it
might be employed in such a manner as to promote the election of
some favorite class of men in exclusion of others, by confining the
places of election to particular districts, and rendering it
impracticable to the citizens at large to partake in the choice. Of
all chimerical suppositions, this seems to be the most chimerical.
On the one hand, no rational calculation of probabilities would lead
us to imagine that the disposition which a conduct so violent and
extraordinary would imply, could ever find its way into the national
councils; and on the other, it may be concluded with certainty, that
if so improper a spirit should ever gain admittance into them, it
would display itself in a form altogether different and far more
decisive.
The improbability of the attempt may be satisfactorily inferred from
this single reflection, that it could never be made without causing
an immediate revolt of the great body of the people, headed and
directed by the State governments. It is not difficult to conceive
that this characteristic right of freedom may, in certain turbulent
and factious seasons, be violated, in respect to a particular class
of citizens, by a victorious and overbearing majority; but that so
fundamental a privilege, in a country so situated and enlightened,
should be invaded to the prejudice of the great mass of the people,
by the deliberate policy of the government, without occasioning a
popular revolution, is altogether inconceivable and incredible.
In addition to this general reflection, there are considerations of
a more precise nature, which forbid all apprehension on the subject.
The dissimilarity in the ingredients which will compose the national
government, and still more in the manner in which they will be
brought into action in its various branches, must form a powerful
obstacle to a concert of views in any partial scheme of elections.
There is sufficient diversity in the state of property, in the
genius, manners, and habits of the people of the different parts of
the Union, to occasion a material diversity of disposition in their
representatives towards the different ranks and conditions in
society. And though an intimate intercourse under the same
government will promote a gradual assimilation in some of these
respects, yet there are causes, as well physical as moral, which
may, in a greater or less degree, permanently nourish different
propensities and inclinations in this respect. But the circumstance
which will be likely to have the greatest influence in the matter,
will be the dissimilar modes of constituting the several component
parts of the government. The House of Representatives being to be
elected immediately by the people, the Senate by the State
legislatures, the President by electors chosen for that purpose by
the people, there would be little probability of a common interest
to cement these different branches in a predilection for any
particular class of electors.
As to the Senate, it is impossible that any regulation of "time and
manner," which is all that is proposed to be submitted to the
national government in respect to that body, can affect the spirit
which will direct the choice of its members. The collective sense of
the State legislatures can never be influenced by extraneous
circumstances of that sort; a consideration which alone ought to
satisfy us that the discrimination apprehended would never be
attempted. For what inducement could the Senate have to concur in a
preference in which itself would not be included? Or to what purpose
would it be established, in reference to one branch of the
legislature, if it could not be extended to the other? The
composition of the one would in this case counteract that of the
other. And we can never suppose that it would embrace the
appointments to the Senate, unless we can at the same time suppose
the voluntary co-operation of the State legislatures. If we make the
latter supposition, it then becomes immaterial where the power in
question is placed—whether in their hands or in those of the Union.
But what is to be the object of this capricious partiality in the
national councils? Is it to be exercised in a discrimination between
the different departments of industry, or between the different
kinds of property, or between the different degrees of property?
Will it lean in favor of the landed interest, or the moneyed
interest, or the mercantile interest, or the manufacturing interest?
Or, to speak in the fashionable language of the adversaries to the
Constitution, will it court the elevation of "the wealthy and the
well-born," to the exclusion and debasement of all the rest of the
society?
If this partiality is to be exerted in favor of those who are
concerned in any particular description of industry or property, I
presume it will readily be admitted, that the competition for it
will lie between landed men and merchants. And I scruple not to
affirm, that it is infinitely less likely that either of them should
gain an ascendant in the national councils, than that the one or the
other of them should predominate in all the local councils. The
inference will be, that a conduct tending to give an undue
preference to either is much less to be dreaded from the former than
from the latter.
The several States are in various degrees addicted to agriculture
and commerce. In most, if not all of them, agriculture is
predominant. In a few of them, however, commerce nearly divides its
empire, and in most of them has a considerable share of influence.
In proportion as either prevails, it will be conveyed into the
national representation; and for the very reason, that this will be
an emanation from a greater variety of interests, and in much more
various proportions, than are to be found in any single State, it
will be much less apt to espouse either of them with a decided
partiality, than the representation of any single State.
In a country consisting chiefly of the cultivators of land, where
the rules of an equal representation obtain, the landed interest
must, upon the whole, preponderate in the government. As long as
this interest prevails in most of the State legislatures, so long it
must maintain a correspondent superiority in the national Senate,
which will generally be a faithful copy of the majorities of those
assemblies. It cannot therefore be presumed, that a sacrifice of the
landed to the mercantile class will ever be a favorite object of
this branch of the federal legislature. In applying thus
particularly to the Senate a general observation suggested by the
situation of the country, I am governed by the consideration, that
the credulous votaries of State power cannot, upon their own
principles, suspect, that the State legislatures would be warped
from their duty by any external influence. But in reality the same
situation must have the same effect, in the primitive composition at
least of the federal House of Representatives: an improper bias
towards the mercantile class is as little to be expected from this
quarter as from the other.
In order, perhaps, to give countenance to the objection at any rate,
it may be asked, is there not danger of an opposite bias in the
national government, which may dispose it to endeavor to secure a
monopoly of the federal administration to the landed class? As there
is little likelihood that the supposition of such a bias will have
any terrors for those who would be immediately injured by it, a
labored answer to this question will be dispensed with. It will be
sufficient to remark, first, that for the reasons elsewhere
assigned, it is less likely that any decided partiality should
prevail in the councils of the Union than in those of any of its
members. Secondly, that there would be no temptation to violate the
Constitution in favor of the landed class, because that class would,
in the natural course of things, enjoy as great a preponderancy as
itself could desire. And thirdly, that men accustomed to investigate
the sources of public prosperity upon a large scale, must be too
well convinced of the utility of commerce, to be inclined to inflict
upon it so deep a wound as would result from the entire exclusion of
those who would best understand its interest from a share in the
management of them. The importance of commerce, in the view of
revenue alone, must effectually guard it against the enmity of a
body which would be continually importuned in its favor, by the
urgent calls of public necessity.
I the rather consult brevity in discussing the probability of a
preference founded upon a discrimination between the different kinds
of industry and property, because, as far as I understand the
meaning of the objectors, they contemplate a discrimination of
another kind. They appear to have in view, as the objects of the
preference with which they endeavor to alarm us, those whom they
designate by the description of "the wealthy and the well-born."
These, it seems, are to be exalted to an odious pre-eminence over
the rest of their fellow-citizens. At one time, however, their
elevation is to be a necessary consequence of the smallness of the
representative body; at another time it is to be effected by
depriving the people at large of the opportunity of exercising their
right of suffrage in the choice of that body.
But upon what principle is the discrimination of the places of
election to be made, in order to answer the purpose of the meditated
preference? Are "the wealthy and the well-born," as they are called,
confined to particular spots in the several States? Have they, by
some miraculous instinct or foresight, set apart in each of them a
common place of residence? Are they only to be met with in the towns
or cities? Or are they, on the contrary, scattered over the face of
the country as avarice or chance may have happened to cast their own
lot or that of their predecessors? If the latter is the case, (as
every intelligent man knows it to be,(1)) is it not evident that the
policy of confining the places of election to particular districts
would be as subversive of its own aim as it would be exceptionable
on every other account? The truth is, that there is no method of
securing to the rich the preference apprehended, but by prescribing
qualifications of property either for those who may elect or be
elected. But this forms no part of the power to be conferred upon
the national government. Its authority would be expressly restricted
to the regulation of the TIMES, the PLACES, the MANNER of elections.
The qualifications of the persons who may choose or be chosen, as
has been remarked upon other occasions, are defined and fixed in the
Constitution, and are unalterable by the legislature.
Let it, however, be admitted, for argument sake, that the expedient
suggested might be successful; and let it at the same time be
equally taken for granted that all the scruples which a sense of
duty or an apprehension of the danger of the experiment might
inspire, were overcome in the breasts of the national rulers, still
I imagine it will hardly be pretended that they could ever hope to
carry such an enterprise into execution without the aid of a
military force sufficient to subdue the resistance of the great body
of the people. The improbability of the existence of a force equal
to that object has been discussed and demonstrated in different
parts of these papers; but that the futility of the objection under
consideration may appear in the strongest light, it shall be
conceded for a moment that such a force might exist, and the
national government shall be supposed to be in the actual possession
of it. What will be the conclusion? With a disposition to invade the
essential rights of the community, and with the means of gratifying
that disposition, is it presumable that the persons who were
actuated by it would amuse themselves in the ridiculous task of
fabricating election laws for securing a preference to a favorite
class of men? Would they not be likely to prefer a conduct better
adapted to their own immediate aggrandizement? Would they not rather
boldly resolve to perpetuate themselves in office by one decisive
act of usurpation, than to trust to precarious expedients which, in
spite of all the precautions that might accompany them, might
terminate in the dismission, disgrace, and ruin of their authors?
Would they not fear that citizens, not less tenacious than conscious
of their rights, would flock from the remote extremes of their
respective States to the places of election, to overthrow their
tyrants, and to substitute men who would be disposed to avenge the
violated majesty of the people?
PUBLIUS
1. Particularly in the Southern States and in this State.
FEDERALIST No. 61.
The Same Subject Continued (Concerning the Power of Congress to
Regulate the Election of Members)
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, February 26, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE more candid opposers of the provision respecting elections,
contained in the plan of the convention, when pressed in argument,
will sometimes concede the propriety of that provision; with this
qualification, however, that it ought to have been accompanied with
a declaration, that all elections should be had in the counties
where the electors resided. This, say they, was a necessary
precaution against an abuse of the power. A declaration of this
nature would certainly have been harmless; so far as it would have
had the effect of quieting apprehensions, it might not have been
undesirable. But it would, in fact, have afforded little or no
additional security against the danger apprehended; and the want of
it will never be considered, by an impartial and judicious examiner,
as a serious, still less as an insuperable, objection to the plan.
The different views taken of the subject in the two preceding papers
must be sufficient to satisfy all dispassionate and discerning men,
that if the public liberty should ever be the victim of the ambition
of the national rulers, the power under examination, at least, will
be guiltless of the sacrifice.
If those who are inclined to consult their jealousy only, would
exercise it in a careful inspection of the several State
constitutions, they would find little less room for disquietude and
alarm, from the latitude which most of them allow in respect to
elections, than from the latitude which is proposed to be allowed to
the national government in the same respect. A review of their
situation, in this particular, would tend greatly to remove any ill
impressions which may remain in regard to this matter. But as that
view would lead into long and tedious details, I shall content
myself with the single example of the State in which I write. The
constitution of New York makes no other provision for LOCALITY of
elections, than that the members of the Assembly shall be elected in
the COUNTIES; those of the Senate, in the great districts into which
the State is or may be divided: these at present are four in number,
and comprehend each from two to six counties. It may readily be
perceived that it would not be more difficult to the legislature of
New York to defeat the suffrages of the citizens of New York, by
confining elections to particular places, than for the legislature
of the United States to defeat the suffrages of the citizens of the
Union, by the like expedient. Suppose, for instance, the city of
Albany was to be appointed the sole place of election for the county
and district of which it is a part, would not the inhabitants of
that city speedily become the only electors of the members both of
the Senate and Assembly for that county and district? Can we imagine
that the electors who reside in the remote subdivisions of the
counties of Albany, Saratoga, Cambridge, etc., or in any part of the
county of Montgomery, would take the trouble to come to the city of
Albany, to give their votes for members of the Assembly or Senate,
sooner than they would repair to the city of New York, to
participate in the choice of the members of the federal House of
Representatives? The alarming indifference discoverable in the
exercise of so invaluable a privilege under the existing laws, which
afford every facility to it, furnishes a ready answer to this
question. And, abstracted from any experience on the subject, we can
be at no loss to determine, that when the place of election is at an
INCONVENIENT DISTANCE from the elector, the effect upon his conduct
will be the same whether that distance be twenty miles or twenty
thousand miles. Hence it must appear, that objections to the
particular modification of the federal power of regulating elections
will, in substance, apply with equal force to the modification of
the like power in the constitution of this State; and for this
reason it will be impossible to acquit the one, and to condemn the
other. A similar comparison would lead to the same conclusion in
respect to the constitutions of most of the other States.
If it should be said that defects in the State constitutions furnish
no apology for those which are to be found in the plan proposed, I
answer, that as the former have never been thought chargeable with
inattention to the security of liberty, where the imputations thrown
on the latter can be shown to be applicable to them also, the
presumption is that they are rather the cavilling refinements of a
predetermined opposition, than the well-founded inferences of a
candid research after truth. To those who are disposed to consider,
as innocent omissions in the State constitutions, what they regard
as unpardonable blemishes in the plan of the convention, nothing can
be said; or at most, they can only be asked to assign some
substantial reason why the representatives of the people in a single
State should be more impregnable to the lust of power, or other
sinister motives, than the representatives of the people of the
United States? If they cannot do this, they ought at least to prove
to us that it is easier to subvert the liberties of three millions
of people, with the advantage of local governments to head their
opposition, than of two hundred thousand people who are destitute of
that advantage. And in relation to the point immediately under
consideration, they ought to convince us that it is less probable
that a predominant faction in a single State should, in order to
maintain its superiority, incline to a preference of a particular
class of electors, than that a similar spirit should take possession
of the representatives of thirteen States, spread over a vast
region, and in several respects distinguishable from each other by a
diversity of local circumstances, prejudices, and interests.
Hitherto my observations have only aimed at a vindication of the
provision in question, on the ground of theoretic propriety, on that
of the danger of placing the power elsewhere, and on that of the
safety of placing it in the manner proposed. But there remains to be
mentioned a positive advantage which will result from this
disposition, and which could not as well have been obtained from any
other: I allude to the circumstance of uniformity in the time of
elections for the federal House of Representatives. It is more than
possible that this uniformity may be found by experience to be of
great importance to the public welfare, both as a security against
the perpetuation of the same spirit in the body, and as a cure for
the diseases of faction. If each State may choose its own time of
election, it is possible there may be at least as many different
periods as there are months in the year. The times of election in
the several States, as they are now established for local purposes,
vary between extremes as wide as March and November. The consequence
of this diversity would be that there could never happen a total
dissolution or renovation of the body at one time. If an improper
spirit of any kind should happen to prevail in it, that spirit would
be apt to infuse itself into the new members, as they come forward
in succession. The mass would be likely to remain nearly the same,
assimilating constantly to itself its gradual accretions. There is a
contagion in example which few men have sufficient force of mind to
resist. I am inclined to think that treble the duration in office,
with the condition of a total dissolution of the body at the same
time, might be less formidable to liberty than one third of that
duration subject to gradual and successive alterations.
Uniformity in the time of elections seems not less requisite for
executing the idea of a regular rotation in the Senate, and for
conveniently assembling the legislature at a stated period in each
year.
It may be asked, Why, then, could not a time have been fixed in the
Constitution? As the most zealous adversaries of the plan of the
convention in this State are, in general, not less zealous admirers
of the constitution of the State, the question may be retorted, and
it may be asked, Why was not a time for the like purpose fixed in
the constitution of this State? No better answer can be given than
that it was a matter which might safely be entrusted to legislative
discretion; and that if a time had been appointed, it might, upon
experiment, have been found less convenient than some other time.
The same answer may be given to the question put on the other side.
And it may be added that the supposed danger of a gradual change
being merely speculative, it would have been hardly advisable upon
that speculation to establish, as a fundamental point, what would
deprive several States of the convenience of having the elections
for their own governments and for the national government at the
same epochs.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 62.
The Senate
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, February 27, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
HAVING examined the constitution of the House of Representatives,
and answered such of the objections against it as seemed to merit
notice, I enter next on the examination of the Senate. The heads
into which this member of the government may be considered are: I.
The qualification of senators; II. The appointment of them by the
State legislatures; III. The equality of representation in the
Senate; IV. The number of senators, and the term for which they are
to be elected; V. The powers vested in the Senate.
I. The qualifications proposed for senators, as distinguished from
those of representatives, consist in a more advanced age and a
longer period of citizenship. A senator must be thirty years of age
at least; as a representative must be twenty-five. And the former
must have been a citizen nine years; as seven years are required for
the latter. The propriety of these distinctions is explained by the
nature of the senatorial trust, which, requiring greater extent of
information and stability of character, requires at the same time
that the senator should have reached a period of life most likely to
supply these advantages; and which, participating immediately in
transactions with foreign nations, ought to be exercised by none who
are not thoroughly weaned from the prepossessions and habits
incident to foreign birth and education. The term of nine years
appears to be a prudent mediocrity between a total exclusion of
adopted citizens, whose merits and talents may claim a share in the
public confidence, and an indiscriminate and hasty admission of
them, which might create a channel for foreign influence on the
national councils.
II. It is equally unnecessary to dilate on the appointment of
senators by the State legislatures. Among the various modes which
might have been devised for constituting this branch of the
government, that which has been proposed by the convention is
probably the most congenial with the public opinion. It is
recommended by the double advantage of favoring a select
appointment, and of giving to the State governments such an agency
in the formation of the federal government as must secure the
authority of the former, and may form a convenient link between the
two systems.
III. The equality of representation in the Senate is another point,
which, being evidently the result of compromise between the opposite
pretensions of the large and the small States, does not call for
much discussion. If indeed it be right, that among a people
thoroughly incorporated into one nation, every district ought to
have a PROPORTIONAL share in the government, and that among
independent and sovereign States, bound together by a simple league,
the parties, however unequal in size, ought to have an EQUAL share
in the common councils, it does not appear to be without some reason
that in a compound republic, partaking both of the national and
federal character, the government ought to be founded on a mixture
of the principles of proportional and equal representation. But it
is superfluous to try, by the standard of theory, a part of the
Constitution which is allowed on all hands to be the result, not of
theory, but "of a spirit of amity, and that mutual deference and
concession which the peculiarity of our political situation rendered
indispensable." A common government, with powers equal to its
objects, is called for by the voice, and still more loudly by the
political situation, of America. A government founded on principles
more consonant to the wishes of the larger States, is not likely to
be obtained from the smaller States. The only option, then, for the
former, lies between the proposed government and a government still
more objectionable. Under this alternative, the advice of prudence
must be to embrace the lesser evil; and, instead of indulging a
fruitless anticipation of the possible mischiefs which may ensue, to
contemplate rather the advantageous consequences which may qualify
the sacrifice.
In this spirit it may be remarked, that the equal vote allowed to
each State is at once a constitutional recognition of the portion of
sovereignty remaining in the individual States, and an instrument
for preserving that residuary sovereignty. So far the equality ought
to be no less acceptable to the large than to the small States;
since they are not less solicitous to guard, by every possible
expedient, against an improper consolidation of the States into one
simple republic.
Another advantage accruing from this ingredient in the constitution
of the Senate is, the additional impediment it must prove against
improper acts of legislation. No law or resolution can now be passed
without the concurrence, first, of a majority of the people, and
then, of a majority of the States. It must be acknowledged that this
complicated check on legislation may in some instances be injurious
as well as beneficial; and that the peculiar defense which it
involves in favor of the smaller States, would be more rational, if
any interests common to them, and distinct from those of the other
States, would otherwise be exposed to peculiar danger. But as the
larger States will always be able, by their power over the supplies,
to defeat unreasonable exertions of this prerogative of the lesser
States, and as the faculty and excess of law-making seem to be the
diseases to which our governments are most liable, it is not
impossible that this part of the Constitution may be more convenient
in practice than it appears to many in contemplation.
IV. The number of senators, and the duration of their appointment,
come next to be considered. In order to form an accurate judgment on
both of these points, it will be proper to inquire into the purposes
which are to be answered by a senate; and in order to ascertain
these, it will be necessary to review the inconveniences which a
republic must suffer from the want of such an institution.
First. It is a misfortune incident to republican government, though
in a less degree than to other governments, that those who
administer it may forget their obligations to their constituents,
and prove unfaithful to their important trust. In this point of
view, a senate, as a second branch of the legislative assembly,
distinct from, and dividing the power with, a first, must be in all
cases a salutary check on the government. It doubles the security to
the people, by requiring the concurrence of two distinct bodies in
schemes of usurpation or perfidy, where the ambition or corruption
of one would otherwise be sufficient. This is a precaution founded
on such clear principles, and now so well understood in the United
States, that it would be more than superfluous to enlarge on it. I
will barely remark, that as the improbability of sinister
combinations will be in proportion to the dissimilarity in the
genius of the two bodies, it must be politic to distinguish them
from each other by every circumstance which will consist with a due
harmony in all proper measures, and with the genuine principles of
republican government.
Second. The necessity of a senate is not less indicated by the
propensity of all single and numerous assemblies to yield to the
impulse of sudden and violent passions, and to be seduced by
factious leaders into intemperate and pernicious resolutions.
Examples on this subject might be cited without number; and from
proceedings within the United States, as well as from the history of
other nations. But a position that will not be contradicted, need
not be proved. All that need be remarked is, that a body which is to
correct this infirmity ought itself to be free from it, and
consequently ought to be less numerous. It ought, moreover, to
possess great firmness, and consequently ought to hold its authority
by a tenure of considerable duration.
Third. Another defect to be supplied by a senate lies in a want of
due acquaintance with the objects and principles of legislation. It
is not possible that an assembly of men called for the most part
from pursuits of a private nature, continued in appointment for a
short time, and led by no permanent motive to devote the intervals
of public occupation to a study of the laws, the affairs, and the
comprehensive interests of their country, should, if left wholly to
themselves, escape a variety of important errors in the exercise of
their legislative trust. It may be affirmed, on the best grounds,
that no small share of the present embarrassments of America is to
be charged on the blunders of our governments; and that these have
proceeded from the heads rather than the hearts of most of the
authors of them. What indeed are all the repealing, explaining, and
amending laws, which fill and disgrace our voluminous codes, but so
many monuments of deficient wisdom; so many impeachments exhibited
by each succeeding against each preceding session; so many
admonitions to the people, of the value of those aids which may be
expected from a well-constituted senate?
A good government implies two things: first, fidelity to the object
of government, which is the happiness of the people; secondly, a
knowledge of the means by which that object can be best attained.
Some governments are deficient in both these qualities; most
governments are deficient in the first. I scruple not to assert,
that in American governments too little attention has been paid to
the last. The federal Constitution avoids this error; and what
merits particular notice, it provides for the last in a mode which
increases the security for the first.
Fourth. The mutability in the public councils arising from a rapid
succession of new members, however qualified they may be, points
out, in the strongest manner, the necessity of some stable
institution in the government. Every new election in the States is
found to change one half of the representatives. From this change of
men must proceed a change of opinions; and from a change of
opinions, a change of measures. But a continual change even of good
measures is inconsistent with every rule of prudence and every
prospect of success. The remark is verified in private life, and
becomes more just, as well as more important, in national
transactions.
To trace the mischievous effects of a mutable government would fill
a volume. I will hint a few only, each of which will be perceived to
be a source of innumerable others.
In the first place, it forfeits the respect and confidence of other
nations, and all the advantages connected with national character.
An individual who is observed to be inconstant to his plans, or
perhaps to carry on his affairs without any plan at all, is marked
at once, by all prudent people, as a speedy victim to his own
unsteadiness and folly. His more friendly neighbors may pity him,
but all will decline to connect their fortunes with his; and not a
few will seize the opportunity of making their fortunes out of his.
One nation is to another what one individual is to another; with
this melancholy distinction perhaps, that the former, with fewer of
the benevolent emotions than the latter, are under fewer restraints
also from taking undue advantage from the indiscretions of each
other. Every nation, consequently, whose affairs betray a want of
wisdom and stability, may calculate on every loss which can be
sustained from the more systematic policy of their wiser neighbors.
But the best instruction on this subject is unhappily conveyed to
America by the example of her own situation. She finds that she is
held in no respect by her friends; that she is the derision of her
enemies; and that she is a prey to every nation which has an
interest in speculating on her fluctuating councils and embarrassed
affairs.
The internal effects of a mutable policy are still more calamitous.
It poisons the blessing of liberty itself. It will be of little
avail to the people, that the laws are made by men of their own
choice, if the laws be so voluminous that they cannot be read, or so
incoherent that they cannot be understood; if they be repealed or
revised before they are promulgated, or undergo such incessant
changes that no man, who knows what the law is to-day, can guess
what it will be to-morrow. Law is defined to be a rule of action;
but how can that be a rule, which is little known, and less fixed?
Another effect of public instability is the unreasonable advantage
it gives to the sagacious, the enterprising, and the moneyed few
over the industrious and uniformed mass of the people. Every new
regulation concerning commerce or revenue, or in any way affecting
the value of the different species of property, presents a new
harvest to those who watch the change, and can trace its
consequences; a harvest, reared not by themselves, but by the toils
and cares of the great body of their fellow-citizens. This is a
state of things in which it may be said with some truth that laws
are made for the FEW, not for the MANY.
In another point of view, great injury results from an unstable
government. The want of confidence in the public councils damps
every useful undertaking, the success and profit of which may depend
on a continuance of existing arrangements. What prudent merchant
will hazard his fortunes in any new branch of commerce when he knows
not but that his plans may be rendered unlawful before they can be
executed? What farmer or manufacturer will lay himself out for the
encouragement given to any particular cultivation or establishment,
when he can have no assurance that his preparatory labors and
advances will not render him a victim to an inconstant government?
In a word, no great improvement or laudable enterprise can go
forward which requires the auspices of a steady system of national
policy.
But the most deplorable effect of all is that diminution of
attachment and reverence which steals into the hearts of the people,
towards a political system which betrays so many marks of infirmity,
and disappoints so many of their flattering hopes. No government,
any more than an individual, will long be respected without being
truly respectable; nor be truly respectable, without possessing a
certain portion of order and stability.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 63.
The Senate Continued
For the Independent Journal. Saturday, March 1, 1788
MADISON
To the People of the State of New York:
A FIFTH desideratum, illustrating the utility of a senate, is the
want of a due sense of national character. Without a select and
stable member of the government, the esteem of foreign powers will
not only be forfeited by an unenlightened and variable policy,
proceeding from the causes already mentioned, but the national
councils will not possess that sensibility to the opinion of the
world, which is perhaps not less necessary in order to merit, than
it is to obtain, its respect and confidence.
An attention to the judgment of other nations is important to every
government for two reasons: the one is, that, independently of the
merits of any particular plan or measure, it is desirable, on
various accounts, that it should appear to other nations as the
offspring of a wise and honorable policy; the second is, that in
doubtful cases, particularly where the national councils may be
warped by some strong passion or momentary interest, the presumed or
known opinion of the impartial world may be the best guide that can
be followed. What has not America lost by her want of character with
foreign nations; and how many errors and follies would she not have
avoided, if the justice and propriety of her measures had, in every
instance, been previously tried by the light in which they would
probably appear to the unbiased part of mankind?
Yet however requisite a sense of national character may be, it is
evident that it can never be sufficiently possessed by a numerous
and changeable body. It can only be found in a number so small that
a sensible degree of the praise and blame of public measures may be
the portion of each individual; or in an assembly so durably
invested with public trust, that the pride and consequence of its
members may be sensibly incorporated with the reputation and
prosperity of the community. The half-yearly representatives of
Rhode Island would probably have been little affected in their
deliberations on the iniquitous measures of that State, by arguments
drawn from the light in which such measures would be viewed by
foreign nations, or even by the sister States; whilst it can
scarcely be doubted that if the concurrence of a select and stable
body had been necessary, a regard to national character alone would
have prevented the calamities under which that misguided people is
now laboring.
I add, as a SIXTH defect the want, in some important cases, of a due
responsibility in the government to the people, arising from that
frequency of elections which in other cases produces this
responsibility. This remark will, perhaps, appear not only new, but
paradoxical. It must nevertheless be acknowledged, when explained,
to be as undeniable as it is important.
Responsibility, in order to be reasonable, must be limited to
objects within the power of the responsible party, and in order to
be effectual, must relate to operations of that power, of which a
ready and proper judgment can be formed by the constituents. The
objects of government may be divided into two general classes: the
one depending on measures which have singly an immediate and
sensible operation; the other depending on a succession of
well-chosen and well-connected measures, which have a gradual and
perhaps unobserved operation. The importance of the latter
description to the collective and permanent welfare of every
country, needs no explanation. And yet it is evident that an
assembly elected for so short a term as to be unable to provide more
than one or two links in a chain of measures, on which the general
welfare may essentially depend, ought not to be answerable for the
final result, any more than a steward or tenant, engaged for one
year, could be justly made to answer for places or improvements
which could not be accomplished in less than half a dozen years. Nor
is it possible for the people to estimate the SHARE of influence
which their annual assemblies may respectively have on events
resulting from the mixed transactions of several years. It is
sufficiently difficult to preserve a personal responsibility in the
members of a NUMEROUS body, for such acts of the body as have an
immediate, detached, and palpable operation on its constituents.
The proper remedy for this defect must be an additional body in the
legislative department, which, having sufficient permanency to
provide for such objects as require a continued attention, and a
train of measures, may be justly and effectually answerable for the
attainment of those objects.
Thus far I have considered the circumstances which point out the
necessity of a well-constructed Senate only as they relate to the
representatives of the people. To a people as little blinded by
prejudice or corrupted by flattery as those whom I address, I shall
not scruple to add, that such an institution may be sometimes
necessary as a defense to the people against their own temporary
errors and delusions. As the cool and deliberate sense of the
community ought, in all governments, and actually will, in all free
governments, ultimately prevail over the views of its rulers; so
there are particular moments in public affairs when the people,
stimulated by some irregular passion, or some illicit advantage, or
misled by the artful misrepresentations of interested men, may call
for measures which they themselves will afterwards be the most ready
to lament and condemn. In these critical moments, how salutary will
be the interference of some temperate and respectable body of
citizens, in order to check the misguided career, and to suspend the
blow meditated by the people against themselves, until reason,
justice, and truth can regain their authority over the public mind?
What bitter anguish would not the people of Athens have often
escaped if their government had contained so provident a safeguard
against the tyranny of their own passions? Popular liberty might
then have escaped the indelible reproach of decreeing to the same
citizens the hemlock on one day and statues on the next.
It may be suggested, that a people spread over an extensive region
cannot, like the crowded inhabitants of a small district, be subject
to the infection of violent passions, or to the danger of combining
in pursuit of unjust measures. I am far from denying that this is a
distinction of peculiar importance. I have, on the contrary,
endeavored in a former paper to show, that it is one of the
principal recommendations of a confederated republic. At the same
time, this advantage ought not to be considered as superseding the
use of auxiliary precautions. It may even be remarked, that the same
extended situation, which will exempt the people of America from
some of the dangers incident to lesser republics, will expose them
to the inconveniency of remaining for a longer time under the
influence of those misrepresentations which the combined industry of
interested men may succeed in distributing among them.
It adds no small weight to all these considerations, to recollect
that history informs us of no long-lived republic which had not a
senate. Sparta, Rome, and Carthage are, in fact, the only states to
whom that character can be applied. In each of the two first there
was a senate for life. The constitution of the senate in the last is
less known. Circumstantial evidence makes it probable that it was
not different in this particular from the two others. It is at least
certain, that it had some quality or other which rendered it an
anchor against popular fluctuations; and that a smaller council,
drawn out of the senate, was appointed not only for life, but filled
up vacancies itself. These examples, though as unfit for the
imitation, as they are repugnant to the genius, of America, are,
notwithstanding, when compared with the fugitive and turbulent
existence of other ancient republics, very instructive proofs of the
necessity of some institution that will blend stability with
liberty. I am not unaware of the circumstances which distinguish the
American from other popular governments, as well ancient as modern;
and which render extreme circumspection necessary, in reasoning from
the one case to the other. But after allowing due weight to this
consideration, it may still be maintained, that there are many
points of similitude which render these examples not unworthy of our
attention. Many of the defects, as we have seen, which can only be
supplied by a senatorial institution, are common to a numerous
assembly frequently elected by the people, and to the people
themselves. There are others peculiar to the former, which require
the control of such an institution. The people can never wilfully
betray their own interests; but they may possibly be betrayed by the
representatives of the people; and the danger will be evidently
greater where the whole legislative trust is lodged in the hands of
one body of men, than where the concurrence of separate and
dissimilar bodies is required in every public act.
The difference most relied on, between the American and other
republics, consists in the principle of representation; which is the
pivot on which the former move, and which is supposed to have been
unknown to the latter, or at least to the ancient part of them. The
use which has been made of this difference, in reasonings contained
in former papers, will have shown that I am disposed neither to deny
its existence nor to undervalue its importance. I feel the less
restraint, therefore, in observing, that the position concerning the
ignorance of the ancient governments on the subject of
representation, is by no means precisely true in the latitude
commonly given to it. Without entering into a disquisition which
here would be misplaced, I will refer to a few known facts, in
support of what I advance.
In the most pure democracies of Greece, many of the executive
functions were performed, not by the people themselves, but by
officers elected by the people, and REPRESENTING the people in their
EXECUTIVE capacity.
Prior to the reform of Solon, Athens was governed by nine Archons,
annually ELECTED BY THE PEOPLE AT LARGE. The degree of power
delegated to them seems to be left in great obscurity. Subsequent to
that period, we find an assembly, first of four, and afterwards of
six hundred members, annually ELECTED BY THE PEOPLE; and PARTIALLY
representing them in their LEGISLATIVE capacity, since they were not
only associated with the people in the function of making laws, but
had the exclusive right of originating legislative propositions to
the people. The senate of Carthage, also, whatever might be its
power, or the duration of its appointment, appears to have been
ELECTIVE by the suffrages of the people. Similar instances might be
traced in most, if not all the popular governments of antiquity.
Lastly, in Sparta we meet with the Ephori, and in Rome with the
Tribunes; two bodies, small indeed in numbers, but annually ELECTED
BY THE WHOLE BODY OF THE PEOPLE, and considered as the
REPRESENTATIVES of the people, almost in their PLENIPOTENTIARY
capacity. The Cosmi of Crete were also annually ELECTED BY THE
PEOPLE, and have been considered by some authors as an institution
analogous to those of Sparta and Rome, with this difference only,
that in the election of that representative body the right of
suffrage was communicated to a part only of the people.
From these facts, to which many others might be added, it is clear
that the principle of representation was neither unknown to the
ancients nor wholly overlooked in their political constitutions. The
true distinction between these and the American governments, lies IN
THE TOTAL EXCLUSION OF THE PEOPLE, IN THEIR COLLECTIVE CAPACITY,
from any share in the LATTER, and not in the TOTAL EXCLUSION OF THE
REPRESENTATIVES OF THE PEOPLE from the administration of the FORMER.
The distinction, however, thus qualified, must be admitted to leave
a most advantageous superiority in favor of the United States. But
to insure to this advantage its full effect, we must be careful not
to separate it from the other advantage, of an extensive territory.
For it cannot be believed, that any form of representative
government could have succeeded within the narrow limits occupied by
the democracies of Greece.
In answer to all these arguments, suggested by reason, illustrated
by examples, and enforced by our own experience, the jealous
adversary of the Constitution will probably content himself with
repeating, that a senate appointed not immediately by the people,
and for the term of six years, must gradually acquire a dangerous
pre-eminence in the government, and finally transform it into a
tyrannical aristocracy.
To this general answer, the general reply ought to be sufficient,
that liberty may be endangered by the abuses of liberty as well as
by the abuses of power; that there are numerous instances of the
former as well as of the latter; and that the former, rather than
the latter, are apparently most to be apprehended by the United
States. But a more particular reply may be given.
Before such a revolution can be effected, the Senate, it is to be
observed, must in the first place corrupt itself; must next corrupt
the State legislatures; must then corrupt the House of
Representatives; and must finally corrupt the people at large. It is
evident that the Senate must be first corrupted before it can
attempt an establishment of tyranny. Without corrupting the State
legislatures, it cannot prosecute the attempt, because the
periodical change of members would otherwise regenerate the whole
body. Without exerting the means of corruption with equal success on
the House of Representatives, the opposition of that coequal branch
of the government would inevitably defeat the attempt; and without
corrupting the people themselves, a succession of new
representatives would speedily restore all things to their pristine
order. Is there any man who can seriously persuade himself that the
proposed Senate can, by any possible means within the compass of
human address, arrive at the object of a lawless ambition, through
all these obstructions?
If reason condemns the suspicion, the same sentence is pronounced by
experience. The constitution of Maryland furnishes the most apposite
example. The Senate of that State is elected, as the federal Senate
will be, indirectly by the people, and for a term less by one year
only than the federal Senate. It is distinguished, also, by the
remarkable prerogative of filling up its own vacancies within the
term of its appointment, and, at the same time, is not under the
control of any such rotation as is provided for the federal Senate.
There are some other lesser distinctions, which would expose the
former to colorable objections, that do not lie against the latter.
If the federal Senate, therefore, really contained the danger which
has been so loudly proclaimed, some symptoms at least of a like
danger ought by this time to have been betrayed by the Senate of
Maryland, but no such symptoms have appeared. On the contrary, the
jealousies at first entertained by men of the same description with
those who view with terror the correspondent part of the federal
Constitution, have been gradually extinguished by the progress of
the experiment; and the Maryland constitution is daily deriving,
from the salutary operation of this part of it, a reputation in
which it will probably not be rivalled by that of any State in the
Union.
But if anything could silence the jealousies on this subject, it
ought to be the British example. The Senate there instead of being
elected for a term of six years, and of being unconfined to
particular families or fortunes, is an hereditary assembly of
opulent nobles. The House of Representatives, instead of being
elected for two years, and by the whole body of the people, is
elected for seven years, and, in very great proportion, by a very
small proportion of the people. Here, unquestionably, ought to be
seen in full display the aristocratic usurpations and tyranny which
are at some future period to be exemplified in the United States.
Unfortunately, however, for the anti-federal argument, the British
history informs us that this hereditary assembly has not been able
to defend itself against the continual encroachments of the House of
Representatives; and that it no sooner lost the support of the
monarch, than it was actually crushed by the weight of the popular
branch.
As far as antiquity can instruct us on this subject, its examples
support the reasoning which we have employed. In Sparta, the Ephori,
the annual representatives of the people, were found an overmatch
for the senate for life, continually gained on its authority and
finally drew all power into their own hands. The Tribunes of Rome,
who were the representatives of the people, prevailed, it is well
known, in almost every contest with the senate for life, and in the
end gained the most complete triumph over it. The fact is the more
remarkable, as unanimity was required in every act of the Tribunes,
even after their number was augmented to ten. It proves the
irresistible force possessed by that branch of a free government,
which has the people on its side. To these examples might be added
that of Carthage, whose senate, according to the testimony of
Polybius, instead of drawing all power into its vortex, had, at the
commencement of the second Punic War, lost almost the whole of its
original portion.
Besides the conclusive evidence resulting from this assemblage of
facts, that the federal Senate will never be able to transform
itself, by gradual usurpations, into an independent and aristocratic
body, we are warranted in believing, that if such a revolution
should ever happen from causes which the foresight of man cannot
guard against, the House of Representatives, with the people on
their side, will at all times be able to bring back the Constitution
to its primitive form and principles. Against the force of the
immediate representatives of the people, nothing will be able to
maintain even the constitutional authority of the Senate, but such a
display of enlightened policy, and attachment to the public good, as
will divide with that branch of the legislature the affections and
support of the entire body of the people themselves.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 64.
The Powers of the Senate
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 5, 1788.
JAY
To the People of the State of New York:
IT IS a just and not a new observation, that enemies to particular
persons, and opponents to particular measures, seldom confine their
censures to such things only in either as are worthy of blame.
Unless on this principle, it is difficult to explain the motives of
their conduct, who condemn the proposed Constitution in the
aggregate, and treat with severity some of the most unexceptionable
articles in it.
The second section gives power to the President, "BY AND WITH THE
ADVICE AND CONSENT OF THE SENATE, TO MAKE TREATIES, PROVIDED TWO
THIRDS OF THE SENATORS PRESENT CONCUR."
The power of making treaties is an important one, especially as it
relates to war, peace, and commerce; and it should not be delegated
but in such a mode, and with such precautions, as will afford the
highest security that it will be exercised by men the best qualified
for the purpose, and in the manner most conducive to the public
good. The convention appears to have been attentive to both these
points: they have directed the President to be chosen by select
bodies of electors, to be deputed by the people for that express
purpose; and they have committed the appointment of senators to the
State legislatures. This mode has, in such cases, vastly the
advantage of elections by the people in their collective capacity,
where the activity of party zeal, taking the advantage of the
supineness, the ignorance, and the hopes and fears of the unwary and
interested, often places men in office by the votes of a small
proportion of the electors.
As the select assemblies for choosing the President, as well as the
State legislatures who appoint the senators, will in general be
composed of the most enlightened and respectable citizens, there is
reason to presume that their attention and their votes will be
directed to those men only who have become the most distinguished by
their abilities and virtue, and in whom the people perceive just
grounds for confidence. The Constitution manifests very particular
attention to this object. By excluding men under thirty-five from
the first office, and those under thirty from the second, it
confines the electors to men of whom the people have had time to
form a judgment, and with respect to whom they will not be liable to
be deceived by those brilliant appearances of genius and patriotism,
which, like transient meteors, sometimes mislead as well as dazzle.
If the observation be well founded, that wise kings will always be
served by able ministers, it is fair to argue, that as an assembly
of select electors possess, in a greater degree than kings, the
means of extensive and accurate information relative to men and
characters, so will their appointments bear at least equal marks of
discretion and discernment. The inference which naturally results
from these considerations is this, that the President and senators
so chosen will always be of the number of those who best understand
our national interests, whether considered in relation to the
several States or to foreign nations, who are best able to promote
those interests, and whose reputation for integrity inspires and
merits confidence. With such men the power of making treaties may be
safely lodged.
Although the absolute necessity of system, in the conduct of any
business, is universally known and acknowledged, yet the high
importance of it in national affairs has not yet become sufficiently
impressed on the public mind. They who wish to commit the power
under consideration to a popular assembly, composed of members
constantly coming and going in quick succession, seem not to
recollect that such a body must necessarily be inadequate to the
attainment of those great objects, which require to be steadily
contemplated in all their relations and circumstances, and which can
only be approached and achieved by measures which not only talents,
but also exact information, and often much time, are necessary to
concert and to execute. It was wise, therefore, in the convention to
provide, not only that the power of making treaties should be
committed to able and honest men, but also that they should continue
in place a sufficient time to become perfectly acquainted with our
national concerns, and to form and introduce a a system for the
management of them. The duration prescribed is such as will give
them an opportunity of greatly extending their political
information, and of rendering their accumulating experience more and
more beneficial to their country. Nor has the convention discovered
less prudence in providing for the frequent elections of senators in
such a way as to obviate the inconvenience of periodically
transferring those great affairs entirely to new men; for by leaving
a considerable residue of the old ones in place, uniformity and
order, as well as a constant succession of official information will
be preserved.
There are a few who will not admit that the affairs of trade and
navigation should be regulated by a system cautiously formed and
steadily pursued; and that both our treaties and our laws should
correspond with and be made to promote it. It is of much consequence
that this correspondence and conformity be carefully maintained; and
they who assent to the truth of this position will see and confess
that it is well provided for by making concurrence of the Senate
necessary both to treaties and to laws.
It seldom happens in the negotiation of treaties, of whatever
nature, but that perfect SECRECY and immediate DESPATCH are
sometimes requisite. These are cases where the most useful
intelligence may be obtained, if the persons possessing it can be
relieved from apprehensions of discovery. Those apprehensions will
operate on those persons whether they are actuated by mercenary or
friendly motives; and there doubtless are many of both descriptions,
who would rely on the secrecy of the President, but who would not
confide in that of the Senate, and still less in that of a large
popular Assembly. The convention have done well, therefore, in so
disposing of the power of making treaties, that although the
President must, in forming them, act by the advice and consent of
the Senate, yet he will be able to manage the business of
intelligence in such a manner as prudence may suggest.
They who have turned their attention to the affairs of men, must
have perceived that there are tides in them; tides very irregular in
their duration, strength, and direction, and seldom found to run
twice exactly in the same manner or measure. To discern and to
profit by these tides in national affairs is the business of those
who preside over them; and they who have had much experience on this
head inform us, that there frequently are occasions when days, nay,
even when hours, are precious. The loss of a battle, the death of a
prince, the removal of a minister, or other circumstances
intervening to change the present posture and aspect of affairs, may
turn the most favorable tide into a course opposite to our wishes.
As in the field, so in the cabinet, there are moments to be seized
as they pass, and they who preside in either should be left in
capacity to improve them. So often and so essentially have we
heretofore suffered from the want of secrecy and despatch, that the
Constitution would have been inexcusably defective, if no attention
had been paid to those objects. Those matters which in negotiations
usually require the most secrecy and the most despatch, are those
preparatory and auxiliary measures which are not otherwise important
in a national view, than as they tend to facilitate the attainment
of the objects of the negotiation. For these, the President will
find no difficulty to provide; and should any circumstance occur
which requires the advice and consent of the Senate, he may at any
time convene them. Thus we see that the Constitution provides that
our negotiations for treaties shall have every advantage which can
be derived from talents, information, integrity, and deliberate
investigations, on the one hand, and from secrecy and despatch on
the other.
But to this plan, as to most others that have ever appeared,
objections are contrived and urged.
Some are displeased with it, not on account of any errors or defects
in it, but because, as the treaties, when made, are to have the
force of laws, they should be made only by men invested with
legislative authority. These gentlemen seem not to consider that the
judgments of our courts, and the commissions constitutionally given
by our governor, are as valid and as binding on all persons whom
they concern, as the laws passed by our legislature. All
constitutional acts of power, whether in the executive or in the
judicial department, have as much legal validity and obligation as
if they proceeded from the legislature; and therefore, whatever name
be given to the power of making treaties, or however obligatory they
may be when made, certain it is, that the people may, with much
propriety, commit the power to a distinct body from the legislature,
the executive, or the judicial. It surely does not follow, that
because they have given the power of making laws to the legislature,
that therefore they should likewise give them the power to do every
other act of sovereignty by which the citizens are to be bound and
affected.
Others, though content that treaties should be made in the mode
proposed, are averse to their being the SUPREME laws of the land.
They insist, and profess to believe, that treaties like acts of
assembly, should be repealable at pleasure. This idea seems to be
new and peculiar to this country, but new errors, as well as new
truths, often appear. These gentlemen would do well to reflect that
a treaty is only another name for a bargain, and that it would be
impossible to find a nation who would make any bargain with us,
which should be binding on them ABSOLUTELY, but on us only so long
and so far as we may think proper to be bound by it. They who make
laws may, without doubt, amend or repeal them; and it will not be
disputed that they who make treaties may alter or cancel them; but
still let us not forget that treaties are made, not by only one of
the contracting parties, but by both; and consequently, that as the
consent of both was essential to their formation at first, so must
it ever afterwards be to alter or cancel them. The proposed
Constitution, therefore, has not in the least extended the
obligation of treaties. They are just as binding, and just as far
beyond the lawful reach of legislative acts now, as they will be at
any future period, or under any form of government.
However useful jealousy may be in republics, yet when like bile in
the natural, it abounds too much in the body politic, the eyes of
both become very liable to be deceived by the delusive appearances
which that malady casts on surrounding objects. From this cause,
probably, proceed the fears and apprehensions of some, that the
President and Senate may make treaties without an equal eye to the
interests of all the States. Others suspect that two thirds will
oppress the remaining third, and ask whether those gentlemen are
made sufficiently responsible for their conduct; whether, if they
act corruptly, they can be punished; and if they make
disadvantageous treaties, how are we to get rid of those treaties?
As all the States are equally represented in the Senate, and by men
the most able and the most willing to promote the interests of their
constituents, they will all have an equal degree of influence in
that body, especially while they continue to be careful in
appointing proper persons, and to insist on their punctual
attendance. In proportion as the United States assume a national
form and a national character, so will the good of the whole be more
and more an object of attention, and the government must be a weak
one indeed, if it should forget that the good of the whole can only
be promoted by advancing the good of each of the parts or members
which compose the whole. It will not be in the power of the
President and Senate to make any treaties by which they and their
families and estates will not be equally bound and affected with the
rest of the community; and, having no private interests distinct
from that of the nation, they will be under no temptations to
neglect the latter.
As to corruption, the case is not supposable. He must either have
been very unfortunate in his intercourse with the world, or possess
a heart very susceptible of such impressions, who can think it
probable that the President and two thirds of the Senate will ever
be capable of such unworthy conduct. The idea is too gross and too
invidious to be entertained. But in such a case, if it should ever
happen, the treaty so obtained from us would, like all other
fraudulent contracts, be null and void by the law of nations.
With respect to their responsibility, it is difficult to conceive
how it could be increased. Every consideration that can influence
the human mind, such as honor, oaths, reputations, conscience, the
love of country, and family affections and attachments, afford
security for their fidelity. In short, as the Constitution has taken
the utmost care that they shall be men of talents and integrity, we
have reason to be persuaded that the treaties they make will be as
advantageous as, all circumstances considered, could be made; and so
far as the fear of punishment and disgrace can operate, that motive
to good behavior is amply afforded by the article on the subject of
impeachments.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 65.
The Powers of the Senate Continued
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 7, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE remaining powers which the plan of the convention allots to the
Senate, in a distinct capacity, are comprised in their participation
with the executive in the appointment to offices, and in their
judicial character as a court for the trial of impeachments. As in
the business of appointments the executive will be the principal
agent, the provisions relating to it will most properly be discussed
in the examination of that department. We will, therefore, conclude
this head with a view of the judicial character of the Senate.
A well-constituted court for the trial of impeachments is an object
not more to be desired than difficult to be obtained in a government
wholly elective. The subjects of its jurisdiction are those offenses
which proceed from the misconduct of public men, or, in other words,
from the abuse or violation of some public trust. They are of a
nature which may with peculiar propriety be denominated POLITICAL,
as they relate chiefly to injuries done immediately to the society
itself. The prosecution of them, for this reason, will seldom fail
to agitate the passions of the whole community, and to divide it
into parties more or less friendly or inimical to the accused. In
many cases it will connect itself with the pre-existing factions,
and will enlist all their animosities, partialities, influence, and
interest on one side or on the other; and in such cases there will
always be the greatest danger that the decision will be regulated
more by the comparative strength of parties, than by the real
demonstrations of innocence or guilt.
The delicacy and magnitude of a trust which so deeply concerns the
political reputation and existence of every man engaged in the
administration of public affairs, speak for themselves. The
difficulty of placing it rightly, in a government resting entirely
on the basis of periodical elections, will as readily be perceived,
when it is considered that the most conspicuous characters in it
will, from that circumstance, be too often the leaders or the tools
of the most cunning or the most numerous faction, and on this
account, can hardly be expected to possess the requisite neutrality
towards those whose conduct may be the subject of scrutiny.
The convention, it appears, thought the Senate the most fit
depositary of this important trust. Those who can best discern the
intrinsic difficulty of the thing, will be least hasty in condemning
that opinion, and will be most inclined to allow due weight to the
arguments which may be supposed to have produced it.
What, it may be asked, is the true spirit of the institution itself?
Is it not designed as a method of NATIONAL INQUEST into the conduct
of public men? If this be the design of it, who can so properly be
the inquisitors for the nation as the representatives of the nation
themselves? It is not disputed that the power of originating the
inquiry, or, in other words, of preferring the impeachment, ought to
be lodged in the hands of one branch of the legislative body. Will
not the reasons which indicate the propriety of this arrangement
strongly plead for an admission of the other branch of that body to
a share of the inquiry? The model from which the idea of this
institution has been borrowed, pointed out that course to the
convention. In Great Britain it is the province of the House of
Commons to prefer the impeachment, and of the House of Lords to
decide upon it. Several of the State constitutions have followed the
example. As well the latter, as the former, seem to have regarded
the practice of impeachments as a bridle in the hands of the
legislative body upon the executive servants of the government. Is
not this the true light in which it ought to be regarded?
Where else than in the Senate could have been found a tribunal
sufficiently dignified, or sufficiently independent? What other body
would be likely to feel CONFIDENCE ENOUGH IN ITS OWN SITUATION, to
preserve, unawed and uninfluenced, the necessary impartiality
between an INDIVIDUAL accused, and the REPRESENTATIVES OF THE
PEOPLE, HIS ACCUSERS?
Could the Supreme Court have been relied upon as answering this
description? It is much to be doubted, whether the members of that
tribunal would at all times be endowed with so eminent a portion of
fortitude, as would be called for in the execution of so difficult a
task; and it is still more to be doubted, whether they would possess
the degree of credit and authority, which might, on certain
occasions, be indispensable towards reconciling the people to a
decision that should happen to clash with an accusation brought by
their immediate representatives. A deficiency in the first, would be
fatal to the accused; in the last, dangerous to the public
tranquillity. The hazard in both these respects, could only be
avoided, if at all, by rendering that tribunal more numerous than
would consist with a reasonable attention to economy. The necessity
of a numerous court for the trial of impeachments, is equally
dictated by the nature of the proceeding. This can never be tied
down by such strict rules, either in the delineation of the offense
by the prosecutors, or in the construction of it by the judges, as
in common cases serve to limit the discretion of courts in favor of
personal security. There will be no jury to stand between the judges
who are to pronounce the sentence of the law, and the party who is
to receive or suffer it. The awful discretion which a court of
impeachments must necessarily have, to doom to honor or to infamy
the most confidential and the most distinguished characters of the
community, forbids the commitment of the trust to a small number of
persons.
These considerations seem alone sufficient to authorize a
conclusion, that the Supreme Court would have been an improper
substitute for the Senate, as a court of impeachments. There remains
a further consideration, which will not a little strengthen this
conclusion. It is this: The punishment which may be the consequence
of conviction upon impeachment, is not to terminate the chastisement
of the offender. After having been sentenced to a perpetual
ostracism from the esteem and confidence, and honors and emoluments
of his country, he will still be liable to prosecution and
punishment in the ordinary course of law. Would it be proper that
the persons who had disposed of his fame, and his most valuable
rights as a citizen in one trial, should, in another trial, for the
same offense, be also the disposers of his life and his fortune?
Would there not be the greatest reason to apprehend, that error, in
the first sentence, would be the parent of error in the second
sentence? That the strong bias of one decision would be apt to
overrule the influence of any new lights which might be brought to
vary the complexion of another decision? Those who know anything of
human nature, will not hesitate to answer these questions in the
affirmative; and will be at no loss to perceive, that by making the
same persons judges in both cases, those who might happen to be the
objects of prosecution would, in a great measure, be deprived of the
double security intended them by a double trial. The loss of life
and estate would often be virtually included in a sentence which, in
its terms, imported nothing more than dismission from a present, and
disqualification for a future, office. It may be said, that the
intervention of a jury, in the second instance, would obviate the
danger. But juries are frequently influenced by the opinions of
judges. They are sometimes induced to find special verdicts, which
refer the main question to the decision of the court. Who would be
willing to stake his life and his estate upon the verdict of a jury
acting under the auspices of judges who had predetermined his guilt?
Would it have been an improvement of the plan, to have united the
Supreme Court with the Senate, in the formation of the court of
impeachments? This union would certainly have been attended with
several advantages; but would they not have been overbalanced by the
signal disadvantage, already stated, arising from the agency of the
same judges in the double prosecution to which the offender would be
liable? To a certain extent, the benefits of that union will be
obtained from making the chief justice of the Supreme Court the
president of the court of impeachments, as is proposed to be done in
the plan of the convention; while the inconveniences of an entire
incorporation of the former into the latter will be substantially
avoided. This was perhaps the prudent mean. I forbear to remark upon
the additional pretext for clamor against the judiciary, which so
considerable an augmentation of its authority would have afforded.
Would it have been desirable to have composed the court for the
trial of impeachments, of persons wholly distinct from the other
departments of the government? There are weighty arguments, as well
against, as in favor of, such a plan. To some minds it will not
appear a trivial objection, that it could tend to increase the
complexity of the political machine, and to add a new spring to the
government, the utility of which would at best be questionable. But
an objection which will not be thought by any unworthy of attention,
is this: a court formed upon such a plan, would either be attended
with a heavy expense, or might in practice be subject to a variety
of casualties and inconveniences. It must either consist of
permanent officers, stationary at the seat of government, and of
course entitled to fixed and regular stipends, or of certain
officers of the State governments to be called upon whenever an
impeachment was actually depending. It will not be easy to imagine
any third mode materially different, which could rationally be
proposed. As the court, for reasons already given, ought to be
numerous, the first scheme will be reprobated by every man who can
compare the extent of the public wants with the means of supplying
them. The second will be espoused with caution by those who will
seriously consider the difficulty of collecting men dispersed over
the whole Union; the injury to the innocent, from the procrastinated
determination of the charges which might be brought against them;
the advantage to the guilty, from the opportunities which delay
would afford to intrigue and corruption; and in some cases the
detriment to the State, from the prolonged inaction of men whose
firm and faithful execution of their duty might have exposed them to
the persecution of an intemperate or designing majority in the House
of Representatives. Though this latter supposition may seem harsh,
and might not be likely often to be verified, yet it ought not to be
forgotten that the demon of faction will, at certain seasons, extend
his sceptre over all numerous bodies of men.
But though one or the other of the substitutes which have been
examined, or some other that might be devised, should be thought
preferable to the plan in this respect, reported by the convention,
it will not follow that the Constitution ought for this reason to be
rejected. If mankind were to resolve to agree in no institution of
government, until every part of it had been adjusted to the most
exact standard of perfection, society would soon become a general
scene of anarchy, and the world a desert. Where is the standard of
perfection to be found? Who will undertake to unite the discordant
opinions of a whole community, in the same judgment of it; and to
prevail upon one conceited projector to renounce his INFALLIBLE
criterion for the FALLIBLE criterion of his more CONCEITED NEIGHBOR?
To answer the purpose of the adversaries of the Constitution, they
ought to prove, not merely that particular provisions in it are not
the best which might have been imagined, but that the plan upon the
whole is bad and pernicious.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 66.
Objections to the Power of the Senate To Set as a Court for
Impeachments Further Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, March 8, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
A REVIEW of the principal objections that have appeared against the
proposed court for the trial of impeachments, will not improbably
eradicate the remains of any unfavorable impressions which may still
exist in regard to this matter.
The FIRST of these objections is, that the provision in question
confounds legislative and judiciary authorities in the same body, in
violation of that important and well-established maxim which
requires a separation between the different departments of power.
The true meaning of this maxim has been discussed and ascertained in
another place, and has been shown to be entirely compatible with a
partial intermixture of those departments for special purposes,
preserving them, in the main, distinct and unconnected. This partial
intermixture is even, in some cases, not only proper but necessary
to the mutual defense of the several members of the government
against each other. An absolute or qualified negative in the
executive upon the acts of the legislative body, is admitted, by the
ablest adepts in political science, to be an indispensable barrier
against the encroachments of the latter upon the former. And it may,
perhaps, with no less reason be contended, that the powers relating
to impeachments are, as before intimated, an essential check in the
hands of that body upon the encroachments of the executive. The
division of them between the two branches of the legislature,
assigning to one the right of accusing, to the other the right of
judging, avoids the inconvenience of making the same persons both
accusers and judges; and guards against the danger of persecution,
from the prevalency of a factious spirit in either of those
branches. As the concurrence of two thirds of the Senate will be
requisite to a condemnation, the security to innocence, from this
additional circumstance, will be as complete as itself can desire.
It is curious to observe, with what vehemence this part of the plan
is assailed, on the principle here taken notice of, by men who
profess to admire, without exception, the constitution of this
State; while that constitution makes the Senate, together with the
chancellor and judges of the Supreme Court, not only a court of
impeachments, but the highest judicatory in the State, in all
causes, civil and criminal. The proportion, in point of numbers, of
the chancellor and judges to the senators, is so inconsiderable,
that the judiciary authority of New York, in the last resort, may,
with truth, be said to reside in its Senate. If the plan of the
convention be, in this respect, chargeable with a departure from the
celebrated maxim which has been so often mentioned, and seems to be
so little understood, how much more culpable must be the
constitution of New York?(1)
A SECOND objection to the Senate, as a court of impeachments, is,
that it contributes to an undue accumulation of power in that body,
tending to give to the government a countenance too aristocratic.
The Senate, it is observed, is to have concurrent authority with the
Executive in the formation of treaties and in the appointment to
offices: if, say the objectors, to these prerogatives is added that
of deciding in all cases of impeachment, it will give a decided
predominancy to senatorial influence. To an objection so little
precise in itself, it is not easy to find a very precise answer.
Where is the measure or criterion to which we can appeal, for
determining what will give the Senate too much, too little, or
barely the proper degree of influence? Will it not be more safe, as
well as more simple, to dismiss such vague and uncertain
calculations, to examine each power by itself, and to decide, on
general principles, where it may be deposited with most advantage
and least inconvenience?
If we take this course, it will lead to a more intelligible, if not
to a more certain result. The disposition of the power of making
treaties, which has obtained in the plan of the convention, will,
then, if I mistake not, appear to be fully justified by the
considerations stated in a former number, and by others which will
occur under the next head of our inquiries. The expediency of the
junction of the Senate with the Executive, in the power of
appointing to offices, will, I trust, be placed in a light not less
satisfactory, in the disquisitions under the same head. And I
flatter myself the observations in my last paper must have gone no
inconsiderable way towards proving that it was not easy, if
practicable, to find a more fit receptacle for the power of
determining impeachments, than that which has been chosen. If this
be truly the case, the hypothetical dread of the too great weight of
the Senate ought to be discarded from our reasonings.
But this hypothesis, such as it is, has already been refuted in the
remarks applied to the duration in office prescribed for the
senators. It was by them shown, as well on the credit of historical
examples, as from the reason of the thing, that the most POPULAR
branch of every government, partaking of the republican genius, by
being generally the favorite of the people, will be as generally a
full match, if not an overmatch, for every other member of the
Government.
But independent of this most active and operative principle, to
secure the equilibrium of the national House of Representatives, the
plan of the convention has provided in its favor several important
counterpoises to the additional authorities to be conferred upon the
Senate. The exclusive privilege of originating money bills will
belong to the House of Representatives. The same house will possess
the sole right of instituting impeachments: is not this a complete
counterbalance to that of determining them? The same house will be
the umpire in all elections of the President, which do not unite the
suffrages of a majority of the whole number of electors; a case
which it cannot be doubted will sometimes, if not frequently,
happen. The constant possibility of the thing must be a fruitful
source of influence to that body. The more it is contemplated, the
more important will appear this ultimate though contingent power, of
deciding the competitions of the most illustrious citizens of the
Union, for the first office in it. It would not perhaps be rash to
predict, that as a mean of influence it will be found to outweigh
all the peculiar attributes of the Senate.
A THIRD objection to the Senate as a court of impeachments, is drawn
from the agency they are to have in the appointments to office. It
is imagined that they would be too indulgent judges of the conduct
of men, in whose official creation they had participated. The
principle of this objection would condemn a practice, which is to be
seen in all the State governments, if not in all the governments
with which we are acquainted: I mean that of rendering those who
hold offices during pleasure, dependent on the pleasure of those who
appoint them. With equal plausibility might it be alleged in this
case, that the favoritism of the latter would always be an asylum
for the misbehavior of the former. But that practice, in
contradiction to this principle, proceeds upon the presumption, that
the responsibility of those who appoint, for the fitness and
competency of the persons on whom they bestow their choice, and the
interest they will have in the respectable and prosperous
administration of affairs, will inspire a sufficient disposition to
dismiss from a share in it all such who, by their conduct, shall
have proved themselves unworthy of the confidence reposed in them.
Though facts may not always correspond with this presumption, yet if
it be, in the main, just, it must destroy the supposition that the
Senate, who will merely sanction the choice of the Executive, should
feel a bias, towards the objects of that choice, strong enough to
blind them to the evidences of guilt so extraordinary, as to have
induced the representatives of the nation to become its accusers.
If any further arguments were necessary to evince the improbability
of such a bias, it might be found in the nature of the agency of the
Senate in the business of appointments. It will be the office of the
President to NOMINATE, and, with the advice and consent of the
Senate, to APPOINT. There will, of course, be no exertion of CHOICE
on the part of the Senate. They may defeat one choice of the
Executive, and oblige him to make another; but they cannot
themselves CHOOSE—they can only ratify or reject the choice of the
President. They might even entertain a preference to some other
person, at the very moment they were assenting to the one proposed,
because there might be no positive ground of opposition to him; and
they could not be sure, if they withheld their assent, that the
subsequent nomination would fall upon their own favorite, or upon
any other person in their estimation more meritorious than the one
rejected. Thus it could hardly happen, that the majority of the
Senate would feel any other complacency towards the object of an
appointment than such as the appearances of merit might inspire, and
the proofs of the want of it destroy.
A FOURTH objection to the Senate in the capacity of a court of
impeachments, is derived from its union with the Executive in the
power of making treaties. This, it has been said, would constitute
the senators their own judges, in every case of a corrupt or
perfidious execution of that trust. After having combined with the
Executive in betraying the interests of the nation in a ruinous
treaty, what prospect, it is asked, would there be of their being
made to suffer the punishment they would deserve, when they were
themselves to decide upon the accusation brought against them for
the treachery of which they have been guilty?
This objection has been circulated with more earnestness and with
greater show of reason than any other which has appeared against
this part of the plan; and yet I am deceived if it does not rest
upon an erroneous foundation.
The security essentially intended by the Constitution against
corruption and treachery in the formation of treaties, is to be
sought for in the numbers and characters of those who are to make
them. The JOINT AGENCY of the Chief Magistrate of the Union, and of
two thirds of the members of a body selected by the collective
wisdom of the legislatures of the several States, is designed to be
the pledge for the fidelity of the national councils in this
particular. The convention might with propriety have meditated the
punishment of the Executive, for a deviation from the instructions
of the Senate, or a want of integrity in the conduct of the
negotiations committed to him; they might also have had in view the
punishment of a few leading individuals in the Senate, who should
have prostituted their influence in that body as the mercenary
instruments of foreign corruption: but they could not, with more or
with equal propriety, have contemplated the impeachment and
punishment of two thirds of the Senate, consenting to an improper
treaty, than of a majority of that or of the other branch of the
national legislature, consenting to a pernicious or unconstitutional
law—a principle which, I believe, has never been admitted into any
government. How, in fact, could a majority in the House of
Representatives impeach themselves? Not better, it is evident, than
two thirds of the Senate might try themselves. And yet what reason
is there, that a majority of the House of Representatives,
sacrificing the interests of the society by an unjust and tyrannical
act of legislation, should escape with impunity, more than two
thirds of the Senate, sacrificing the same interests in an injurious
treaty with a foreign power? The truth is, that in all such cases it
is essential to the freedom and to the necessary independence of the
deliberations of the body, that the members of it should be exempt
from punishment for acts done in a collective capacity; and the
security to the society must depend on the care which is taken to
confide the trust to proper hands, to make it their interest to
execute it with fidelity, and to make it as difficult as possible
for them to combine in any interest opposite to that of the public
good.
So far as might concern the misbehavior of the Executive in
perverting the instructions or contravening the views of the Senate,
we need not be apprehensive of the want of a disposition in that
body to punish the abuse of their confidence or to vindicate their
own authority. We may thus far count upon their pride, if not upon
their virtue. And so far even as might concern the corruption of
leading members, by whose arts and influence the majority may have
been inveigled into measures odious to the community, if the proofs
of that corruption should be satisfactory, the usual propensity of
human nature will warrant us in concluding that there would be
commonly no defect of inclination in the body to divert the public
resentment from themselves by a ready sacrifice of the authors of
their mismanagement and disgrace.
PUBLIUS
1. In that of New Jersey, also, the final judiciary authority is in
a branch of the legislature. In New Hampshire, Massachusetts,
Pennsylvania, and South Carolina, one branch of the legislature is
the court for the trial of impeachments.
FEDERALIST No. 67.
The Executive Department
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 11, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE constitution of the executive department of the proposed
government, claims next our attention.
There is hardly any part of the system which could have been
attended with greater difficulty in the arrangement of it than this;
and there is, perhaps, none which has been inveighed against with
less candor or criticised with less judgment.
Here the writers against the Constitution seem to have taken pains
to signalize their talent of misrepresentation. Calculating upon the
aversion of the people to monarchy, they have endeavored to enlist
all their jealousies and apprehensions in opposition to the intended
President of the United States; not merely as the embryo, but as the
full-grown progeny, of that detested parent. To establish the
pretended affinity, they have not scrupled to draw resources even
from the regions of fiction. The authorities of a magistrate, in few
instances greater, in some instances less, than those of a governor
of New York, have been magnified into more than royal prerogatives.
He has been decorated with attributes superior in dignity and
splendor to those of a king of Great Britain. He has been shown to
us with the diadem sparkling on his brow and the imperial purple
flowing in his train. He has been seated on a throne surrounded with
minions and mistresses, giving audience to the envoys of foreign
potentates, in all the supercilious pomp of majesty. The images of
Asiatic despotism and voluptuousness have scarcely been wanting to
crown the exaggerated scene. We have been taught to tremble at the
terrific visages of murdering janizaries, and to blush at the
unveiled mysteries of a future seraglio.
Attempts so extravagant as these to disfigure or, it might rather be
said, to metamorphose the object, render it necessary to take an
accurate view of its real nature and form: in order as well to
ascertain its true aspect and genuine appearance, as to unmask the
disingenuity and expose the fallacy of the counterfeit resemblances
which have been so insidiously, as well as industriously,
propagated.
In the execution of this task, there is no man who would not find it
an arduous effort either to behold with moderation, or to treat with
seriousness, the devices, not less weak than wicked, which have been
contrived to pervert the public opinion in relation to the subject.
They so far exceed the usual though unjustifiable licenses of party
artifice, that even in a disposition the most candid and tolerant,
they must force the sentiments which favor an indulgent construction
of the conduct of political adversaries to give place to a voluntary
and unreserved indignation. It is impossible not to bestow the
imputation of deliberate imposture and deception upon the gross
pretense of a similitude between a king of Great Britain and a
magistrate of the character marked out for that of the President of
the United States. It is still more impossible to withhold that
imputation from the rash and barefaced expedients which have been
employed to give success to the attempted imposition.
In one instance, which I cite as a sample of the general spirit, the
temerity has proceeded so far as to ascribe to the President of the
United States a power which by the instrument reported is EXPRESSLY
allotted to the Executives of the individual States. I mean the
power of filling casual vacancies in the Senate.
This bold experiment upon the discernment of his countrymen has been
hazarded by a writer who (whatever may be his real merit) has had no
inconsiderable share in the applauses of his party(1); and who, upon
this false and unfounded suggestion, has built a series of
observations equally false and unfounded. Let him now be confronted
with the evidence of the fact, and let him, if he be able, justify
or extenuate the shameful outrage he has offered to the dictates of
truth and to the rules of fair dealing.
The second clause of the second section of the second article
empowers the President of the United States "to nominate, and by and
with the advice and consent of the Senate, to appoint ambassadors,
other public ministers and consuls, judges of the Supreme Court, and
all other OFFICERS of United States whose appointments are NOT in
the Constitution OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR, and WHICH SHALL BE
ESTABLISHED BY LAW." Immediately after this clause follows another
in these words: "The President shall have power to fill up all
VACANCIES that may happen DURING THE RECESS OF THE SENATE, by
granting commissions which shall EXPIRE AT THE END OF THEIR NEXT
SESSION." It is from this last provision that the pretended power of
the President to fill vacancies in the Senate has been deduced. A
slight attention to the connection of the clauses, and to the
obvious meaning of the terms, will satisfy us that the deduction is
not even colorable.
The first of these two clauses, it is clear, only provides a mode
for appointing such officers, "whose appointments are NOT OTHERWISE
PROVIDED FOR in the Constitution, and which SHALL BE ESTABLISHED BY
LAW"; of course it cannot extend to the appointments of senators,
whose appointments are OTHERWISE PROVIDED FOR in the
Constitution(2), and who are ESTABLISHED BY THE CONSTITUTION, and
will not require a future establishment by law. This position will
hardly be contested.
The last of these two clauses, it is equally clear, cannot be
understood to comprehend the power of filling vacancies in the
Senate, for the following reasons: First. The relation in which that
clause stands to the other, which declares the general mode of
appointing officers of the United States, denotes it to be nothing
more than a supplement to the other, for the purpose of establishing
an auxiliary method of appointment, in cases to which the general
method was inadequate. The ordinary power of appointment is confined
to the President and Senate JOINTLY, and can therefore only be
exercised during the session of the Senate; but as it would have
been improper to oblige this body to be continually in session for
the appointment of officers and as vacancies might happen IN THEIR
RECESS, which it might be necessary for the public service to fill
without delay, the succeeding clause is evidently intended to
authorize the President, SINGLY, to make temporary appointments
"during the recess of the Senate, by granting commissions which
shall expire at the end of their next session." Second. If this
clause is to be considered as supplementary to the one which
precedes, the VACANCIES of which it speaks must be construed to
relate to the "officers" described in the preceding one; and this,
we have seen, excludes from its description the members of the
Senate. Third. The time within which the power is to operate,
"during the recess of the Senate," and the duration of the
appointments, "to the end of the next session" of that body,
conspire to elucidate the sense of the provision, which, if it had
been intended to comprehend senators, would naturally have referred
the temporary power of filling vacancies to the recess of the State
legislatures, who are to make the permanent appointments, and not to
the recess of the national Senate, who are to have no concern in
those appointments; and would have extended the duration in office
of the temporary senators to the next session of the legislature of
the State, in whose representation the vacancies had happened,
instead of making it to expire at the end of the ensuing session of
the national Senate. The circumstances of the body authorized to
make the permanent appointments would, of course, have governed the
modification of a power which related to the temporary appointments;
and as the national Senate is the body, whose situation is alone
contemplated in the clause upon which the suggestion under
examination has been founded, the vacancies to which it alludes can
only be deemed to respect those officers in whose appointment that
body has a concurrent agency with the President. But last, the first
and second clauses of the third section of the first article, not
only obviate all possibility of doubt, but destroy the pretext of
misconception. The former provides, that "the Senate of the United
States shall be composed of two Senators from each State, chosen BY
THE LEGISLATURE THEREOF for six years"; and the latter directs,
that, "if vacancies in that body should happen by resignation or
otherwise, DURING THE RECESS OF THE LEGISLATURE OF ANY STATE, the
Executive THEREOF may make temporary appointments until the NEXT
MEETING OF THE LEGISLATURE, which shall then fill such vacancies."
Here is an express power given, in clear and unambiguous terms, to
the State Executives, to fill casual vacancies in the Senate, by
temporary appointments; which not only invalidates the supposition,
that the clause before considered could have been intended to confer
that power upon the President of the United States, but proves that
this supposition, destitute as it is even of the merit of
plausibility, must have originated in an intention to deceive the
people, too palpable to be obscured by sophistry, too atrocious to
be palliated by hypocrisy.
I have taken the pains to select this instance of misrepresentation,
and to place it in a clear and strong light, as an unequivocal proof
of the unwarrantable arts which are practiced to prevent a fair and
impartial judgment of the real merits of the Constitution submitted
to the consideration of the people. Nor have I scrupled, in so
flagrant a case, to allow myself a severity of animadversion little
congenial with the general spirit of these papers. I hesitate not to
submit it to the decision of any candid and honest adversary of the
proposed government, whether language can furnish epithets of too
much asperity, for so shameless and so prostitute an attempt to
impose on the citizens of America.
PUBLIUS
1. See CATO, No. V.
2. Article I, section 3, clause 1.
FEDERALIST No. 68.
The Mode of Electing the President
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 12, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE mode of appointment of the Chief Magistrate of the United States
is almost the only part of the system, of any consequence, which has
escaped without severe censure, or which has received the slightest
mark of approbation from its opponents. The most plausible of these,
who has appeared in print, has even deigned to admit that the
election of the President is pretty well guarded.(1) I venture
somewhat further, and hesitate not to affirm, that if the manner of
it be not perfect, it is at least excellent. It unites in an eminent
degree all the advantages, the union of which was to be wished
for.(E1)
It was desirable that the sense of the people should operate in the
choice of the person to whom so important a trust was to be
confided. This end will be answered by committing the right of
making it, not to any preestablished body, but to men chosen by the
people for the special purpose, and at the particular conjuncture.
It was equally desirable, that the immediate election should be made
by men most capable of analyzing the qualities adapted to the
station, and acting under circumstances favorable to deliberation,
and to a judicious combination of all the reasons and inducements
which were proper to govern their choice. A small number of persons,
selected by their fellow-citizens from the general mass, will be
most likely to possess the information and discernment requisite to
such complicated investigations.
It was also peculiarly desirable to afford as little opportunity as
possible to tumult and disorder. This evil was not least to be
dreaded in the election of a magistrate, who was to have so
important an agency in the administration of the government as the
President of the United States. But the precautions which have been
so happily concerted in the system under consideration, promise an
effectual security against this mischief. The choice of SEVERAL, to
form an intermediate body of electors, will be much less apt to
convulse the community with any extraordinary or violent movements,
than the choice of ONE who was himself to be the final object of the
public wishes. And as the electors, chosen in each State, are to
assemble and vote in the State in which they are chosen, this
detached and divided situation will expose them much less to heats
and ferments, which might be communicated from them to the people,
than if they were all to be convened at one time, in one place.
Nothing was more to be desired than that every practicable obstacle
should be opposed to cabal, intrigue, and corruption. These most
deadly adversaries of republican government might naturally have
been expected to make their approaches from more than one quarter,
but chiefly from the desire in foreign powers to gain an improper
ascendant in our councils. How could they better gratify this, than
by raising a creature of their own to the chief magistracy of the
Union? But the convention have guarded against all danger of this
sort, with the most provident and judicious attention. They have not
made the appointment of the President to depend on any preexisting
bodies of men, who might be tampered with beforehand to prostitute
their votes; but they have referred it in the first instance to an
immediate act of the people of America, to be exerted in the choice
of persons for the temporary and sole purpose of making the
appointment. And they have excluded from eligibility to this trust,
all those who from situation might be suspected of too great
devotion to the President in office. No senator, representative, or
other person holding a place of trust or profit under the United
States, can be of the numbers of the electors. Thus without
corrupting the body of the people, the immediate agents in the
election will at least enter upon the task free from any sinister
bias. Their transient existence, and their detached situation,
already taken notice of, afford a satisfactory prospect of their
continuing so, to the conclusion of it. The business of corruption,
when it is to embrace so considerable a number of men, requires time
as well as means. Nor would it be found easy suddenly to embark
them, dispersed as they would be over thirteen States, in any
combinations founded upon motives, which though they could not
properly be denominated corrupt, might yet be of a nature to mislead
them from their duty.
Another and no less important desideratum was, that the Executive
should be independent for his continuance in office on all but the
people themselves. He might otherwise be tempted to sacrifice his
duty to his complaisance for those whose favor was necessary to the
duration of his official consequence. This advantage will also be
secured, by making his re-election to depend on a special body of
representatives, deputed by the society for the single purpose of
making the important choice.
All these advantages will happily combine in the plan devised by the
convention; which is, that the people of each State shall choose a
number of persons as electors, equal to the number of senators and
representatives of such State in the national government, who shall
assemble within the State, and vote for some fit person as
President. Their votes, thus given, are to be transmitted to the
seat of the national government, and the person who may happen to
have a majority of the whole number of votes will be the President.
But as a majority of the votes might not always happen to centre in
one man, and as it might be unsafe to permit less than a majority to
be conclusive, it is provided that, in such a contingency, the House
of Representatives shall select out of the candidates who shall have
the five highest number of votes, the man who in their opinion may
be best qualified for the office.
The process of election affords a moral certainty, that the office
of President will never fall to the lot of any man who is not in an
eminent degree endowed with the requisite qualifications. Talents
for low intrigue, and the little arts of popularity, may alone
suffice to elevate a man to the first honors in a single State; but
it will require other talents, and a different kind of merit, to
establish him in the esteem and confidence of the whole Union, or of
so considerable a portion of it as would be necessary to make him a
successful candidate for the distinguished office of President of
the United States. It will not be too strong to say, that there will
be a constant probability of seeing the station filled by characters
pre-eminent for ability and virtue. And this will be thought no
inconsiderable recommendation of the Constitution, by those who are
able to estimate the share which the executive in every government
must necessarily have in its good or ill administration. Though we
cannot acquiesce in the political heresy of the poet who says:
"For forms of government let fools contest—That which is best
administered is best,"—yet we may safely pronounce, that the true
test of a good government is its aptitude and tendency to produce a
good administration.
The Vice-President is to be chosen in the same manner with the
President; with this difference, that the Senate is to do, in
respect to the former, what is to be done by the House of
Representatives, in respect to the latter.
The appointment of an extraordinary person, as Vice-President, has
been objected to as superfluous, if not mischievous. It has been
alleged, that it would have been preferable to have authorized the
Senate to elect out of their own body an officer answering that
description. But two considerations seem to justify the ideas of the
convention in this respect. One is, that to secure at all times the
possibility of a definite resolution of the body, it is necessary
that the President should have only a casting vote. And to take the
senator of any State from his seat as senator, to place him in that
of President of the Senate, would be to exchange, in regard to the
State from which he came, a constant for a contingent vote. The
other consideration is, that as the Vice-President may occasionally
become a substitute for the President, in the supreme executive
magistracy, all the reasons which recommend the mode of election
prescribed for the one, apply with great if not with equal force to
the manner of appointing the other. It is remarkable that in this,
as in most other instances, the objection which is made would lie
against the constitution of this State. We have a
Lieutenant-Governor, chosen by the people at large, who presides in
the Senate, and is the constitutional substitute for the Governor,
in casualties similar to those which would authorize the
Vice-President to exercise the authorities and discharge the duties
of the President.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide federal farmer.
E1. Some editions substitute "desired" for "wished for".
FEDERALIST No. 69.
The Real Character of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 14, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
I PROCEED now to trace the real characters of the proposed
Executive, as they are marked out in the plan of the convention.
This will serve to place in a strong light the unfairness of the
representations which have been made in regard to it.
The first thing which strikes our attention is, that the executive
authority, with few exceptions, is to be vested in a single
magistrate. This will scarcely, however, be considered as a point
upon which any comparison can be grounded; for if, in this
particular, there be a resemblance to the king of Great Britain,
there is not less a resemblance to the Grand Seignior, to the khan
of Tartary, to the Man of the Seven Mountains, or to the governor of
New York.
That magistrate is to be elected for four years; and is to be
re-eligible as often as the people of the United States shall think
him worthy of their confidence. In these circumstances there is a
total dissimilitude between him and a king of Great Britain, who is
an hereditary monarch, possessing the crown as a patrimony
descendible to his heirs forever; but there is a close analogy
between him and a governor of New York, who is elected for three
years, and is re-eligible without limitation or intermission. If we
consider how much less time would be requisite for establishing a
dangerous influence in a single State, than for establishing a like
influence throughout the United States, we must conclude that a
duration of four years for the Chief Magistrate of the Union is a
degree of permanency far less to be dreaded in that office, than a
duration of three years for a corresponding office in a single
State.
The President of the United States would be liable to be impeached,
tried, and, upon conviction of treason, bribery, or other high
crimes or misdemeanors, removed from office; and would afterwards be
liable to prosecution and punishment in the ordinary course of law.
The person of the king of Great Britain is sacred and inviolable;
there is no constitutional tribunal to which he is amenable; no
punishment to which he can be subjected without involving the crisis
of a national revolution. In this delicate and important
circumstance of personal responsibility, the President of
Confederated America would stand upon no better ground than a
governor of New York, and upon worse ground than the governors of
Maryland and Delaware.
The President of the United States is to have power to return a
bill, which shall have passed the two branches of the legislature,
for reconsideration; and the bill so returned is to become a law,
if, upon that reconsideration, it be approved by two thirds of both
houses. The king of Great Britain, on his part, has an absolute
negative upon the acts of the two houses of Parliament. The disuse
of that power for a considerable time past does not affect the
reality of its existence; and is to be ascribed wholly to the
crown's having found the means of substituting influence to
authority, or the art of gaining a majority in one or the other of
the two houses, to the necessity of exerting a prerogative which
could seldom be exerted without hazarding some degree of national
agitation. The qualified negative of the President differs widely
from this absolute negative of the British sovereign; and tallies
exactly with the revisionary authority of the council of revision of
this State, of which the governor is a constituent part. In this
respect the power of the President would exceed that of the governor
of New York, because the former would possess, singly, what the
latter shares with the chancellor and judges; but it would be
precisely the same with that of the governor of Massachusetts, whose
constitution, as to this article, seems to have been the original
from which the convention have copied.
The President is to be the "commander-in-chief of the army and navy
of the United States, and of the militia of the several States, when
called into the actual service of the United States. He is to have
power to grant reprieves and pardons for offenses against the United
States, except in cases of impeachment; to recommend to the
consideration of Congress such measures as he shall judge necessary
and expedient; to convene, on extraordinary occasions, both houses
of the legislature, or either of them, and, in case of disagreement
between them with respect to the time of adjournment, to adjourn
them to such time as he shall think proper; to take care that the
laws be faithfully executed; and to commission all officers of the
United States." In most of these particulars, the power of the
President will resemble equally that of the king of Great Britain
and of the governor of New York. The most material points of
difference are these:—First. The President will have only the
occasional command of such part of the militia of the nation as by
legislative provision may be called into the actual service of the
Union. The king of Great Britain and the governor of New York have
at all times the entire command of all the militia within their
several jurisdictions. In this article, therefore, the power of the
President would be inferior to that of either the monarch or the
governor. Second. The President is to be commander-in-chief of the
army and navy of the United States. In this respect his authority
would be nominally the same with that of the king of Great Britain,
but in substance much inferior to it. It would amount to nothing
more than the supreme command and direction of the military and
naval forces, as first General and admiral of the Confederacy; while
that of the British king extends to the declaring of war and to the
raising and regulating of fleets and armies—all which, by the
Constitution under consideration, would appertain to the
legislature.(1) The governor of New York, on the other hand, is by
the constitution of the State vested only with the command of its
militia and navy. But the constitutions of several of the States
expressly declare their governors to be commanders-in-chief, as well
of the army as navy; and it may well be a question, whether those of
New Hampshire and Massachusetts, in particular, do not, in this
instance, confer larger powers upon their respective governors, than
could be claimed by a President of the United States. Third. The
power of the President, in respect to pardons, would extend to all
cases, except those of impeachment. The governor of New York may
pardon in all cases, even in those of impeachment, except for
treason and murder. Is not the power of the governor, in this
article, on a calculation of political consequences, greater than
that of the President? All conspiracies and plots against the
government, which have not been matured into actual treason, may be
screened from punishment of every kind, by the interposition of the
prerogative of pardoning. If a governor of New York, therefore,
should be at the head of any such conspiracy, until the design had
been ripened into actual hostility he could insure his accomplices
and adherents an entire impunity. A President of the Union, on the
other hand, though he may even pardon treason, when prosecuted in
the ordinary course of law, could shelter no offender, in any
degree, from the effects of impeachment and conviction. Would not
the prospect of a total indemnity for all the preliminary steps be a
greater temptation to undertake and persevere in an enterprise
against the public liberty, than the mere prospect of an exemption
from death and confiscation, if the final execution of the design,
upon an actual appeal to arms, should miscarry? Would this last
expectation have any influence at all, when the probability was
computed, that the person who was to afford that exemption might
himself be involved in the consequences of the measure, and might be
incapacitated by his agency in it from affording the desired
impunity? The better to judge of this matter, it will be necessary
to recollect, that, by the proposed Constitution, the offense of
treason is limited "to levying war upon the United States, and
adhering to their enemies, giving them aid and comfort"; and that by
the laws of New York it is confined within similar bounds. Fourth.
The President can only adjourn the national legislature in the
single case of disagreement about the time of adjournment. The
British monarch may prorogue or even dissolve the Parliament. The
governor of New York may also prorogue the legislature of this State
for a limited time; a power which, in certain situations, may be
employed to very important purposes.
The President is to have power, with the advice and consent of the
Senate, to make treaties, provided two thirds of the senators
present concur. The king of Great Britain is the sole and absolute
representative of the nation in all foreign transactions. He can of
his own accord make treaties of peace, commerce, alliance, and of
every other description. It has been insinuated, that his authority
in this respect is not conclusive, and that his conventions with
foreign powers are subject to the revision, and stand in need of the
ratification, of Parliament. But I believe this doctrine was never
heard of, until it was broached upon the present occasion. Every
jurist(2) of that kingdom, and every other man acquainted with its
Constitution, knows, as an established fact, that the prerogative of
making treaties exists in the crown in its utmost plentitude; and
that the compacts entered into by the royal authority have the most
complete legal validity and perfection, independent of any other
sanction. The Parliament, it is true, is sometimes seen employing
itself in altering the existing laws to conform them to the
stipulations in a new treaty; and this may have possibly given birth
to the imagination, that its co-operation was necessary to the
obligatory efficacy of the treaty. But this parliamentary
interposition proceeds from a different cause: from the necessity of
adjusting a most artificial and intricate system of revenue and
commercial laws, to the changes made in them by the operation of the
treaty; and of adapting new provisions and precautions to the new
state of things, to keep the machine from running into disorder. In
this respect, therefore, there is no comparison between the intended
power of the President and the actual power of the British
sovereign. The one can perform alone what the other can do only with
the concurrence of a branch of the legislature. It must be admitted,
that, in this instance, the power of the federal Executive would
exceed that of any State Executive. But this arises naturally from
the sovereign power which relates to treaties. If the Confederacy
were to be dissolved, it would become a question, whether the
Executives of the several States were not solely invested with that
delicate and important prerogative.
The President is also to be authorized to receive ambassadors and
other public ministers. This, though it has been a rich theme of
declamation, is more a matter of dignity than of authority. It is a
circumstance which will be without consequence in the administration
of the government; and it was far more convenient that it should be
arranged in this manner, than that there should be a necessity of
convening the legislature, or one of its branches, upon every
arrival of a foreign minister, though it were merely to take the
place of a departed predecessor.
The President is to nominate, and, with the advice and consent of
the Senate, to appoint ambassadors and other public ministers,
judges of the Supreme Court, and in general all officers of the
United States established by law, and whose appointments are not
otherwise provided for by the Constitution. The king of Great
Britain is emphatically and truly styled the fountain of honor. He
not only appoints to all offices, but can create offices. He can
confer titles of nobility at pleasure; and has the disposal of an
immense number of church preferments. There is evidently a great
inferiority in the power of the President, in this particular, to
that of the British king; nor is it equal to that of the governor of
New York, if we are to interpret the meaning of the constitution of
the State by the practice which has obtained under it. The power of
appointment is with us lodged in a council, composed of the governor
and four members of the Senate, chosen by the Assembly. The governor
claims, and has frequently exercised, the right of nomination, and
is entitled to a casting vote in the appointment. If he really has
the right of nominating, his authority is in this respect equal to
that of the President, and exceeds it in the article of the casting
vote. In the national government, if the Senate should be divided,
no appointment could be made; in the government of New York, if the
council should be divided, the governor can turn the scale, and
confirm his own nomination.(3) If we compare the publicity which
must necessarily attend the mode of appointment by the President and
an entire branch of the national legislature, with the privacy in
the mode of appointment by the governor of New York, closeted in a
secret apartment with at most four, and frequently with only two
persons; and if we at the same time consider how much more easy it
must be to influence the small number of which a council of
appointment consists, than the considerable number of which the
national Senate would consist, we cannot hesitate to pronounce that
the power of the chief magistrate of this State, in the disposition
of offices, must, in practice, be greatly superior to that of the
Chief Magistrate of the Union.
Hence it appears that, except as to the concurrent authority of the
President in the article of treaties, it would be difficult to
determine whether that magistrate would, in the aggregate, possess
more or less power than the Governor of New York. And it appears yet
more unequivocally, that there is no pretense for the parallel which
has been attempted between him and the king of Great Britain. But to
render the contrast in this respect still more striking, it may be
of use to throw the principal circumstances of dissimilitude into a
closer group.
The President of the United States would be an officer elected by
the people for four years; the king of Great Britain is a perpetual
and hereditary prince. The one would be amenable to personal
punishment and disgrace; the person of the other is sacred and
inviolable. The one would have a qualified negative upon the acts of
the legislative body; the other has an absolute negative. The one
would have a right to command the military and naval forces of the
nation; the other, in addition to this right, possesses that of
declaring war, and of raising and regulating fleets and armies by
his own authority. The one would have a concurrent power with a
branch of the legislature in the formation of treaties; the other is
the sole possessor of the power of making treaties. The one would
have a like concurrent authority in appointing to offices; the other
is the sole author of all appointments. The one can confer no
privileges whatever; the other can make denizens of aliens, noblemen
of commoners; can erect corporations with all the rights incident to
corporate bodies. The one can prescribe no rules concerning the
commerce or currency of the nation; the other is in several respects
the arbiter of commerce, and in this capacity can establish markets
and fairs, can regulate weights and measures, can lay embargoes for
a limited time, can coin money, can authorize or prohibit the
circulation of foreign coin. The one has no particle of spiritual
jurisdiction; the other is the supreme head and governor of the
national church! What answer shall we give to those who would
persuade us that things so unlike resemble each other? The same that
ought to be given to those who tell us that a government, the whole
power of which would be in the hands of the elective and periodical
servants of the people, is an aristocracy, a monarchy, and a
despotism.
PUBLIUS
1. A writer in a Pennsylvania paper, under the signature of TAMONY,
has asserted that the king of Great Britain owes his prerogative as
commander-in-chief to an annual mutiny bill. The truth is, on the
contrary, that his prerogative, in this respect, is immemorial, and
was only disputed, "contrary to all reason and precedent," as
Blackstone vol. i., page 262, expresses it, by the Long Parliament
of Charles I. but by the statute the 13th of Charles II., chap. 6,
it was declared to be in the king alone, for that the sole supreme
government and command of the militia within his Majesty's realms
and dominions, and of all forces by sea and land, and of all forts
and places of strength, EVER WAS AND IS the undoubted right of his
Majesty and his royal predecessors, kings and queens of England, and
that both or either house of Parliament cannot nor ought to pretend
to the same.
2. Vide Blackstone's Commentaries, Vol I., p. 257.
3. Candor, however, demands an acknowledgment that I do not think
the claim of the governor to a right of nomination well founded. Yet
it is always justifiable to reason from the practice of a
government, till its propriety has been constitutionally questioned.
And independent of this claim, when we take into view the other
considerations, and pursue them through all their consequences, we
shall be inclined to draw much the same conclusion.
FEDERALIST No. 70.
The Executive Department Further Considered
From The Independent Journal. Saturday, March 15, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THERE is an idea, which is not without its advocates, that a
vigorous Executive is inconsistent with the genius of republican
government. The enlightened well-wishers to this species of
government must at least hope that the supposition is destitute of
foundation; since they can never admit its truth, without at the
same time admitting the condemnation of their own principles. Energy
in the Executive is a leading character in the definition of good
government. It is essential to the protection of the community
against foreign attacks; it is not less essential to the steady
administration of the laws; to the protection of property against
those irregular and high-handed combinations which sometimes
interrupt the ordinary course of justice; to the security of liberty
against the enterprises and assaults of ambition, of faction, and of
anarchy. Every man the least conversant in Roman story, knows how
often that republic was obliged to take refuge in the absolute power
of a single man, under the formidable title of Dictator, as well
against the intrigues of ambitious individuals who aspired to the
tyranny, and the seditions of whole classes of the community whose
conduct threatened the existence of all government, as against the
invasions of external enemies who menaced the conquest and
destruction of Rome.
There can be no need, however, to multiply arguments or examples on
this head. A feeble Executive implies a feeble execution of the
government. A feeble execution is but another phrase for a bad
execution; and a government ill executed, whatever it may be in
theory, must be, in practice, a bad government.
Taking it for granted, therefore, that all men of sense will agree
in the necessity of an energetic Executive, it will only remain to
inquire, what are the ingredients which constitute this energy? How
far can they be combined with those other ingredients which
constitute safety in the republican sense? And how far does this
combination characterize the plan which has been reported by the
convention?
The ingredients which constitute energy in the Executive are, first,
unity; secondly, duration; thirdly, an adequate provision for its
support; fourthly, competent powers.
The ingredients which constitute safety in the republican sense are,
first, a due dependence on the people, secondly, a due
responsibility.
Those politicians and statesmen who have been the most celebrated
for the soundness of their principles and for the justice of their
views, have declared in favor of a single Executive and a numerous
legislature. They have with great propriety, considered energy as
the most necessary qualification of the former, and have regarded
this as most applicable to power in a single hand, while they have,
with equal propriety, considered the latter as best adapted to
deliberation and wisdom, and best calculated to conciliate the
confidence of the people and to secure their privileges and
interests.
That unity is conducive to energy will not be disputed. Decision,
activity, secrecy, and despatch will generally characterize the
proceedings of one man in a much more eminent degree than the
proceedings of any greater number; and in proportion as the number
is increased, these qualities will be diminished.
This unity may be destroyed in two ways: either by vesting the power
in two or more magistrates of equal dignity and authority; or by
vesting it ostensibly in one man, subject, in whole or in part, to
the control and co-operation of others, in the capacity of
counsellors to him. Of the first, the two Consuls of Rome may serve
as an example; of the last, we shall find examples in the
constitutions of several of the States. New York and New Jersey, if
I recollect right, are the only States which have intrusted the
executive authority wholly to single men.(1) Both these methods of
destroying the unity of the Executive have their partisans; but the
votaries of an executive council are the most numerous. They are
both liable, if not to equal, to similar objections, and may in most
lights be examined in conjunction.
The experience of other nations will afford little instruction on
this head. As far, however, as it teaches any thing, it teaches us
not to be enamoured of plurality in the Executive. We have seen that
the Achaeans, on an experiment of two Praetors, were induced to
abolish one. The Roman history records many instances of mischiefs
to the republic from the dissensions between the Consuls, and
between the military Tribunes, who were at times substituted for the
Consuls. But it gives us no specimens of any peculiar advantages
derived to the state from the circumstance of the plurality of those
magistrates. That the dissensions between them were not more
frequent or more fatal, is a matter of astonishment, until we advert
to the singular position in which the republic was almost
continually placed, and to the prudent policy pointed out by the
circumstances of the state, and pursued by the Consuls, of making a
division of the government between them. The patricians engaged in a
perpetual struggle with the plebeians for the preservation of their
ancient authorities and dignities; the Consuls, who were generally
chosen out of the former body, were commonly united by the personal
interest they had in the defense of the privileges of their order.
In addition to this motive of union, after the arms of the republic
had considerably expanded the bounds of its empire, it became an
established custom with the Consuls to divide the administration
between themselves by lot—one of them remaining at Rome to govern
the city and its environs, the other taking the command in the more
distant provinces. This expedient must, no doubt, have had great
influence in preventing those collisions and rivalships which might
otherwise have embroiled the peace of the republic.
But quitting the dim light of historical research, attaching
ourselves purely to the dictates of reason and good sense, we shall
discover much greater cause to reject than to approve the idea of
plurality in the Executive, under any modification whatever.
Wherever two or more persons are engaged in any common enterprise or
pursuit, there is always danger of difference of opinion. If it be a
public trust or office, in which they are clothed with equal dignity
and authority, there is peculiar danger of personal emulation and
even animosity. From either, and especially from all these causes,
the most bitter dissensions are apt to spring. Whenever these
happen, they lessen the respectability, weaken the authority, and
distract the plans and operation of those whom they divide. If they
should unfortunately assail the supreme executive magistracy of a
country, consisting of a plurality of persons, they might impede or
frustrate the most important measures of the government, in the most
critical emergencies of the state. And what is still worse, they
might split the community into the most violent and irreconcilable
factions, adhering differently to the different individuals who
composed the magistracy.
Men often oppose a thing, merely because they have had no agency in
planning it, or because it may have been planned by those whom they
dislike. But if they have been consulted, and have happened to
disapprove, opposition then becomes, in their estimation, an
indispensable duty of self-love. They seem to think themselves bound
in honor, and by all the motives of personal infallibility, to
defeat the success of what has been resolved upon contrary to their
sentiments. Men of upright, benevolent tempers have too many
opportunities of remarking, with horror, to what desperate lengths
this disposition is sometimes carried, and how often the great
interests of society are sacrificed to the vanity, to the conceit,
and to the obstinacy of individuals, who have credit enough to make
their passions and their caprices interesting to mankind. Perhaps
the question now before the public may, in its consequences, afford
melancholy proofs of the effects of this despicable frailty, or
rather detestable vice, in the human character.
Upon the principles of a free government, inconveniences from the
source just mentioned must necessarily be submitted to in the
formation of the legislature; but it is unnecessary, and therefore
unwise, to introduce them into the constitution of the Executive. It
is here too that they may be most pernicious. In the legislature,
promptitude of decision is oftener an evil than a benefit. The
differences of opinion, and the jarrings of parties in that
department of the government, though they may sometimes obstruct
salutary plans, yet often promote deliberation and circumspection,
and serve to check excesses in the majority. When a resolution too
is once taken, the opposition must be at an end. That resolution is
a law, and resistance to it punishable. But no favorable
circumstances palliate or atone for the disadvantages of dissension
in the executive department. Here, they are pure and unmixed. There
is no point at which they cease to operate. They serve to embarrass
and weaken the execution of the plan or measure to which they
relate, from the first step to the final conclusion of it. They
constantly counteract those qualities in the Executive which are the
most necessary ingredients in its composition—vigor and expedition,
and this without any counterbalancing good. In the conduct of war,
in which the energy of the Executive is the bulwark of the national
security, every thing would be to be apprehended from its plurality.
It must be confessed that these observations apply with principal
weight to the first case supposed—that is, to a plurality of
magistrates of equal dignity and authority a scheme, the advocates
for which are not likely to form a numerous sect; but they apply,
though not with equal, yet with considerable weight to the project
of a council, whose concurrence is made constitutionally necessary
to the operations of the ostensible Executive. An artful cabal in
that council would be able to distract and to enervate the whole
system of administration. If no such cabal should exist, the mere
diversity of views and opinions would alone be sufficient to
tincture the exercise of the executive authority with a spirit of
habitual feebleness and dilatoriness.
(But one of the weightiest objections to a plurality in the
Executive, and which lies as much against the last as the first
plan, is, that it tends to conceal faults and destroy
responsibility. Responsibility is of two kinds—to censure and to
punishment. The first is the more important of the two, especially
in an elective office. Man, in public trust, will much oftener act
in such a manner as to render him unworthy of being any longer
trusted, than in such a manner as to make him obnoxious to legal
punishment. But the multiplication of the Executive adds to the
difficulty of detection in either case. It often becomes impossible,
amidst mutual accusations, to determine on whom the blame or the
punishment of a pernicious measure, or series of pernicious
measures, ought really to fall. It is shifted from one to another
with so much dexterity, and under such plausible appearances, that
the public opinion is left in suspense about the real author. The
circumstances which may have led to any national miscarriage or
misfortune are sometimes so complicated that, where there are a
number of actors who may have had different degrees and kinds of
agency, though we may clearly see upon the whole that there has been
mismanagement, yet it may be impracticable to pronounce to whose
account the evil which may have been incurred is truly
chargeable.)(E1)
(But one of the weightiest objections to a plurality in the
Executive, and which lies as much against the last as the first
plan, is, that it tends to conceal faults and destroy
responsibility.
Responsibility is of two kinds—to censure and to punishment. The
first is the more important of the two, especially in an elective
office. Man, in public trust, will much oftener act in such a manner
as to render him unworthy of being any longer trusted, than in such
a manner as to make him obnoxious to legal punishment. But the
multiplication of the Executive adds to the difficulty of detection
in either case. It often becomes impossible, amidst mutual
accusations, to determine on whom the blame or the punishment of a
pernicious measure, or series of pernicious measures, ought really
to fall. It is shifted from one to another with so much dexterity,
and under such plausible appearances, that the public opinion is
left in suspense about the real author. The circumstances which may
have led to any national miscarriage or misfortune are sometimes so
complicated that, where there are a number of actors who may have
had different degrees and kinds of agency, though we may clearly see
upon the whole that there has been mismanagement, yet it may be
impracticable to pronounce to whose account the evil which may have
been incurred is truly chargeable.)(E1)
"I was overruled by my council. The council were so divided in their
opinions that it was impossible to obtain any better resolution on
the point." These and similar pretexts are constantly at hand,
whether true or false. And who is there that will either take the
trouble or incur the odium, of a strict scrutiny into the secret
springs of the transaction? Should there be found a citizen zealous
enough to undertake the unpromising task, if there happen to be
collusion between the parties concerned, how easy it is to clothe
the circumstances with so much ambiguity, as to render it uncertain
what was the precise conduct of any of those parties?
In the single instance in which the governor of this State is
coupled with a council—that is, in the appointment to offices, we
have seen the mischiefs of it in the view now under consideration.
Scandalous appointments to important offices have been made. Some
cases, indeed, have been so flagrant that ALL PARTIES have agreed in
the impropriety of the thing. When inquiry has been made, the blame
has been laid by the governor on the members of the council, who, on
their part, have charged it upon his nomination; while the people
remain altogether at a loss to determine, by whose influence their
interests have been committed to hands so unqualified and so
manifestly improper. In tenderness to individuals, I forbear to
descend to particulars.
It is evident from these considerations, that the plurality of the
Executive tends to deprive the people of the two greatest securities
they can have for the faithful exercise of any delegated power,
first, the restraints of public opinion, which lose their efficacy,
as well on account of the division of the censure attendant on bad
measures among a number, as on account of the uncertainty on whom it
ought to fall; and, second, the opportunity of discovering with
facility and clearness the misconduct of the persons they trust, in
order either to their removal from office or to their actual
punishment in cases which admit of it.
In England, the king is a perpetual magistrate; and it is a maxim
which has obtained for the sake of the public peace, that he is
unaccountable for his administration, and his person sacred.
Nothing, therefore, can be wiser in that kingdom, than to annex to
the king a constitutional council, who may be responsible to the
nation for the advice they give. Without this, there would be no
responsibility whatever in the executive department an idea
inadmissible in a free government. But even there the king is not
bound by the resolutions of his council, though they are answerable
for the advice they give. He is the absolute master of his own
conduct in the exercise of his office, and may observe or disregard
the counsel given to him at his sole discretion.
But in a republic, where every magistrate ought to be personally
responsible for his behavior in office the reason which in the
British Constitution dictates the propriety of a council, not only
ceases to apply, but turns against the institution. In the monarchy
of Great Britain, it furnishes a substitute for the prohibited
responsibility of the chief magistrate, which serves in some degree
as a hostage to the national justice for his good behavior. In the
American republic, it would serve to destroy, or would greatly
diminish, the intended and necessary responsibility of the Chief
Magistrate himself.
The idea of a council to the Executive, which has so generally
obtained in the State constitutions, has been derived from that
maxim of republican jealousy which considers power as safer in the
hands of a number of men than of a single man. If the maxim should
be admitted to be applicable to the case, I should contend that the
advantage on that side would not counterbalance the numerous
disadvantages on the opposite side. But I do not think the rule at
all applicable to the executive power. I clearly concur in opinion,
in this particular, with a writer whom the celebrated Junius
pronounces to be "deep, solid, and ingenious," that "the executive
power is more easily confined when it is ONE";(2) that it is far
more safe there should be a single object for the jealousy and
watchfulness of the people; and, in a word, that all multiplication
of the Executive is rather dangerous than friendly to liberty.
A little consideration will satisfy us, that the species of security
sought for in the multiplication of the Executive, is unattainable.
Numbers must be so great as to render combination difficult, or they
are rather a source of danger than of security. The united credit
and influence of several individuals must be more formidable to
liberty, than the credit and influence of either of them separately.
When power, therefore, is placed in the hands of so small a number
of men, as to admit of their interests and views being easily
combined in a common enterprise, by an artful leader, it becomes
more liable to abuse, and more dangerous when abused, than if it be
lodged in the hands of one man; who, from the very circumstance of
his being alone, will be more narrowly watched and more readily
suspected, and who cannot unite so great a mass of influence as when
he is associated with others. The Decemvirs of Rome, whose name
denotes their number,(3) were more to be dreaded in their usurpation
than any ONE of them would have been. No person would think of
proposing an Executive much more numerous than that body; from six
to a dozen have been suggested for the number of the council. The
extreme of these numbers, is not too great for an easy combination;
and from such a combination America would have more to fear, than
from the ambition of any single individual. A council to a
magistrate, who is himself responsible for what he does, are
generally nothing better than a clog upon his good intentions, are
often the instruments and accomplices of his bad and are almost
always a cloak to his faults.
I forbear to dwell upon the subject of expense; though it be evident
that if the council should be numerous enough to answer the
principal end aimed at by the institution, the salaries of the
members, who must be drawn from their homes to reside at the seat of
government, would form an item in the catalogue of public
expenditures too serious to be incurred for an object of equivocal
utility. I will only add that, prior to the appearance of the
Constitution, I rarely met with an intelligent man from any of the
States, who did not admit, as the result of experience, that the
UNITY of the executive of this State was one of the best of the
distinguishing features of our constitution.
PUBLIUS
1. New York has no council except for the single purpose of
appointing to offices; New Jersey has a council whom the governor
may consult. But I think, from the terms of the constitution, their
resolutions do not bind him.
2. De Lolme.
3. Ten.
E1. Two versions of these paragraphs appear in different editions.
FEDERALIST No. 71.
The Duration in Office of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 18, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
DURATION in office has been mentioned as the second requisite to the
energy of the Executive authority. This has relation to two objects:
to the personal firmness of the executive magistrate, in the
employment of his constitutional powers; and to the stability of the
system of administration which may have been adopted under his
auspices. With regard to the first, it must be evident, that the
longer the duration in office, the greater will be the probability
of obtaining so important an advantage. It is a general principle of
human nature, that a man will be interested in whatever he
possesses, in proportion to the firmness or precariousness of the
tenure by which he holds it; will be less attached to what he holds
by a momentary or uncertain title, than to what he enjoys by a
durable or certain title; and, of course, will be willing to risk
more for the sake of the one, than for the sake of the other. This
remark is not less applicable to a political privilege, or honor, or
trust, than to any article of ordinary property. The inference from
it is, that a man acting in the capacity of chief magistrate, under
a consciousness that in a very short time he MUST lay down his
office, will be apt to feel himself too little interested in it to
hazard any material censure or perplexity, from the independent
exertion of his powers, or from encountering the ill-humors, however
transient, which may happen to prevail, either in a considerable
part of the society itself, or even in a predominant faction in the
legislative body. If the case should only be, that he MIGHT lay it
down, unless continued by a new choice, and if he should be desirous
of being continued, his wishes, conspiring with his fears, would
tend still more powerfully to corrupt his integrity, or debase his
fortitude. In either case, feebleness and irresolution must be the
characteristics of the station.
There are some who would be inclined to regard the servile pliancy
of the Executive to a prevailing current, either in the community or
in the legislature, as its best recommendation. But such men
entertain very crude notions, as well of the purposes for which
government was instituted, as of the true means by which the public
happiness may be promoted. The republican principle demands that the
deliberate sense of the community should govern the conduct of those
to whom they intrust the management of their affairs; but it does
not require an unqualified complaisance to every sudden breeze of
passion, or to every transient impulse which the people may receive
from the arts of men, who flatter their prejudices to betray their
interests. It is a just observation, that the people commonly INTEND
the PUBLIC GOOD. This often applies to their very errors. But their
good sense would despise the adulator who should pretend that they
always REASON RIGHT about the MEANS of promoting it. They know from
experience that they sometimes err; and the wonder is that they so
seldom err as they do, beset, as they continually are, by the wiles
of parasites and sycophants, by the snares of the ambitious, the
avaricious, the desperate, by the artifices of men who possess their
confidence more than they deserve it, and of those who seek to
possess rather than to deserve it. When occasions present
themselves, in which the interests of the people are at variance
with their inclinations, it is the duty of the persons whom they
have appointed to be the guardians of those interests, to withstand
the temporary delusion, in order to give them time and opportunity
for more cool and sedate reflection. Instances might be cited in
which a conduct of this kind has saved the people from very fatal
consequences of their own mistakes, and has procured lasting
monuments of their gratitude to the men who had courage and
magnanimity enough to serve them at the peril of their displeasure.
But however inclined we might be to insist upon an unbounded
complaisance in the Executive to the inclinations of the people, we
can with no propriety contend for a like complaisance to the humors
of the legislature. The latter may sometimes stand in opposition to
the former, and at other times the people may be entirely neutral.
In either supposition, it is certainly desirable that the Executive
should be in a situation to dare to act his own opinion with vigor
and decision.
The same rule which teaches the propriety of a partition between the
various branches of power, teaches us likewise that this partition
ought to be so contrived as to render the one independent of the
other. To what purpose separate the executive or the judiciary from
the legislative, if both the executive and the judiciary are so
constituted as to be at the absolute devotion of the legislative?
Such a separation must be merely nominal, and incapable of producing
the ends for which it was established. It is one thing to be
subordinate to the laws, and another to be dependent on the
legislative body. The first comports with, the last violates, the
fundamental principles of good government; and, whatever may be the
forms of the Constitution, unites all power in the same hands. The
tendency of the legislative authority to absorb every other, has
been fully displayed and illustrated by examples in some preceding
numbers. In governments purely republican, this tendency is almost
irresistible. The representatives of the people, in a popular
assembly, seem sometimes to fancy that they are the people
themselves, and betray strong symptoms of impatience and disgust at
the least sign of opposition from any other quarter; as if the
exercise of its rights, by either the executive or judiciary, were a
breach of their privilege and an outrage to their dignity. They
often appear disposed to exert an imperious control over the other
departments; and as they commonly have the people on their side,
they always act with such momentum as to make it very difficult for
the other members of the government to maintain the balance of the
Constitution.
It may perhaps be asked, how the shortness of the duration in office
can affect the independence of the Executive on the legislature,
unless the one were possessed of the power of appointing or
displacing the other. One answer to this inquiry may be drawn from
the principle already remarked that is, from the slender interest a
man is apt to take in a short-lived advantage, and the little
inducement it affords him to expose himself, on account of it, to
any considerable inconvenience or hazard. Another answer, perhaps
more obvious, though not more conclusive, will result from the
consideration of the influence of the legislative body over the
people; which might be employed to prevent the re-election of a man
who, by an upright resistance to any sinister project of that body,
should have made himself obnoxious to its resentment.
It may be asked also, whether a duration of four years would answer
the end proposed; and if it would not, whether a less period, which
would at least be recommended by greater security against ambitious
designs, would not, for that reason, be preferable to a longer
period, which was, at the same time, too short for the purpose of
inspiring the desired firmness and independence of the magistrate.
It cannot be affirmed, that a duration of four years, or any other
limited duration, would completely answer the end proposed; but it
would contribute towards it in a degree which would have a material
influence upon the spirit and character of the government. Between
the commencement and termination of such a period, there would
always be a considerable interval, in which the prospect of
annihilation would be sufficiently remote, not to have an improper
effect upon the conduct of a man indued with a tolerable portion of
fortitude; and in which he might reasonably promise himself, that
there would be time enough before it arrived, to make the community
sensible of the propriety of the measures he might incline to
pursue. Though it be probable that, as he approached the moment when
the public were, by a new election, to signify their sense of his
conduct, his confidence, and with it his firmness, would decline;
yet both the one and the other would derive support from the
opportunities which his previous continuance in the station had
afforded him, of establishing himself in the esteem and good-will of
his constituents. He might, then, hazard with safety, in proportion
to the proofs he had given of his wisdom and integrity, and to the
title he had acquired to the respect and attachment of his
fellow-citizens. As, on the one hand, a duration of four years will
contribute to the firmness of the Executive in a sufficient degree
to render it a very valuable ingredient in the composition; so, on
the other, it is not enough to justify any alarm for the public
liberty. If a British House of Commons, from the most feeble
beginnings, FROM THE MERE POWER OF ASSENTING OR DISAGREEING TO THE
IMPOSITION OF A NEW TAX, have, by rapid strides, reduced the
prerogatives of the crown and the privileges of the nobility within
the limits they conceived to be compatible with the principles of a
free government, while they raised themselves to the rank and
consequence of a coequal branch of the legislature; if they have
been able, in one instance, to abolish both the royalty and the
aristocracy, and to overturn all the ancient establishments, as well
in the Church as State; if they have been able, on a recent
occasion, to make the monarch tremble at the prospect of an
innovation(1) attempted by them, what would be to be feared from an
elective magistrate of four years' duration, with the confined
authorities of a President of the United States? What, but that he
might be unequal to the task which the Constitution assigns him? I
shall only add, that if his duration be such as to leave a doubt of
his firmness, that doubt is inconsistent with a jealousy of his
encroachments.
PUBLIUS
1. This was the case with respect to Mr. Fox's India bill, which was
carried in the House of Commons, and rejected in the House of Lords,
to the entire satisfaction, as it is said, of the people.
FEDERALIST No. 72.
The Same Subject Continued, and Re-Eligibility of the Executive
Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 19, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE administration of government, in its largest sense, comprehends
all the operations of the body politic, whether legislative,
executive, or judiciary; but in its most usual, and perhaps its most
precise signification. it is limited to executive details, and falls
peculiarly within the province of the executive department. The
actual conduct of foreign negotiations, the preparatory plans of
finance, the application and disbursement of the public moneys in
conformity to the general appropriations of the legislature, the
arrangement of the army and navy, the directions of the operations
of war—these, and other matters of a like nature, constitute what
seems to be most properly understood by the administration of
government. The persons, therefore, to whose immediate management
these different matters are committed, ought to be considered as the
assistants or deputies of the chief magistrate, and on this account,
they ought to derive their offices from his appointment, at least
from his nomination, and ought to be subject to his superintendence.
This view of the subject will at once suggest to us the intimate
connection between the duration of the executive magistrate in
office and the stability of the system of administration. To reverse
and undo what has been done by a predecessor, is very often
considered by a successor as the best proof he can give of his own
capacity and desert; and in addition to this propensity, where the
alteration has been the result of public choice, the person
substituted is warranted in supposing that the dismission of his
predecessor has proceeded from a dislike to his measures; and that
the less he resembles him, the more he will recommend himself to the
favor of his constituents. These considerations, and the influence
of personal confidences and attachments, would be likely to induce
every new President to promote a change of men to fill the
subordinate stations; and these causes together could not fail to
occasion a disgraceful and ruinous mutability in the administration
of the government.
With a positive duration of considerable extent, I connect the
circumstance of re-eligibility. The first is necessary to give to
the officer himself the inclination and the resolution to act his
part well, and to the community time and leisure to observe the
tendency of his measures, and thence to form an experimental
estimate of their merits. The last is necessary to enable the
people, when they see reason to approve of his conduct, to continue
him in his station, in order to prolong the utility of his talents
and virtues, and to secure to the government the advantage of
permanency in a wise system of administration.
Nothing appears more plausible at first sight, nor more ill-founded
upon close inspection, than a scheme which in relation to the
present point has had some respectable advocates—I mean that of
continuing the chief magistrate in office for a certain time, and
then excluding him from it, either for a limited period or forever
after. This exclusion, whether temporary or perpetual, would have
nearly the same effects, and these effects would be for the most
part rather pernicious than salutary.
One ill effect of the exclusion would be a diminution of the
inducements to good behavior. There are few men who would not feel
much less zeal in the discharge of a duty when they were conscious
that the advantages of the station with which it was connected must
be relinquished at a determinate period, than when they were
permitted to entertain a hope of obtaining, by meriting, a
continuance of them. This position will not be disputed so long as
it is admitted that the desire of reward is one of the strongest
incentives of human conduct; or that the best security for the
fidelity of mankind is to make their interests coincide with their
duty. Even the love of fame, the ruling passion of the noblest
minds, which would prompt a man to plan and undertake extensive and
arduous enterprises for the public benefit, requiring considerable
time to mature and perfect them, if he could flatter himself with
the prospect of being allowed to finish what he had begun, would, on
the contrary, deter him from the undertaking, when he foresaw that
he must quit the scene before he could accomplish the work, and must
commit that, together with his own reputation, to hands which might
be unequal or unfriendly to the task. The most to be expected from
the generality of men, in such a situation, is the negative merit of
not doing harm, instead of the positive merit of doing good.
Another ill effect of the exclusion would be the temptation to
sordid views, to peculation, and, in some instances, to usurpation.
An avaricious man, who might happen to fill the office, looking
forward to a time when he must at all events yield up the emoluments
he enjoyed, would feel a propensity, not easy to be resisted by such
a man, to make the best use of the opportunity he enjoyed while it
lasted, and might not scruple to have recourse to the most corrupt
expedients to make the harvest as abundant as it was transitory;
though the same man, probably, with a different prospect before him,
might content himself with the regular perquisites of his situation,
and might even be unwilling to risk the consequences of an abuse of
his opportunities. His avarice might be a guard upon his avarice.
Add to this that the same man might be vain or ambitious, as well as
avaricious. And if he could expect to prolong his honors by his good
conduct, he might hesitate to sacrifice his appetite for them to his
appetite for gain. But with the prospect before him of approaching
an inevitable annihilation, his avarice would be likely to get the
victory over his caution, his vanity, or his ambition.
An ambitious man, too, when he found himself seated on the summit of
his country's honors, when he looked forward to the time at which he
must descend from the exalted eminence for ever, and reflected that
no exertion of merit on his part could save him from the unwelcome
reverse; such a man, in such a situation, would be much more
violently tempted to embrace a favorable conjuncture for attempting
the prolongation of his power, at every personal hazard, than if he
had the probability of answering the same end by doing his duty.
Would it promote the peace of the community, or the stability of the
government to have half a dozen men who had had credit enough to be
raised to the seat of the supreme magistracy, wandering among the
people like discontented ghosts, and sighing for a place which they
were destined never more to possess?
A third ill effect of the exclusion would be, the depriving the
community of the advantage of the experience gained by the chief
magistrate in the exercise of his office. That experience is the
parent of wisdom, is an adage the truth of which is recognized by
the wisest as well as the simplest of mankind. What more desirable
or more essential than this quality in the governors of nations?
Where more desirable or more essential than in the first magistrate
of a nation? Can it be wise to put this desirable and essential
quality under the ban of the Constitution, and to declare that the
moment it is acquired, its possessor shall be compelled to abandon
the station in which it was acquired, and to which it is adapted?
This, nevertheless, is the precise import of all those regulations
which exclude men from serving their country, by the choice of their
fellowcitizens, after they have by a course of service fitted
themselves for doing it with a greater degree of utility.
A fourth ill effect of the exclusion would be the banishing men from
stations in which, in certain emergencies of the state, their
presence might be of the greatest moment to the public interest or
safety. There is no nation which has not, at one period or another,
experienced an absolute necessity of the services of particular men
in particular situations; perhaps it would not be too strong to say,
to the preservation of its political existence. How unwise,
therefore, must be every such self-denying ordinance as serves to
prohibit a nation from making use of its own citizens in the manner
best suited to its exigencies and circumstances! Without supposing
the personal essentiality of the man, it is evident that a change of
the chief magistrate, at the breaking out of a war, or at any
similar crisis, for another, even of equal merit, would at all times
be detrimental to the community, inasmuch as it would substitute
inexperience to experience, and would tend to unhinge and set afloat
the already settled train of the administration.
A fifth ill effect of the exclusion would be, that it would operate
as a constitutional interdiction of stability in the administration.
By necessitating a change of men, in the first office of the nation,
it would necessitate a mutability of measures. It is not generally
to be expected, that men will vary and measures remain uniform. The
contrary is the usual course of things. And we need not be
apprehensive that there will be too much stability, while there is
even the option of changing; nor need we desire to prohibit the
people from continuing their confidence where they think it may be
safely placed, and where, by constancy on their part, they may
obviate the fatal inconveniences of fluctuating councils and a
variable policy.
These are some of the disadvantages which would flow from the
principle of exclusion. They apply most forcibly to the scheme of a
perpetual exclusion; but when we consider that even a partial
exclusion would always render the readmission of the person a remote
and precarious object, the observations which have been made will
apply nearly as fully to one case as to the other.
What are the advantages promised to counterbalance these
disadvantages? They are represented to be: 1st, greater independence
in the magistrate; 2d, greater security to the people. Unless the
exclusion be perpetual, there will be no pretense to infer the first
advantage. But even in that case, may he have no object beyond his
present station, to which he may sacrifice his independence? May he
have no connections, no friends, for whom he may sacrifice it? May
he not be less willing by a firm conduct, to make personal enemies,
when he acts under the impression that a time is fast approaching,
on the arrival of which he not only MAY, but MUST, be exposed to
their resentments, upon an equal, perhaps upon an inferior, footing?
It is not an easy point to determine whether his independence would
be most promoted or impaired by such an arrangement.
As to the second supposed advantage, there is still greater reason
to entertain doubts concerning it. If the exclusion were to be
perpetual, a man of irregular ambition, of whom alone there could be
reason in any case to entertain apprehension, would, with infinite
reluctance, yield to the necessity of taking his leave forever of a
post in which his passion for power and pre-eminence had acquired
the force of habit. And if he had been fortunate or adroit enough to
conciliate the good-will of the people, he might induce them to
consider as a very odious and unjustifiable restraint upon
themselves, a provision which was calculated to debar them of the
right of giving a fresh proof of their attachment to a favorite.
There may be conceived circumstances in which this disgust of the
people, seconding the thwarted ambition of such a favorite, might
occasion greater danger to liberty, than could ever reasonably be
dreaded from the possibility of a perpetuation in office, by the
voluntary suffrages of the community, exercising a constitutional
privilege.
There is an excess of refinement in the idea of disabling the people
to continue in office men who had entitled themselves, in their
opinion, to approbation and confidence; the advantages of which are
at best speculative and equivocal, and are overbalanced by
disadvantages far more certain and decisive.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 73.
The Provision For The Support of the Executive, and the Veto Power
From the New York Packet. Friday, March 21, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE third ingredient towards constituting the vigor of the executive
authority, is an adequate provision for its support. It is evident
that, without proper attention to this article, the separation of
the executive from the legislative department would be merely
nominal and nugatory. The legislature, with a discretionary power
over the salary and emoluments of the Chief Magistrate, could render
him as obsequious to their will as they might think proper to make
him. They might, in most cases, either reduce him by famine, or
tempt him by largesses, to surrender at discretion his judgment to
their inclinations. These expressions, taken in all the latitude of
the terms, would no doubt convey more than is intended. There are
men who could neither be distressed nor won into a sacrifice of
their duty; but this stern virtue is the growth of few soils; and in
the main it will be found that a power over a man's support is a
power over his will. If it were necessary to confirm so plain a
truth by facts, examples would not be wanting, even in this country,
of the intimidation or seduction of the Executive by the terrors or
allurements of the pecuniary arrangements of the legislative body.
It is not easy, therefore, to commend too highly the judicious
attention which has been paid to this subject in the proposed
Constitution. It is there provided that "The President of the United
States shall, at stated times, receive for his services a
compensation which shall neither be increased nor diminished during
the period for which he shall have been elected; and he shall not
receive within that period any other emolument from the United
States, or any of them." It is impossible to imagine any provision
which would have been more eligible than this. The legislature, on
the appointment of a President, is once for all to declare what
shall be the compensation for his services during the time for which
he shall have been elected. This done, they will have no power to
alter it, either by increase or diminution, till a new period of
service by a new election commences. They can neither weaken his
fortitude by operating on his necessities, nor corrupt his integrity
by appealing to his avarice. Neither the Union, nor any of its
members, will be at liberty to give, nor will he be at liberty to
receive, any other emolument than that which may have been
determined by the first act. He can, of course, have no pecuniary
inducement to renounce or desert the independence intended for him
by the Constitution.
The last of the requisites to energy, which have been enumerated,
are competent powers. Let us proceed to consider those which are
proposed to be vested in the President of the United States.
The first thing that offers itself to our observation, is the
qualified negative of the President upon the acts or resolutions of
the two houses of the legislature; or, in other words, his power of
returning all bills with objections, to have the effect of
preventing their becoming laws, unless they should afterwards be
ratified by two thirds of each of the component members of the
legislative body.
The propensity of the legislative department to intrude upon the
rights, and to absorb the powers, of the other departments, has been
already suggested and repeated; the insufficiency of a mere
parchment delineation of the boundaries of each, has also been
remarked upon; and the necessity of furnishing each with
constitutional arms for its own defense, has been inferred and
proved. From these clear and indubitable principles results the
propriety of a negative, either absolute or qualified, in the
Executive, upon the acts of the legislative branches. Without the
one or the other, the former would be absolutely unable to defend
himself against the depredations of the latter. He might gradually
be stripped of his authorities by successive resolutions, or
annihilated by a single vote. And in the one mode or the other, the
legislative and executive powers might speedily come to be blended
in the same hands. If even no propensity had ever discovered itself
in the legislative body to invade the rights of the Executive, the
rules of just reasoning and theoretic propriety would of themselves
teach us, that the one ought not to be left to the mercy of the
other, but ought to possess a constitutional and effectual power of
self-defense.
But the power in question has a further use. It not only serves as a
shield to the Executive, but it furnishes an additional security
against the enaction of improper laws. It establishes a salutary
check upon the legislative body, calculated to guard the community
against the effects of faction, precipitancy, or of any impulse
unfriendly to the public good, which may happen to influence a
majority of that body.
The propriety of a negative has, upon some occasions, been combated
by an observation, that it was not to be presumed a single man would
possess more virtue and wisdom than a number of men; and that unless
this presumption should be entertained, it would be improper to give
the executive magistrate any species of control over the legislative
body.
But this observation, when examined, will appear rather specious
than solid. The propriety of the thing does not turn upon the
supposition of superior wisdom or virtue in the Executive, but upon
the supposition that the legislature will not be infallible; that
the love of power may sometimes betray it into a disposition to
encroach upon the rights of other members of the government; that a
spirit of faction may sometimes pervert its deliberations; that
impressions of the moment may sometimes hurry it into measures which
itself, on maturer reflexion, would condemn. The primary inducement
to conferring the power in question upon the Executive is, to enable
him to defend himself; the secondary one is to increase the chances
in favor of the community against the passing of bad laws, through
haste, inadvertence, or design. The oftener the measure is brought
under examination, the greater the diversity in the situations of
those who are to examine it, the less must be the danger of those
errors which flow from want of due deliberation, or of those
missteps which proceed from the contagion of some common passion or
interest. It is far less probable, that culpable views of any kind
should infect all the parts of the government at the same moment and
in relation to the same object, than that they should by turns
govern and mislead every one of them.
It may perhaps be said that the power of preventing bad laws
includes that of preventing good ones; and may be used to the one
purpose as well as to the other. But this objection will have little
weight with those who can properly estimate the mischiefs of that
inconstancy and mutability in the laws, which form the greatest
blemish in the character and genius of our governments. They will
consider every institution calculated to restrain the excess of
law-making, and to keep things in the same state in which they
happen to be at any given period, as much more likely to do good
than harm; because it is favorable to greater stability in the
system of legislation. The injury which may possibly be done by
defeating a few good laws, will be amply compensated by the
advantage of preventing a number of bad ones.
Nor is this all. The superior weight and influence of the
legislative body in a free government, and the hazard to the
Executive in a trial of strength with that body, afford a
satisfactory security that the negative would generally be employed
with great caution; and there would oftener be room for a charge of
timidity than of rashness in the exercise of it. A king of Great
Britain, with all his train of sovereign attributes, and with all
the influence he draws from a thousand sources, would, at this day,
hesitate to put a negative upon the joint resolutions of the two
houses of Parliament. He would not fail to exert the utmost
resources of that influence to strangle a measure disagreeable to
him, in its progress to the throne, to avoid being reduced to the
dilemma of permitting it to take effect, or of risking the
displeasure of the nation by an opposition to the sense of the
legislative body. Nor is it probable, that he would ultimately
venture to exert his prerogatives, but in a case of manifest
propriety, or extreme necessity. All well-informed men in that
kingdom will accede to the justness of this remark. A very
considerable period has elapsed since the negative of the crown has
been exercised.
If a magistrate so powerful and so well fortified as a British
monarch, would have scruples about the exercise of the power under
consideration, how much greater caution may be reasonably expected
in a President of the United States, clothed for the short period of
four years with the executive authority of a government wholly and
purely republican?
It is evident that there would be greater danger of his not using
his power when necessary, than of his using it too often, or too
much. An argument, indeed, against its expediency, has been drawn
from this very source. It has been represented, on this account, as
a power odious in appearance, useless in practice. But it will not
follow, that because it might be rarely exercised, it would never be
exercised. In the case for which it is chiefly designed, that of an
immediate attack upon the constitutional rights of the Executive, or
in a case in which the public good was evidently and palpably
sacrificed, a man of tolerable firmness would avail himself of his
constitutional means of defense, and would listen to the admonitions
of duty and responsibility. In the former supposition, his fortitude
would be stimulated by his immediate interest in the power of his
office; in the latter, by the probability of the sanction of his
constituents, who, though they would naturally incline to the
legislative body in a doubtful case, would hardly suffer their
partiality to delude them in a very plain case. I speak now with an
eye to a magistrate possessing only a common share of firmness.
There are men who, under any circumstances, will have the courage to
do their duty at every hazard.
But the convention have pursued a mean in this business, which will
both facilitate the exercise of the power vested in this respect in
the executive magistrate, and make its efficacy to depend on the
sense of a considerable part of the legislative body. Instead of an
absolute negative, it is proposed to give the Executive the
qualified negative already described. This is a power which would be
much more readily exercised than the other. A man who might be
afraid to defeat a law by his single VETO, might not scruple to
return it for reconsideration; subject to being finally rejected
only in the event of more than one third of each house concurring in
the sufficiency of his objections. He would be encouraged by the
reflection, that if his opposition should prevail, it would embark
in it a very respectable proportion of the legislative body, whose
influence would be united with his in supporting the propriety of
his conduct in the public opinion. A direct and categorical negative
has something in the appearance of it more harsh, and more apt to
irritate, than the mere suggestion of argumentative objections to be
approved or disapproved by those to whom they are addressed. In
proportion as it would be less apt to offend, it would be more apt
to be exercised; and for this very reason, it may in practice be
found more effectual. It is to be hoped that it will not often
happen that improper views will govern so large a proportion as two
thirds of both branches of the legislature at the same time; and
this, too, in spite of the counterposing weight of the Executive. It
is at any rate far less probable that this should be the case, than
that such views should taint the resolutions and conduct of a bare
majority. A power of this nature in the Executive, will often have a
silent and unperceived, though forcible, operation. When men,
engaged in unjustifiable pursuits, are aware that obstructions may
come from a quarter which they cannot control, they will often be
restrained by the bare apprehension of opposition, from doing what
they would with eagerness rush into, if no such external impediments
were to be feared.
This qualified negative, as has been elsewhere remarked, is in this
State vested in a council, consisting of the governor, with the
chancellor and judges of the Supreme Court, or any two of them. It
has been freely employed upon a variety of occasions, and frequently
with success. And its utility has become so apparent, that persons
who, in compiling the Constitution, were violent opposers of it,
have from experience become its declared admirers.(1)
I have in another place remarked, that the convention, in the
formation of this part of their plan, had departed from the model of
the constitution of this State, in favor of that of Massachusetts.
Two strong reasons may be imagined for this preference. One is that
the judges, who are to be the interpreters of the law, might receive
an improper bias, from having given a previous opinion in their
revisionary capacities; the other is that by being often associated
with the Executive, they might be induced to embark too far in the
political views of that magistrate, and thus a dangerous combination
might by degrees be cemented between the executive and judiciary
departments. It is impossible to keep the judges too distinct from
every other avocation than that of expounding the laws. It is
peculiarly dangerous to place them in a situation to be either
corrupted or influenced by the Executive.
PUBLIUS
1. Mr. Abraham Yates, a warm opponent of the plan of the convention
is of this number.
FEDERALIST No. 74.
The Command of the Military and Naval Forces, and the Pardoning
Power of the Executive.
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, March 25, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President of the United States is to be "commander-in-chief of
the army and navy of the United States, and of the militia of the
several States when called into the actual service of the United
States." The propriety of this provision is so evident in itself,
and it is, at the same time, so consonant to the precedents of the
State constitutions in general, that little need be said to explain
or enforce it. Even those of them which have, in other respects,
coupled the chief magistrate with a council, have for the most part
concentrated the military authority in him alone. Of all the cares
or concerns of government, the direction of war most peculiarly
demands those qualities which distinguish the exercise of power by a
single hand. The direction of war implies the direction of the
common strength; and the power of directing and employing the common
strength, forms a usual and essential part in the definition of the
executive authority.
"The President may require the opinion, in writing, of the principal
officer in each of the executive departments, upon any subject
relating to the duties of their respective officers." This I
consider as a mere redundancy in the plan, as the right for which it
provides would result of itself from the office.
He is also to be authorized to grant "reprieves and pardons for
offenses against the United States, except in cases of impeachment."
Humanity and good policy conspire to dictate, that the benign
prerogative of pardoning should be as little as possible fettered or
embarrassed. The criminal code of every country partakes so much of
necessary severity, that without an easy access to exceptions in
favor of unfortunate guilt, justice would wear a countenance too
sanguinary and cruel. As the sense of responsibility is always
strongest, in proportion as it is undivided, it may be inferred that
a single man would be most ready to attend to the force of those
motives which might plead for a mitigation of the rigor of the law,
and least apt to yield to considerations which were calculated to
shelter a fit object of its vengeance. The reflection that the fate
of a fellow-creature depended on his sole fiat, would naturally
inspire scrupulousness and caution; the dread of being accused of
weakness or connivance, would beget equal circumspection, though of
a different kind. On the other hand, as men generally derive
confidence from their numbers, they might often encourage each other
in an act of obduracy, and might be less sensible to the
apprehension of suspicion or censure for an injudicious or affected
clemency. On these accounts, one man appears to be a more eligible
dispenser of the mercy of government, than a body of men.
The expediency of vesting the power of pardoning in the President
has, if I mistake not, been only contested in relation to the crime
of treason. This, it has been urged, ought to have depended upon the
assent of one, or both, of the branches of the legislative body. I
shall not deny that there are strong reasons to be assigned for
requiring in this particular the concurrence of that body, or of a
part of it. As treason is a crime levelled at the immediate being of
the society, when the laws have once ascertained the guilt of the
offender, there seems a fitness in referring the expediency of an
act of mercy towards him to the judgment of the legislature. And
this ought the rather to be the case, as the supposition of the
connivance of the Chief Magistrate ought not to be entirely
excluded. But there are also strong objections to such a plan. It is
not to be doubted, that a single man of prudence and good sense is
better fitted, in delicate conjunctures, to balance the motives
which may plead for and against the remission of the punishment,
than any numerous body whatever. It deserves particular attention,
that treason will often be connected with seditions which embrace a
large proportion of the community; as lately happened in
Massachusetts. In every such case, we might expect to see the
representation of the people tainted with the same spirit which had
given birth to the offense. And when parties were pretty equally
matched, the secret sympathy of the friends and favorers of the
condemned person, availing itself of the good-nature and weakness of
others, might frequently bestow impunity where the terror of an
example was necessary. On the other hand, when the sedition had
proceeded from causes which had inflamed the resentments of the
major party, they might often be found obstinate and inexorable,
when policy demanded a conduct of forbearance and clemency. But the
principal argument for reposing the power of pardoning in this case
to the Chief Magistrate is this: in seasons of insurrection or
rebellion, there are often critical moments, when a well-timed offer
of pardon to the insurgents or rebels may restore the tranquillity
of the commonwealth; and which, if suffered to pass unimproved, it
may never be possible afterwards to recall. The dilatory process of
convening the legislature, or one of its branches, for the purpose
of obtaining its sanction to the measure, would frequently be the
occasion of letting slip the golden opportunity. The loss of a week,
a day, an hour, may sometimes be fatal. If it should be observed,
that a discretionary power, with a view to such contingencies, might
be occasionally conferred upon the President, it may be answered in
the first place, that it is questionable, whether, in a limited
Constitution, that power could be delegated by law; and in the
second place, that it would generally be impolitic beforehand to
take any step which might hold out the prospect of impunity. A
proceeding of this kind, out of the usual course, would be likely to
be construed into an argument of timidity or of weakness, and would
have a tendency to embolden guilt.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 75.
The Treaty-Making Power of the Executive
For the Independent Journal. Wednesday, March 26, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President is to have power, "by and with the advice and consent
of the Senate, to make treaties, provided two thirds of the senators
present concur." Though this provision has been assailed, on
different grounds, with no small degree of vehemence, I scruple not
to declare my firm persuasion, that it is one of the best digested
and most unexceptionable parts of the plan. One ground of objection
is the trite topic of the intermixture of powers; some contending
that the President ought alone to possess the power of making
treaties; others, that it ought to have been exclusively deposited
in the Senate. Another source of objection is derived from the small
number of persons by whom a treaty may be made. Of those who espouse
this objection, a part are of opinion that the House of
Representatives ought to have been associated in the business, while
another part seem to think that nothing more was necessary than to
have substituted two thirds of all the members of the Senate, to two
thirds of the members present. As I flatter myself the observations
made in a preceding number upon this part of the plan must have
sufficed to place it, to a discerning eye, in a very favorable
light, I shall here content myself with offering only some
supplementary remarks, principally with a view to the objections
which have been just stated.
With regard to the intermixture of powers, I shall rely upon the
explanations already given in other places, of the true sense of the
rule upon which that objection is founded; and shall take it for
granted, as an inference from them, that the union of the Executive
with the Senate, in the article of treaties, is no infringement of
that rule. I venture to add, that the particular nature of the power
of making treaties indicates a peculiar propriety in that union.
Though several writers on the subject of government place that power
in the class of executive authorities, yet this is evidently an
arbitrary disposition; for if we attend carefully to its operation,
it will be found to partake more of the legislative than of the
executive character, though it does not seem strictly to fall within
the definition of either of them. The essence of the legislative
authority is to enact laws, or, in other words, to prescribe rules
for the regulation of the society; while the execution of the laws,
and the employment of the common strength, either for this purpose
or for the common defense, seem to comprise all the functions of the
executive magistrate. The power of making treaties is, plainly,
neither the one nor the other. It relates neither to the execution
of the subsisting laws, nor to the enaction of new ones; and still
less to an exertion of the common strength. Its objects are
CONTRACTS with foreign nations, which have the force of law, but
derive it from the obligations of good faith. They are not rules
prescribed by the sovereign to the subject, but agreements between
sovereign and sovereign. The power in question seems therefore to
form a distinct department, and to belong, properly, neither to the
legislative nor to the executive. The qualities elsewhere detailed
as indispensable in the management of foreign negotiations, point
out the Executive as the most fit agent in those transactions; while
the vast importance of the trust, and the operation of treaties as
laws, plead strongly for the participation of the whole or a portion
of the legislative body in the office of making them.
However proper or safe it may be in governments where the executive
magistrate is an hereditary monarch, to commit to him the entire
power of making treaties, it would be utterly unsafe and improper to
intrust that power to an elective magistrate of four years'
duration. It has been remarked, upon another occasion, and the
remark is unquestionably just, that an hereditary monarch, though
often the oppressor of his people, has personally too much stake in
the government to be in any material danger of being corrupted by
foreign powers. But a man raised from the station of a private
citizen to the rank of chief magistrate, possessed of a moderate or
slender fortune, and looking forward to a period not very remote
when he may probably be obliged to return to the station from which
he was taken, might sometimes be under temptations to sacrifice his
duty to his interest, which it would require superlative virtue to
withstand. An avaricious man might be tempted to betray the
interests of the state to the acquisition of wealth. An ambitious
man might make his own aggrandizement, by the aid of a foreign
power, the price of his treachery to his constituents. The history
of human conduct does not warrant that exalted opinion of human
virtue which would make it wise in a nation to commit interests of
so delicate and momentous a kind, as those which concern its
intercourse with the rest of the world, to the sole disposal of a
magistrate created and circumstanced as would be a President of the
United States.
To have intrusted the power of making treaties to the Senate alone,
would have been to relinquish the benefits of the constitutional
agency of the President in the conduct of foreign negotiations. It
is true that the Senate would, in that case, have the option of
employing him in this capacity, but they would also have the option
of letting it alone, and pique or cabal might induce the latter
rather than the former. Besides this, the ministerial servant of the
Senate could not be expected to enjoy the confidence and respect of
foreign powers in the same degree with the constitutional
representatives of the nation, and, of course, would not be able to
act with an equal degree of weight or efficacy. While the Union
would, from this cause, lose a considerable advantage in the
management of its external concerns, the people would lose the
additional security which would result from the co-operation of the
Executive. Though it would be imprudent to confide in him solely so
important a trust, yet it cannot be doubted that his participation
would materially add to the safety of the society. It must indeed be
clear to a demonstration that the joint possession of the power in
question, by the President and Senate, would afford a greater
prospect of security, than the separate possession of it by either
of them. And whoever has maturely weighed the circumstances which
must concur in the appointment of a President, will be satisfied
that the office will always bid fair to be filled by men of such
characters as to render their concurrence in the formation of
treaties peculiarly desirable, as well on the score of wisdom, as on
that of integrity.
The remarks made in a former number, which have been alluded to in
another part of this paper, will apply with conclusive force against
the admission of the House of Representatives to a share in the
formation of treaties. The fluctuating and, taking its future
increase into the account, the multitudinous composition of that
body, forbid us to expect in it those qualities which are essential
to the proper execution of such a trust. Accurate and comprehensive
knowledge of foreign politics; a steady and systematic adherence to
the same views; a nice and uniform sensibility to national
character; decision, secrecy, and despatch, are incompatible with
the genius of a body so variable and so numerous. The very
complication of the business, by introducing a necessity of the
concurrence of so many different bodies, would of itself afford a
solid objection. The greater frequency of the calls upon the House
of Representatives, and the greater length of time which it would
often be necessary to keep them together when convened, to obtain
their sanction in the progressive stages of a treaty, would be a
source of so great inconvenience and expense as alone ought to
condemn the project.
The only objection which remains to be canvassed, is that which
would substitute the proportion of two thirds of all the members
composing the senatorial body, to that of two thirds of the members
present. It has been shown, under the second head of our inquiries,
that all provisions which require more than the majority of any body
to its resolutions, have a direct tendency to embarrass the
operations of the government, and an indirect one to subject the
sense of the majority to that of the minority. This consideration
seems sufficient to determine our opinion, that the convention have
gone as far in the endeavor to secure the advantage of numbers in
the formation of treaties as could have been reconciled either with
the activity of the public councils or with a reasonable regard to
the major sense of the community. If two thirds of the whole number
of members had been required, it would, in many cases, from the
non-attendance of a part, amount in practice to a necessity of
unanimity. And the history of every political establishment in which
this principle has prevailed, is a history of impotence, perplexity,
and disorder. Proofs of this position might be adduced from the
examples of the Roman Tribuneship, the Polish Diet, and the
States-General of the Netherlands, did not an example at home render
foreign precedents unnecessary.
To require a fixed proportion of the whole body would not, in all
probability, contribute to the advantages of a numerous agency,
better then merely to require a proportion of the attending members.
The former, by making a determinate number at all times requisite to
a resolution, diminishes the motives to punctual attendance. The
latter, by making the capacity of the body to depend on a proportion
which may be varied by the absence or presence of a single member,
has the contrary effect. And as, by promoting punctuality, it tends
to keep the body complete, there is great likelihood that its
resolutions would generally be dictated by as great a number in this
case as in the other; while there would be much fewer occasions of
delay. It ought not to be forgotten that, under the existing
Confederation, two members may, and usually do, represent a State;
whence it happens that Congress, who now are solely invested with
all the powers of the Union, rarely consist of a greater number of
persons than would compose the intended Senate. If we add to this,
that as the members vote by States, and that where there is only a
single member present from a State, his vote is lost, it will
justify a supposition that the active voices in the Senate, where
the members are to vote individually, would rarely fall short in
number of the active voices in the existing Congress. When, in
addition to these considerations, we take into view the co-operation
of the President, we shall not hesitate to infer that the people of
America would have greater security against an improper use of the
power of making treaties, under the new Constitution, than they now
enjoy under the Confederation. And when we proceed still one step
further, and look forward to the probable augmentation of the
Senate, by the erection of new States, we shall not only perceive
ample ground of confidence in the sufficiency of the members to
whose agency that power will be intrusted, but we shall probably be
led to conclude that a body more numerous than the Senate would be
likely to become, would be very little fit for the proper discharge
of the trust.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 76.
The Appointing Power of the Executive
From the New York Packet. Tuesday, April 1, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE President is "to nominate, and, by and with the advice and
consent of the Senate, to appoint ambassadors, other public
ministers and consuls, judges of the Supreme Court, and all other
officers of the United States whose appointments are not otherwise
provided for in the Constitution. But the Congress may by law vest
the appointment of such inferior officers as they think proper, in
the President alone, or in the courts of law, or in the heads of
departments. The President shall have power to fill up all vacancies
which may happen during the recess of the Senate, by granting
commissions which shall expire at the end of their next session."
It has been observed in a former paper, that "the true test of a
good government is its aptitude and tendency to produce a good
administration." If the justness of this observation be admitted,
the mode of appointing the officers of the United States contained
in the foregoing clauses, must, when examined, be allowed to be
entitled to particular commendation. It is not easy to conceive a
plan better calculated than this to promote a judicious choice of
men for filling the offices of the Union; and it will not need
proof, that on this point must essentially depend the character of
its administration.
It will be agreed on all hands, that the power of appointment, in
ordinary cases, ought to be modified in one of three ways. It ought
either to be vested in a single man, or in a select assembly of a
moderate number; or in a single man, with the concurrence of such an
assembly. The exercise of it by the people at large will be readily
admitted to be impracticable; as waiving every other consideration,
it would leave them little time to do anything else. When,
therefore, mention is made in the subsequent reasonings of an
assembly or body of men, what is said must be understood to relate
to a select body or assembly, of the description already given. The
people collectively, from their number and from their dispersed
situation, cannot be regulated in their movements by that systematic
spirit of cabal and intrigue, which will be urged as the chief
objections to reposing the power in question in a body of men.
Those who have themselves reflected upon the subject, or who have
attended to the observations made in other parts of these papers, in
relation to the appointment of the President, will, I presume, agree
to the position, that there would always be great probability of
having the place supplied by a man of abilities, at least
respectable. Premising this, I proceed to lay it down as a rule,
that one man of discernment is better fitted to analyze and estimate
the peculiar qualities adapted to particular offices, than a body of
men of equal or perhaps even of superior discernment.
The sole and undivided responsibility of one man will naturally
beget a livelier sense of duty and a more exact regard to
reputation. He will, on this account, feel himself under stronger
obligations, and more interested to investigate with care the
qualities requisite to the stations to be filled, and to prefer with
impartiality the persons who may have the fairest pretensions to
them. He will have fewer personal attachments to gratify, than a
body of men who may each be supposed to have an equal number; and
will be so much the less liable to be misled by the sentiments of
friendship and of affection. A single well-directed man, by a single
understanding, cannot be distracted and warped by that diversity of
views, feelings, and interests, which frequently distract and warp
the resolutions of a collective body. There is nothing so apt to
agitate the passions of mankind as personal considerations whether
they relate to ourselves or to others, who are to be the objects of
our choice or preference. Hence, in every exercise of the power of
appointing to offices, by an assembly of men, we must expect to see
a full display of all the private and party likings and dislikes,
partialities and antipathies, attachments and animosities, which are
felt by those who compose the assembly. The choice which may at any
time happen to be made under such circumstances, will of course be
the result either of a victory gained by one party over the other,
or of a compromise between the parties. In either case, the
intrinsic merit of the candidate will be too often out of sight. In
the first, the qualifications best adapted to uniting the suffrages
of the party, will be more considered than those which fit the
person for the station. In the last, the coalition will commonly
turn upon some interested equivalent: "Give us the man we wish for
this office, and you shall have the one you wish for that." This
will be the usual condition of the bargain. And it will rarely
happen that the advancement of the public service will be the
primary object either of party victories or of party negotiations.
The truth of the principles here advanced seems to have been felt by
the most intelligent of those who have found fault with the
provision made, in this respect, by the convention. They contend
that the President ought solely to have been authorized to make the
appointments under the federal government. But it is easy to show,
that every advantage to be expected from such an arrangement would,
in substance, be derived from the power of nomination, which is
proposed to be conferred upon him; while several disadvantages which
might attend the absolute power of appointment in the hands of that
officer would be avoided. In the act of nomination, his judgment
alone would be exercised; and as it would be his sole duty to point
out the man who, with the approbation of the Senate, should fill an
office, his responsibility would be as complete as if he were to
make the final appointment. There can, in this view, be no
difference between nominating and appointing. The same motives which
would influence a proper discharge of his duty in one case, would
exist in the other. And as no man could be appointed but on his
previous nomination, every man who might be appointed would be, in
fact, his choice.
But might not his nomination be overruled? I grant it might, yet
this could only be to make place for another nomination by himself.
The person ultimately appointed must be the object of his
preference, though perhaps not in the first degree. It is also not
very probable that his nomination would often be overruled. The
Senate could not be tempted, by the preference they might feel to
another, to reject the one proposed; because they could not assure
themselves, that the person they might wish would be brought forward
by a second or by any subsequent nomination. They could not even be
certain, that a future nomination would present a candidate in any
degree more acceptable to them; and as their dissent might cast a
kind of stigma upon the individual rejected, and might have the
appearance of a reflection upon the judgment of the chief
magistrate, it is not likely that their sanction would often be
refused, where there were not special and strong reasons for the
refusal.
To what purpose then require the co-operation of the Senate? I
answer, that the necessity of their concurrence would have a
powerful, though, in general, a silent operation. It would be an
excellent check upon a spirit of favoritism in the President, and
would tend greatly to prevent the appointment of unfit characters
from State prejudice, from family connection, from personal
attachment, or from a view to popularity. In addition to this, it
would be an efficacious source of stability in the administration.
It will readily be comprehended, that a man who had himself the sole
disposition of offices, would be governed much more by his private
inclinations and interests, than when he was bound to submit the
propriety of his choice to the discussion and determination of a
different and independent body, and that body an entire branch of
the legislature. The possibility of rejection would be a strong
motive to care in proposing. The danger to his own reputation, and,
in the case of an elective magistrate, to his political existence,
from betraying a spirit of favoritism, or an unbecoming pursuit of
popularity, to the observation of a body whose opinion would have
great weight in forming that of the public, could not fail to
operate as a barrier to the one and to the other. He would be both
ashamed and afraid to bring forward, for the most distinguished or
lucrative stations, candidates who had no other merit than that of
coming from the same State to which he particularly belonged, or of
being in some way or other personally allied to him, or of
possessing the necessary insignificance and pliancy to render them
the obsequious instruments of his pleasure.
To this reasoning it has been objected that the President, by the
influence of the power of nomination, may secure the complaisance of
the Senate to his views. This supposition of universal venalty in
human nature is little less an error in political reasoning, than
the supposition of universal rectitude. The institution of delegated
power implies, that there is a portion of virtue and honor among
mankind, which may be a reasonable foundation of confidence; and
experience justifies the theory. It has been found to exist in the
most corrupt periods of the most corrupt governments. The venalty of
the British House of Commons has been long a topic of accusation
against that body, in the country to which they belong as well as in
this; and it cannot be doubted that the charge is, to a considerable
extent, well founded. But it is as little to be doubted, that there
is always a large proportion of the body, which consists of
independent and public-spirited men, who have an influential weight
in the councils of the nation. Hence it is (the present reign not
excepted) that the sense of that body is often seen to control the
inclinations of the monarch, both with regard to men and to
measures. Though it might therefore be allowable to suppose that the
Executive might occasionally influence some individuals in the
Senate, yet the supposition, that he could in general purchase the
integrity of the whole body, would be forced and improbable. A man
disposed to view human nature as it is, without either flattering
its virtues or exaggerating its vices, will see sufficient ground of
confidence in the probity of the Senate, to rest satisfied, not only
that it will be impracticable to the Executive to corrupt or seduce
a majority of its members, but that the necessity of its
co-operation, in the business of appointments, will be a
considerable and salutary restraint upon the conduct of that
magistrate. Nor is the integrity of the Senate the only reliance.
The Constitution has provided some important guards against the
danger of executive influence upon the legislative body: it declares
that "No senator or representative shall during the time for which
he was elected, be appointed to any civil office under the United
States, which shall have been created, or the emoluments whereof
shall have been increased, during such time; and no person, holding
any office under the United States, shall be a member of either
house during his continuance in office."
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 77.
The Appointing Power Continued and Other Powers of the Executive
Considered.
From The Independent Journal. Wednesday, April 2, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IT HAS been mentioned as one of the advantages to be expected from
the co-operation of the Senate, in the business of appointments,
that it would contribute to the stability of the administration. The
consent of that body would be necessary to displace as well as to
appoint. A change of the Chief Magistrate, therefore, would not
occasion so violent or so general a revolution in the officers of
the government as might be expected, if he were the sole disposer of
offices. Where a man in any station had given satisfactory evidence
of his fitness for it, a new President would be restrained from
attempting a change in favor of a person more agreeable to him, by
the apprehension that a discountenance of the Senate might frustrate
the attempt, and bring some degree of discredit upon himself. Those
who can best estimate the value of a steady administration, will be
most disposed to prize a provision which connects the official
existence of public men with the approbation or disapprobation of
that body which, from the greater permanency of its own composition,
will in all probability be less subject to inconstancy than any
other member of the government.
To this union of the Senate with the President, in the article of
appointments, it has in some cases been suggested that it would
serve to give the President an undue influence over the Senate, and
in others that it would have an opposite tendency—a strong proof
that neither suggestion is true.
To state the first in its proper form, is to refute it. It amounts
to this: the President would have an improper influence over the
Senate, because the Senate would have the power of restraining him.
This is an absurdity in terms. It cannot admit of a doubt that the
entire power of appointment would enable him much more effectually
to establish a dangerous empire over that body, than a mere power of
nomination subject to their control.
Let us take a view of the converse of the proposition: "the Senate
would influence the Executive." As I have had occasion to remark in
several other instances, the indistinctness of the objection forbids
a precise answer. In what manner is this influence to be exerted? In
relation to what objects? The power of influencing a person, in the
sense in which it is here used, must imply a power of conferring a
benefit upon him. How could the Senate confer a benefit upon the
President by the manner of employing their right of negative upon
his nominations? If it be said they might sometimes gratify him by
an acquiescence in a favorite choice, when public motives might
dictate a different conduct, I answer, that the instances in which
the President could be personally interested in the result, would be
too few to admit of his being materially affected by the compliances
of the Senate. The POWER which can originate the disposition of
honors and emoluments, is more likely to attract than to be
attracted by the POWER which can merely obstruct their course. If by
influencing the President be meant restraining him, this is
precisely what must have been intended. And it has been shown that
the restraint would be salutary, at the same time that it would not
be such as to destroy a single advantage to be looked for from the
uncontrolled agency of that Magistrate. The right of nomination
would produce all the (good, without the ill.)(E1) (good of that of
appointment, and would in a great measure avoid its evils.)(E1)
Upon a comparison of the plan for the appointment of the officers of
the proposed government with that which is established by the
constitution of this State, a decided preference must be given to
the former. In that plan the power of nomination is unequivocally
vested in the Executive. And as there would be a necessity for
submitting each nomination to the judgment of an entire branch of
the legislature, the circumstances attending an appointment, from
the mode of conducting it, would naturally become matters of
notoriety; and the public would be at no loss to determine what part
had been performed by the different actors. The blame of a bad
nomination would fall upon the President singly and absolutely. The
censure of rejecting a good one would lie entirely at the door of
the Senate; aggravated by the consideration of their having
counteracted the good intentions of the Executive. If an ill
appointment should be made, the Executive for nominating, and the
Senate for approving, would participate, though in different
degrees, in the opprobrium and disgrace.
The reverse of all this characterizes the manner of appointment in
this State. The council of appointment consists of from three to
five persons, of whom the governor is always one. This small body,
shut up in a private apartment, impenetrable to the public eye,
proceed to the execution of the trust committed to them. It is known
that the governor claims the right of nomination, upon the strength
of some ambiguous expressions in the constitution; but it is not
known to what extent, or in what manner he exercises it; nor upon
what occasions he is contradicted or opposed. The censure of a bad
appointment, on account of the uncertainty of its author, and for
want of a determinate object, has neither poignancy nor duration.
And while an unbounded field for cabal and intrigue lies open, all
idea of responsibility is lost. The most that the public can know,
is that the governor claims the right of nomination; that two out of
the inconsiderable number of four men can too often be managed
without much difficulty; that if some of the members of a particular
council should happen to be of an uncomplying character, it is
frequently not impossible to get rid of their opposition by
regulating the times of meeting in such a manner as to render their
attendance inconvenient; and that from whatever cause it may
proceed, a great number of very improper appointments are from time
to time made. Whether a governor of this State avails himself of the
ascendant he must necessarily have, in this delicate and important
part of the administration, to prefer to offices men who are best
qualified for them, or whether he prostitutes that advantage to the
advancement of persons whose chief merit is their implicit devotion
to his will, and to the support of a despicable and dangerous system
of personal influence, are questions which, unfortunately for the
community, can only be the subjects of speculation and conjecture.
Every mere council of appointment, however constituted, will be a
conclave, in which cabal and intrigue will have their full scope.
Their number, without an unwarrantable increase of expense, cannot
be large enough to preclude a facility of combination. And as each
member will have his friends and connections to provide for, the
desire of mutual gratification will beget a scandalous bartering of
votes and bargaining for places. The private attachments of one man
might easily be satisfied; but to satisfy the private attachments of
a dozen, or of twenty men, would occasion a monopoly of all the
principal employments of the government in a few families, and would
lead more directly to an aristocracy or an oligarchy than any
measure that could be contrived. If, to avoid an accumulation of
offices, there was to be a frequent change in the persons who were
to compose the council, this would involve the mischiefs of a
mutable administration in their full extent. Such a council would
also be more liable to executive influence than the Senate, because
they would be fewer in number, and would act less immediately under
the public inspection. Such a council, in fine, as a substitute for
the plan of the convention, would be productive of an increase of
expense, a multiplication of the evils which spring from favoritism
and intrigue in the distribution of public honors, a decrease of
stability in the administration of the government, and a diminution
of the security against an undue influence of the Executive. And yet
such a council has been warmly contended for as an essential
amendment in the proposed Constitution.
I could not with propriety conclude my observations on the subject
of appointments without taking notice of a scheme for which there
have appeared some, though but few advocates; I mean that of uniting
the House of Representatives in the power of making them. I shall,
however, do little more than mention it, as I cannot imagine that it
is likely to gain the countenance of any considerable part of the
community. A body so fluctuating and at the same time so numerous,
can never be deemed proper for the exercise of that power. Its
unfitness will appear manifest to all, when it is recollected that
in half a century it may consist of three or four hundred persons.
All the advantages of the stability, both of the Executive and of
the Senate, would be defeated by this union, and infinite delays and
embarrassments would be occasioned. The example of most of the
States in their local constitutions encourages us to reprobate the
idea.
The only remaining powers of the Executive are comprehended in
giving information to Congress of the state of the Union; in
recommending to their consideration such measures as he shall judge
expedient; in convening them, or either branch, upon extraordinary
occasions; in adjourning them when they cannot themselves agree upon
the time of adjournment; in receiving ambassadors and other public
ministers; in faithfully executing the laws; and in commissioning
all the officers of the United States.
Except some cavils about the power of convening either house of the
legislature, and that of receiving ambassadors, no objection has
been made to this class of authorities; nor could they possibly
admit of any. It required, indeed, an insatiable avidity for censure
to invent exceptions to the parts which have been excepted to. In
regard to the power of convening either house of the legislature, I
shall barely remark, that in respect to the Senate at least, we can
readily discover a good reason for it. AS this body has a concurrent
power with the Executive in the article of treaties, it might often
be necessary to call it together with a view to this object, when it
would be unnecessary and improper to convene the House of
Representatives. As to the reception of ambassadors, what I have
said in a former paper will furnish a sufficient answer.
We have now completed a survey of the structure and powers of the
executive department, which, I have endeavored to show, combines, as
far as republican principles will admit, all the requisites to
energy. The remaining inquiry is: Does it also combine the
requisites to safety, in a republican sense—a due dependence on the
people, a due responsibility? The answer to this question has been
anticipated in the investigation of its other characteristics, and
is satisfactorily deducible from these circumstances; from the
election of the President once in four years by persons immediately
chosen by the people for that purpose; and from his being at all
times liable to impeachment, trial, dismission from office,
incapacity to serve in any other, and to forfeiture of life and
estate by subsequent prosecution in the common course of law. But
these precautions, great as they are, are not the only ones which
the plan of the convention has provided in favor of the public
security. In the only instances in which the abuse of the executive
authority was materially to be feared, the Chief Magistrate of the
United States would, by that plan, be subjected to the control of a
branch of the legislative body. What more could be desired by an
enlightened and reasonable people?
PUBLIUS
E1. These two alternate endings of this sentence appear in different
editions.
FEDERALIST No. 78.
The Judiciary Department
From McLEAN'S Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
WE PROCEED now to an examination of the judiciary department of the
proposed government.
In unfolding the defects of the existing Confederation, the utility
and necessity of a federal judicature have been clearly pointed out.
It is the less necessary to recapitulate the considerations there
urged, as the propriety of the institution in the abstract is not
disputed; the only questions which have been raised being relative
to the manner of constituting it, and to its extent. To these
points, therefore, our observations shall be confined.
The manner of constituting it seems to embrace these several
objects: 1st. The mode of appointing the judges. 2d. The tenure by
which they are to hold their places. 3d. The partition of the
judiciary authority between different courts, and their relations to
each other.
First. As to the mode of appointing the judges; this is the same
with that of appointing the officers of the Union in general, and
has been so fully discussed in the two last numbers, that nothing
can be said here which would not be useless repetition.
Second. As to the tenure by which the judges are to hold their
places; this chiefly concerns their duration in office; the
provisions for their support; the precautions for their
responsibility.
According to the plan of the convention, all judges who may be
appointed by the United States are to hold their offices during good
behavior; which is conformable to the most approved of the State
constitutions and among the rest, to that of this State. Its
propriety having been drawn into question by the adversaries of that
plan, is no light symptom of the rage for objection, which disorders
their imaginations and judgments. The standard of good behavior for
the continuance in office of the judicial magistracy, is certainly
one of the most valuable of the modern improvements in the practice
of government. In a monarchy it is an excellent barrier to the
despotism of the prince; in a republic it is a no less excellent
barrier to the encroachments and oppressions of the representative
body. And it is the best expedient which can be devised in any
government, to secure a steady, upright, and impartial
administration of the laws.
Whoever attentively considers the different departments of power
must perceive, that, in a government in which they are separated
from each other, the judiciary, from the nature of its functions,
will always be the least dangerous to the political rights of the
Constitution; because it will be least in a capacity to annoy or
injure them. The Executive not only dispenses the honors, but holds
the sword of the community. The legislature not only commands the
purse, but prescribes the rules by which the duties and rights of
every citizen are to be regulated. The judiciary, on the contrary,
has no influence over either the sword or the purse; no direction
either of the strength or of the wealth of the society; and can take
no active resolution whatever. It may truly be said to have neither
FORCE nor WILL, but merely judgment; and must ultimately depend upon
the aid of the executive arm even for the efficacy of its judgments.
This simple view of the matter suggests several important
consequences. It proves incontestably, that the judiciary is beyond
comparison the weakest of the three departments of power(1); that it
can never attack with success either of the other two; and that all
possible care is requisite to enable it to defend itself against
their attacks. It equally proves, that though individual oppression
may now and then proceed from the courts of justice, the general
liberty of the people can never be endangered from that quarter; I
mean so long as the judiciary remains truly distinct from both the
legislature and the Executive. For I agree, that "there is no
liberty, if the power of judging be not separated from the
legislative and executive powers."(2) And it proves, in the last
place, that as liberty can have nothing to fear from the judiciary
alone, but would have every thing to fear from its union with either
of the other departments; that as all the effects of such a union
must ensue from a dependence of the former on the latter,
notwithstanding a nominal and apparent separation; that as, from the
natural feebleness of the judiciary, it is in continual jeopardy of
being overpowered, awed, or influenced by its co-ordinate branches;
and that as nothing can contribute so much to its firmness and
independence as permanency in office, this quality may therefore be
justly regarded as an indispensable ingredient in its constitution,
and, in a great measure, as the citadel of the public justice and
the public security.
The complete independence of the courts of justice is peculiarly
essential in a limited Constitution. By a limited Constitution, I
understand one which contains certain specified exceptions to the
legislative authority; such, for instance, as that it shall pass no
bills of attainder, no ex post facto laws, and the like. Limitations
of this kind can be preserved in practice no other way than through
the medium of courts of justice, whose duty it must be to declare
all acts contrary to the manifest tenor of the Constitution void.
Without this, all the reservations of particular rights or
privileges would amount to nothing.
Some perplexity respecting the rights of the courts to pronounce
legislative acts void, because contrary to the Constitution, has
arisen from an imagination that the doctrine would imply a
superiority of the judiciary to the legislative power. It is urged
that the authority which can declare the acts of another void, must
necessarily be superior to the one whose acts may be declared void.
As this doctrine is of great importance in all the American
constitutions, a brief discussion of the ground on which it rests
cannot be unacceptable.
There is no position which depends on clearer principles, than that
every act of a delegated authority, contrary to the tenor of the
commission under which it is exercised, is void. No legislative act,
therefore, contrary to the Constitution, can be valid. To deny this,
would be to affirm, that the deputy is greater than his principal;
that the servant is above his master; that the representatives of
the people are superior to the people themselves; that men acting by
virtue of powers, may do not only what their powers do not
authorize, but what they forbid.
If it be said that the legislative body are themselves the
constitutional judges of their own powers, and that the construction
they put upon them is conclusive upon the other departments, it may
be answered, that this cannot be the natural presumption, where it
is not to be collected from any particular provisions in the
Constitution. It is not otherwise to be supposed, that the
Constitution could intend to enable the representatives of the
people to substitute their will to that of their constituents. It is
far more rational to suppose, that the courts were designed to be an
intermediate body between the people and the legislature, in order,
among other things, to keep the latter within the limits assigned to
their authority. The interpretation of the laws is the proper and
peculiar province of the courts. A constitution is, in fact, and
must be regarded by the judges, as a fundamental law. It therefore
belongs to them to ascertain its meaning, as well as the meaning of
any particular act proceeding from the legislative body. If there
should happen to be an irreconcilable variance between the two, that
which has the superior obligation and validity ought, of course, to
be preferred; or, in other words, the Constitution ought to be
preferred to the statute, the intention of the people to the
intention of their agents.
Nor does this conclusion by any means suppose a superiority of the
judicial to the legislative power. It only supposes that the power
of the people is superior to both; and that where the will of the
legislature, declared in its statutes, stands in opposition to that
of the people, declared in the Constitution, the judges ought to be
governed by the latter rather than the former. They ought to
regulate their decisions by the fundamental laws, rather than by
those which are not fundamental.
This exercise of judicial discretion, in determining between two
contradictory laws, is exemplified in a familiar instance. It not
uncommonly happens, that there are two statutes existing at one
time, clashing in whole or in part with each other, and neither of
them containing any repealing clause or expression. In such a case,
it is the province of the courts to liquidate and fix their meaning
and operation. So far as they can, by any fair construction, be
reconciled to each other, reason and law conspire to dictate that
this should be done; where this is impracticable, it becomes a
matter of necessity to give effect to one, in exclusion of the
other. The rule which has obtained in the courts for determining
their relative validity is, that the last in order of time shall be
preferred to the first. But this is a mere rule of construction, not
derived from any positive law, but from the nature and reason of the
thing. It is a rule not enjoined upon the courts by legislative
provision, but adopted by themselves, as consonant to truth and
propriety, for the direction of their conduct as interpreters of the
law. They thought it reasonable, that between the interfering acts
of an EQUAL authority, that which was the last indication of its
will should have the preference.
But in regard to the interfering acts of a superior and subordinate
authority, of an original and derivative power, the nature and
reason of the thing indicate the converse of that rule as proper to
be followed. They teach us that the prior act of a superior ought to
be preferred to the subsequent act of an inferior and subordinate
authority; and that accordingly, whenever a particular statute
contravenes the Constitution, it will be the duty of the judicial
tribunals to adhere to the latter and disregard the former.
It can be of no weight to say that the courts, on the pretense of a
repugnancy, may substitute their own pleasure to the constitutional
intentions of the legislature. This might as well happen in the case
of two contradictory statutes; or it might as well happen in every
adjudication upon any single statute. The courts must declare the
sense of the law; and if they should be disposed to exercise WILL
instead of JUDGMENT, the consequence would equally be the
substitution of their pleasure to that of the legislative body. The
observation, if it prove any thing, would prove that there ought to
be no judges distinct from that body.
If, then, the courts of justice are to be considered as the bulwarks
of a limited Constitution against legislative encroachments, this
consideration will afford a strong argument for the permanent tenure
of judicial offices, since nothing will contribute so much as this
to that independent spirit in the judges which must be essential to
the faithful performance of so arduous a duty.
This independence of the judges is equally requisite to guard the
Constitution and the rights of individuals from the effects of those
ill humors, which the arts of designing men, or the influence of
particular conjunctures, sometimes disseminate among the people
themselves, and which, though they speedily give place to better
information, and more deliberate reflection, have a tendency, in the
meantime, to occasion dangerous innovations in the government, and
serious oppressions of the minor party in the community. Though I
trust the friends of the proposed Constitution will never concur
with its enemies,(3) in questioning that fundamental principle of
republican government, which admits the right of the people to alter
or abolish the established Constitution, whenever they find it
inconsistent with their happiness, yet it is not to be inferred from
this principle, that the representatives of the people, whenever a
momentary inclination happens to lay hold of a majority of their
constituents, incompatible with the provisions in the existing
Constitution, would, on that account, be justifiable in a violation
of those provisions; or that the courts would be under a greater
obligation to connive at infractions in this shape, than when they
had proceeded wholly from the cabals of the representative body.
Until the people have, by some solemn and authoritative act,
annulled or changed the established form, it is binding upon
themselves collectively, as well as individually; and no
presumption, or even knowledge, of their sentiments, can warrant
their representatives in a departure from it, prior to such an act.
But it is easy to see, that it would require an uncommon portion of
fortitude in the judges to do their duty as faithful guardians of
the Constitution, where legislative invasions of it had been
instigated by the major voice of the community.
But it is not with a view to infractions of the Constitution only,
that the independence of the judges may be an essential safeguard
against the effects of occasional ill humors in the society. These
sometimes extend no farther than to the injury of the private rights
of particular classes of citizens, by unjust and partial laws. Here
also the firmness of the judicial magistracy is of vast importance
in mitigating the severity and confining the operation of such laws.
It not only serves to moderate the immediate mischiefs of those
which may have been passed, but it operates as a check upon the
legislative body in passing them; who, perceiving that obstacles to
the success of iniquitous intention are to be expected from the
scruples of the courts, are in a manner compelled, by the very
motives of the injustice they meditate, to qualify their attempts.
This is a circumstance calculated to have more influence upon the
character of our governments, than but few may be aware of. The
benefits of the integrity and moderation of the judiciary have
already been felt in more States than one; and though they may have
displeased those whose sinister expectations they may have
disappointed, they must have commanded the esteem and applause of
all the virtuous and disinterested. Considerate men, of every
description, ought to prize whatever will tend to beget or fortify
that temper in the courts: as no man can be sure that he may not be
to-morrow the victim of a spirit of injustice, by which he may be a
gainer to-day. And every man must now feel, that the inevitable
tendency of such a spirit is to sap the foundations of public and
private confidence, and to introduce in its stead universal distrust
and distress.
That inflexible and uniform adherence to the rights of the
Constitution, and of individuals, which we perceive to be
indispensable in the courts of justice, can certainly not be
expected from judges who hold their offices by a temporary
commission. Periodical appointments, however regulated, or by
whomsoever made, would, in some way or other, be fatal to their
necessary independence. If the power of making them was committed
either to the Executive or legislature, there would be danger of an
improper complaisance to the branch which possessed it; if to both,
there would be an unwillingness to hazard the displeasure of either;
if to the people, or to persons chosen by them for the special
purpose, there would be too great a disposition to consult
popularity, to justify a reliance that nothing would be consulted
but the Constitution and the laws.
There is yet a further and a weightier reason for the permanency of
the judicial offices, which is deducible from the nature of the
qualifications they require. It has been frequently remarked, with
great propriety, that a voluminous code of laws is one of the
inconveniences necessarily connected with the advantages of a free
government. To avoid an arbitrary discretion in the courts, it is
indispensable that they should be bound down by strict rules and
precedents, which serve to define and point out their duty in every
particular case that comes before them; and it will readily be
conceived from the variety of controversies which grow out of the
folly and wickedness of mankind, that the records of those
precedents must unavoidably swell to a very considerable bulk, and
must demand long and laborious study to acquire a competent
knowledge of them. Hence it is, that there can be but few men in the
society who will have sufficient skill in the laws to qualify them
for the stations of judges. And making the proper deductions for the
ordinary depravity of human nature, the number must be still smaller
of those who unite the requisite integrity with the requisite
knowledge. These considerations apprise us, that the government can
have no great option between fit character; and that a temporary
duration in office, which would naturally discourage such characters
from quitting a lucrative line of practice to accept a seat on the
bench, would have a tendency to throw the administration of justice
into hands less able, and less well qualified, to conduct it with
utility and dignity. In the present circumstances of this country,
and in those in which it is likely to be for a long time to come,
the disadvantages on this score would be greater than they may at
first sight appear; but it must be confessed, that they are far
inferior to those which present themselves under the other aspects
of the subject.
Upon the whole, there can be no room to doubt that the convention
acted wisely in copying from the models of those constitutions which
have established good behavior as the tenure of their judicial
offices, in point of duration; and that so far from being blamable
on this account, their plan would have been inexcusably defective,
if it had wanted this important feature of good government. The
experience of Great Britain affords an illustrious comment on the
excellence of the institution.
PUBLIUS
1. The celebrated Montesquieu, speaking of them, says: "Of the three
powers above mentioned, the judiciary is next to nothing."—Spirit of
Laws. Vol. I, page 186.
2. Idem, page 181.
3. Vide Protest of the Minority of the Convention of Pennsylvania,
Martin's Speech, etc.
FEDERALIST No. 79.
The Judiciary Continued
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
NEXT to permanency in office, nothing can contribute more to the
independence of the judges than a fixed provision for their support.
The remark made in relation to the President is equally applicable
here. In the general course of human nature, a power over a man's
subsistence amounts to a power over his will. And we can never hope
to see realized in practice, the complete separation of the judicial
from the legislative power, in any system which leaves the former
dependent for pecuniary resources on the occasional grants of the
latter. The enlightened friends to good government in every State,
have seen cause to lament the want of precise and explicit
precautions in the State constitutions on this head. Some of these
indeed have declared that permanent(1) salaries should be
established for the judges; but the experiment has in some instances
shown that such expressions are not sufficiently definite to
preclude legislative evasions. Something still more positive and
unequivocal has been evinced to be requisite. The plan of the
convention accordingly has provided that the judges of the United
States "shall at stated times receive for their services a
compensation which shall not be diminished during their continuance
in office."
This, all circumstances considered, is the most eligible provision
that could have been devised. It will readily be understood that the
fluctuations in the value of money and in the state of society
rendered a fixed rate of compensation in the Constitution
inadmissible. What might be extravagant to-day, might in half a
century become penurious and inadequate. It was therefore necessary
to leave it to the discretion of the legislature to vary its
provisions in conformity to the variations in circumstances, yet
under such restrictions as to put it out of the power of that body
to change the condition of the individual for the worse. A man may
then be sure of the ground upon which he stands, and can never be
deterred from his duty by the apprehension of being placed in a less
eligible situation. The clause which has been quoted combines both
advantages. The salaries of judicial officers may from time to time
be altered, as occasion shall require, yet so as never to lessen the
allowance with which any particular judge comes into office, in
respect to him. It will be observed that a difference has been made
by the convention between the compensation of the President and of
the judges, That of the former can neither be increased nor
diminished; that of the latter can only not be diminished. This
probably arose from the difference in the duration of the respective
offices. As the President is to be elected for no more than four
years, it can rarely happen that an adequate salary, fixed at the
commencement of that period, will not continue to be such to its
end. But with regard to the judges, who, if they behave properly,
will be secured in their places for life, it may well happen,
especially in the early stages of the government, that a stipend,
which would be very sufficient at their first appointment, would
become too small in the progress of their service.
This provision for the support of the judges bears every mark of
prudence and efficacy; and it may be safely affirmed that, together
with the permanent tenure of their offices, it affords a better
prospect of their independence than is discoverable in the
constitutions of any of the States in regard to their own judges.
The precautions for their responsibility are comprised in the
article respecting impeachments. They are liable to be impeached for
malconduct by the House of Representatives, and tried by the Senate;
and, if convicted, may be dismissed from office, and disqualified
for holding any other. This is the only provision on the point which
is consistent with the necessary independence of the judicial
character, and is the only one which we find in our own Constitution
in respect to our own judges.
The want of a provision for removing the judges on account of
inability has been a subject of complaint. But all considerate men
will be sensible that such a provision would either not be practiced
upon or would be more liable to abuse than calculated to answer any
good purpose. The mensuration of the faculties of the mind has, I
believe, no place in the catalogue of known arts. An attempt to fix
the boundary between the regions of ability and inability, would
much oftener give scope to personal and party attachments and
enmities than advance the interests of justice or the public good.
The result, except in the case of insanity, must for the most part
be arbitrary; and insanity, without any formal or express provision,
may be safely pronounced to be a virtual disqualification.
The constitution of New York, to avoid investigations that must
forever be vague and dangerous, has taken a particular age as the
criterion of inability. No man can be a judge beyond sixty. I
believe there are few at present who do not disapprove of this
provision. There is no station, in relation to which it is less
proper than to that of a judge. The deliberating and comparing
faculties generally preserve their strength much beyond that period
in men who survive it; and when, in addition to this circumstance,
we consider how few there are who outlive the season of intellectual
vigor, and how improbable it is that any considerable portion of the
bench, whether more or less numerous, should be in such a situation
at the same time, we shall be ready to conclude that limitations of
this sort have little to recommend them. In a republic, where
fortunes are not affluent, and pensions not expedient, the
dismission of men from stations in which they have served their
country long and usefully, on which they depend for subsistence, and
from which it will be too late to resort to any other occupation for
a livelihood, ought to have some better apology to humanity than is
to be found in the imaginary danger of a superannuated bench.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide Constitution of Massachusetts, Chapter 2, Section 1, Article
13.
FEDERALIST No. 80.
The Powers of the Judiciary
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
TO JUDGE with accuracy of the proper extent of the federal
judicature, it will be necessary to consider, in the first place,
what are its proper objects.
It seems scarcely to admit of controversy, that the judiciary
authority of the Union ought to extend to these several descriptions
of cases: 1st, to all those which arise out of the laws of the
United States, passed in pursuance of their just and constitutional
powers of legislation; 2d, to all those which concern the execution
of the provisions expressly contained in the articles of Union; 3d,
to all those in which the United States are a party; 4th, to all
those which involve the PEACE of the CONFEDERACY, whether they
relate to the intercourse between the United States and foreign
nations, or to that between the States themselves; 5th, to all those
which originate on the high seas, and are of admiralty or maritime
jurisdiction; and, lastly, to all those in which the State tribunals
cannot be supposed to be impartial and unbiased.
The first point depends upon this obvious consideration, that there
ought always to be a constitutional method of giving efficacy to
constitutional provisions. What, for instance, would avail
restrictions on the authority of the State legislatures, without
some constitutional mode of enforcing the observance of them? The
States, by the plan of the convention, are prohibited from doing a
variety of things, some of which are incompatible with the interests
of the Union, and others with the principles of good government. The
imposition of duties on imported articles, and the emission of paper
money, are specimens of each kind. No man of sense will believe,
that such prohibitions would be scrupulously regarded, without some
effectual power in the government to restrain or correct the
infractions of them. This power must either be a direct negative on
the State laws, or an authority in the federal courts to overrule
such as might be in manifest contravention of the articles of Union.
There is no third course that I can imagine. The latter appears to
have been thought by the convention preferable to the former, and, I
presume, will be most agreeable to the States.
As to the second point, it is impossible, by any argument or
comment, to make it clearer than it is in itself. If there are such
things as political axioms, the propriety of the judicial power of a
government being coextensive with its legislative, may be ranked
among the number. The mere necessity of uniformity in the
interpretation of the national laws, decides the question. Thirteen
independent courts of final jurisdiction over the same causes,
arising upon the same laws, is a hydra in government, from which
nothing but contradiction and confusion can proceed.
Still less need be said in regard to the third point. Controversies
between the nation and its members or citizens, can only be properly
referred to the national tribunals. Any other plan would be contrary
to reason, to precedent, and to decorum.
The fourth point rests on this plain proposition, that the peace of
the WHOLE ought not to be left at the disposal of a PART. The Union
will undoubtedly be answerable to foreign powers for the conduct of
its members. And the responsibility for an injury ought ever to be
accompanied with the faculty of preventing it. As the denial or
perversion of justice by the sentences of courts, as well as in any
other manner, is with reason classed among the just causes of war,
it will follow that the federal judiciary ought to have cognizance
of all causes in which the citizens of other countries are
concerned. This is not less essential to the preservation of the
public faith, than to the security of the public tranquillity. A
distinction may perhaps be imagined between cases arising upon
treaties and the laws of nations and those which may stand merely on
the footing of the municipal law. The former kind may be supposed
proper for the federal jurisdiction, the latter for that of the
States. But it is at least problematical, whether an unjust sentence
against a foreigner, where the subject of controversy was wholly
relative to the lex loci, would not, if unredressed, be an
aggression upon his sovereign, as well as one which violated the
stipulations of a treaty or the general law of nations. And a still
greater objection to the distinction would result from the immense
difficulty, if not impossibility, of a practical discrimination
between the cases of one complexion and those of the other. So great
a proportion of the cases in which foreigners are parties, involve
national questions, that it is by far most safe and most expedient
to refer all those in which they are concerned to the national
tribunals.
The power of determining causes between two States, between one
State and the citizens of another, and between the citizens of
different States, is perhaps not less essential to the peace of the
Union than that which has been just examined. History gives us a
horrid picture of the dissensions and private wars which distracted
and desolated Germany prior to the institution of the Imperial
Chamber by Maximilian, towards the close of the fifteenth century;
and informs us, at the same time, of the vast influence of that
institution in appeasing the disorders and establishing the
tranquillity of the empire. This was a court invested with authority
to decide finally all differences among the members of the Germanic
body.
A method of terminating territorial disputes between the States,
under the authority of the federal head, was not unattended to, even
in the imperfect system by which they have been hitherto held
together. But there are many other sources, besides interfering
claims of boundary, from which bickerings and animosities may spring
up among the members of the Union. To some of these we have been
witnesses in the course of our past experience. It will readily be
conjectured that I allude to the fraudulent laws which have been
passed in too many of the States. And though the proposed
Constitution establishes particular guards against the repetition of
those instances which have heretofore made their appearance, yet it
is warrantable to apprehend that the spirit which produced them will
assume new shapes, that could not be foreseen nor specifically
provided against. Whatever practices may have a tendency to disturb
the harmony between the States, are proper objects of federal
superintendence and control.
It may be esteemed the basis of the Union, that "the citizens of
each State shall be entitled to all the privileges and immunities of
citizens of the several States." And if it be a just principle that
every government ought to possess the means of executing its own
provisions by its own authority, it will follow, that in order to
the inviolable maintenance of that equality of privileges and
immunities to which the citizens of the Union will be entitled, the
national judiciary ought to preside in all cases in which one State
or its citizens are opposed to another State or its citizens. To
secure the full effect of so fundamental a provision against all
evasion and subterfuge, it is necessary that its construction should
be committed to that tribunal which, having no local attachments,
will be likely to be impartial between the different States and
their citizens, and which, owing its official existence to the
Union, will never be likely to feel any bias inauspicious to the
principles on which it is founded.
The fifth point will demand little animadversion. The most bigoted
idolizers of State authority have not thus far shown a disposition
to deny the national judiciary the cognizances of maritime causes.
These so generally depend on the laws of nations, and so commonly
affect the rights of foreigners, that they fall within the
considerations which are relative to the public peace. The most
important part of them are, by the present Confederation, submitted
to federal jurisdiction.
The reasonableness of the agency of the national courts in cases in
which the State tribunals cannot be supposed to be impartial, speaks
for itself. No man ought certainly to be a judge in his own cause,
or in any cause in respect to which he has the least interest or
bias. This principle has no inconsiderable weight in designating the
federal courts as the proper tribunals for the determination of
controversies between different States and their citizens. And it
ought to have the same operation in regard to some cases between
citizens of the same State. Claims to land under grants of different
States, founded upon adverse pretensions of boundary, are of this
description. The courts of neither of the granting States could be
expected to be unbiased. The laws may have even prejudged the
question, and tied the courts down to decisions in favor of the
grants of the State to which they belonged. And even where this had
not been done, it would be natural that the judges, as men, should
feel a strong predilection to the claims of their own government.
Having thus laid down and discussed the principles which ought to
regulate the constitution of the federal judiciary, we will proceed
to test, by these principles, the particular powers of which,
according to the plan of the convention, it is to be composed. It is
to comprehend "all cases in law and equity arising under the
Constitution, the laws of the United States, and treaties made, or
which shall be made, under their authority; to all cases affecting
ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls; to all cases of
admiralty and maritime jurisdiction; to controversies to which the
United States shall be a party; to controversies between two or more
States; between a State and citizens of another State; between
citizens of different States; between citizens of the same State
claiming lands and grants of different States; and between a State
or the citizens thereof and foreign states, citizens, and subjects."
This constitutes the entire mass of the judicial authority of the
Union. Let us now review it in detail. It is, then, to extend:
First. To all cases in law and equity, arising under the
Constitution and the laws of the United States. This corresponds
with the two first classes of causes, which have been enumerated, as
proper for the jurisdiction of the United States. It has been asked,
what is meant by "cases arising under the Constitution," in
contradiction from those "arising under the laws of the United
States"? The difference has been already explained. All the
restrictions upon the authority of the State legislatures furnish
examples of it. They are not, for instance, to emit paper money; but
the interdiction results from the Constitution, and will have no
connection with any law of the United States. Should paper money,
notwithstanding, be emited, the controversies concerning it would be
cases arising under the Constitution and not the laws of the United
States, in the ordinary signification of the terms. This may serve
as a sample of the whole.
It has also been asked, what need of the word "equity". What
equitable causes can grow out of the Constitution and laws of the
United States? There is hardly a subject of litigation between
individuals, which may not involve those ingredients of fraud,
accident, trust, or hardship, which would render the matter an
object of equitable rather than of legal jurisdiction, as the
distinction is known and established in several of the States. It is
the peculiar province, for instance, of a court of equity to relieve
against what are called hard bargains: these are contracts in which,
though there may have been no direct fraud or deceit, sufficient to
invalidate them in a court of law, yet there may have been some
undue and unconscionable advantage taken of the necessities or
misfortunes of one of the parties, which a court of equity would not
tolerate. In such cases, where foreigners were concerned on either
side, it would be impossible for the federal judicatories to do
justice without an equitable as well as a legal jurisdiction.
Agreements to convey lands claimed under the grants of different
States, may afford another example of the necessity of an equitable
jurisdiction in the federal courts. This reasoning may not be so
palpable in those States where the formal and technical distinction
between LAW and EQUITY is not maintained, as in this State, where it
is exemplified by every day's practice.
The judiciary authority of the Union is to extend:
Second. To treaties made, or which shall be made, under the
authority of the United States, and to all cases affecting
ambassadors, other public ministers, and consuls. These belong to
the fourth class of the enumerated cases, as they have an evident
connection with the preservation of the national peace.
Third. To cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction. These form,
altogether, the fifth of the enumerated classes of causes proper for
the cognizance of the national courts.
Fourth. To controversies to which the United States shall be a
party. These constitute the third of those classes.
Fifth. To controversies between two or more States; between a State
and citizens of another State; between citizens of different States.
These belong to the fourth of those classes, and partake, in some
measure, of the nature of the last.
Sixth. To cases between the citizens of the same State, claiming
lands under grants of different States. These fall within the last
class, and are the only instances in which the proposed Constitution
directly contemplates the cognizance of disputes between the
citizens of the same State.
Seventh. To cases between a State and the citizens thereof, and
foreign States, citizens, or subjects. These have been already
explained to belong to the fourth of the enumerated classes, and
have been shown to be, in a peculiar manner, the proper subjects of
the national judicature.
From this review of the particular powers of the federal judiciary,
as marked out in the Constitution, it appears that they are all
conformable to the principles which ought to have governed the
structure of that department, and which were necessary to the
perfection of the system. If some partial inconveniences should
appear to be connected with the incorporation of any of them into
the plan, it ought to be recollected that the national legislature
will have ample authority to make such exceptions, and to prescribe
such regulations as will be calculated to obviate or remove these
inconveniences. The possibility of particular mischiefs can never be
viewed, by a wellinformed mind, as a solid objection to a general
principle, which is calculated to avoid general mischiefs and to
obtain general advantages.
PUBLIUS
FEDERALIST No. 81.
The Judiciary Continued, and the Distribution of the Judicial
Authority.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788.
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
LET US now return to the partition of the judiciary authority
between different courts, and their relations to each other.
"The judicial power of the United States is" (by the plan of the
convention) "to be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such inferior
courts as the Congress may, from time to time, ordain and
establish."(1)
That there ought to be one court of supreme and final jurisdiction,
is a proposition which is not likely to be contested. The reasons
for it have been assigned in another place, and are too obvious to
need repetition. The only question that seems to have been raised
concerning it, is, whether it ought to be a distinct body or a
branch of the legislature. The same contradiction is observable in
regard to this matter which has been remarked in several other
cases. The very men who object to the Senate as a court of
impeachments, on the ground of an improper intermixture of powers,
advocate, by implication at least, the propriety of vesting the
ultimate decision of all causes, in the whole or in a part of the
legislative body.
The arguments, or rather suggestions, upon which this charge is
founded, are to this effect: "The authority of the proposed Supreme
Court of the United States, which is to be a separate and
independent body, will be superior to that of the legislature. The
power of construing the laws according to the spirit of the
Constitution, will enable that court to mould them into whatever
shape it may think proper; especially as its decisions will not be
in any manner subject to the revision or correction of the
legislative body. This is as unprecedented as it is dangerous. In
Britain, the judicial power, in the last resort, resides in the
House of Lords, which is a branch of the legislature; and this part
of the British government has been imitated in the State
constitutions in general. The Parliament of Great Britain, and the
legislatures of the several States, can at any time rectify, by law,
the exceptionable decisions of their respective courts. But the
errors and usurpations of the Supreme Court of the United States
will be uncontrollable and remediless." This, upon examination, will
be found to be made up altogether of false reasoning upon
misconceived fact.
In the first place, there is not a syllable in the plan under
consideration which directly empowers the national courts to
construe the laws according to the spirit of the Constitution, or
which gives them any greater latitude in this respect than may be
claimed by the courts of every State. I admit, however, that the
Constitution ought to be the standard of construction for the laws,
and that wherever there is an evident opposition, the laws ought to
give place to the Constitution. But this doctrine is not deducible
from any circumstance peculiar to the plan of the convention, but
from the general theory of a limited Constitution; and as far as it
is true, is equally applicable to most, if not to all the State
governments. There can be no objection, therefore, on this account,
to the federal judicature which will not lie against the local
judicatures in general, and which will not serve to condemn every
constitution that attempts to set bounds to legislative discretion.
But perhaps the force of the objection may be thought to consist in
the particular organization of the Supreme Court; in its being
composed of a distinct body of magistrates, instead of being one of
the branches of the legislature, as in the government of Great
Britain and that of the State. To insist upon this point, the
authors of the objection must renounce the meaning they have labored
to annex to the celebrated maxim, requiring a separation of the
departments of power. It shall, nevertheless, be conceded to them,
agreeably to the interpretation given to that maxim in the course of
these papers, that it is not violated by vesting the ultimate power
of judging in a PART of the legislative body. But though this be not
an absolute violation of that excellent rule, yet it verges so
nearly upon it, as on this account alone to be less eligible than
the mode preferred by the convention. From a body which had even a
partial agency in passing bad laws, we could rarely expect a
disposition to temper and moderate them in the application. The same
spirit which had operated in making them, would be too apt in
interpreting them; still less could it be expected that men who had
infringed the Constitution in the character of legislators, would be
disposed to repair the breach in the character of judges. Nor is
this all. Every reason which recommends the tenure of good behavior
for judicial offices, militates against placing the judiciary power,
in the last resort, in a body composed of men chosen for a limited
period. There is an absurdity in referring the determination of
causes, in the first instance, to judges of permanent standing; in
the last, to those of a temporary and mutable constitution. And
there is a still greater absurdity in subjecting the decisions of
men, selected for their knowledge of the laws, acquired by long and
laborious study, to the revision and control of men who, for want of
the same advantage, cannot but be deficient in that knowledge. The
members of the legislature will rarely be chosen with a view to
those qualifications which fit men for the stations of judges; and
as, on this account, there will be great reason to apprehend all the
ill consequences of defective information, so, on account of the
natural propensity of such bodies to party divisions, there will be
no less reason to fear that the pestilential breath of faction may
poison the fountains of justice. The habit of being continually
marshalled on opposite sides will be too apt to stifle the voice
both of law and of equity.
These considerations teach us to applaud the wisdom of those States
who have committed the judicial power, in the last resort, not to a
part of the legislature, but to distinct and independent bodies of
men. Contrary to the supposition of those who have represented the
plan of the convention, in this respect, as novel and unprecedented,
it is but a copy of the constitutions of New Hampshire,
Massachusetts, Pennsylvania, Delaware, Maryland, Virginia, North
Carolina, South Carolina, and Georgia; and the preference which has
been given to those models is highly to be commended.
It is not true, in the second place, that the Parliament of Great
Britain, or the legislatures of the particular States, can rectify
the exceptionable decisions of their respective courts, in any other
sense than might be done by a future legislature of the United
States. The theory, neither of the British, nor the State
constitutions, authorizes the revisal of a judicial sentence by a
legislative act. Nor is there any thing in the proposed
Constitution, more than in either of them, by which it is forbidden.
In the former, as well as in the latter, the impropriety of the
thing, on the general principles of law and reason, is the sole
obstacle. A legislature, without exceeding its province, cannot
reverse a determination once made in a particular case; though it
may prescribe a new rule for future cases. This is the principle,
and it applies in all its consequences, exactly in the same manner
and extent, to the State governments, as to the national government
now under consideration. Not the least difference can be pointed out
in any view of the subject.
It may in the last place be observed that the supposed danger of
judiciary encroachments on the legislative authority, which has been
upon many occasions reiterated, is in reality a phantom. Particular
misconstructions and contraventions of the will of the legislature
may now and then happen; but they can never be so extensive as to
amount to an inconvenience, or in any sensible degree to affect the
order of the political system. This may be inferred with certainty,
from the general nature of the judicial power, from the objects to
which it relates, from the manner in which it is exercised, from its
comparative weakness, and from its total incapacity to support its
usurpations by force. And the inference is greatly fortified by the
consideration of the important constitutional check which the power
of instituting impeachments in one part of the legislative body, and
of determining upon them in the other, would give to that body upon
the members of the judicial department. This is alone a complete
security. There never can be danger that the judges, by a series of
deliberate usurpations on the authority of the legislature, would
hazard the united resentment of the body intrusted with it, while
this body was possessed of the means of punishing their presumption,
by degrading them from their stations. While this ought to remove
all apprehensions on the subject, it affords, at the same time, a
cogent argument for constituting the Senate a court for the trial of
impeachments.
Having now examined, and, I trust, removed the objections to the
distinct and independent organization of the Supreme Court, I
proceed to consider the propriety of the power of constituting
inferior courts,(2) and the relations which will subsist between
these and the former.
The power of constituting inferior courts is evidently calculated to
obviate the necessity of having recourse to the Supreme Court in
every case of federal cognizance. It is intended to enable the
national government to institute or authorize, in each State or
district of the United States, a tribunal competent to the
determination of matters of national jurisdiction within its limits.
But why, it is asked, might not the same purpose have been
accomplished by the instrumentality of the State courts? This admits
of different answers. Though the fitness and competency of those
courts should be allowed in the utmost latitude, yet the substance
of the power in question may still be regarded as a necessary part
of the plan, if it were only to empower the national legislature to
commit to them the cognizance of causes arising out of the national
Constitution. To confer the power of determining such causes upon
the existing courts of the several States, would perhaps be as much
"to constitute tribunals," as to create new courts with the like
power. But ought not a more direct and explicit provision to have
been made in favor of the State courts? There are, in my opinion,
substantial reasons against such a provision: the most discerning
cannot foresee how far the prevalency of a local spirit may be found
to disqualify the local tribunals for the jurisdiction of national
causes; whilst every man may discover, that courts constituted like
those of some of the States would be improper channels of the
judicial authority of the Union. State judges, holding their offices
during pleasure, or from year to year, will be too little
independent to be relied upon for an inflexible execution of the
national laws. And if there was a necessity for confiding the
original cognizance of causes arising under those laws to them there
would be a correspondent necessity for leaving the door of appeal as
wide as possible. In proportion to the grounds of confidence in, or
distrust of, the subordinate tribunals, ought to be the facility or
difficulty of appeals. And well satisfied as I am of the propriety
of the appellate jurisdiction, in the several classes of causes to
which it is extended by the plan of the convention. I should
consider every thing calculated to give, in practice, an
unrestrained course to appeals, as a source of public and private
inconvenience.
I am not sure, but that it will be found highly expedient and
useful, to divide the United States into four or five or half a
dozen districts; and to institute a federal court in each district,
in lieu of one in every State. The judges of these courts, with the
aid of the State judges, may hold circuits for the trial of causes
in the several parts of the respective districts. Justice through
them may be administered with ease and despatch; and appeals may be
safely circumscribed within a narrow compass. This plan appears to
me at present the most eligible of any that could be adopted; and in
order to it, it is necessary that the power of constituting inferior
courts should exist in the full extent in which it is to be found in
the proposed Constitution.
These reasons seem sufficient to satisfy a candid mind, that the
want of such a power would have been a great defect in the plan. Let
us now examine in what manner the judicial authority is to be
distributed between the supreme and the inferior courts of the
Union.
The Supreme Court is to be invested with original jurisdiction, only
"in cases affecting ambassadors, other public ministers, and
consuls, and those in which A STATE shall be a party." Public
ministers of every class are the immediate representatives of their
sovereigns. All questions in which they are concerned are so
directly connected with the public peace, that, as well for the
preservation of this, as out of respect to the sovereignties they
represent, it is both expedient and proper that such questions
should be submitted in the first instance to the highest judicatory
of the nation. Though consuls have not in strictness a diplomatic
character, yet as they are the public agents of the nations to which
they belong, the same observation is in a great measure applicable
to them. In cases in which a State might happen to be a party, it
would ill suit its dignity to be turned over to an inferior
tribunal.
Though it may rather be a digression from the immediate subject of
this paper, I shall take occasion to mention here a supposition
which has excited some alarm upon very mistaken grounds. It has been
suggested that an assignment of the public securities of one State
to the citizens of another, would enable them to prosecute that
State in the federal courts for the amount of those securities; a
suggestion which the following considerations prove to be without
foundation.
It is inherent in the nature of sovereignty not to be amenable to
the suit of an individual without its consent. This is the general
sense, and the general practice of mankind; and the exemption, as
one of the attributes of sovereignty, is now enjoyed by the
government of every State in the Union. Unless, therefore, there is
a surrender of this immunity in the plan of the convention, it will
remain with the States, and the danger intimated must be merely
ideal. The circumstances which are necessary to produce an
alienation of State sovereignty were discussed in considering the
article of taxation, and need not be repeated here. A recurrence to
the principles there established will satisfy us, that there is no
color to pretend that the State governments would, by the adoption
of that plan, be divested of the privilege of paying their own debts
in their own way, free from every constraint but that which flows
from the obligations of good faith. The contracts between a nation
and individuals are only binding on the conscience of the sovereign,
and have no pretensions to a compulsive force. They confer no right
of action, independent of the sovereign will. To what purpose would
it be to authorize suits against States for the debts they owe? How
could recoveries be enforced? It is evident, it could not be done
without waging war against the contracting State; and to ascribe to
the federal courts, by mere implication, and in destruction of a
pre-existing right of the State governments, a power which would
involve such a consequence, would be altogether forced and
unwarrantable.
Let us resume the train of our observations. We have seen that the
original jurisdiction of the Supreme Court would be confined to two
classes of causes, and those of a nature rarely to occur. In all
other cases of federal cognizance, the original jurisdiction would
appertain to the inferior tribunals; and the Supreme Court would
have nothing more than an appellate jurisdiction, "with such
exceptions and under such regulations as the Congress shall make."
The propriety of this appellate jurisdiction has been scarcely
called in question in regard to matters of law; but the clamors have
been loud against it as applied to matters of fact. Some
well-intentioned men in this State, deriving their notions from the
language and forms which obtain in our courts, have been induced to
consider it as an implied supersedure of the trial by jury, in favor
of the civil-law mode of trial, which prevails in our courts of
admiralty, probate, and chancery. A technical sense has been affixed
to the term "appellate," which, in our law parlance, is commonly
used in reference to appeals in the course of the civil law. But if
I am not misinformed, the same meaning would not be given to it in
any part of New England. There an appeal from one jury to another,
is familiar both in language and practice, and is even a matter of
course, until there have been two verdicts on one side. The word
"appellate," therefore, will not be understood in the same sense in
New England as in New York, which shows the impropriety of a
technical interpretation derived from the jurisprudence of any
particular State. The expression, taken in the abstract, denotes
nothing more than the power of one tribunal to review the
proceedings of another, either as to the law or fact, or both. The
mode of doing it may depend on ancient custom or legislative
provision (in a new government it must depend on the latter), and
may be with or without the aid of a jury, as may be judged
advisable. If, therefore, the re-examination of a fact once
determined by a jury, should in any case be admitted under the
proposed Constitution, it may be so regulated as to be done by a
second jury, either by remanding the cause to the court below for a
second trial of the fact, or by directing an issue immediately out
of the Supreme Court.
But it does not follow that the re-examination of a fact once
ascertained by a jury, will be permitted in the Supreme Court. Why
may not it be said, with the strictest propriety, when a writ of
error is brought from an inferior to a superior court of law in this
State, that the latter has jurisdiction of the fact as well as the
law? It is true it cannot institute a new inquiry concerning the
fact, but it takes cognizance of it as it appears upon the record,
and pronounces the law arising upon it.(3) This is jurisdiction of
both fact and law; nor is it even possible to separate them. Though
the common-law courts of this State ascertain disputed facts by a
jury, yet they unquestionably have jurisdiction of both fact and
law; and accordingly when the former is agreed in the pleadings,
they have no recourse to a jury, but proceed at once to judgment. I
contend, therefore, on this ground, that the expressions, "appellate
jurisdiction, both as to law and fact," do not necessarily imply a
re-examination in the Supreme Court of facts decided by juries in
the inferior courts.
The following train of ideas may well be imagined to have influenced
the convention, in relation to this particular provision. The
appellate jurisdiction of the Supreme Court (it may have been
argued) will extend to causes determinable in different modes, some
in the course of the COMMON LAW, others in the course of the CIVIL
LAW. In the former, the revision of the law only will be, generally
speaking, the proper province of the Supreme Court; in the latter,
the re-examination of the fact is agreeable to usage, and in some
cases, of which prize causes are an example, might be essential to
the preservation of the public peace. It is therefore necessary that
the appellate jurisdiction should, in certain cases, extend in the
broadest sense to matters of fact. It will not answer to make an
express exception of cases which shall have been originally tried by
a jury, because in the courts of some of the States all causes are
tried in this mode(4); and such an exception would preclude the
revision of matters of fact, as well where it might be proper, as
where it might be improper. To avoid all inconveniencies, it will be
safest to declare generally, that the Supreme Court shall possess
appellate jurisdiction both as to law and fact, and that this
jurisdiction shall be subject to such exceptions and regulations as
the national legislature may prescribe. This will enable the
government to modify it in such a manner as will best answer the
ends of public justice and security.
This view of the matter, at any rate, puts it out of all doubt that
the supposed abolition of the trial by jury, by the operation of
this provision, is fallacious and untrue. The legislature of the
United States would certainly have full power to provide, that in
appeals to the Supreme Court there should be no re-examination of
facts where they had been tried in the original causes by juries.
This would certainly be an authorized exception; but if, for the
reason already intimated, it should be thought too extensive, it
might be qualified with a limitation to such causes only as are
determinable at common law in that mode of trial.
The amount of the observations hitherto made on the authority of the
judicial department is this: that it has been carefully restricted
to those causes which are manifestly proper for the cognizance of
the national judicature; that in the partition of this authority a
very small portion of original jurisdiction has been preserved to
the Supreme Court, and the rest consigned to the subordinate
tribunals; that the Supreme Court will possess an appellate
jurisdiction, both as to law and fact, in all the cases referred to
them, both subject to any exceptions and regulations which may be
thought advisable; that this appellate jurisdiction does, in no
case, abolish the trial by jury; and that an ordinary degree of
prudence and integrity in the national councils will insure us solid
advantages from the establishment of the proposed judiciary, without
exposing us to any of the inconveniences which have been predicted
from that source.
PUBLIUS
1. Article 3, Sec. 1.
2. This power has been absurdly represented as intended to abolish
all the county courts in the several States, which are commonly
called inferior courts. But the expressions of the Constitution are,
to constitute "tribunals INFERIOR TO THE SUPREME COURT"; and the
evident design of the provision is to enable the institution of
local courts, subordinate to the Supreme, either in States or larger
districts. It is ridiculous to imagine that county courts were in
contemplation.
3. This word is composed of JUS and DICTIO, juris dictio or a
speaking and pronouncing of the law.
4. I hold that the States will have concurrent jurisdiction with the
subordinate federal judicatories, in many cases of federal
cognizance, as will be explained in my next paper.
FEDERALIST No. 82.
The Judiciary Continued.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE erection of a new government, whatever care or wisdom may
distinguish the work, cannot fail to originate questions of
intricacy and nicety; and these may, in a particular manner, be
expected to flow from the establishment of a constitution founded
upon the total or partial incorporation of a number of distinct
sovereignties. 'Tis time only that can mature and perfect so
compound a system, can liquidate the meaning of all the parts, and
can adjust them to each other in a harmonious and consistent WHOLE.
Such questions, accordingly, have arisen upon the plan proposed by
the convention, and particularly concerning the judiciary
department. The principal of these respect the situation of the
State courts in regard to those causes which are to be submitted to
federal jurisdiction. Is this to be exclusive, or are those courts
to possess a concurrent jurisdiction? If the latter, in what
relation will they stand to the national tribunals? These are
inquiries which we meet with in the mouths of men of sense, and
which are certainly entitled to attention.
The principles established in a former paper(1) teach us that the
States will retain all pre-existing authorities which may not be
exclusively delegated to the federal head; and that this exclusive
delegation can only exist in one of three cases: where an exclusive
authority is, in express terms, granted to the Union; or where a
particular authority is granted to the Union, and the exercise of a
like authority is prohibited to the States; or where an authority is
granted to the Union, with which a similar authority in the States
would be utterly incompatible. Though these principles may not apply
with the same force to the judiciary as to the legislative power,
yet I am inclined to think that they are, in the main, just with
respect to the former, as well as the latter. And under this
impression, I shall lay it down as a rule, that the State courts
will retain the jurisdiction they now have, unless it appears to be
taken away in one of the enumerated modes.
The only thing in the proposed Constitution, which wears the
appearance of confining the causes of federal cognizance to the
federal courts, is contained in this passage: "THE JUDICIAL POWER of
the United States shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and in such
inferior courts as the Congress shall from time to time ordain and
establish." This might either be construed to signify, that the
supreme and subordinate courts of the Union should alone have the
power of deciding those causes to which their authority is to
extend; or simply to denote, that the organs of the national
judiciary should be one Supreme Court, and as many subordinate
courts as Congress should think proper to appoint; or in other
words, that the United States should exercise the judicial power
with which they are to be invested, through one supreme tribunal,
and a certain number of inferior ones, to be instituted by them. The
first excludes, the last admits, the concurrent jurisdiction of the
State tribunals; and as the first would amount to an alienation of
State power by implication, the last appears to me the most natural
and the most defensible construction.
But this doctrine of concurrent jurisdiction is only clearly
applicable to those descriptions of causes of which the State courts
have previous cognizance. It is not equally evident in relation to
cases which may grow out of, and be peculiar to, the Constitution to
be established; for not to allow the State courts a right of
jurisdiction in such cases, can hardly be considered as the
abridgment of a pre-existing authority. I mean not therefore to
contend that the United States, in the course of legislation upon
the objects intrusted to their direction, may not commit the
decision of causes arising upon a particular regulation to the
federal courts solely, if such a measure should be deemed expedient;
but I hold that the State courts will be divested of no part of
their primitive jurisdiction, further than may relate to an appeal;
and I am even of opinion that in every case in which they were not
expressly excluded by the future acts of the national legislature,
they will of course take cognizance of the causes to which those
acts may give birth. This I infer from the nature of judiciary
power, and from the general genius of the system. The judiciary
power of every government looks beyond its own local or municipal
laws, and in civil cases lays hold of all subjects of litigation
between parties within its jurisdiction, though the causes of
dispute are relative to the laws of the most distant part of the
globe. Those of Japan, not less than of New York, may furnish the
objects of legal discussion to our courts. When in addition to this
we consider the State governments and the national governments, as
they truly are, in the light of kindred systems, and as parts of ONE
WHOLE, the inference seems to be conclusive, that the State courts
would have a concurrent jurisdiction in all cases arising under the
laws of the Union, where it was not expressly prohibited.
Here another question occurs: What relation would subsist between
the national and State courts in these instances of concurrent
jurisdiction? I answer, that an appeal would certainly lie from the
latter, to the Supreme Court of the United States. The Constitution
in direct terms gives an appellate jurisdiction to the Supreme Court
in all the enumerated cases of federal cognizance in which it is not
to have an original one, without a single expression to confine its
operation to the inferior federal courts. The objects of appeal, not
the tribunals from which it is to be made, are alone contemplated.
From this circumstance, and from the reason of the thing, it ought
to be construed to extend to the State tribunals. Either this must
be the case, or the local courts must be excluded from a concurrent
jurisdiction in matters of national concern, else the judiciary
authority of the Union may be eluded at the pleasure of every
plaintiff or prosecutor. Neither of these consequences ought,
without evident necessity, to be involved; the latter would be
entirely inadmissible, as it would defeat some of the most important
and avowed purposes of the proposed government, and would
essentially embarrass its measures. Nor do I perceive any foundation
for such a supposition. Agreeably to the remark already made, the
national and State systems are to be regarded as ONE WHOLE. The
courts of the latter will of course be natural auxiliaries to the
execution of the laws of the Union, and an appeal from them will as
naturally lie to that tribunal which is destined to unite and
assimilate the principles of national justice and the rules of
national decisions. The evident aim of the plan of the convention
is, that all the causes of the specified classes shall, for weighty
public reasons, receive their original or final determination in the
courts of the Union. To confine, therefore, the general expressions
giving appellate jurisdiction to the Supreme Court, to appeals from
the subordinate federal courts, instead of allowing their extension
to the State courts, would be to abridge the latitude of the terms,
in subversion of the intent, contrary to every sound rule of
interpretation.
But could an appeal be made to lie from the State courts to the
subordinate federal judicatories? This is another of the questions
which have been raised, and of greater difficulty than the former.
The following considerations countenance the affirmative. The plan
of the convention, in the first place, authorizes the national
legislature "to constitute tribunals inferior to the Supreme
Court."(2) It declares, in the next place, that "the JUDICIAL POWER
of the United States shall be vested in one Supreme Court, and in
such inferior courts as Congress shall ordain and establish"; and it
then proceeds to enumerate the cases to which this judicial power
shall extend. It afterwards divides the jurisdiction of the Supreme
Court into original and appellate, but gives no definition of that
of the subordinate courts. The only outlines described for them, are
that they shall be "inferior to the Supreme Court," and that they
shall not exceed the specified limits of the federal judiciary.
Whether their authority shall be original or appellate, or both, is
not declared. All this seems to be left to the discretion of the
legislature. And this being the case, I perceive at present no
impediment to the establishment of an appeal from the State courts
to the subordinate national tribunals; and many advantages attending
the power of doing it may be imagined. It would diminish the motives
to the multiplication of federal courts, and would admit of
arrangements calculated to contract the appellate jurisdiction of
the Supreme Court. The State tribunals may then be left with a more
entire charge of federal causes; and appeals, in most cases in which
they may be deemed proper, instead of being carried to the Supreme
Court, may be made to lie from the State courts to district courts
of the Union.
PUBLIUS
1. No. 31.
2. Sec. 8, Art. 1.
FEDERALIST No. 83.
The Judiciary Continued in Relation to Trial by Jury
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
THE objection to the plan of the convention, which has met with most
success in this State, and perhaps in several of the other States,
is that relative to the want of a constitutional provision for the
trial by jury in civil cases. The disingenuous form in which this
objection is usually stated has been repeatedly adverted to and
exposed, but continues to be pursued in all the conversations and
writings of the opponents of the plan. The mere silence of the
Constitution in regard to civil causes, is represented as an
abolition of the trial by jury, and the declamations to which it has
afforded a pretext are artfully calculated to induce a persuasion
that this pretended abolition is complete and universal, extending
not only to every species of civil, but even to criminal causes. To
argue with respect to the latter would, however, be as vain and
fruitless as to attempt the serious proof of the existence of
matter, or to demonstrate any of those propositions which, by their
own internal evidence, force conviction, when expressed in language
adapted to convey their meaning.
With regard to civil causes, subtleties almost too contemptible for
refutation have been employed to countenance the surmise that a
thing which is only not provided for, is entirely abolished. Every
man of discernment must at once perceive the wide difference between
silence and abolition. But as the inventors of this fallacy have
attempted to support it by certain legal maxims of interpretation,
which they have perverted from their true meaning, it may not be
wholly useless to explore the ground they have taken.
The maxims on which they rely are of this nature: "A specification
of particulars is an exclusion of generals"; or, "The expression of
one thing is the exclusion of another." Hence, say they, as the
Constitution has established the trial by jury in criminal cases,
and is silent in respect to civil, this silence is an implied
prohibition of trial by jury in regard to the latter.
The rules of legal interpretation are rules of common sense, adopted
by the courts in the construction of the laws. The true test,
therefore, of a just application of them is its conformity to the
source from which they are derived. This being the case, let me ask
if it is consistent with common-sense to suppose that a provision
obliging the legislative power to commit the trial of criminal
causes to juries, is a privation of its right to authorize or permit
that mode of trial in other cases? Is it natural to suppose, that a
command to do one thing is a prohibition to the doing of another,
which there was a previous power to do, and which is not
incompatible with the thing commanded to be done? If such a
supposition would be unnatural and unreasonable, it cannot be
rational to maintain that an injunction of the trial by jury in
certain cases is an interdiction of it in others.
A power to constitute courts is a power to prescribe the mode of
trial; and consequently, if nothing was said in the Constitution on
the subject of juries, the legislature would be at liberty either to
adopt that institution or to let it alone. This discretion, in
regard to criminal causes, is abridged by the express injunction of
trial by jury in all such cases; but it is, of course, left at large
in relation to civil causes, there being a total silence on this
head. The specification of an obligation to try all criminal causes
in a particular mode, excludes indeed the obligation or necessity of
employing the same mode in civil causes, but does not abridge the
power of the legislature to exercise that mode if it should be
thought proper. The pretense, therefore, that the national
legislature would not be at full liberty to submit all the civil
causes of federal cognizance to the determination of juries, is a
pretense destitute of all just foundation.
From these observations this conclusion results: that the trial by
jury in civil cases would not be abolished; and that the use
attempted to be made of the maxims which have been quoted, is
contrary to reason and common-sense, and therefore not admissible.
Even if these maxims had a precise technical sense, corresponding
with the idea of those who employ them upon the present occasion,
which, however, is not the case, they would still be inapplicable to
a constitution of government. In relation to such a subject, the
natural and obvious sense of its provisions, apart from any
technical rules, is the true criterion of construction.
Having now seen that the maxims relied upon will not bear the use
made of them, let us endeavor to ascertain their proper use and true
meaning. This will be best done by examples. The plan of the
convention declares that the power of Congress, or, in other words,
of the national legislature, shall extend to certain enumerated
cases. This specification of particulars evidently excludes all
pretension to a general legislative authority, because an
affirmative grant of special powers would be absurd, as well as
useless, if a general authority was intended.
In like manner the judicial authority of the federal judicatures is
declared by the Constitution to comprehend certain cases
particularly specified. The expression of those cases marks the
precise limits, beyond which the federal courts cannot extend their
jurisdiction, because the objects of their cognizance being
enumerated, the specification would be nugatory if it did not
exclude all ideas of more extensive authority.
These examples are sufficient to elucidate the maxims which have
been mentioned, and to designate the manner in which they should be
used. But that there may be no misapprehensions upon this subject, I
shall add one case more, to demonstrate the proper use of these
maxims, and the abuse which has been made of them.
Let us suppose that by the laws of this State a married woman was
incapable of conveying her estate, and that the legislature,
considering this as an evil, should enact that she might dispose of
her property by deed executed in the presence of a magistrate. In
such a case there can be no doubt but the specification would amount
to an exclusion of any other mode of conveyance, because the woman
having no previous power to alienate her property, the specification
determines the particular mode which she is, for that purpose, to
avail herself of. But let us further suppose that in a subsequent
part of the same act it should be declared that no woman should
dispose of any estate of a determinate value without the consent of
three of her nearest relations, signified by their signing the deed;
could it be inferred from this regulation that a married woman might
not procure the approbation of her relations to a deed for conveying
property of inferior value? The position is too absurd to merit a
refutation, and yet this is precisely the position which those must
establish who contend that the trial by juries in civil cases is
abolished, because it is expressly provided for in cases of a
criminal nature.
From these observations it must appear unquestionably true, that
trial by jury is in no case abolished by the proposed Constitution,
and it is equally true, that in those controversies between
individuals in which the great body of the people are likely to be
interested, that institution will remain precisely in the same
situation in which it is placed by the State constitutions, and will
be in no degree altered or influenced by the adoption of the plan
under consideration. The foundation of this assertion is, that the
national judiciary will have no cognizance of them, and of course
they will remain determinable as heretofore by the State courts
only, and in the manner which the State constitutions and laws
prescribe. All land causes, except where claims under the grants of
different States come into question, and all other controversies
between the citizens of the same State, unless where they depend
upon positive violations of the articles of union, by acts of the
State legislatures, will belong exclusively to the jurisdiction of
the State tribunals. Add to this, that admiralty causes, and almost
all those which are of equity jurisdiction, are determinable under
our own government without the intervention of a jury, and the
inference from the whole will be, that this institution, as it
exists with us at present, cannot possibly be affected to any great
extent by the proposed alteration in our system of government.
The friends and adversaries of the plan of the convention, if they
agree in nothing else, concur at least in the value they set upon
the trial by jury; or if there is any difference between them it
consists in this: the former regard it as a valuable safeguard to
liberty; the latter represent it as the very palladium of free
government. For my own part, the more the operation of the
institution has fallen under my observation, the more reason I have
discovered for holding it in high estimation; and it would be
altogether superfluous to examine to what extent it deserves to be
esteemed useful or essential in a representative republic, or how
much more merit it may be entitled to, as a defense against the
oppressions of an hereditary monarch, than as a barrier to the
tyranny of popular magistrates in a popular government. Discussions
of this kind would be more curious than beneficial, as all are
satisfied of the utility of the institution, and of its friendly
aspect to liberty. But I must acknowledge that I cannot readily
discern the inseparable connection between the existence of liberty,
and the trial by jury in civil cases. Arbitrary impeachments,
arbitrary methods of prosecuting pretended offenses, and arbitrary
punishments upon arbitrary convictions, have ever appeared to me to
be the great engines of judicial despotism; and these have all
relation to criminal proceedings. The trial by jury in criminal
cases, aided by the habeas corpus act, seems therefore to be alone
concerned in the question. And both of these are provided for, in
the most ample manner, in the plan of the convention.
It has been observed, that trial by jury is a safeguard against an
oppressive exercise of the power of taxation. This observation
deserves to be canvassed.
It is evident that it can have no influence upon the legislature, in
regard to the amount of taxes to be laid, to the objects upon which
they are to be imposed, or to the rule by which they are to be
apportioned. If it can have any influence, therefore, it must be
upon the mode of collection, and the conduct of the officers
intrusted with the execution of the revenue laws.
As to the mode of collection in this State, under our own
Constitution, the trial by jury is in most cases out of use. The
taxes are usually levied by the more summary proceeding of distress
and sale, as in cases of rent. And it is acknowledged on all hands,
that this is essential to the efficacy of the revenue laws. The
dilatory course of a trial at law to recover the taxes imposed on
individuals, would neither suit the exigencies of the public nor
promote the convenience of the citizens. It would often occasion an
accumulation of costs, more burdensome than the original sum of the
tax to be levied.
And as to the conduct of the officers of the revenue, the provision
in favor of trial by jury in criminal cases, will afford the
security aimed at. Wilful abuses of a public authority, to the
oppression of the subject, and every species of official extortion,
are offenses against the government, for which the persons who
commit them may be indicted and punished according to the
circumstances of the case.
The excellence of the trial by jury in civil cases appears to depend
on circumstances foreign to the preservation of liberty. The
strongest argument in its favor is, that it is a security against
corruption. As there is always more time and better opportunity to
tamper with a standing body of magistrates than with a jury summoned
for the occasion, there is room to suppose that a corrupt influence
would more easily find its way to the former than to the latter. The
force of this consideration is, however, diminished by others. The
sheriff, who is the summoner of ordinary juries, and the clerks of
courts, who have the nomination of special juries, are themselves
standing officers, and, acting individually, may be supposed more
accessible to the touch of corruption than the judges, who are a
collective body. It is not difficult to see, that it would be in the
power of those officers to select jurors who would serve the purpose
of the party as well as a corrupted bench. In the next place, it may
fairly be supposed, that there would be less difficulty in gaining
some of the jurors promiscuously taken from the public mass, than in
gaining men who had been chosen by the government for their probity
and good character. But making every deduction for these
considerations, the trial by jury must still be a valuable check
upon corruption. It greatly multiplies the impediments to its
success. As matters now stand, it would be necessary to corrupt both
court and jury; for where the jury have gone evidently wrong, the
court will generally grant a new trial, and it would be in most
cases of little use to practice upon the jury, unless the court
could be likewise gained. Here then is a double security; and it
will readily be perceived that this complicated agency tends to
preserve the purity of both institutions. By increasing the
obstacles to success, it discourages attempts to seduce the
integrity of either. The temptations to prostitution which the
judges might have to surmount, must certainly be much fewer, while
the co-operation of a jury is necessary, than they might be, if they
had themselves the exclusive determination of all causes.
Notwithstanding, therefore, the doubts I have expressed, as to the
essentiality of trial by jury in civil cases to liberty, I admit
that it is in most cases, under proper regulations, an excellent
method of determining questions of property; and that on this
account alone it would be entitled to a constitutional provision in
its favor if it were possible to fix the limits within which it
ought to be comprehended. There is, however, in all cases, great
difficulty in this; and men not blinded by enthusiasm must be
sensible that in a federal government, which is a composition of
societies whose ideas and institutions in relation to the matter
materially vary from each other, that difficulty must be not a
little augmented. For my own part, at every new view I take of the
subject, I become more convinced of the reality of the obstacles
which, we are authoritatively informed, prevented the insertion of a
provision on this head in the plan of the convention.
The great difference between the limits of the jury trial in
different States is not generally understood; and as it must have
considerable influence on the sentence we ought to pass upon the
omission complained of in regard to this point, an explanation of it
is necessary. In this State, our judicial establishments resemble,
more nearly than in any other, those of Great Britain. We have
courts of common law, courts of probates (analogous in certain
matters to the spiritual courts in England), a court of admiralty
and a court of chancery. In the courts of common law only, the trial
by jury prevails, and this with some exceptions. In all the others a
single judge presides, and proceeds in general either according to
the course of the canon or civil law, without the aid of a jury.(1)
In New Jersey, there is a court of chancery which proceeds like
ours, but neither courts of admiralty nor of probates, in the sense
in which these last are established with us. In that State the
courts of common law have the cognizance of those causes which with
us are determinable in the courts of admiralty and of probates, and
of course the jury trial is more extensive in New Jersey than in New
York. In Pennsylvania, this is perhaps still more the case, for
there is no court of chancery in that State, and its common-law
courts have equity jurisdiction. It has a court of admiralty, but
none of probates, at least on the plan of ours. Delaware has in
these respects imitated Pennsylvania. Maryland approaches more
nearly to New York, as does also Virginia, except that the latter
has a plurality of chancellors. North Carolina bears most affinity
to Pennsylvania; South Carolina to Virginia. I believe, however,
that in some of those States which have distinct courts of
admiralty, the causes depending in them are triable by juries. In
Georgia there are none but common-law courts, and an appeal of
course lies from the verdict of one jury to another, which is called
a special jury, and for which a particular mode of appointment is
marked out. In Connecticut, they have no distinct courts either of
chancery or of admiralty, and their courts of probates have no
jurisdiction of causes. Their common-law courts have admiralty and,
to a certain extent, equity jurisdiction. In cases of importance,
their General Assembly is the only court of chancery. In
Connecticut, therefore, the trial by jury extends in practice
further than in any other State yet mentioned. Rhode Island is, I
believe, in this particular, pretty much in the situation of
Connecticut. Massachusetts and New Hampshire, in regard to the
blending of law, equity, and admiralty jurisdictions, are in a
similar predicament. In the four Eastern States, the trial by jury
not only stands upon a broader foundation than in the other States,
but it is attended with a peculiarity unknown, in its full extent,
to any of them. There is an appeal of course from one jury to
another, till there have been two verdicts out of three on one side.
From this sketch it appears that there is a material diversity, as
well in the modification as in the extent of the institution of
trial by jury in civil cases, in the several States; and from this
fact these obvious reflections flow: first, that no general rule
could have been fixed upon by the convention which would have
corresponded with the circumstances of all the States; and secondly,
that more or at least as much might have been hazarded by taking the
system of any one State for a standard, as by omitting a provision
altogether and leaving the matter, as has been done, to legislative
regulation.
The propositions which have been made for supplying the omission
have rather served to illustrate than to obviate the difficulty of
the thing. The minority of Pennsylvania have proposed this mode of
expression for the purpose—"Trial by jury shall be as
heretofore"—and this I maintain would be senseless and nugatory. The
United States, in their united or collective capacity, are the
OBJECT to which all general provisions in the Constitution must
necessarily be construed to refer. Now it is evident that though
trial by jury, with various limitations, is known in each State
individually, yet in the United States, as such, it is at this time
altogether unknown, because the present federal government has no
judiciary power whatever; and consequently there is no proper
antecedent or previous establishment to which the term heretofore
could relate. It would therefore be destitute of a precise meaning,
and inoperative from its uncertainty.
As, on the one hand, the form of the provision would not fulfil the
intent of its proposers, so, on the other, if I apprehend that
intent rightly, it would be in itself inexpedient. I presume it to
be, that causes in the federal courts should be tried by jury, if,
in the State where the courts sat, that mode of trial would obtain
in a similar case in the State courts; that is to say, admiralty
causes should be tried in Connecticut by a jury, in New York without
one. The capricious operation of so dissimilar a method of trial in
the same cases, under the same government, is of itself sufficient
to indispose every wellregulated judgment towards it. Whether the
cause should be tried with or without a jury, would depend, in a
great number of cases, on the accidental situation of the court and
parties.
But this is not, in my estimation, the greatest objection. I feel a
deep and deliberate conviction that there are many cases in which
the trial by jury is an ineligible one. I think it so particularly
in cases which concern the public peace with foreign nations—that
is, in most cases where the question turns wholly on the laws of
nations. Of this nature, among others, are all prize causes. Juries
cannot be supposed competent to investigations that require a
thorough knowledge of the laws and usages of nations; and they will
sometimes be under the influence of impressions which will not
suffer them to pay sufficient regard to those considerations of
public policy which ought to guide their inquiries. There would of
course be always danger that the rights of other nations might be
infringed by their decisions, so as to afford occasions of reprisal
and war. Though the proper province of juries be to determine
matters of fact, yet in most cases legal consequences are
complicated with fact in such a manner as to render a separation
impracticable.
It will add great weight to this remark, in relation to prize
causes, to mention that the method of determining them has been
thought worthy of particular regulation in various treaties between
different powers of Europe, and that, pursuant to such treaties,
they are determinable in Great Britain, in the last resort, before
the king himself, in his privy council, where the fact, as well as
the law, undergoes a re-examination. This alone demonstrates the
impolicy of inserting a fundamental provision in the Constitution
which would make the State systems a standard for the national
government in the article under consideration, and the danger of
encumbering the government with any constitutional provisions the
propriety of which is not indisputable.
My convictions are equally strong that great advantages result from
the separation of the equity from the law jurisdiction, and that the
causes which belong to the former would be improperly committed to
juries. The great and primary use of a court of equity is to give
relief in extraordinary cases, which are exceptions(2) to general
rules. To unite the jurisdiction of such cases with the ordinary
jurisdiction, must have a tendency to unsettle the general rules,
and to subject every case that arises to a special determination;
while a separation of the one from the other has the contrary effect
of rendering one a sentinel over the other, and of keeping each
within the expedient limits. Besides this, the circumstances that
constitute cases proper for courts of equity are in many instances
so nice and intricate, that they are incompatible with the genius of
trials by jury. They require often such long, deliberate, and
critical investigation as would be impracticable to men called from
their occupations, and obliged to decide before they were permitted
to return to them. The simplicity and expedition which form the
distinguishing characters of this mode of trial require that the
matter to be decided should be reduced to some single and obvious
point; while the litigations usual in chancery frequently comprehend
a long train of minute and independent particulars.
It is true that the separation of the equity from the legal
jurisdiction is peculiar to the English system of jurisprudence:
which is the model that has been followed in several of the States.
But it is equally true that the trial by jury has been unknown in
every case in which they have been united. And the separation is
essential to the preservation of that institution in its pristine
purity. The nature of a court of equity will readily permit the
extension of its jurisdiction to matters of law; but it is not a
little to be suspected, that the attempt to extend the jurisdiction
of the courts of law to matters of equity will not only be
unproductive of the advantages which may be derived from courts of
chancery, on the plan upon which they are established in this State,
but will tend gradually to change the nature of the courts of law,
and to undermine the trial by jury, by introducing questions too
complicated for a decision in that mode.
These appeared to be conclusive reasons against incorporating the
systems of all the States, in the formation of the national
judiciary, according to what may be conjectured to have been the
attempt of the Pennsylvania minority. Let us now examine how far the
proposition of Massachusetts is calculated to remedy the supposed
defect.
It is in this form: "In civil actions between citizens of different
States, every issue of fact, arising in actions at common law, may
be tried by a jury if the parties, or either of them request it."
This, at best, is a proposition confined to one description of
causes; and the inference is fair, either that the Massachusetts
convention considered that as the only class of federal causes, in
which the trial by jury would be proper; or that if desirous of a
more extensive provision, they found it impracticable to devise one
which would properly answer the end. If the first, the omission of a
regulation respecting so partial an object can never be considered
as a material imperfection in the system. If the last, it affords a
strong corroboration of the extreme difficulty of the thing.
But this is not all: if we advert to the observations already made
respecting the courts that subsist in the several States of the
Union, and the different powers exercised by them, it will appear
that there are no expressions more vague and indeterminate than
those which have been employed to characterize that species of
causes which it is intended shall be entitled to a trial by jury. In
this State, the boundaries between actions at common law and actions
of equitable jurisdiction, are ascertained in conformity to the
rules which prevail in England upon that subject. In many of the
other States the boundaries are less precise. In some of them every
cause is to be tried in a court of common law, and upon that
foundation every action may be considered as an action at common
law, to be determined by a jury, if the parties, or either of them,
choose it. Hence the same irregularity and confusion would be
introduced by a compliance with this proposition, that I have
already noticed as resulting from the regulation proposed by the
Pennsylvania minority. In one State a cause would receive its
determination from a jury, if the parties, or either of them,
requested it; but in another State, a cause exactly similar to the
other, must be decided without the intervention of a jury, because
the State judicatories varied as to common-law jurisdiction.
It is obvious, therefore, that the Massachusetts proposition, upon
this subject cannot operate as a general regulation, until some
uniform plan, with respect to the limits of common-law and equitable
jurisdictions, shall be adopted by the different States. To devise a
plan of that kind is a task arduous in itself, and which it would
require much time and reflection to mature. It would be extremely
difficult, if not impossible, to suggest any general regulation that
would be acceptable to all the States in the Union, or that would
perfectly quadrate with the several State institutions.
It may be asked, Why could not a reference have been made to the
constitution of this State, taking that, which is allowed by me to
be a good one, as a standard for the United States? I answer that it
is not very probable the other States would entertain the same
opinion of our institutions as we do ourselves. It is natural to
suppose that they are hitherto more attached to their own, and that
each would struggle for the preference. If the plan of taking one
State as a model for the whole had been thought of in the
convention, it is to be presumed that the adoption of it in that
body would have been rendered difficult by the predilection of each
representation in favor of its own government; and it must be
uncertain which of the States would have been taken as the model. It
has been shown that many of them would be improper ones. And I leave
it to conjecture, whether, under all circumstances, it is most
likely that New York, or some other State, would have been
preferred. But admit that a judicious selection could have been
effected in the convention, still there would have been great danger
of jealousy and disgust in the other States, at the partiality which
had been shown to the institutions of one. The enemies of the plan
would have been furnished with a fine pretext for raising a host of
local prejudices against it, which perhaps might have hazarded, in
no inconsiderable degree, its final establishment.
To avoid the embarrassments of a definition of the cases which the
trial by jury ought to embrace, it is sometimes suggested by men of
enthusiastic tempers, that a provision might have been inserted for
establishing it in all cases whatsoever. For this I believe, no
precedent is to be found in any member of the Union; and the
considerations which have been stated in discussing the proposition
of the minority of Pennsylvania, must satisfy every sober mind that
the establishment of the trial by jury in all cases would have been
an unpardonable error in the plan.
In short, the more it is considered the more arduous will appear the
task of fashioning a provision in such a form as not to express too
little to answer the purpose, or too much to be advisable; or which
might not have opened other sources of opposition to the great and
essential object of introducing a firm national government.
I cannot but persuade myself, on the other hand, that the different
lights in which the subject has been placed in the course of these
observations, will go far towards removing in candid minds the
apprehensions they may have entertained on the point. They have
tended to show that the security of liberty is materially concerned
only in the trial by jury in criminal cases, which is provided for
in the most ample manner in the plan of the convention; that even in
far the greatest proportion of civil cases, and those in which the
great body of the community is interested, that mode of trial will
remain in its full force, as established in the State constitutions,
untouched and unaffected by the plan of the convention; that it is
in no case abolished(3) by that plan; and that there are great if
not insurmountable difficulties in the way of making any precise and
proper provision for it in a Constitution for the United States.
The best judges of the matter will be the least anxious for a
constitutional establishment of the trial by jury in civil cases,
and will be the most ready to admit that the changes which are
continually happening in the affairs of society may render a
different mode of determining questions of property preferable in
many cases in which that mode of trial now prevails. For my part, I
acknowledge myself to be convinced that even in this State it might
be advantageously extended to some cases to which it does not at
present apply, and might as advantageously be abridged in others. It
is conceded by all reasonable men that it ought not to obtain in all
cases. The examples of innovations which contract its ancient
limits, as well in these States as in Great Britain, afford a strong
presumption that its former extent has been found inconvenient, and
give room to suppose that future experience may discover the
propriety and utility of other exceptions. I suspect it to be
impossible in the nature of the thing to fix the salutary point at
which the operation of the institution ought to stop, and this is
with me a strong argument for leaving the matter to the discretion
of the legislature.
This is now clearly understood to be the case in Great Britain, and
it is equally so in the State of Connecticut; and yet it may be
safely affirmed that more numerous encroachments have been made upon
the trial by jury in this State since the Revolution, though
provided for by a positive article of our constitution, than has
happened in the same time either in Connecticut or Great Britain. It
may be added that these encroachments have generally originated with
the men who endeavor to persuade the people they are the warmest
defenders of popular liberty, but who have rarely suffered
constitutional obstacles to arrest them in a favorite career. The
truth is that the general GENIUS of a government is all that can be
substantially relied upon for permanent effects. Particular
provisions, though not altogether useless, have far less virtue and
efficacy than are commonly ascribed to them; and the want of them
will never be, with men of sound discernment, a decisive objection
to any plan which exhibits the leading characters of a good
government.
It certainly sounds not a little harsh and extraordinary to affirm
that there is no security for liberty in a Constitution which
expressly establishes the trial by jury in criminal cases, because
it does not do it in civil also; while it is a notorious fact that
Connecticut, which has been always regarded as the most popular
State in the Union, can boast of no constitutional provision for
either.
PUBLIUS
1. It has been erroneously insinuated with regard to the court of
chancery, that this court generally tries disputed facts by a jury.
The truth is, that references to a jury in that court rarely happen,
and are in no case necessary but where the validity of a devise of
land comes into question.
2. It is true that the principles by which that relief is governed
are now reduced to a regular system; but it is not the less true
that they are in the main applicable to SPECIAL circumstances, which
form exceptions to general rules.
3. Vide No. 81, in which the supposition of its being abolished by
the appellate jurisdiction in matters of fact being vested in the
Supreme Court, is examined and refuted.
FEDERALIST No. 84.
Certain General and Miscellaneous Objections to the Constitution
Considered and Answered.
From McLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
IN THE course of the foregoing review of the Constitution, I have
taken notice of, and endeavored to answer most of the objections
which have appeared against it. There, however, remain a few which
either did not fall naturally under any particular head or were
forgotten in their proper places. These shall now be discussed; but
as the subject has been drawn into great length, I shall so far
consult brevity as to comprise all my observations on these
miscellaneous points in a single paper.
The most considerable of the remaining objections is that the plan
of the convention contains no bill of rights. Among other answers
given to this, it has been upon different occasions remarked that
the constitutions of several of the States are in a similar
predicament. I add that New York is of the number. And yet the
opposers of the new system, in this State, who profess an unlimited
admiration for its constitution, are among the most intemperate
partisans of a bill of rights. To justify their zeal in this matter,
they allege two things: one is that, though the constitution of New
York has no bill of rights prefixed to it, yet it contains, in the
body of it, various provisions in favor of particular privileges and
rights, which, in substance amount to the same thing; the other is,
that the Constitution adopts, in their full extent, the common and
statute law of Great Britain, by which many other rights, not
expressed in it, are equally secured.
To the first I answer, that the Constitution proposed by the
convention contains, as well as the constitution of this State, a
number of such provisions.
Independent of those which relate to the structure of the
government, we find the following: Article 1, section 3, clause
7—"Judgment in cases of impeachment shall not extend further than to
removal from office, and disqualification to hold and enjoy any
office of honor, trust, or profit under the United States; but the
party convicted shall, nevertheless, be liable and subject to
indictment, trial, judgment, and punishment according to law."
Section 9, of the same article, clause 2—"The privilege of the writ
of habeas corpus shall not be suspended, unless when in cases of
rebellion or invasion the public safety may require it." Clause
3—"No bill of attainder or ex-post-facto law shall be passed."
Clause 7—"No title of nobility shall be granted by the United
States; and no person holding any office of profit or trust under
them, shall, without the consent of the Congress, accept of any
present, emolument, office, or title of any kind whatever, from any
king, prince, or foreign state." Article 3, section 2, clause 3—"The
trial of all crimes, except in cases of impeachment, shall be by
jury; and such trial shall be held in the State where the said
crimes shall have been committed; but when not committed within any
State, the trial shall be at such place or places as the Congress
may by law have directed." Section 3, of the same article—"Treason
against the United States shall consist only in levying war against
them, or in adhering to their enemies, giving them aid and comfort.
No person shall be convicted of treason, unless on the testimony of
two witnesses to the same overt act, or on confession in open
court." And clause 3, of the same section—"The Congress shall have
power to declare the punishment of treason; but no attainder of
treason shall work corruption of blood, or forfeiture, except during
the life of the person attainted."
It may well be a question, whether these are not, upon the whole, of
equal importance with any which are to be found in the constitution
of this State. The establishment of the writ of habeas corpus, the
prohibition of ex post facto laws, and of TITLES OF NOBILITY, to
which we have no corresponding provision in our Constitution, are
perhaps greater securities to liberty and republicanism than any it
contains. The creation of crimes after the commission of the fact,
or, in other words, the subjecting of men to punishment for things
which, when they were done, were breaches of no law, and the
practice of arbitrary imprisonments, have been, in all ages, the
favorite and most formidable instruments of tyranny. The
observations of the judicious Blackstone,(1) in reference to the
latter, are well worthy of recital: "To bereave a man of life, (says
he) or by violence to confiscate his estate, without accusation or
trial, would be so gross and notorious an act of despotism, as must
at once convey the alarm of tyranny throughout the whole nation; but
confinement of the person, by secretly hurrying him to jail, where
his sufferings are unknown or forgotten, is a less public, a less
striking, and therefore a more dangerous engine of arbitrary
government." And as a remedy for this fatal evil he is everywhere
peculiarly emphatical in his encomiums on the habeas corpus act,
which in one place he calls "the BULWARK of the British
Constitution."(2)
Nothing need be said to illustrate the importance of the prohibition
of titles of nobility. This may truly be denominated the
corner-stone of republican government; for so long as they are
excluded, there can never be serious danger that the government will
be any other than that of the people.
To the second that is, to the pretended establishment of the common
and state law by the Constitution, I answer, that they are expressly
made subject "to such alterations and provisions as the legislature
shall from time to time make concerning the same." They are
therefore at any moment liable to repeal by the ordinary legislative
power, and of course have no constitutional sanction. The only use
of the declaration was to recognize the ancient law and to remove
doubts which might have been occasioned by the Revolution. This
consequently can be considered as no part of a declaration of
rights, which under our constitutions must be intended as
limitations of the power of the government itself.
It has been several times truly remarked that bills of rights are,
in their origin, stipulations between kings and their subjects,
abridgements of prerogative in favor of privilege, reservations of
rights not surrendered to the prince. Such was MAGNA CHARTA,
obtained by the barons, sword in hand, from King John. Such were the
subsequent confirmations of that charter by succeeding princes. Such
was the Petition of Right assented to by Charles I., in the
beginning of his reign. Such, also, was the Declaration of Right
presented by the Lords and Commons to the Prince of Orange in 1688,
and afterwards thrown into the form of an act of parliament called
the Bill of Rights. It is evident, therefore, that, according to
their primitive signification, they have no application to
constitutions professedly founded upon the power of the people, and
executed by their immediate representatives and servants. Here, in
strictness, the people surrender nothing; and as they retain every
thing they have no need of particular reservations. "WE, THE PEOPLE
of the United States, to secure the blessings of liberty to
ourselves and our posterity, do ordain and establish this
Constitution for the United States of America." Here is a better
recognition of popular rights, than volumes of those aphorisms which
make the principal figure in several of our State bills of rights,
and which would sound much better in a treatise of ethics than in a
constitution of government.
But a minute detail of particular rights is certainly far less
applicable to a Constitution like that under consideration, which is
merely intended to regulate the general political interests of the
nation, than to a constitution which has the regulation of every
species of personal and private concerns. If, therefore, the loud
clamors against the plan of the convention, on this score, are well
founded, no epithets of reprobation will be too strong for the
constitution of this State. But the truth is, that both of them
contain all which, in relation to their objects, is reasonably to be
desired.
I go further, and affirm that bills of rights, in the sense and to
the extent in which they are contended for, are not only unnecessary
in the proposed Constitution, but would even be dangerous. They
would contain various exceptions to powers not granted; and, on this
very account, would afford a colorable pretext to claim more than
were granted. For why declare that things shall not be done which
there is no power to do? Why, for instance, should it be said that
the liberty of the press shall not be restrained, when no power is
given by which restrictions may be imposed? I will not contend that
such a provision would confer a regulating power; but it is evident
that it would furnish, to men disposed to usurp, a plausible
pretense for claiming that power. They might urge with a semblance
of reason, that the Constitution ought not to be charged with the
absurdity of providing against the abuse of an authority which was
not given, and that the provision against restraining the liberty of
the press afforded a clear implication, that a power to prescribe
proper regulations concerning it was intended to be vested in the
national government. This may serve as a specimen of the numerous
handles which would be given to the doctrine of constructive powers,
by the indulgence of an injudicious zeal for bills of rights.
On the subject of the liberty of the press, as much as has been
said, I cannot forbear adding a remark or two: in the first place, I
observe, that there is not a syllable concerning it in the
constitution of this State; in the next, I contend, that whatever
has been said about it in that of any other State, amounts to
nothing. What signifies a declaration, that "the liberty of the
press shall be inviolably preserved"? What is the liberty of the
press? Who can give it any definition which would not leave the
utmost latitude for evasion? I hold it to be impracticable; and from
this I infer, that its security, whatever fine declarations may be
inserted in any constitution respecting it, must altogether depend
on public opinion, and on the general spirit of the people and of
the government.(3) And here, after all, as is intimated upon another
occasion, must we seek for the only solid basis of all our rights.
There remains but one other view of this matter to conclude the
point. The truth is, after all the declamations we have heard, that
the Constitution is itself, in every rational sense, and to every
useful purpose, A BILL OF RIGHTS. The several bills of rights in
Great Britain form its Constitution, and conversely the constitution
of each State is its bill of rights. And the proposed Constitution,
if adopted, will be the bill of rights of the Union. Is it one
object of a bill of rights to declare and specify the political
privileges of the citizens in the structure and administration of
the government? This is done in the most ample and precise manner in
the plan of the convention; comprehending various precautions for
the public security, which are not to be found in any of the State
constitutions. Is another object of a bill of rights to define
certain immunities and modes of proceeding, which are relative to
personal and private concerns? This we have seen has also been
attended to, in a variety of cases, in the same plan. Adverting
therefore to the substantial meaning of a bill of rights, it is
absurd to allege that it is not to be found in the work of the
convention. It may be said that it does not go far enough, though it
will not be easy to make this appear; but it can with no propriety
be contended that there is no such thing. It certainly must be
immaterial what mode is observed as to the order of declaring the
rights of the citizens, if they are to be found in any part of the
instrument which establishes the government. And hence it must be
apparent, that much of what has been said on this subject rests
merely on verbal and nominal distinctions, entirely foreign from the
substance of the thing.
Another objection which has been made, and which, from the frequency
of its repetition, it is to be presumed is relied on, is of this
nature: "It is improper (say the objectors) to confer such large
powers, as are proposed, upon the national government, because the
seat of that government must of necessity be too remote from many of
the States to admit of a proper knowledge on the part of the
constituent, of the conduct of the representative body." This
argument, if it proves any thing, proves that there ought to be no
general government whatever. For the powers which, it seems to be
agreed on all hands, ought to be vested in the Union, cannot be
safely intrusted to a body which is not under every requisite
control. But there are satisfactory reasons to show that the
objection is in reality not well founded. There is in most of the
arguments which relate to distance a palpable illusion of the
imagination. What are the sources of information by which the people
in Montgomery County must regulate their judgment of the conduct of
their representatives in the State legislature? Of personal
observation they can have no benefit. This is confined to the
citizens on the spot. They must therefore depend on the information
of intelligent men, in whom they confide; and how must these men
obtain their information? Evidently from the complexion of public
measures, from the public prints, from correspondences with their
representatives, and with other persons who reside at the place of
their deliberations. This does not apply to Montgomery County only,
but to all the counties at any considerable distance from the seat
of government.
It is equally evident that the same sources of information would be
open to the people in relation to the conduct of their
representatives in the general government, and the impediments to a
prompt communication which distance may be supposed to create, will
be overbalanced by the effects of the vigilance of the State
governments. The executive and legislative bodies of each State will
be so many sentinels over the persons employed in every department
of the national administration; and as it will be in their power to
adopt and pursue a regular and effectual system of intelligence,
they can never be at a loss to know the behavior of those who
represent their constituents in the national councils, and can
readily communicate the same knowledge to the people. Their
disposition to apprise the community of whatever may prejudice its
interests from another quarter, may be relied upon, if it were only
from the rivalship of power. And we may conclude with the fullest
assurance that the people, through that channel, will be better
informed of the conduct of their national representatives, than they
can be by any means they now possess of that of their State
representatives.
It ought also to be remembered that the citizens who inhabit the
country at and near the seat of government will, in all questions
that affect the general liberty and prosperity, have the same
interest with those who are at a distance, and that they will stand
ready to sound the alarm when necessary, and to point out the actors
in any pernicious project. The public papers will be expeditious
messengers of intelligence to the most remote inhabitants of the
Union.
Among the many curious objections which have appeared against the
proposed Constitution, the most extraordinary and the least
colorable is derived from the want of some provision respecting the
debts due to the United States. This has been represented as a tacit
relinquishment of those debts, and as a wicked contrivance to screen
public defaulters. The newspapers have teemed with the most
inflammatory railings on this head; yet there is nothing clearer
than that the suggestion is entirely void of foundation, the
offspring of extreme ignorance or extreme dishonesty. In addition to
the remarks I have made upon the subject in another place, I shall
only observe that as it is a plain dictate of common-sense, so it is
also an established doctrine of political law, that "States neither
lose any of their rights, nor are discharged from any of their
obligations, by a change in the form of their civil government."(4)
The last objection of any consequence, which I at present recollect,
turns upon the article of expense. If it were even true, that the
adoption of the proposed government would occasion a considerable
increase of expense, it would be an objection that ought to have no
weight against the plan.
The great bulk of the citizens of America are with reason convinced,
that Union is the basis of their political happiness. Men of sense
of all parties now, with few exceptions, agree that it cannot be
preserved under the present system, nor without radical alterations;
that new and extensive powers ought to be granted to the national
head, and that these require a different organization of the federal
government—a single body being an unsafe depositary of such ample
authorities. In conceding all this, the question of expense must be
given up; for it is impossible, with any degree of safety, to narrow
the foundation upon which the system is to stand. The two branches
of the legislature are, in the first instance, to consist of only
sixty-five persons, which is the same number of which Congress,
under the existing Confederation, may be composed. It is true that
this number is intended to be increased; but this is to keep pace
with the progress of the population and resources of the country. It
is evident that a less number would, even in the first instance,
have been unsafe, and that a continuance of the present number
would, in a more advanced stage of population, be a very inadequate
representation of the people.
Whence is the dreaded augmentation of expense to spring? One source
indicated, is the multiplication of offices under the new
government. Let us examine this a little.
It is evident that the principal departments of the administration
under the present government, are the same which will be required
under the new. There are now a Secretary of War, a Secretary of
Foreign Affairs, a Secretary for Domestic Affairs, a Board of
Treasury, consisting of three persons, a Treasurer, assistants,
clerks, etc. These officers are indispensable under any system, and
will suffice under the new as well as the old. As to ambassadors and
other ministers and agents in foreign countries, the proposed
Constitution can make no other difference than to render their
characters, where they reside, more respectable, and their services
more useful. As to persons to be employed in the collection of the
revenues, it is unquestionably true that these will form a very
considerable addition to the number of federal officers; but it will
not follow that this will occasion an increase of public expense. It
will be in most cases nothing more than an exchange of State for
national officers. In the collection of all duties, for instance,
the persons employed will be wholly of the latter description. The
States individually will stand in no need of any for this purpose.
What difference can it make in point of expense to pay officers of
the customs appointed by the State or by the United States? There is
no good reason to suppose that either the number or the salaries of
the latter will be greater than those of the former.
Where then are we to seek for those additional articles of expense
which are to swell the account to the enormous size that has been
represented to us? The chief item which occurs to me respects the
support of the judges of the United States. I do not add the
President, because there is now a president of Congress, whose
expenses may not be far, if any thing, short of those which will be
incurred on account of the President of the United States. The
support of the judges will clearly be an extra expense, but to what
extent will depend on the particular plan which may be adopted in
regard to this matter. But upon no reasonable plan can it amount to
a sum which will be an object of material consequence.
Let us now see what there is to counterbalance any extra expense
that may attend the establishment of the proposed government. The
first thing which presents itself is that a great part of the
business which now keeps Congress sitting through the year will be
transacted by the President. Even the management of foreign
negotiations will naturally devolve upon him, according to general
principles concerted with the Senate, and subject to their final
concurrence. Hence it is evident that a portion of the year will
suffice for the session of both the Senate and the House of
Representatives; we may suppose about a fourth for the latter and a
third, or perhaps half, for the former. The extra business of
treaties and appointments may give this extra occupation to the
Senate. From this circumstance we may infer that, until the House of
Representatives shall be increased greatly beyond its present
number, there will be a considerable saving of expense from the
difference between the constant session of the present and the
temporary session of the future Congress.
But there is another circumstance of great importance in the view of
economy. The business of the United States has hitherto occupied the
State legislatures, as well as Congress. The latter has made
requisitions which the former have had to provide for. Hence it has
happened that the sessions of the State legislatures have been
protracted greatly beyond what was necessary for the execution of
the mere local business of the States. More than half their time has
been frequently employed in matters which related to the United
States. Now the members who compose the legislatures of the several
States amount to two thousand and upwards, which number has hitherto
performed what under the new system will be done in the first
instance by sixty-five persons, and probably at no future period by
above a fourth or fifth of that number. The Congress under the
proposed government will do all the business of the United States
themselves, without the intervention of the State legislatures, who
thenceforth will have only to attend to the affairs of their
particular States, and will not have to sit in any proportion as
long as they have heretofore done. This difference in the time of
the sessions of the State legislatures will be clear gain, and will
alone form an article of saving, which may be regarded as an
equivalent for any additional objects of expense that may be
occasioned by the adoption of the new system.
The result from these observations is that the sources of additional
expense from the establishment of the proposed Constitution are much
fewer than may have been imagined; that they are counterbalanced by
considerable objects of saving; and that while it is questionable on
which side the scale will preponderate, it is certain that a
government less expensive would be incompetent to the purposes of
the Union.
PUBLIUS
1. Vide Blackstone's Commentaries, Vol. 1, p. 136.
2. Idem, Vol. 4, p. 438.
3. To show that there is a power in the Constitution by which the
liberty of the press may be affected, recourse has been had to the
power of taxation. It is said that duties may be laid upon the
publications so high as to amount to a prohibition. I know not by
what logic it could be maintained, that the declarations in the
State constitutions, in favor of the freedom of the press, would be
a constitutional impediment to the imposition of duties upon
publications by the State legislatures. It cannot certainly be
pretended that any degree of duties, however low, would be an
abridgment of the liberty of the press. We know that newspapers are
taxed in Great Britain, and yet it is notorious that the press
nowhere enjoys greater liberty than in that country. And if duties
of any kind may be laid without a violation of that liberty, it is
evident that the extent must depend on legislative discretion,
respecting the liberty of the press, will give it no greater
security than it will have without them. The same invasions of it
may be effected under the State constitutions which contain those
declarations through the means of taxation, as under the proposed
Constitution, which has nothing of the kind. It would be quite as
significant to declare that government ought to be free, that taxes
ought not to be excessive, etc., as that the liberty of the press
ought not to be restrained.
4. Vide Rutherford's Institutes, Vol. 2, Book II, Chapter X,
Sections XIV and XV. Vide also Grotius, Book II, Chapter IX,
Sections VIII and IX.
FEDERALIST No. 85.
Concluding Remarks
From MCLEAN's Edition, New York. Wednesday, May 28, 1788
HAMILTON
To the People of the State of New York:
ACCORDING to the formal division of the subject of these papers,
announced in my first number, there would appear still to remain for
discussion two points: "the analogy of the proposed government to
your own State constitution," and "the additional security which its
adoption will afford to republican government, to liberty, and to
property." But these heads have been so fully anticipated and
exhausted in the progress of the work, that it would now scarcely be
possible to do any thing more than repeat, in a more dilated form,
what has been heretofore said, which the advanced stage of the
question, and the time already spent upon it, conspire to forbid.
It is remarkable, that the resemblance of the plan of the convention
to the act which organizes the government of this State holds, not
less with regard to many of the supposed defects, than to the real
excellences of the former. Among the pretended defects are the
re-eligibility of the Executive, the want of a council, the omission
of a formal bill of rights, the omission of a provision respecting
the liberty of the press. These and several others which have been
noted in the course of our inquiries are as much chargeable on the
existing constitution of this State, as on the one proposed for the
Union; and a man must have slender pretensions to consistency, who
can rail at the latter for imperfections which he finds no
difficulty in excusing in the former. Nor indeed can there be a
better proof of the insincerity and affectation of some of the
zealous adversaries of the plan of the convention among us, who
profess to be the devoted admirers of the government under which
they live, than the fury with which they have attacked that plan,
for matters in regard to which our own constitution is equally or
perhaps more vulnerable.
The additional securities to republican government, to liberty and
to property, to be derived from the adoption of the plan under
consideration, consist chiefly in the restraints which the
preservation of the Union will impose on local factions and
insurrections, and on the ambition of powerful individuals in single
States, who may acquire credit and influence enough, from leaders
and favorites, to become the despots of the people; in the
diminution of the opportunities to foreign intrigue, which the
dissolution of the Confederacy would invite and facilitate; in the
prevention of extensive military establishments, which could not
fail to grow out of wars between the States in a disunited
situation; in the express guaranty of a republican form of
government to each; in the absolute and universal exclusion of
titles of nobility; and in the precautions against the repetition of
those practices on the part of the State governments which have
undermined the foundations of property and credit, have planted
mutual distrust in the breasts of all classes of citizens, and have
occasioned an almost universal prostration of morals.
Thus have I, fellow-citizens, executed the task I had assigned to
myself; with what success, your conduct must determine. I trust at
least you will admit that I have not failed in the assurance I gave
you respecting the spirit with which my endeavors should be
conducted. I have addressed myself purely to your judgments, and
have studiously avoided those asperities which are too apt to
disgrace political disputants of all parties, and which have been
not a little provoked by the language and conduct of the opponents
of the Constitution. The charge of a conspiracy against the
liberties of the people, which has been indiscriminately brought
against the advocates of the plan, has something in it too wanton
and too malignant, not to excite the indignation of every man who
feels in his own bosom a refutation of the calumny. The perpetual
changes which have been rung upon the wealthy, the well-born, and
the great, have been such as to inspire the disgust of all sensible
men. And the unwarrantable concealments and misrepresentations which
have been in various ways practiced to keep the truth from the
public eye, have been of a nature to demand the reprobation of all
honest men. It is not impossible that these circumstances may have
occasionally betrayed me into intemperances of expression which I
did not intend; it is certain that I have frequently felt a struggle
between sensibility and moderation; and if the former has in some
instances prevailed, it must be my excuse that it has been neither
often nor much.
Let us now pause and ask ourselves whether, in the course of these
papers, the proposed Constitution has not been satisfactorily
vindicated from the aspersions thrown upon it; and whether it has
not been shown to be worthy of the public approbation, and necessary
to the public safety and prosperity. Every man is bound to answer
these questions to himself, according to the best of his conscience
and understanding, and to act agreeably to the genuine and sober
dictates of his judgment. This is a duty from which nothing can give
him a dispensation. 'T is one that he is called upon, nay,
constrained by all the obligations that form the bands of society,
to discharge sincerely and honestly. No partial motive, no
particular interest, no pride of opinion, no temporary passion or
prejudice, will justify to himself, to his country, or to his
posterity, an improper election of the part he is to act. Let him
beware of an obstinate adherence to party; let him reflect that the
object upon which he is to decide is not a particular interest of
the community, but the very existence of the nation; and let him
remember that a majority of America has already given its sanction
to the plan which he is to approve or reject.
I shall not dissemble that I feel an entire confidence in the
arguments which recommend the proposed system to your adoption, and
that I am unable to discern any real force in those by which it has
been opposed. I am persuaded that it is the best which our political
situation, habits, and opinions will admit, and superior to any the
revolution has produced.
Concessions on the part of the friends of the plan, that it has not
a claim to absolute perfection, have afforded matter of no small
triumph to its enemies. "Why," say they, "should we adopt an
imperfect thing? Why not amend it and make it perfect before it is
irrevocably established?" This may be plausible enough, but it is
only plausible. In the first place I remark, that the extent of
these concessions has been greatly exaggerated. They have been
stated as amounting to an admission that the plan is radically
defective, and that without material alterations the rights and the
interests of the community cannot be safely confided to it. This, as
far as I have understood the meaning of those who make the
concessions, is an entire perversion of their sense. No advocate of
the measure can be found, who will not declare as his sentiment,
that the system, though it may not be perfect in every part, is,
upon the whole, a good one; is the best that the present views and
circumstances of the country will permit; and is such an one as
promises every species of security which a reasonable people can
desire.
I answer in the next place, that I should esteem it the extreme of
imprudence to prolong the precarious state of our national affairs,
and to expose the Union to the jeopardy of successive experiments,
in the chimerical pursuit of a perfect plan. I never expect to see a
perfect work from imperfect man. The result of the deliberations of
all collective bodies must necessarily be a compound, as well of the
errors and prejudices, as of the good sense and wisdom, of the
individuals of whom they are composed. The compacts which are to
embrace thirteen distinct States in a common bond of amity and
union, must as necessarily be a compromise of as many dissimilar
interests and inclinations. How can perfection spring from such
materials?
The reasons assigned in an excellent little pamphlet lately
published in this city,(1) are unanswerable to show the utter
improbability of assembling a new convention, under circumstances in
any degree so favorable to a happy issue, as those in which the late
convention met, deliberated, and concluded. I will not repeat the
arguments there used, as I presume the production itself has had an
extensive circulation. It is certainly well worthy the perusal of
every friend to his country. There is, however, one point of light
in which the subject of amendments still remains to be considered,
and in which it has not yet been exhibited to public view. I cannot
resolve to conclude without first taking a survey of it in this
aspect.
It appears to me susceptible of absolute demonstration, that it will
be far more easy to obtain subsequent than previous amendments to
the Constitution. The moment an alteration is made in the present
plan, it becomes, to the purpose of adoption, a new one, and must
undergo a new decision of each State. To its complete establishment
throughout the Union, it will therefore require the concurrence of
thirteen States. If, on the contrary, the Constitution proposed
should once be ratified by all the States as it stands, alterations
in it may at any time be effected by nine States. Here, then, the
chances are as thirteen to nine(2) in favor of subsequent amendment,
rather than of the original adoption of an entire system.
This is not all. Every Constitution for the United States must
inevitably consist of a great variety of particulars, in which
thirteen independent States are to be accommodated in their
interests or opinions of interest. We may of course expect to see,
in any body of men charged with its original formation, very
different combinations of the parts upon different points. Many of
those who form a majority on one question, may become the minority
on a second, and an association dissimilar to either may constitute
the majority on a third. Hence the necessity of moulding and
arranging all the particulars which are to compose the whole, in
such a manner as to satisfy all the parties to the compact; and
hence, also, an immense multiplication of difficulties and
casualties in obtaining the collective assent to a final act. The
degree of that multiplication must evidently be in a ratio to the
number of particulars and the number of parties.
But every amendment to the Constitution, if once established, would
be a single proposition, and might be brought forward singly. There
would then be no necessity for management or compromise, in relation
to any other point—no giving nor taking. The will of the requisite
number would at once bring the matter to a decisive issue. And
consequently, whenever nine, or rather ten States, were united in
the desire of a particular amendment, that amendment must infallibly
take place. There can, therefore, be no comparison between the
facility of affecting an amendment, and that of establishing in the
first instance a complete Constitution.
In opposition to the probability of subsequent amendments, it has
been urged that the persons delegated to the administration of the
national government will always be disinclined to yield up any
portion of the authority of which they were once possessed. For my
own part I acknowledge a thorough conviction that any amendments
which may, upon mature consideration, be thought useful, will be
applicable to the organization of the government, not to the mass of
its powers; and on this account alone, I think there is no weight in
the observation just stated. I also think there is little weight in
it on another account. The intrinsic difficulty of governing
THIRTEEN STATES at any rate, independent of calculations upon an
ordinary degree of public spirit and integrity, will, in my opinion
constantly impose on the national rulers the necessity of a spirit
of accommodation to the reasonable expectations of their
constituents. But there is yet a further consideration, which proves
beyond the possibility of a doubt, that the observation is futile.
It is this that the national rulers, whenever nine States concur,
will have no option upon the subject. By the fifth article of the
plan, the Congress will be obliged "on the application of the
legislatures of two thirds of the States (which at present amount to
nine), to call a convention for proposing amendments, which shall be
valid, to all intents and purposes, as part of the Constitution,
when ratified by the legislatures of three fourths of the States, or
by conventions in three fourths thereof." The words of this article
are peremptory. The Congress "shall call a convention." Nothing in
this particular is left to the discretion of that body. And of
consequence, all the declamation about the disinclination to a
change vanishes in air. Nor however difficult it may be supposed to
unite two thirds or three fourths of the State legislatures, in
amendments which may affect local interests, can there be any room
to apprehend any such difficulty in a union on points which are
merely relative to the general liberty or security of the people. We
may safely rely on the disposition of the State legislatures to
erect barriers against the encroachments of the national authority.
If the foregoing argument is a fallacy, certain it is that I am
myself deceived by it, for it is, in my conception, one of those
rare instances in which a political truth can be brought to the test
of a mathematical demonstration. Those who see the matter in the
same light with me, however zealous they may be for amendments, must
agree in the propriety of a previous adoption, as the most direct
road to their own object.
The zeal for attempts to amend, prior to the establishment of the
Constitution, must abate in every man who is ready to accede to the
truth of the following observations of a writer equally solid and
ingenious: "To balance a large state or society (says he), whether
monarchical or republican, on general laws, is a work of so great
difficulty, that no human genius, however comprehensive, is able, by
the mere dint of reason and reflection, to effect it. The judgments
of many must unite in the work; EXPERIENCE must guide their labor;
TIME must bring it to perfection, and the FEELING of inconveniences
must correct the mistakes which they inevitably fall into in their
first trials and experiments."(3) These judicious reflections
contain a lesson of moderation to all the sincere lovers of the
Union, and ought to put them upon their guard against hazarding
anarchy, civil war, a perpetual alienation of the States from each
other, and perhaps the military despotism of a victorious demagogue,
in the pursuit of what they are not likely to obtain, but from TIME
and EXPERIENCE. It may be in me a defect of political fortitude, but
I acknowledge that I cannot entertain an equal tranquillity with
those who affect to treat the dangers of a longer continuance in our
present situation as imaginary. A NATION, without a NATIONAL
GOVERNMENT, is, in my view, an awful spectacle. The establishment of
a Constitution, in time of profound peace, by the voluntary consent
of a whole people, is a PRODIGY, to the completion of which I look
forward with trembling anxiety. I can reconcile it to no rules of
prudence to let go the hold we now have, in so arduous an
enterprise, upon seven out of the thirteen States, and after having
passed over so considerable a part of the ground, to recommence the
course. I dread the more the consequences of new attempts, because I
know that POWERFUL INDIVIDUALS, in this and in other States, are
enemies to a general national government in every possible shape.
PUBLIUS
1. Entitled "An Address to the People of the State of New York."
2. It may rather be said TEN, for though two thirds may set on foot
the measure, three fourths must ratify.
3. Hume's Essays, Vol. I, p. 128: "The Rise of Arts and Sciences."
Your Support Maintains this
Service --
BUY
The Rex Research Civilization Kit
... It's Your Best Bet & Investment in
Sustainable Humanity on Earth ...
Ensure & Enhance Your Survival & Genome
Transmission ...
Everything @ rexresearch.com on a Data DVD !
ORDER PAGE